“Grappling with the monsters of the American Psyche” (part 1) by Bradford Riley

“One important aspect indicated by Rudolf Steiner is that Sophia is a cosmic being, whose nature embraces the whole cosmos. Thus, when we contemplate a map of the galaxy we gain insights into Sophia, who holds the blueprint for creation.”

Lazarus last supper age of the fishes

Novalis Hymns to the Night

“BEFORE all the wondrous shows of the widespread space around him, what living, sentient thing loves not the all-joyous light, with its colors, its rays and undulations, its gentle omnipresence in the form of the wakening Day? The giant-world of the unresting constellations Zodiac Ernest Procter 1886 to 1935inhales it as the innermost soul of life, and floats dancing in its azure flood; the sparkling, ever-tranquil stone, the thoughtful, imbibing plant, and the wild, burning multiform beast inhales it; but more than all, the lordly stranger with the sense-filled eyes, the swaying walk, and the sweetly closed, melodious lips. Like a king over earthly nature, it rouses every force to countless transformations, binds and unbinds innumerable alliances, hangs its heavenly form around every earthly substance. Its presence alone reveals the marvelous splendor of the kingdoms of the world.”  Novalis – Hymns to the Night translated by George MacDonald

This is part 1 the INTRO

Part 2 (click Link) evaluates our CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL from the 5th Age of our American Perspective

Part 3 (Click Link) evaluates SPIRIT-SELF, Manas and challenges of the 6th Age

Part 4 (Click Link is Ready HERE) evaluates the 7th Age of Capricorn, Life-Spirit, Budhi, and the Eighth Sphere

Hitching a ride in the age of Pisces, and riding along without even an interest under which constellation our entire experiential age, our entire world is dominated by, is a typical bored passenger psychosis, a typical tired tourist apathy and indifference of the soul. No matter how many snapshots and photo ops we may takeage of America hampster wheel incarnation and the zodiac we still all ride within the hamster wheel of time like clueless mice in a cage. “Big wheel, keep on turning Proud Mary, keep on burning rolling, rolling, rolling…”  (Click Link)

We are riding along, and we can raise the ante on both Rod Serling and Stephen King because they are part of the vast American legacy of our Fifth Age, The age of Pisces the Fishes. And the Fifth Age entails the Science of Imagination and the threshold of mapping out the future of our higher human consciousness.

However it is the Science of Magical Idealism and the Science of Spiritual Science and the Michael School founded by Novalis, Goethe and Rudolf Steiner that may read the accurate writing of the Stars, the great Clock of the Heavens and the Cosmic Time Panorama left by St. John in his adoration of Sophia, Queen of the Starry Worlds.

There is a fifth dimension, beyond that which is known to man. It is a dimension as vast as space and as timeless as infinity. It is the middle ground between light and shadow, between science and superstition, and it lies between the pit of man’s fears and the summit of his knowledge. This is the dimension of imagination. It is an area which we call the Twilight Zone.

We verge, tiptoe and dance on the threshold of the unknown vastness of Rod Serling’s the THE FIFTH. In the geographic far West we call this place of Atavism, of sublimated American Clairvoyance and atavistic Twilight Zone Research, Hollywood. We are traveling in a very specific Space and Time, with the specific character, hazards and magic that the Constellation of Pisces offers us. It is reflected, glistening and sparkling on the rippling waters of the etheric and astral worlds of our lower devachan.

What do we mean by the lower Devachan? Pertinent to our study we can show two interconnected examples of the curiosity of the Monsters of the American Psyche that we must grapple with from now on into the future, past the Sixth Epoch. The most important measure of GRAPPLING WITH THE MONSTERS OF THE AMERICAN PSYCHE is our ability, the literature and imaginative ability of our writers and authors, to comprehend what we are seeing with our eyes and our slumbering wits and sleeping consciousness. In comparative studies, most alert souls, would recognize the similarities between two examples of two Devachan assassins who already serve the Asuras (link).

In the course of our examination of Grappling with the Monsters of the American Psyche we will draw an occult map of The United States. We will define certain regional mysteries in the geographic structure of The United States. We will unveil, we will draw open the curtain and unveil where, GEOGRAPHICALLY, some of the Monsters that demonize the United States of America, dwell.  We will understand the geographic location of Luciferic pockets of absolute soul corruption and addiction; We will locate and understand geographically pockets of absolute Ahrimanic desolation and corruption; and we will understand where and at what location the Asuric forces and the doorways to Asuric forces were cracked open and surged forth to spiritually corrupt and compromise all material existence on the Earth.

(Rudolf Steiner March 22, 1909)

“Lucifer’s influence in the Sentient Soul which has come into being through the transformation of the astral body; Ahriman’s effect upon the Intellectual Soul, which came about through the transformation of the etheric body; the influence of the Asuras is described as extend­ing into the human Consciousness Soul and the ego, whose activities in man are based on transformation of the physical body.

“The effects of Ahriman are connected with the mirroring of the lower Devachan, that of the Asuras with the mirroring of the higher Devachan in the physical world. Here, we have a second criterion indicating that in the case of the Asuras, we are dealing with an independent realm of beings within the adver­sary powers.”  HANS-WERNER SCHROEDER

As in Tolkien with Middle Earth, in real time, these monsters have infected the occult landscape of the Geography of the United States and polluted it with ghosts, demons and occult Devachan Assassins. So here are two examples of Asuric Devachan assassins pulled up out of the Dramatic Insights into the Science of Imagination native to the American Psyche.Age of America twin devachan demons The first example that mirrors the second example is from the Matrix Series. There are two twin demonic Devachan Asuric Assassins who engage the Matrix Gang while they attempt to protect the Key Maker.  (Click Link Twin Devachan Demonic Assassins).

The other example of the Twin Assassins comes from the early episodes of “Breaking Bad”. Hank, the brother in law to Walter, is shot and nearly killed by the two twin assassins from the cartels located in the South Western Region of the United States. These two assassins are modified versions of absolute merciless evil that have also arisen out of the strange mystical spirituality of the South West Region of the United States that Carlos Castaneda explored in his works. The mirrored example of these Devachan Assassins from the Matrix are  – Tuco’s cousins from “Breaking Bad”  (CLICK LINK Tuco’s Cousins).Age of America Breaking Bad Tuco's cousins

The Matrix Series gives a pure dose, a Devachan dose, of the imaginative cognition of two Demonic Assassins (CLICK EXAMPLE 2). And following up, homegrown, out of the cartels of the South West Region of the United States, where the dark occult forces of Carlos Castaneda picked up the merciless thread of the lower Asuric forces, without conscience, with no moral centricity, save the centricity of Evil in the Core of the Earth Mysteries, which we as humanity are now obliged to face. (Example 2 of human demonically possessed human beings).

Devachan Astral Dream Assassin themes

“A few months before Freddy Krueger began stalking the sleep of American teens in the A Nightmare on Elm Street franchise, and almost three decades before Christopher Nolan’s Inception, Joseph Ruben’s Dreamscape used the world of dreams as a battleground. Where A Nightmare on Elm Street subverted the slasher genre and Inception was an inverted heist movie, Dreamscape was a sci-fi thriller in which the very future of the planet was at stake. Very loosely based on a treatment author Roger Zelazny wrote of his novel The Dream Master (1966), Dreamscape touched on an issue very much in people’s minds at the time. With fears of the possibility of nuclear Armageddon at their height, Ruben’s movie posited a scenario in which a trained dream-assassin would murder the president in his sleep, thus killing him in real life and halting his plans to bring nuclear proliferation to a halt.”

The Big Clock is a precise Cultural and Spiritual Time Piece out of which our own daily lives and our biographies MUST share the time-piece of the stars, for the Big Clock moves 1 degree every 72 years which is the average length of one biographical human life span. Age of America sophia clockWhichever constellation dominates the time of the Spring Equinox, writes the over all outline and tale of humanity into the script of every incarnation during a period of literal time, an approximate period of 2,160 years, which is marked by the laws of Sophia Herself.

“The Earth is not a perfect sphere due to the gravitational attraction of the Sun and Moon on the equatorial bulge of the Earth which causes the rotation of the Earth to wobble on its axis like a fast spinning top. This unique motion results in the precession of the equinoxes. Over a period of one year, when the Sun returns to the vernal equinox, it is fifty seconds of arc behind its last position, equal to about one degree of arc every seventy-two years. It completes a retrograde circle of the twelve constellations in approximately 26,000 years. This journey in time is known as the Great Year. A cosmic month is approximately 2160 years, the approximate time it takes for the vernal point to move through one constellation. The constellation through which the vernal point is moving has a strong influence over the age and history of the world.”

Every human being has several incarnations as either a woman or a man within the giant experiential script of the 2,160 years it takes to write another chapter in the great Divine Book. St. John read this book and all of us, including St. John must live the great Divine Chapters, and write our own poems and progress (or regress) into the script of the great Book. This is something that Novalis was fully aware of.

O Me! O Life!” by Walt Whitman

“Answer.
That you are here—that life exists and identity,
That the powerful play goes on, and you may contribute a verse.”

Spiritual Science is the School of Novalis and Sophia known as Anthrosophia. The laws of Sophia and the Stars are deeply etched into each and everyone of our own Etheric Bodies be they male or female and Shakespeare accurately recorded how a psychopath thinks as she or he impacts the walls of Time having imploded their incarnations into karmic catastrophe.

“To-morrow, and to-morrow, and to-morrow,
Creeps in this petty pace from day to day
To the last syllable of recorded time,
And all our yesterdays have lighted fools
The way to dusty death. Out, out, brief candle!
Life’s but a walking shadow, a poor player
That struts and frets his hour upon the stage…”

We once had old upright Grandfather Clocks that had swinging pendulums that were like the visual pulse of time, like an inverted metronome. A pacemaker ticker mirrored our own rapid pulse – against the vast divine pulse of the Great Grand Father clock of the heavens, the Big Ben of the seasons, the 12 months, the 12 hours,  and the 12 AGES which bring our incarnations continuously through the vast cultural and spiritual changes we record as human history. Age of America Sophia Grandmother clockWe might rather, like Novalis, tend to honor the Great Grand Mother Clock of Sophia. The wise Grand Mother of the Stars, who along with St. John, Novalis and the precise science of Spiritual Science look to the daughter of Sophia growing in the Soul of humanity, named ANTHROSOPHIA. This daughter of Sophia, slowly growing in each human soul, is the birth of the higher intelligence of the human I AM who looks up to the great wisdom of vast Cosmo-Sophia.

So each of us are very much immersed, engaged and submerged into the character of this, our own, current, Piscean Age. And each of us carry with us like a comets tail, our own personal karmic legacy and karmic history where we have TOUCHED DOWN into incarnation. Along with the 12 AGES on the Great Clock of the Heavens, we also, may NOW, through Spiritual Science and the Novalis School of Michael, focus our attention on the individual Karmic History of each unique I AM.age of America pisces 2 Naput Muveszeti Akademia Gizella

Time becomes far less abstract and human beings awaken our most heightened spiritual interest when we learn to FISH OUT of the stream of time the intimacies of our unique karmic contributions. When we learn to see how America has a vast Archai Fire Spirit, sub-normal Spirit of Personality three stages above our human development, struggling to bring the grotesque combinations of Archangels, Angels and our individual human ‘I’ developments into a higher consistency, we must gasp. The melting-pot is all jumbled together and mixed with our moral contradictions and the ragged rips in the spiritual and materialistic conditions of The United States of America.

The United States Archai Spirit, once an Archangel of the Egyptian People, incomplete, unfinished, imprisoned occultly in the Fiery Furnace in the core of our Earth, has come forth as the significantly challenged guiding Fire Spirit of America. Those primal planetary Fire Beings that first forged the first appearance of our human I AM,  arose from the ancient Saturn Evolution. The vast American Archai, our stunted, unfinished Super Power, now struggles to atone for Egypt and attain the mission of humanity, and the Earth Herself, which is Love.

Enormous planet forces locked in the Sixth Layer of the Inner Earth (click Link) had imprisoned this Egyptian Archangel Being, and only through the birth out of the Fiery Core has this Archangel graduated to become the tormented, incomplete Archai of America Herself.

“These layers represents even earlier stages of planetary evolution (Old Saturn) and contains retarded powers from still higher hierarchies (archai or spirits of personality / time spirits).”

To peer into the core of a fiery Spirit of Personality, a planetary force of Being that now is wedded to the destiny of the American Soul, makes us gasp. All the deepest, darkest mysteries of human evolution, where Cain murdered his brother Abel, where Set overthrew Osiris now torment the unfolding super-power of this young unformed, abnormal Archai, which we call America.

Osiris “…left Isis to rule Egypt when he decided to spread his rule around the world. He returned only after civilizing the entire earth. He found that Isis ruled wisely and his kingdom was still in perfect order. However, it was at this point that his brother, Set, began plotting against him. There are many stories of how Osiris was killed. The most common is that Set held an extravagant banquet and invited Osiris. After the festivities were over, Set produced a magnificent coffin and offered it as a gift to whomever it fitted best. Of course, it had been built for Osiris’s form and when he got in it, Set shut the lid and threw it in the Nile river.

“Set took Osiris’s place as king while the grieving Isis searched for Osiris’s remains. She found the body in a far away place called Byblos, brought it back to Egypt, and hid it in the marsh. Set found it, unfortunately, and tore the body in pieces, throwing them again into the river. Isis collected all the pieces except the genitals, which had been eaten by fish.”

A little later we shall come upon the tale of “Moby Dick” and reconnect to the prophet Elijah. We can hardly imagine, provided we haven’t had training in the Science of Imagination, that hiding the Egyptian tale of Osiris in the unfathomable depths of our American Unconscious, is really an ART form that schools human intuition, vividly, under the School of Novalis and John the Baptist. Before Darwin even got his research upside down and backwards to the Evolution of Humanity, Melville had already fathomed, charted and mapped the unconscious regions where Osiris and Egypt survived in the sperm and genitals of the Age of the Fishes. Melville was already there in the Science of Novalis and the Michael School.

“Cetology” reminds the reader that Melville came before Darwin

“There are a lot of different whales. The biggest is the sperm whale. Sperm whales are not only big, but dangerous. They are commercially valuable because they have the best oil and some white waxy crap in their brains called spermaceti that gets used in all sorts of ointments and cosmetics.  Moby Dick is a sperm whale.”

But how does an Archangel get the awkward promotion to the rank of abnormal, stunted Archai over the vast regions of the Geographic United States of America? There are three things we might hold fast in our consciousness. One – an interesting overlay of Spirit and Geography that places the central river of the Nile (that flowed NORTH with etheric arterial potent spirituality) and the central river of Mark Twain’s Mississippi, (which flows SOUTH) as a kind of etheric central artery.  A giant geographic over laid memory system in America that resembles, in part, the kind of central mystery of Egypt and the big bad Nile River that the ancient Egyptians considered their core cultural mystery.  “Sirius was a very important star to the ancient Egyptians, who called it the Star of Isis or the Nile Star. About 5,000 years ago, the helical rising of Sirius occurred earlier, around June 25.” Age of America Sophia Nut and Isis-SophiaTwo – comparing the failed, crude and materialistic cosmology and striving for star wisdom of the United States, compared to – the powerful Devachan vision, mapping the journey of souls after death into the stars, with the magnificent and beneficent wisdom and blessing of Nut, who represented the vast Mothering forces of the starry Cosmos, and the cultural support to the ancient Isis Mysteries. To which, today, the Sophia Mysteries of the School of Novalis have been slowly rising again from the far West to take the place of the ancient Isis Mysteries of Egypt. Three – That the Archangel’s regeneration and resurrection to Fire Spirit, abnormal Archai, and stunted Spirit of Form, lay in the mystery of THE FISHES, Pisces and the rise of the vast American continent in the age of the Fishes, in the Far West.

Mark Twain rode the American Folk Soul, reflected the American Folk substance, the way Egyptians might have used the Nile for commerce, gambling and riverboat escapades. The untapped shadow, the double, the region that was awakened with the discovery of America brought the active concrete SHADOW into real time. The rise of the former Egyptian age did not have to deal with consequences, the conscious consequences of our human SHADOWS. The current struggle of the abnormal, stunted Archai that sends it’s vast tentacles through the entire population of the United States, must now deal with the stunted shadow that was left undealt with in Egypt.

The American Doppelganger

“For a long time before the beginning of the development of the fifth post-Atlantean epoch. Europe had to be protected from the influence of the Western world. This is the significant historical arrangement that was cultivated by wisdom-filled world powers. Europe had to be protected for a long time from all these influences; and it could not have been protected if the European world had not been completely shut off from America in the centuries before the fifteenth century.”

The discovery of America in the Age of Pisces, the Fifth Age, awaited the dawning of THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL. The discovery of America, where the mystery of the Shadow and the human doppelganger had now to become fully conscious also required the Archangel of the Egyptian people to face the consequences and occult powers that are the real forces of the Moral Developments that both humanity and Gods must live with.

“In the depths of human souls, the Double acquires ever greater power over the unconscious life of human will, binding souls with powers that derive entirely from the earth itself— rigidifying forces of mechanization and subnature (especially gravity, electricity, and magnetism). Indeed, Steiner stated that in America those sub-earthly magnetic forces that connect the human being more closely with the Double rise up most strongly. These forces are connected with the fact that on the American continents, most of the mountain ranges run in a north-south direction.

A promotion and a new assignment that placed the Moral Maturity of the American People in the service of an abnormal Fire Archai, Spirit of Personality, was now required payment for the Egyptian Age. A Super-Power would either grow into a mighty nation of black magicians by the 7th Age, THE AGE OF AMERICA or the souls of the human beings of the United States would break through to a New Cosmology, a New Christology, a New Cosmogony and grow inwardly to become Sophia’s Wedding Guests, dressed in White Garments and purified with clear Etheric Goodness, wrought from moral courage and conscious spiritual development.

I give you a riddle. We shall solve this riddle together ‘we shall meet this tormented abnormal Archai and premature Spirit of Form through the birth of Manhattan’. I’ll give you a clue, this is not a cliché. This is not a trite or overused expression or idea. It is a fact that requires the occult mystery of Language and the Word. It is also a fact that the decadence of the Egyptian Age has carried a huge cultural price tag that The United States of America must pay for the karma of the decadent Egyptian Age. It is the mystery of the WORD on which all things rest. Age of America issues of Egypt 1Final Sticker Shock of the human cost we shall pay makes us gasp. If we knew that the crowning culmination of the final gasps of Earth Evolution ends with the epitaph and epistle of the Apocalypse pointing to THE AMERICAN AGE, we would quiver with caution as to what we are planting as deeds into the final phases of this the Piscean Age.

We must gasp, for we may compare our own American Fire Spirit to the Archai of the Sun, Michael, and the Michael School parameters of higher human spiritual development against the background of the jagged, juggling of the vast continent and Beings that are the collective we all understand as the American Soul. We shall introduce ourselves to this mighty sub-normal Archai, forged as a Fire Spirit from the very primal beginnings of the creation of humanity, who must carry the occult damage of the once grand mystery of the Egyptian Age.

We will learn to understand the geographic regions of the United States that are colored by literal Archangel Beings, two stages above humanity. These Archangel Beings give the different regional Speech dialects,  colloquial  modulations and accents the flavors and pulse of the very Soul of the different Geographic Regions of the United States. We can clearly zero in on Etheric Identity markers in the use of vowels and consonants, gestures, styles of dress, mannerisms of different Archangel Regions. These mannerisms, gestures and Speech Patterns arise organically and naturally from the etheric body of the different regions and are woven into the etheric body and astral nuances of persons influenced and associated with those regions. It is within immediate hearing of any voice or group of voices that we can identify strong Archangelic, Geographic and etheric influences that have formed the roots, character and souls of specific groups and colored the expressions of individuals.

As an example we can take the film”Fargo” itself and how it represents a slice of such an Archangelic Regioinal Soul flavor and behavior experience which Rod Serling correctly designated as what  “lies between the pit of man’s fears and the summit of his knowledge.” It is how the School of Spiritual Science can define the middle ground where, naive and warm hearted, the American Soul of humanity dwells on the threshold between the depths of evil and the heights of wisdom.

The American Heartland is a repository, was a repository for the once easy to define Good. The occult vision of the Heartland was captured concretely HERE – (CLICK LINK). This was the Initiation we are all undergoing at the THRESHOLD. (Study this short clip carefully CLICK LINK) This was the nature of our dwelling place in America and is known in the Novalis School as the region of THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL.

Frank Capra and the CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL

The name “Capra”, notes Capra’s biographer Joseph McBride, represents his family’s closeness to the land, and means “she-goat”.[4] He notes that the English word “capricious” derives from it…”

American Age – Sea-Goat, Capricorn 5733 – 7893 AD

Although It’s a Wonderful Life is his best-known film, Friedman notes that it was Mr. Smith Goes to Washington (1939) which most represented the “Capra myth.” That film expressed Capra’s patriotism more than any others, and “presented the individual working within the democratic system to overcome rampant political corruption.”[2]

The film, however, became Capra’s most controversial. In his research before filming, he was able to stand close to President Roosevelt during a press conference after the recent acts of war by Germany in Europe. Capra recalls his fears:

And panic hit me. Japan was slicing up the colossus of China piece by piece. Nazi panzers had rolled into Austria and Czechoslovakia; their thunder echoed over Europe. England and France shuddered. The Russian bear growled ominously in the Kremlin. The black cloud of war hung over the chancelleries of the world. Official Washington from the President down, was in the process of making hard, torturing decisions. “And here was I, in the process of making a satire about government officials; … Wasn’t this the most untimely time for me to make a film about Washington?”[17]

When the filming was completed, the studio sent preview copies to Washington. Joseph P. Kennedy, U.S. ambassador to the UK, wrote to Columbia head Harry Cohn, “Please do not play this picture in Europe.”[2] Politicians were concerned about the potential negative impact the film might have on the morale of our allies, as World War II had begun. Kennedy wrote to president Roosevelt that “in foreign countries this film must inevitably strengthen the mistaken impression that the United States is full of graft, corruption and lawlessness.”[18] Many studio heads agreed nor did they want negative feelings about Hollywood to be instilled in political leaders.[19]

Nonetheless, Capra’s vision of the film’s significance was clear:

The more uncertain are the people of the world, the more their hard-won freedoms are scattered and lost in the winds of chance, the more they need a ringing statement of America’s democratic ideals. The soul of our film would be anchored in Lincoln. Our Jefferson Smith would be a young Abe Lincoln, tailored to the rail-splitter’s simplicity, compassion, ideals, humor, and unswerving moral courage under pressure.[20]

Capra pleaded with Cohn to allow the film to go into distribution and remembers the intensity of their decision making:

Harry Cohn paced the floor, as stunned as Abraham must have been when the Lord asked him to sacrifice his beloved son Isaac.[21]

Cohn and Capra chose to ignore the negative publicity and demands, and released the film as planned. It was later nominated for 11 Academy Awards, only winning one (for Best Original Story) partly because of the number of major pictures that were nominated that year, including The Wizard of Oz and Gone with the Wind.[13] Hollywood columnist Louella Parsons called it a “smash patriotic hit” and most critics agreed, seeing that audiences left the theaters with “an enthusiasm for democracy” and “in a glow of patriotism.”[18]

The significance of the film’s message was established further in France, shortly after World War II began. When the French public were asked to select which film they wanted to see most, having been told by the Vichy government that soon no more American films would be allowed in France, the overwhelming majority chose it over all others. To a France, soon to be invaded and occupied by Nazi forces, the film most expressed the “perseverance of democracy and the American way.”[2]

Our humanity is set to be challenged from now on, into the future times, with coming to meet in ourselves and in our individual karma the Monsters of the American Psyche. If the Heartland is to survive Ahriman’s crushing consolidations and advanced genetic, psychic and pharmaceutical modifications that will be imposed as humanity, all humanity are herded toward “The Singularity”(Click Link IF you wish to walk richly through Noam Chomsky’s POV it is lengthy and rich), of the merging of our psychic and social melding of technology with our Astral, and Etheric and even the corruption of our ‘I’, the Heartland must find the courage to gain insight into the wisdom and vision of THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL.

Garrison Keillor, planted firmly in the Geographic Heartland represents what we once called the GOOD. The Good, which the Shepherds heard the Angels Sing to  MEN OF GOOD WILL and which inspired Frank Capra, also is and was invested in Keillor’s spirit.  We find in the same region of Fargo North Dakota and under the same Archangelic Region, that Garrison Keillor, as one of the many Initiates of the Heartland, we find the literal geographic region of the Prairie States, known to United States audiences as  “A Prairie Home Companion”.
Age of America map Prairie States

In terms of the American Soul substance we can find the complete fictional opposite of Garrison Keillor in the brilliant American Soul and psyche explorations of Stephen King. The geographic region of the Prairie States, have a particular regional accent and character that is very, very different than the Archangelic region of the American South West. We can see this clearly and it is indisputable in terms of understanding the Etheric Character of the different geographic regions of the United States.

“Lake Wobegon” are the episodic chapters of the limited and naive central mystery of watered down Lutheran American Goodness who remain too shy, too backward, and too misinformed to come to terms with the sub-normal Archai, Fire Spirit of Personality, that dominates the foundations of the American Psyche. Stephen King sometimes comes much closer in his sketches and writings than anything imagined in “Lake Wobegon”.

Watered down goodness alone cannot appreciate the human wholeness that radiates from Michael the Archai and Time Spirit of our Age who stands firmly next to the Risen Etheric Christ Being. These Powers and Beings scare the timid, shy and cowardly Christian into shrinking into the shadows cast by the rigid traditions of goodness.

“In earlier times it was sufficient to speak to people about the super-sensible world in the way in which the religious faiths (click link) still want to speak. Today this will no longer do. Today people often get themselves into difficulties precisely because they wish to promote eternal bliss in an egoistic way through the religious faiths.”

And we need vast human pockets of new erupting and conscious goodness, arising all through the Heart of America. We need our Goodness raised gradually to the heights of spiritual courage and THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL. We need Lake Wobegon and Stephen King and the Schooling of Novalis and Spiritual Science to penetrate the vast dark mysteries of America.

These Monsters of the American Psyche that we can identify clearly, erupt from the unrecognized shadow and black hole in the central core of the human ‘I’. The human being, as an immortal participant in the unfolding of Divine Evolution, as a member of THE TENTH HIERARCHY, one level below the Angel Kingdom, we are required to monitor, contain and confront our shadows.

As Rod Serling, Rudolf Steiner,  Novalis, Goethe, St. John and Nietzsche demanded, we are destined to encounter and study everything that lies at the pit of humanities fears, to the height of humanities wisdom. This is indeed the region of THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL that must be explored and encountered NOW. The Consciousness Soul is our overall lesson plan, that meets every human being over the face of the Earth who are incarnated now under the vast zodiacal time frame of THE FISHES.

Rudolf Steiner

Anthroposophical Leading Thoughts

“184. This makes it urgent for man to find in conscious experience a knowledge of the Spirit, wherein he will rise as high above Nature as in his sub-natural technical activities he sinks beneath her. He will thus create within him the inner strength not to go under.”

“…the possibility of finding a true relationship to the Ahrimanic civilization has escaped man. He must find the strength, the inner force of knowledge, in order not to be overcome by Ahriman in this technical civilization. He must understand Sub-Nature for what it really is. This he can only do if he rises, in spiritual knowledge, at least as far into extra-earthly Super-Nature as he has descended, in technical Sciences, into Sub-Nature. The age requires a knowledge transcending Nature, because in its inner life it must come to grips with a life-content which has sunk far beneath Nature — a life-content whose influence is perilous. Needless to say, there can be no question here of advocating a return to earlier states of civilization. The point is that man shall find the way to bring the conditions of modern civilization into their true relationship-to himself and to the Cosmos.”

The pit of humanities fears and the Monsters from the depths of the American Psyche are running renegade operations, torture centers, Rendition Schools over the globe, where impure Asuric and Sorathian Evil schools train souls to embrace the region where the Monsters of the American Psyche and the Global Psyche dwell. But the United States is a festering breeding ground for the incubation of these global monsters.

This devastation that we must face as we penetrate deeper and deeper into the psychic structure of humanity requires, mandates the School of Spiritual Science, to midwife our human spiritual development through and over the Threshold where actual Powers, and Beings dwell side by side with humanity.

It is strictly because our universities, our education, our religious naivety, our psychology have all failed miserably to advance towards the challenge that Novalis, Goethe, Rudolf Steiner, St. John and Rod Serling presented us with, that we find ourselves on a real journey to the HEART OF DARKNESS.

Art and Imagination, the Risen Etheric Christ and Michael, have stood steadfastly beside humanity. Novalis presented the Science of the Poet with the richness of a Painter and the accuracy and vision of a Prophet to the treasures of Spiritual Science. The Fifth Age, The Sixth Age and the Seventh Age will bring to a culmination vast impulses that lay submerged, awaiting the dawning of our CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL.

We as humanity are required to plunge into the depths of the Divine Workshop in the deep dark cellars where the ancient Gods dwell in order to follow the path of the Christ Being. Our human education on Earth, bar none, no one is excluded, is to learn to see into the workings of the hierarchies of the heights to balance our plunge into the depths. Our moral integrity must rise to the challenge of holding our higher humanity intact through the next three Ages ahead and it must start now in The Fifth Age, the Age of Pisces.

The Descent of the Human Spirit into the Heart of Darkness (click link)

Age of America the Horror of the Sorathian depths

In the film, shortly before Colonel Kurtz dies, he recites part of T. S. Eliot‘s poem “The Hollow Men“. Not only is Kurtz in the novel characterized as “hollow at the core”, the poem is preceded in printed editions by the epigraph “Mistah Kurtz – he dead”, a quotation from Conrad’s Heart of Darkness.

In addition, two books seen opened on Kurtz’s desk in the film are From Ritual to Romance by Jessie Weston and The Golden Bough by Sir James Frazer, the two books that Eliot cited as the chief sources and inspiration for his poem “The Waste Land“. Eliot’s original epigraph for “The Waste Land” was this passage from Heart of Darkness, which ends with Kurtz’s final words:[12]

Did he live his life again in every detail of desire, temptation, and surrender during that supreme moment of complete knowledge? He cried in a whisper at some image, at some vision, – he cried out twice, a cry that was no more than a breath –

“The horror! The horror!”
Colonel Kurtz is based on the character of a nineteenth-century ivory trader, also called Kurtz, from the novella Heart of Darkness by Joseph Conrad.

Briefly let us cast our eye over the great State of Missouri. At least three major incarnations of three distinct individuals who give three spiritual points of view (POV) of the I AM and the Consciousness Soul of America arise from the geographic region in the United States, known to us as Missouri.

“I see the path of progress for modern man in his occupation with his own self, with his inner being, as indicated by Rudolf Steiner.” T.S. Eliot

(Dec. 26th, 1959, in the context of contrasting Goethe’s scientific consciousness and that employed in atomic research. An extract from a longer quotation cited in: Colin Wilson. “Beyond the Occult,” Caxton Editions: London, 2002 (pg. 335f.)

Thomas Stearns Eliot OM (Sep. 26th, 1888–Jan. 4th, 1965) was an essayist, publisher, playwright, literary and social critic and “one of the twentieth century’s major poets.” [1] Born in St. Louis, Missouri in the United States, he moved to the United Kingdom in 1914 (at age 25) and was naturalized as a British subject in 1927 at age 39.

Age of America MissouriT.S. Eliot, Mark Twain and Harry Truman, all out of Missouri, set the stage for the Asuric, Ahrimanic and Sorathian Monsters of the American Psyche to rise up out of the depths of our Consciousness Soul and confront us all with their unrecognized horror. It only becomes the science of literature and part of the science of humanity when we become conscious of the shadows in the depths of our Consciousness Soul.

T.S. Eliot in his “The Hollow Men reveal the true Black Hole in the psyche where the I AM and Consciousness Soul dwell. Eliot reveals the pathways by which the Asuras gain entrance and slowly begin devouring the rich center of the immortal I AM buried deep in the uncharted regions of our Consciousness Soul.

Mark Twain in his “Mysterious Stranger” (CLICK LINK), long before the Rolling Stones drew their prophetic and powerful “Sympathy for the Devil” into a portrait of Ahriman, (not Lucifer), Twain had captured the rising Ahrimanic shadow Being. It was the Ahrimanic Beings Age of America Mark Twainin each of us that were fore-shadowed by Missouri born Mark Twain in his Consciousness Soul gift to the United States, “The Mysterious Stranger”(Click Link). Here the pedigree of Ahriman/Mephistopheles and the true shadow of the American Psyche, a mini-potent portrait raised it’s icy features before our eyes. Goethe’s “Faust”, and “The Mysterious Stranger”(click link) by Twain managed to isolate for our astute study the ancient adversary of Divine Intelligence, Ahriman.

This monster of “The Singularity” (Intense Research CLICK LINK) of the merging of the Divine forces of the Psyche of Humanity with computerized intelligence is aimed at strangling and suffocating the higher potential of human spiritual development in the tangled knots of Ahrimanic, icy efficiency.

Rudolf Steiner’s statue where Ahriman and Christ are depicted, along with Lucifer, reveal that Ahrimanic forces claw, clutch and grab at human intelligence like a demonic feeding frenzy, that ties humanity, and humanities Spiritual and Soul forces into binding technological, Age of America in Bondagecomputerized, chains, knots, and the pornography of psychic torture and spiritual dominatrix humiliation. Unconscious desires for the enslavement of our human spirits and massive Bondage cravings and hungers are being driven by Ahriman and the Asuras.

In the carved statue of “The Representative of Humanity” we see Ahriman below the Christ Being, tied in knots. But Ahriman in the West and in all Western university education has been breaking through the shimmering surface ripples of human intelligence, stirring beneath the waters of The Age of  Pisces and creating pornographic, erotic, cravings to be bound, imprisoned, and repeatedly tortured. Why? Because “The Singularity” that merges the human psyche with fallen Devachan Technology, will enchain, enmesh and infect the psyche of humanity with such overwhelming enhancements of refined evil, that the future Spiritual Unfolding of every human spirit will be sucked under into Ahriman’s dominating sphere of imprisoning human freedom, human intelligence, human compassion and human love within a web of coldly efficient spidery venom that will suck out, numb and eviscerate all higher human spiritual potential. (Which leads over to Part 2 of the Destiny and Future of the Age of America)

While T.S. Eliot described the state of human “Hollow Men” where the Consciousness Soul in us, women and men, had just begun to rise into the unmapped and uncharted region of the Devachan, we became vividly aware of what ‘I’-less human beings are like. Ahriman longs to fill that vacuum of SELF with sterile, icy intelligence. And they have!!!

The Asuras, who take pleasure in sadistic pain, torture and Bondage, wish to expedite the complete extinguishing of the I AM, after they have infected and parasitically fed off the I Am, turn over and offer the juicy immortal and poisoned I AM as food for the chromosome and matter corrupting anti-Sun, Sorathian Beings. The Sorathian Beings, the demonic shadow of the all embracing, life giving Sun, command the three different categories of sub-sensible beings. The Sorathian category and contingency of beings dwelling in the depths of the American Psyche, slime and slither in the immortal corruption and wreckage of the I AM. These awful beings of “horror-horror” that are the heart of darkness, directly oppose the aims of the Risen Etheric Christ Being.

The World Abyss of the I and the Horror of Hollowness

“Christ submerged into the personality of Jesus; Jesus, borne aloft by the Christ force, became Jesus Christ. The Doctor pointed to the cross of two-fold suffering, to the agonies in both relations: Jesus Christ and Christ Jesus. Before ‘its union with the Logos, the personality of Jesus experienced the black-hole of the world within the center of his “I,” his ego; the world abyss of the I, a concept commensurate with that of the Copernican universe. Jesus prior to the baptism — an “It,” . over which the Ahriman-emptied universe is torn asunder. So — under the double cross of “Jesus Christ” — while the “Christ,” Who in freedom had left the realm of spirit-light in order to be drawn into the narrow hole of personality, had to endure the horror and pain of an incomparable constriction, beside which any form of insanity would be — a nothing. He had to endure this torture so as to become “Christ Jesus,” so that He could live within Jesus.”  Reminiscences of Rudolf Steiner by Andrei Belyi

President Harry Truman from Missouri and Oppenheimer plunged the United States and the globe into the Sorathian genetic corruption of literally poisoning matter. Chromosome and cellular matter, Life, Etheric Life and The Living Bread of Life, (click link) Life Spirit forces in matter, where the Sun Being and the Resurrected Christ could transubstantiate divine forces through matter, were breached. Light was raped and holy mater, matter and Light itself, was corrupted by an Anti-Grail technological assault team and hit squad.

True Assassins of the Sun were deployed to the South West Region of the United States with the gruesome task to rip open the gateway to lower Sorathian forces. Sorathian forces that oppose the gift of the Risen Etheric Christ Sun Being. Christ, who had through Golgotha, resurrected Fallen Matter to renewed etheric Life now had to contend with multitudes of domed cathedrals and nuclear reactors over the face of the Earth, and those that worshiped the destruction of matter, Light and Love.

The Novalis School of Schöne Wissenschaften

Rudolf Steiner, Novalis, Goethe, the Transcendentalists (including Hawthorne, Longfellow, Melville, Emerson, Thoreau) and the Inklings (that including Owen Barfield, Tolkien, C.S. Lewis, Charles Williams), poets, songwriters and explorers of the new realm of the Consciousness SoulAge of America Goetheanum Statue were all gathered under the spirit of Novalis. Rudolf Steiner and the Michael School has invited all our artists, writers, poets to –  (including the Christ/Lucifer Woodstock generation) to – (Steiner) “…-what in France is called ‘belles-lettres.’ I don’t know whether the expression is still used. No? What a pity! In Germany they spoke of ‘Schöne Wissenschaften’ up to the nineteenth century, and then the term lapsed. The ‘beautiful sciences’, sciences which brought beauty into human knowledge, aesthetics, art.” R.S.

Three Missourians that are included in the dawning science of the CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL AGE and all linked together through the illustrious state of Missouri brought to us preliminary and devastating insights into the work of Ahriman, the work of the Asuras and the first rift of the influx and tidal waves of Sorathian light devouring monsters.

Speech and the imprint in the etheric body of Instant Etheric Geographic Identification

Age of America Etheric-Archangelic bio-regionalism diversity language colorings“Which spiritual beings are especially active in America, and what is their nature? It is important to remember that, wherever an individuality incarnates on Earth, whether he/she is born in that location or moves there, two factors play an important role. One factor concerns the etheric geography of that location; the second factor is centered upon the mystery of the Double.”

Our Angels have placed us in Northern Regions where specific Archangelic influences color the character, SPEECH (Click Link etheric visible coloring of Archangel substance) and living etheric substance of our human soul. Our Angels have placed us in South Western regions of The United States where specific regional Archangelic influences color the character, speech and living etheric substance of our human souls.human and his relation to the hierarchies angel archangel archae 1 Our Angels have placed us in the North East, The East, the South East, The Deep South, where specific Archangelic influences have colored our character, our SPEECH (Click Link regional Etheric soul colorings) and the living etheric substances that flow through our souls. Our Angels have placed us in the West, the North West, Alaska, Hawaii, and the desert West where specific Archangelic influences color the character, speech and living etheric substances of our human souls.

Behind each of you stands his Angel,
Softly laying his hands on your head.
This Angel gives you the strength that you need.
Above your heads sweeps the circle of the Archangels.
They carry from one to the other what each has to give to the other.
They unite their souls, thereby you get the courage you need.
In the movements they make as they weave from one to the other
They form a chalice.
The light of wisdom is given us by the sublime beings of the Archai.
They do not clothe themselves into a circle
But coming from eternal beginnings, manifest themselves
And vanish again into the eternal distances.
They reach this space only in the form of a drop of light
Which fills for a moment the chalice
Formed by the movement of the Archangels.

(The Founding Verse of the First Waldorf School in Stuttgart (1919) by Rudolf Steiner)

We carry the karma of America around with us to all parts of the world. The future of our humanity and the future of the world, all hang in the balance of how we penetrate with our Spirits and our Consciousness Soul down to the heart of our darkness. The character and conditions of our incarnations will be shaped by the Goodness, Greatness and Courage we create from now until the 7th Age, when the culmination of THE AGE OF AMERICA completes itself.

The vernal point where the Sun “crosses” the Earth’s equator gradually cycles through the constellations. Taking 25,920 years to complete each cycle taking approximately 2,160 years to pass through each Sign. Our Earth’s “wobble” was known to the ancients, who divided the Great Year into twelve Ages or aeons, each of approximately 2,160 years in length. Thus we get the Age of Aries, the Age of Pisces, the Age of Aquarius, the Age of Capricorn.

Currently the Age of Pisces is the coloring and water we are drenched in, soaked in, swimming in. It is the mandatory learning, without exception, for every single human being incarnated in this, the Fifth Age. Pisces Fifth cultural Age Kovacs Gyorgyne Iren coupleEveryone into the pool. At every university, with every earned degree we are boxed in, immersed and drowned in the pool of massive materialistic indoctrination. Vast systems and fragments of, Intellectual lack of cohesion, have opened the gates for immoral, isolated, special branches of specialized concentrated, one sided, career opportunities, severed from the whole integrated map of the Cosmos and severed from the moral roots of origins that WE the Tenth Hierarchy, carry.

We have failed to guide, map and outline the terrain, even if we have attempted in our explorations to map the bottom of all of the vast oceans, their deep trenches, and locate the lost ships, like the Titanic in its deep grave. The map of our human Genome;  Our maps, photos, studies of the heavens, including the arch priest of materialism sitting in Newton’s chair of science, Stephen Hawking; Our maps of Black Holes and the Big Bang of the Starry Heavens; Our maps of the Atomic Table and our fall into Nuclear Nightmare with Oppenheimer and President Harry Truman; Our maps of the Periodic Table of the Elements and how whole family and karmic groups become literal fallen Black Hole systems as in “Breaking Bad” and how karmic destruction works when in search for the perfect astral blue Meth.

Think of the Pharmaceutical black magic industries that create drugs that invade the astral body, cripple it, addict it, poison it, and become part of our vast Multi-National Corporate Conglomeration that serves the Whore of Babylon enterprises of DuPont, Monsanto Inc and the global plague of unnatural genetically modified seeds.These are all maps, studies and vast human collaborations amassing immense contributions to the over all system of knowledge known as the working system of the spiritual faculty of the un-mapped region of our Consciousness Soul. Otherwise intimated by Rod Serling as his very own explorations of the TWILIGHT ZONE in service of the American psyche.

However the map of the terrain of the moral and spiritual journey and soul-scape of the Soul and Spirit of America, the United States, is as vitally important and precise as were the expeditions of Lewis and Clark.

“We are only seeing the surface of things, for the most part. Behind the scenes, vast forces are jockeying for position and behind those forces is something even more vast and incomprehensible. Given the enormous reach of time that stretches from end to bending end, it is difficult, if not impossible, for the conditioned minds, of those engaged in the processes, to grasp what the meaning of it is.” Les Visible

We are set to chart an outline that leads us through the Giant Clock, all the way to the 7th Age, where Capricorn will rise in the Spring and the Age of America will have come to fulfillment. 7 Millennium Ages and AmericaThe Age of America will have come to fulfillment by what we have planted in the soil of Science, technology, genetics and the advanced development of human spirituality in this the Fifth Age.

Rudolf Steiner 

America and the Science of Cosmogony 

“Anglo-American civilization is conquering the world. But, in conquering the world, it will need to absorb what the conquered parts of the world have to give — the impulse to Freedom, the impulse to Altruism; for in itself it has only the impulse to Cosmogony. Indeed, Anglo-American civilization owes its success to a Cosmogonic Impulse. It owes it to the circumstance, that people are able to think in world-thoughts.

“These are the three things which are acting within our civilization as forces of decline and fall: — Lack of a cosmogony, lack of a sound foundation of freedom, lack of an altruistic sense. But without a cosmogony, do you see, there is no real science, or system of knowledge. Then there is no real knowledge — then all knowledge ultimately becomes a mere game, in which the worlds and the civilizations of man are toys.”

Our American failure to awaken in our universities a solid science of  cosmogony, cosmology or embryology  is spiritually catastrophic to the Mission of America and the goal of The Age of America. Our grotesque, ham-handed loping along, never asking, never showing interest, or never feeling connected to the science of the cycles of Time has stagnated and choked the entire progress of humanity.

Dumbfounded,  we arrogantly don’t care that in the previous age of the Ram, when the Spring Constellation rose in the hard horned skull of the Ram and Christ was crucified on the hill of the skull, and it was the Age of the quest for the Golden Fleece, we were never taught to reorder our thinking into the science of the vast perspectives of Living Time. We hardly gave Michelangelo (see link) the credit

Age of America Moses Ram Hornsof defining Moses with Rams Horns because of the culmination of the constellation of Ram rising in the Spring.

We didn’t mark it on our calenders and look to the sky and the Spring Constellation of the Ram and marvel to ourselves that the culminating mystery of the age of the Ram, out of the Constellation of Aries,  was that the Lamb of God was crucified on the hill of skulls, on Golgotha. The place of the skull Golgotha by Verna SmithIt never entered our common education that the achievement of THE GOLDEN FLEECE was the perfect Incarnation Science of Jesus (Click Link) that brought about the Earthly gift of the Golden Sun Drenched Risen Etheric Christ. age of america Ram Golden Fleece ProsserThe age of the Ram brought the achievement of Golden gift of Spirit-Man, Atma, the Risen Etheric Christ, into our own human Earth evolution.

The Egyptian Age arose when the Spring Equinox rose in the constellation of Taurus. Language Arts, the Devachan where the Egyptian Sciences tracked the journey of Pharaohs after their deaths were part of the details of the Egyptian Age.

The Egyptians literally supplied the IMAGE and physical reality of a Barge, a Boat to be used as a vessel and vehicle for the dead to journey their way  back into the stars. The hieroglyphic picture arts of the Devachan, the foundations of language and the vivid links that connect our FIFTH AGE OF PISCES to the Egyptian THIRD AGE are laced in the language of Images and Imaginations moving in the fluidity of our infatuation with film and cinema and the location of Hollywood on the powerful, shifting-fluidity, of the fault lines and fissures of the West Coast of The United States.Age of America map 2

The projected vast imagination from the Egyptian Age reveals a Pyramid Scheme of power that was once a great divine mystery in Egypt, which has become today in this our Fifth Age, merely the Corporate Common Denominator of every materialistic multi-national dynastic empire whose CEO and President merely reign over Pyramid Schemed Empires across the globe. This Pyramid scheme has surfaced from the ghosts of ancient Egypt. Our Pyramid schemes have been stripped of Egypt’s profound understanding of the journey our souls take after death, back into the world of the Stars.

“A pharaoh is a supreme ancient Egyptian ruler. Pharaohism follows the same principles of totalitarianism, where the sole ruler has absolute power and control. Henry Ford also, according to J.P. Morgan, “resembled Seti I, the father of the great Ramses and the best-preserved mummy to have been unearthed from the necropolis of Thebes in the Valley of the Kings (Doctorow 143).”

We do not reveal in our universities and our educational history that Age of America Spring Equinox rose in the sign of the Bull Sun Discwhen the Sun Rose in the Spring under the sign of Taurus, when the clock of the Stars and the incarnation lessons of Babylon,Summaria, Egypt and the deep journey of language that was crafted from the STARS, the foundations of the WORD (click Link) were, during the Egyptian era when the Sun Rose in the Spring under the Sign of Taurus, it was the Time of learning the Devachan Mysteries of THE WORD.

In this our Fifth Age,  Osiris genitals, procreative cosmic forces devoured by The Fishes, have arisen under the Super-Power we fondly call The United States of America. Deadly, occult, Egyptian karma of Archangels and Archai run undercurrent, like the Great White Whale swimming deeply under our current Piscean AGE.

How the coffin and the mystery of the sarcophagus, the mystery of how the ancient Egyptian culture explored the hidden and veiled secrets of the Devachan and Life after death, now swirl under the surface of our unfathomed collective group soul of our own collective American unconsciousness .

The dark brother to Osiris, Set, dominates the cosmology of the United States and the western science of the stars. Immortality and life after death are choked to death in their cribs and still born in the medical sciences of the United States of America. Monstrous falsity is taught at every university. The living reality of how humanity and the stars are integrated in our pre-embryological developments (click link) are suffocated and strangled so that they do not awaken in our Consciousness Soul.

Absolute Ahrimanic lies and distortions are trumpeted far and wide as Set/Ahrimanic dogmas of doomed and darkened materialism. The only way you will ever get a degree or diploma out of United States Universities, is to surrender to the immense avalanche of propaganda and extortion that materialism has placed as a price-tag for achieving spiritual decapitation. We are surrounded by vast occult Perilous Pyramid Schemes, swirling like ancient Egyptian ghosts and devachan demons in the subconscious of the American Psyche clearly hidden in plain sight.

“Henry Ford pays a lunch visit to J.P. Morgan in his elegant home on Madison Avenue. They tour the library, and sit in front of the fire. Ford makes an anti- Semitic comment. They begin discussing Ford’s assembly line principles, and soon their conversation shifts to the subject of religion. J.P. Morgan asks Ford about his religious beliefs, but Ford hesitates to answer. Morgan gives Ford a tour of his collection of ancient Egyptian and Greek artifacts, expressing his belief that science has been a “devilish conspiracy to destroy our apprehension of reality.” Morgan invites Ford to join him on a trip to Egypt. Although the idea of reincarnation fascinates Ford, he only has interest in it to the extent that he feels it explains his genius; he assumes he has lived more times than others, and thus has the engineering know-how which has brought him such success. Ford declines the invitation to the trip, but Morgan will go alone anyway. However, after their discussion about Egypt and reincarnation, they found “the most secret and exclusive club in America, The Pyramid, of which they were the only members.”

Call me Ishmael is the Piscean Age Parsifal that all of us in the Piscean Age are required to emulate. (CLICK LINK) It was Ishmael floating on the coffin from the unresolved mysteries of the Egyptian Age of the Sarcophaguof Osiris Age of America Egypt sarcaphagus and coffin for Ishmaelthat set the tone and terror that currently grips our Fifth Age and will terrorize our Sixth Age and come to devastating fruition in the Seventh Age.

“Queegqueg, one of the harpooners, suddenly decides he is going to die and has a coffin made which he decorates with carvings based on his own extensively tattooed body. When the ship sinks, this still-unused coffin floats to the surface enabling the only survivor, Ishmael, to remain afloat until rescued by the ship which is just coming into view on the horizon.”

It is our un-awakened Consciousness Soul that must learn to read the star maps written in the language of our Imaginations. Art and Spiritual Intuitions work deeply on our subconscious until they are brought to the surface and made conscious. The Michael School sorts out the vast complexities of where the Spiritual World has entwined with the subconscious regions of the so called Jungian Unconscious realms.

Spiritual Science students are part of the new explorers who map the still unexplored regions of the world. These are the new frontiers, not our distorted materialistic cosmology that creates an intriguing cartoon of the explorations of deep space. It is rather the deep uncharted recesses of the roots of all of our collective human spirits that Spiritual Science and the Novalis school recognizes as the dawning discoveries of the vast uncharted regions of our Consciousness Soul.

In this our Fifth Age, The Age of Pisces and The Consciousness Soul, we are required to learn to confront, define and map the regions that mark “the pit of man’s fears and the summit of his knowledge” and track and outline the course of the occult birth of ever more PERILOUS meglomaniacal psychopaths. For these shall arise and perilously unfold their powers in the future ages yet to come.

The unfathomable depths of our unfathomable lack of Consciousness Soul education in the United States of America, in the very age of the true CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL, provides the rest of humanity with a Golden Opportunity that only The Michael School can deliver. Melville’s Moby Dick still surpasses the sales and reading of the Bible in the whole world wide market.

In our Michael School studies (CLICK LINK) of Novalis, John the Baptist and the foundations of Spiritual Science, we are able to see in Melville’s “Moby Dick” how Elijah the prophet sets the entire tone of the tale that Melville created for America and the Age of America. (CLICK LINK Elijah, John the Baptist and the Science of Imagination) The American Age will fall into the trap of tyrannical dictators of the Will Forces aimed at the Incarnation of a full Ahrimanic Possession that was foreshadowed in Captain Ahab. Age of America Elijah Cain and Abel and Lazarus Sciences Florian SydowThe Michael School and the School of Spiritual Science embody the unfolding Cultural Science of Elijah the prophet, Novalis and the revelation of St. John (IMPORTANT LINK).

“The first, and very framing, prophecy of the story occurs directly after Ishmael and Queequeg have signed on the Pequod, when they meet Elijah. After learning that Ishmael and Queequeg have already signed aboard the Pequod, Elijah declares, “what’s to be, will be; and then again, perhaps it won’t be, after all…Some sailors or other must go with him, I suppose…God pity ’em!” (126). Elijah seems to predict the fate of the Pequod. Declaring that God should pity the sailors who board the ship is to say that something terrible should befall the voyage. Elijah makes a prophecy, thereby predicting fate.”

Ahab and the black magic of BAAL (CLICK LINK) are confronted by Elijah and the very depth of the Magical Idealism of the Science of the Michael School, formed by Novalis, Goethe, Rudolf Steiner and hundreds of thousands who work diligently daily in defense and exploration of the Spirit of humanity are part of concrete educational impulses of The School of Spiritual Science and the Consciousness Soul.

Our current universities and educational institutes follow the model of Ahrimanic matriculation, accreditation, certification to the letter of the law and dominate through association the indoctrination of materialism against the comprehension and logic of the Spirit. Our current convoluted circumstances of the United States of America are tied to the megalomaniacal psychopaths who have pledged their undying allegiance to Israel and the black magicians of BAAL. Melville got it right. Humanity in the Constellation of Pisces Konstantin Kalinovich- UkraineThe profile of the Incarnation of Ahriman and the portrait of Ahab as captain of the ill-fated Pequod is in truth part of the Spiritual Science of the Michael School of the Novalis/Elijah mystery of The United States of America. Melville had been part of the Michael School before he incarnated as Herman Melville. He brought with him a deep, deep vision of the character, portrait and the fatality of how the MONSTERS SPAWNED FROM THE AMERICAN PSYCHE arise.

Just as the Age of the Fishes that we are in now reveals a fish in an upward and a fish in a downward direction.

The Age of Pisces and the Tragedy of Karma

” – the destiny that works itself out between anthroposophists and non-anthroposophists, — casts its waves even into the worlds of the Angeloi. It leads to a parting of the Spirits, even in the world of the Angeloi. The Angel who accompanies the anthroposophist to his next incarnations learns to find his way still more deeply into the spiritual kingdoms than he could do before, while the Angel who belongs to the other man — to the one who cannot enter, — descends. It is in the destiny of the Angeloi that we first perceive how this great separation is taking place. To this, my dear friends, I would now direct your hearts. It is happening now, that the comparatively single and uniform kingdom of the Angeloi is being turned into a twofold kingdom of Angeloi, a kingdom of Angeloi with an upward tendency into the higher worlds, and with a downward tendency into lower worlds.

“While the Michael community is being formed here upon earth, we can behold above it the ascending and the descending Angeloi. Looking more deeply into the world today, one can perpetually observe these streams, which are such as to stir the heart to its foundations.”

We are now experiencing how family, friends, colleagues and our Angels are being either sucked down into the darkness and the deeds we do, such as Monsanto GM seeds that will plant evil into the strata and foundations of nature from this the Fifth Age, the Age of Pisces, seeds of human catastrophe will be planted into the vast soil of the future.

Piscean AgeWhat we do now under the Age of the Fishes will reverberate and have vast repercussions on into the far distant future of the Manicheanism of the Sixth age, when the Sun rises in Aquarius in the Spring. And as reincarnating human spirits we will be there when the MOON rejoins the Earth in the far distant age, the 7th Age, when the Sun Rises in Spring from the constellation of Capricorn.

Rudolf Steiner

“Now we must ask: What causes such utterly different conditions on earth? This is connected with the progression of the spring equinox. About 800 years before Christ the sun in spring entered the constellation of Aries, of the Ram. Every year at the vernal point it shifts a little. Because of this the conditions on the earth are always slightly changing. Eight hundred years before Christ the sun stood in the constellation of Aries. Earlier it stood in the constellation of Taurus, still earlier in Gemini and still earlier in Cancer. Now already for some hundreds of years it rises in the constellation of Pisces. After this comes Aquarius. The advance of civilizations is also connected with the progression of the sun from one constellation to the other.Wirbel Cancer Spiral in, new point of evolution, spiral out

“At the time when the sun rose in the constellation of Cancer the ancient Vedic culture of the Indians, the culture of the Rishis reached its highest point. The Rishis, those still half-divine beings, were the teachers of men. The Atlantean civilisation had met its destruction; a new impulse broke in. In occultism this is called a ‘vortex’ (wirbel). This is also why, in the age in which the sun stood in the constellation of Cancer, the sign was made in this way:

“Cancer signifies a breaking in of something new, a ‘vortex’ (a double spiral).

“The second cultural epoch is named the constellation of the Twins. At that time the dual nature of the world was understood, the opposing forces of the world, Ormuzd and Ahriman, Good and Evil. Thus the Persians also speak of the Twins.

“The third cultural epoch is that of the Sumerians in Asia Minor and of the Egyptians. The constellation of the Bull corresponds to this epoch. This is why in Asia the Bull was venerated and in Egypt, Apis. At that time in Babylon and Assyria the Sumerian language was the language of wisdom. Then the Bull fell into decadence and the Ram came into the ascendant. The first indication of this is the Saga of the Golden Fleece.

“The fourth culture is that of the Ram, or Lamb; Christ stands in the sign of the Ram, or Lamb; hence he calls himself the Lamb of God.

As fifth culture the external materialistic civilisation follows, in the constellation of the Fishes. Pisces Age, Fifth Evil and division of humanityThis developed principally from the 12th century on-wards and reached its climax about the year 1800. This is the culture of the Fifth sub-race, the present time.

“In the constellation of the Water-Man in the future, the new Christianity will be proclaimed. ‘Water-Man’ is also the one who will bring it, he who has already been here: John the Baptist. Later he will again be the forerunner of Christ, when the Sixth, the spiritual sub-race will be founded.”

In this our Fifth Age we are planting psychopath, genetic and immoral seeds that will reverberate into the far distant future AND/OR we are slowly also learning how to harvest supersensible food from the gardens of our very own Angels. We are all on the clock and the clock can be read with clarity.

In this study from the American West, and in specific the continent of the United States of America we will find our orientation to some of the vast forces that are at play under the surface of our continent.

We are on a vast journey together and without a doubt we may mark the trail of our journey into the future of America with richer and clearer markings than Lewis and Clark had made. In the Lewis and Clark expedition it was called ‘perilous’.

Rudolf Steiner (click Link) “This [WE] can only do if [WE] rise, in spiritual knowledge, at least as far into extra-earthly Super-Nature as [WE HAVE] descended, in technical Sciences, into Sub-Nature. The age requires a knowledge transcending Nature, because in its inner life it must come to grips with a life-content which has sunk far beneath Nature — a life-content whose influence is perilous.”

But meeting and exploring the Spiritual, Moral, Regional Beings, supersensible and subsensible beings that make up the map and soul-scape of the United States of America is equally perilous.

“The Lewis and Clark Expedition, also known as the Corps of Discovery Expedition, was the first American expedition to cross what is now the western portion of the United States, departing in May, 1804 from St. Louis on theMississippi River, making their way westward through the continental divide to the Pacific coast.

“The expedition was commissioned by President Thomas Jefferson shortly after theLouisiana Purchase in 1803, consisting of a select group of U.S. Army volunteers under the command of Captain Meriwether Lewis and his close friend Second Lieutenant William Clark. Their perilous journey lasted from May 1804 to September 1806. The primary objective was to explore and map the newly acquired territory, find a practical route across the Western half of the continent, and establish an American presence in this territory before Britain and other European powers tried to claim it.

“The campaign’s secondary objectives were scientific and economic: to study the area’s plants, animal life, and geography, and establish trade with local Indian tribes. With maps, sketches and journals in hand, the expedition returned to St. Louis to report their findings to Jefferson.”

Age of America Lewis and Clark 1a

“The French émigré, Jean de Crèvecoeur, popularized the idea that America was a “melting pot” and that Americans constituted a new race. The settlers of North America entered a land free from a preexisting dominating folk soul, where new social ideals could be established.6 The three western nations that played the most significant role in the colonization of North America also represented the three soul types spoken about by Rudolf Steiner:  The Etheric Geography of North America by David Mitchell (search RIDDLE OF AMERICA pdf file)

The Spanish — representing the Sentient Soul, settled in Mexico, as well as the American South and West. They brought horses, established ranches, and nourished a rich family life. Their initial interest was the earth, in collecting gold.

The French — representing the Intellectual Soul, settled in the North and explored the Midwest, opening up the continent’s interior as trappers and hunters. Their initial interest was in the animals. They collected fur for fashion apparel.

The English — representing the Consciousness Soul, settled along the East Coast and gave to the new nation form, government, and commerce. Their initial concern was with the plant realm. They planted seeds and established farms.”

Perilous because The United States of America hides a vast seed bed of morally unsound, Genetic, Military, Social, Viral and Spiritual deeds and events that will take root, grow and become the most severe challenges already in this our Fifth Age; a more refined evil coming in the future Sixth Age; and the potent and devastating finale, the crescendo of the vast cosmic, musical symphony of humanity, the 7th Age, shall bring to a culmination all that America was and has become, during these three specific periods. These three specific star periods, The Age of Pisces, The Age of Aquarius and The Age of Capricorn , will bring to a culmination point, what is called THE AMERICAN AGE.

The 7th Age, the Age when the Sun will rise in Capricorn in the Spring, is when all our chickens come home to roost. Of course under the earth, in caves, the night craving bats also live in their roosts. But wonderful and terrible things that we are executing and doing right now, will come to fruition in THE AGE OF AMERICA. Our job, like Lewis and Clark, is to map some of the coming attractions using a far more advanced foundational science than is allowed in our current university curriculums.

Coming Attractions, Age of America Coming Attractionspreviews and the precise Time on the Big Clock of the stars, is extremely accurate. It doesn’t take a rocket scientist to understand what TIME IT IS and what Time it will be. We have the big clocks for a reason. We have the big TWELVE on the big board and the big Ferris Wheel of Time for a reason. We know how we got suspended in the infinite, at the top of the Ferris Wheel looking down on the small objects, people, cars, below that it is all a matter of Divine Perspective. But not all of it that we see from the top of the Ferris Wheel has sunk into our sense of Consciousness Soul Perspective.

Spiritual Science in the 21st Century: Transforming Evil, Meeting the Other and Awakening to the Global Initiation of Humanity (Click Link)

Age of America recommended reading material

“Anthroposophy speaks about the SEVENTH cultural epoch, after the Russian, as being the American epoch. This will be the end of the post-atlantean age. This will be the most materialistic, preposterous, occult downfall, of this whole age. And this great downfall is named after America. In this epoch, all those dark forces will reach ultimate concentration and influence. For the non-spiritualized part of humanity, those connected to the dark and retarded forces, will come to full-flower in the SEVENTH epoch. In the sixth post-atlantean epoch, begins the real work of the transformation of evil into good, under the leadership of Mani. So here we have some perspectives on the future.”  Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon (Author)

Cultural Age/ Dates/ Civilization

Cancer 7227-5067 Indian
Gemini 5067-2907 Persian
Taurus 2907-747 B.C.E. Chaldo-Egyptian
Aries 747-1414 C.E. Greco-Roman
Pisces 1414-3574 European
Aquarius 3574-5734 Russian-Slavonic
Capricorn 5734-7894 American

The Brilliant Logic Behind the Vast Clock of the Zodiac

Atlantis = Physical body
Post-Atlantean:
Indian = Etheric body
Persian = Sentient or Astral body
Chaldo-Egyptian = Sentient Soul
Greco-Roman = Intellectual or Mind Soul
Present = Spiritual or Consciousness Soul
6th Cultural Era = Manas or Spirit Self
7th Cultural Era = Buddhi or Life Spirit
After Catastrophe = Atma or Spirit Man

Our Consciousness Soul is tasked with and has the abilities now, to redeem ancient Isis and NUT star wisdom, and transform the fallen cosmology of the current stunted star stupidity operative in the WEST and update it to the Christology and star wisdom of Sophia. To those who revere Stephen Hawking as a saint and are happy in the groove of arbitrary materialism and the poisoning of our minds with utter craven, insensitive nonsense, you will not soon be heading into anything that even resembles the upward thrust of our Angels.

The current Ahrimanic Cosmology of the West have never placed the advancement and unfolding of HUMANITY itself, in conjunction with the evolution written into the entire Zodiac as a real part of EDUCATIONAL COMING ATTRACTIONS. What the Earth and the inhabitants of the Earth have to do with the learning curve of the mighty constellations has been ripped from the curriculum’s in all our universities. A complete dumbfounded gap of intelligence has been deliberately wedged in, to block any information as to how humanity is on a progressive learning curve that coincides with the unfolding patterns of the rhythmic ticking clock of the enormous star studded constellations.

“The Equal Age Theory purports that each of the 12 Great Ages last the same amount of time: about 2,160 years. This figure is based on 1/12th of the time for the precession of the equinox to make a complete cycle of about 26,000 years. This theory is in contrast with those who believe that great ages are irregular and that some great ages may last longer than others depending on the real estate they occupy along the ecliptic. For instance, Pisces takes up more room along the ecliptic than Aquarius, so some believe that the Age of Pisces should last hundreds of years longer than the Age of Aquarius.”

For approximately the next 1560 years we shall complete our journey through the constellation of Pisces. We shall have time to digest Consciousness Soul paradigms and higher intelligence. Currently the constellations are beginning to feel the approach of Sophia Star Wisdom. The magnificent Divine Star wisdom of Sophia is the cosmic bride of the Christ Being. The Risen Etheric Christ tied the knot that binds humanity to the progressive unfolding of our immortality, at Golgotha. The higher educational unfolding of our grand human drama is directly linked to the binding of Christ to the unfolding of the future of Earth and Humanity. The Grand Wedding of the Bride, Sophia, to the Bridegroom, the Risen Etheric Christ, is all part of the COMING ATTRACTIONS.

6th Cultural Era = Manas or Spirit Self
7th Cultural Era = Buddhi or Life Spirit
After Catastrophe = Atma or Spirit Man

Age of America White purified Spirit Selfhood 6th epoch Manicheanism

These COMING ATTRACTIONS are approaching in three potent stages. These three potent stages of the wedding of the Bride Sophia to the Risen Etheric Christ are the key mystery of how we as humanity are to arrive as Wedding Guests all along the way to the 7th Age. The 7th Age is when the Spring Equinox rises in the constellation of Capricorn. These three phases of our future bring to the whole Earth Evolution the culmination known as the AGE OF AMERICA.

In the Science of Novalis/St. John we can trace distinctly the vast swirling of Osiris and Egypt, Elijah and the Black Magic of the priests of BAAL in the tale spun by Herman Melville, “Moby Dick” and the White Whale.

The Novalis School of the Archangels in the University of Sophia

“We have to look in the Far East for that stream of peoples whose Archangel was the first one to attain the rank of a Spirit of the Age. It was that stream of peoples who formed the ruling class of that land and laid the foundations of the first post-Atlantean civilization after their Archangel had become the Spirit of the Age, after he had been promoted to the first Spirit of the Age or Archai of the post-Atlantean age of civilization. Now this Spirit of the Age guided the primal sacred culture of India and made it the leading one in the first post-Atlantean age of civilization. The other peoples of Asia who were gradually developing, were for a long time under the guidance merely of Archangels.

“Those peoples of Europe who had remained behind when the migration from West to East took place, were also under the guidance of Archangels for a long time after the Archangel of India had risen to the rank of an Archai and then acted through intuition upon those Great Teachers of India, the Holy Rishis, who because they were aided by this exalted and important Spirit were able to fulfill their high mission in the manner already described. This Spirit of the Age worked on for a long time, whilst the people lying to the north of ancient India were still under the guidance of the Archangel. When the Spirit of the Age of India had fulfilled his mission, he was promoted to the guidance of the entire evolution of post-Atlantean humanity.”

‘The Saptarishi (from saptarṣi, a Sanskrit dvigu meaning “seven sages”) are the seven rishis who are extolled at many places in the Vedas and Hindu literature.Age of America the White Whale 

The White Whale reveals the Resurrected wisdom of Osiris and Isis hidden in the unfathomed depths of American psyche in the age of the FISHES. The White Whale and the hunt for the White Whale is how the American Psyche learned to plunge into the depths of global Spiritual Cosmology.

The Beatles  (click link) themselves were unconsciously led to the massive mature Archai Being that had been promoted from India to guide the entire sweep of the evolution of Post-Atlantean Humanity. The  entire wisdom of the Holy Rishis was transplanted in the human being we have tracked through time, from the raising of Lazarus to the initiation of Christian Rosenkreuz. Christian Rosenkreuz carries the entire wisdom of the Holy Rishis within his higher human spiritual bodies.

How do we know we are headed for a Wedding of the vast Sophia Wisdom to the Risen Etheric Christ?  There are four profound clues that place the dawning of the Age of the Consciousness Soul as a preparation for the Wedding. We shall be the Wedding guests. However, as the research we have presented so far reveals, this is no easy journey. It is perilous and fraught with dangers as the Rising Super-Power of the United States wrests itself free of the Ahrimanic Materialism we have succumbed to.

Wedding Guests and the Garments of the Wedding Guests are all about THE COMING ATTRACTIONS. No one is going to walk into this Wedding without having Resurrected Sophia/Isis, as ANTHROSOPHIA, in our inner being, as the objective transformed forces of our human knowledge that appears radiant and shining at the fulfillment and culmination of the 7th Age, THE AMERICAN AGE. Sophia and her child AnthrosophiaANTHROPOSOPHIA, THE CHILD OF SOPHIA, has to be awakened to be a member of the Wedding Guests contingency.

Which means that no one is getting into the Wedding without having passed through Manas – Buddhi – and Atma. No one is getting into the Wedding as Wedding guests without struggling through to SPIRIT-SELF; LIFE-SPIRIT; and SPIRIT MAN. Which means we had better learn about what these COMING ATTRACTIONS (click link) are.

First Clue

1 Jesus spoke to them again in parables, saying, 2″The kingdom of heaven is like a king who prepared a wedding banquet for his son. 3 He sent his servants to those who had been invited to the banquet to tell them to come, but they refused to come.

4 Then he sent some more servants and said, ‘Tell those who have been invited that I have prepared my dinner: My oxen and fattened cattle have been butchered, and everything is ready. Come to the wedding banquet.’

5 But they paid no attention and went off–one to his field, another to his business. 6 The rest seized his servants, mistreated them, and killed them. 7 The king was enraged. He sent his army and destroyed those murderers and burned their city.

8 Then he said to his servants, ‘The wedding banquet is ready, but those I invited did not deserve to come. 9 Go to the street corners and invite to the banquet anyone you find.’ 10 So the servants went out into the streets and gathered all the people they could find, both good and bad, and the wedding hall was filled with guests.

11 But when the king came in to see the guests, he noticed a man there who was not wearing wedding clothes.12 ‘Friend,’ he asked, ‘how did you get in here without wedding clothes?’ The man was speechless. 13Age of America Wedding Garments Then the king told the attendants, ‘Tie him hand and foot, and throw him outside, into the darkness, where there will be weeping and gnashing of teeth.’

14 “For many are invited, but few are chosen.”

Second Clue (click Link)

“On an evening before Easter Day, I sat at a table, and having (as my custom was) in my humble prayer sufficiently conversed with my Creator, and considered many great mysteries (whereof the Father of Lights his Majesty had shown me not a few) and being now ready to prepare in my heart, together with my dear Paschal Lamb, a small, unleavened, undefiled cake; all of a sudden arose so horrible a tempest, that I imagined no other but that through its mighty force, the hill on which my little house was founded would fly into pieces.

“But inasmuch as this, and the like from the Devil (who had done me many a spite) was no new thing to me, I took courage, and persisted in my meditation, till somebody in an unusual manner touched me on the back; whereupon I was so hugely terrified, that I dared hardly look about me; yet I showed myself as cheerful as (in such occurrences) human frailty would permit.

“Now the same thing still twitching me several times by the coat, I looked back, and behold it was a fair and glorious lady, whose garments were all sky-coloured, and curiously (like Heaven) bespangled with golden stars; in her right hand she bore a trumpet of beaten gold, on which a Name was engraved which I could well read but am as yet forbidden to reveal it. In her left hand she had a great bundle of letters of all languages, which she (as I afterwards understood) was to carry to all countries. She also had large and beautiful wings, full of eyes throughout, with which she could mount aloft, and fly swifter than any eagle.

“I might perhaps have been able to take further notice of her, but because she stayed so little time with me, and terror and amazement still possessed me, I had to be content. For as soon as I turned about, she turned her letters over and over, and at length drew out a small one, which with great reverence she laid down upon the table, and without giving one word, departed from me. But in her mounting upward, she gave so mighty a blast on her gallant trumpet, that the whole hill echoed from it, and for a full quarter of an hour after, I could hardly hear my own words.

“In so unlooked for an adventure I was at a loss, how either to advise or to assist my poor self, and therefore fell upon my knees and besought my Creator to permit nothing contrary to my eternal happiness to befall me. Whereupon with fear and trembling, I went to the letter, which was now so heavy, that had it been mere gold it could hardly have been so weighty. Now as I was diligently viewing it, I found a little seal, on which a curious cross with this inscription, IN HOC SIGNO VINCES, was engraved.

“Now as soon as I espied this sign I was the more comforted, as not being ignorant that such a seal was little acceptable, and much less useful, to the Devil. Whereupon I tenderly opened the letter, and within it, in an azure field, in golden letters, found the following verses written.

“This day, todayAge of America Invite to the Wedding Christian Rosenkreuz
Is the Royal Wedding day.
For this thou wast born
And chosen of God for joy
Thou mayest go to the mountain
Whereon three temples stand,
And see there this affair.
Keep watch
Inspect thyself
And shouldst thou not bathe thoroughly
The Wedding may work thy bane.
Bane comes to him who faileth here
Let him beware who is too light.”

Third Clue (Click Link)

I pass, like night, from land to land;
I have strange power of speech;
That moment that his face I see,
I know the man that must hear me:
To him my tale I teach.
What loud uproar bursts from that door!
The wedding-guests are there:
But in the garden-bower the bride
And bride-maids singing are:
And hark the little vesper bell,
Which biddeth me to prayer!
Age of America Ancient Mariner Stops a Wedding Guest
O Wedding-Guest (click link)! this soul hath been
Alone on a wide wide sea:
So lonely ’twas, that God himself
Scarce seemèd there to be.
O sweeter than the marriage-feast,
‘Tis sweeter far to me,
To walk together to the kirk
With a goodly company!

Fourth Clue – Spiritual Science Schooling and Christian Rosenkreuz (click link)

“When Christian Rosenkreutz awakes he knows that he is allowed to make the journey and he arrays himself in his wedding garment. This is a white linen coat (we are reminded of the wedding garment of the guests in the parable). He wears a red stole crosswise, as a priest wears his.”

America misinterprets, confounds and falsifies GOODNESS, depth, mercy, compassion. It starts in our pulpits and our churches and our group soul congregational mind numbing. We go to church because we have been duped into believing this is an easy cake-walk, just believe in the Child Jesus, quote scripture and ask everyone you meet, “have you been saved?”. It doesn’t work like that in real life or in the real understanding and comprehension of the scriptures.

Of the Four Clues above, Christians find themselves too cowardly to go beyond clue # 1.  Goody, goody two shoes, all frozen in the fallacies of dead traditions and morally on lock down in the cement death armor of Biblical dogma, Christians cannot conceive of the Spirt-Selfhood transformation, penetration and illumination of the depths of our astral bodies that will clarify and cleanse us with renewed Angelic Thinking from now past the 6th Age.

The Wedding Guests must plunge down to the depths and awaken the Sophia in us. The objective forces of all humanity and all science and all love, that is every human beings ANTHROSOPHIA,  is the wisdom, right and possession of the spiritual essence of the daughter of Sophia Herself. ANTHROSOPHIA is the hidden possession of each human soul who carries an I AM. This platform of Spiritual Intelligence and the Consciousness Soul will draw toward us the higher phase of Spirit-Selfhood that rises with the coming of the 6th Age. Upon the foundation of ANTHROSOPHIA we will build Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man. Age of America study of SophiaUpon the foundations of ANTHROSOPHIA we may build Manas, Buddhi and Atma through the Fifth – Sixth – and Seventh age. It is the awakening of the central core of the cognitive conscious moral substance by which the laws of the whole universe are built. This is the cornerstone and The Foundation Stone (Click Link) of the wise. This was part of Psalm 118 and what we discover here:

Mark 12:10
And have you not read this scripture; The stone which the builders rejected
has become the head of the corner:

Isaiah 28:16
So this is what the Sovereign LORD says: “See, I lay a stone in Zion, a
tested stone, a precious cornerstone for a sure foundation; the one who
trusts will never be dismayed.”

Yet it is the law, it is unarguable, it is immense, we all must find ourselves on the journey through the Fifth, the Sixth and the Seventh Age and so far we are completely clueless of the stages and the phases through which we must endure and develop. We are being measured on the big clock of the world and we will be required to awaken our higher selves along the great learning curve of the COMING ATTRACTIONS, without exception.

Adriana Koulias 

“This being that was intimately seen by the Greeks as Sophia and by Dante as Lady Philosophy was unveiled by Rudolf Steiner in our times as Anthroposophia.”Age of America Star Wisdom Sophia and higher John Initiation Sciences

“The loftiness of the Cosmic Sophia, precluded her direct descent into the soul of humanity, this meant that another being had to take up the task of being the mediator of this wisdom to man. Who was this being?

“Rudolf Steiner first spoke about this being’s place in our times, some months before the laying of the foundation stone for the first Goetheanum. In his inaugural lecture at the First General Meeting of the Anthroposophical Society in 1913[3] he told Anthroposophists that they were to think of ‘Anthroposophia’ as a living being, a being with an evolution and a biography.[4] In a different lecture[5] he indicated that Anthroposophia was an invisible human being, whose destiny and path had followed that of humanity, only in an accelerated way. We were asked to come to a relationship with this being, to go to her with all our questions, our hopes and our fears that we, as Anthroposophists were to do nothing before consulting with this being.

“But who was this illusive being, what was her nature and what have been and continue to be her tasks?

“Rudolf Steiner gave us indications that in the beginning, Anthroposophia had the nature of an Archangelic being; that she was of the same substance as Michael and ‘developed in accordance not with earthly laws but with the laws of the Sun[6]. This suggests that Anthroposophia was possessed of the nature of an archangel…”

Clue # 2 brings us to the dawn of the Consciousness Soul Age and the mission of the Consciousness Soul, to prepare for the Wedding we shall be invited to. Clue # 3 reveals some of the real nightmares and trials of the path of Initiation. The Ancient Mariner of the Pisces Age is magnetically, in terms of SPEECH AND THE WORD and in terms of the Devachan Sciences of Magnetism, Electricity and Laser and Nuclear fallen light, possessed of a Sixth Epoch Initiation empowerment.

The Ancient Mariner has an occult compass and navigational cosmic magnet connected to the powers of Speech, the Angelic laws of karma and destiny, that draws him to souls who never even imagined in their wildest dreams that on a certain day, unforeseen, their entire world would literally change because of a startling unplanned meeting.

He went like one that hath been stunned,
And is of sense forlorn :
A sadder and a wiser man,
He rose the morrow morn.

Age of America the shock of the Initiation PathAll superficiality would drain out of their souls and Horror-true Horror and facts would alter forever the fixed certainty of their goals to highest trivial pursuits and enticements to materialistic fantasies of bliss.

Clue #4, if you are lucky, has brought you here, to the schooling of Spiritual Science and the awakening to the Sophia and Novalis science studies of awakening ANTHROSOPHIA consciously. The science of learning to unlock the Coming Attractions that everyone, without exception will be challenged to attain, Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man. And if all the above clues have been for naught we may have the left overs if that is what you desire. Here are what the left overs are like.  (click link).

The COMING ATTRACTIONS have everything to do with a reuniting of Isis and Osiris. The key to Clue # 4 and the foundations of Spiritual Schooling – has been roughly outlined by Rudolf Steiner for your convenience HERE, (Click Link).  The COMING ATTRACTIONS are all about our wresting from ancient SET/(current Ahriman) a resurrected Cosmology and from the far West a Cosmogony that is fit for the unfolding of the higher spiritual potentials of humanity. Starting in the FIFTH AGE, this current Age of Pisces we must wrest from our cold Ahrimanic intellects, that view the cosmos as a void unrelated BIG BANG THEORY,  we must win for ourselves and humanity a new, vivid and ensouled Cosmos, that once illuminated all of the ancient Egyptian culture.

THE APPROACH OF THE DIVINE SOPHIA IN THREE PHASES

In the first phase of the approach, Sophia/Star Wisdom begins to radiate and return, refreshed and reinvigorated to the awakening of our Consciousness Soul. New and resurrected Zodiacal wisdom that was lost to us since the Egyptian Age of Isis and Osiris starts stirring with inner invigorated life.

The Consciousness Soul and the approach of Sophia/Isis star wisdom (click Link)

“Just as the eye is the expression for the power of sight, so to the Egyptian the Sun was the eye of Osiris, the embodiment of the Spirit of the Sun. All this had been experienced at one time by the soul of Copernicus, and it was the unconscious memory of it that impelled him to renew, in a form possible to a materialistic age, this ancient idea of Osiris, which at that time had been entirely spiritual. When humanity had sunk more deeply within the physical plane, this idea confronts us again in its materialistic form, as the Copernican theory.

“The Egyptians possessed the spiritual conception and it was the world-karma of Copernicus to retain a memory of such conceptions, and this conjured forth that “combination of bearings” that led to his theory of the solar system. The case was similar with Kepler, who, in his three laws, presented the movement of the planets round the sun in a much more comprehensive way; however abstract they may appear to us, they were the result of a most profound conception. A striking fact in connection with this highly gifted being is contained in a passage written by himself and which fills us with awe when we read it. Kepler writes: “I have thought deeply upon the Solar System. It has revealed to me its secrets; I will carry over the sacred ceremonial vessels of the Egyptians into the modern world.”

In the second phase of Sophia’s approach, the entire Elohim, the six Elohim of the Sun and radiant Michael Wisdom begin to redefine the outer and inner appearance and features of human beings based solely on their spiritual content (CLICK LINK). This is the reverse engineering of what Ahrimanic materialism intends.

Age of America Sophia studiesOur inner spiritual contents are in preparation, as we elaborate our Consciousness Soul foundations, to outwardly redesign the appearance of our human features based on the cohesion of our inner spiritual content. Ahriman will attempt to control, modify and standarize a new caste system and impose outer genetic locks on all human beings hidden spiritual potentials. This is one of Ahriman’s powerful imperatives and is vividly outlined in SOMNI 451 (click link). This 6th and 7th age paradigm shift from Ahriman to higher Michael Sun Forming Power is part of the so called Wedding Guest Mysteries. (Click Link)

We are challenged in The United States of America and by the backward Super-Power, abnormal, sub-normal unfolding development of the ancient Archangel from Egypt that dynamically hovers over the United States of America, like a cock-eyed, twitchy, nerve impaired, uncoordinated mother hen, trying to hatch a deformed Sun Egg of human spiritual beings. This crazy Mother Hen is now an arising Archai that will over come it’s Parkinson like tremors and seek the wholeness of an Archai in the higher service of the developments of cosmic evolution.

The Education of the American Folk-Soul and The Christ Impulse

“But this Spirit of the Age of our fifth post-Atlantean age of civilization worked in a very unique manner. He had to make a kind of compromise with one of the old Spirits of the Age who worked before the Christian-impulse, viz., the Egyptian Spirit of the Age, who, as we have heard, had in a certain respect risen to the rank of a Spirit of Form. Thus it comes about that our fifth post-Atlantean age of civilization, in which we now are, is really ruled by a Spirit of the Age who is in a certain way very much under the influence and impulses of the old Egyptian civilization, and of a Spirit of Form who is only at quite an elementary stage.

“That caused the many rifts and divisions in our age. Our Spirit of the Age in the fifth post-Atlantean age of civilization is striving in a certain respect to raise himself up to spiritual heights and to raise the fourth post-Atlantean age of civilization to a higher stage. But that includes the materialistic tendency and inclination, and according as the various Archangels, the various Folk-souls, have greater or less inclination towards this materialistic tendency, does a more or less materialistic people arise under the guidance of this Spirit of the Age of the fifth post-Atlantean age of civilization, and the people itself gives a more or less materialistic shade to the Spirit of the Age. On the other hand an idealistic people is one which gives the Spirit of the Age a shade which is in the direction of Idealism.”

Presently this distorted Archai is using humanity to achieve it’s maturity in the future 7th Age.  We, who partake of the culture of the United States of America are challenged to resist consciously the Ahrimanic redesigning of humanity. We, who partake of the cultural and spiritual development of the United States of America, are called upon to assist this awkward Archai/ potential Spirit of Form, in aligning itself with the highest goals of Earth Evolution and the Tenth Hierarchy. Our Ahrimanic, cloning, genetics and patented gene code sciences will interfere, disrupt and de-rail humanities alignment with Sophia and the starry Incarnation Sciences. The 5th, 6th, and 7th ages will give birth to catastrophic nightmares and monsters if we fail to regain Sophia and Incarnation star wisdom, starting right this very day. By lifting this buried wisdom into our Consciousness Soul we prepare ourselves to learn the science of Angels. In discovering our moral depths and recovering our conscious courage we earn the right to become Wedding Guests.

Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon

“Luciferic beings enliven our egohood. Quite exciting. Ahrimanic beings develop this group, national egotism. More than exciting! Now the Archai, those beings who did not attain egohood on Old Saturn, also called the Asuras, are tempting the ego on cosmic proportions today. The Asuras were kept away from us for a time. The Luciferic beings were the first to approach us, because they are the smallest. So God said, let humans first be tempted by the Luciferic beings, give them the individual ego. But don’t tempt them with the Ahrimanic Archangels. Then came a time, when human beings were strong enough, when the Ahrimanic Archangels could intervene. When it was not enough to have just individual egotism, the Archangels joined the play.

Only in the last century, when the time of their captivity ran out, could this last group join in. The American Indians knew about them. These are the Titans bound to the Earth. These are backward Archai beings from Saturn and beyond. They are huge beings. They are cosmic, terrible, horrific monsters. These are the High Tor beings. And they can definitely take an Archangel and twist him into a salamander, no problem. They are beings that can destroy planets. When we speak about atomic energy, the capacity for destruction and corruption on such titanic scales, this is beyond group egotism. This is a planetary egotism.”

Each of our individual Angels are presently in a horrific conflict in the foundations of the whole of global human karma, with all of us who have chosen to reject the imperative of awakening of our Consciousness Soul. And on the other-side of the equation stands our resolve to awaken our higher spiritual forces against the decadent genetic drag-down of the chaotic/corporate rape of the human genome.

We are called upon to become co-workers in the unfolding revelation of the Risen Etheric Christ. In so doing we assist the ripening and maturity of this abnormal, stunted Super-Power, our own American Archai, who needs our blessing to secure it’s higher development within the evolution of the gods themselves. We are called upon to educate and befriend our vast American Archai so that it and we achieve our highest goals for humanity and the Earth.

Spiritual Geography and laying the foundations for Part 2 of GRAPPLING WITH THE MONSTERS OF THE AMERICAN PSYCHE

The third phase of Sophia’s approach to the Consciousness Soul of humanity, is that her daughter, Anthrosophia, residing within humanity, will experience the event of the return of the Moon, that had separated from the Earth in early geological time.

The third phase brings Sophia within the closeness, and nearness of the Moon. All of nature and all of humanity will feel the titanic tug of the Elohim, the 7th Elohim known to humanity as Yahweh, Jehovah or DIANA of EPHESUS, who had resided in and with the hidden science of the Moon. Cruel Yahweh or biological Mistress of the Moon, Diana of Ephesus, was Queen and law giver over all earthly heredity, gestation, and reproduction lineages of Kings and Pharaohs. All of the ancient warring, contested and now, the utterly depleted current blood lines are the last vestiges of the wreckage of a now defunct Lunar Majesty.

What do we know about the Monsters of the American Psyche? We know that such vampire reemerging of clinging to decadent, debauched and black magic blood lines,   True Blood 2008 logo.svg(Click Link) and all other vampire sagas, are the cravings, hungers and longings for all that once ruled over all kingdoms of the Earth. Decadent earthly science now salivates to create aberrations in the human DNA, fostered no longer by the ancient wisdom of Luna, but sought and funded by human militaristic opportunism that wishes to rob the treasure troves of the ancient Elohim of the Moon. The lofty wisdom of an ancient Elohim is now transitioning to a criminal hostile take over by the Monsters of the American Psyche, psychotic, ahrimanic, asuric,  laboratories of bloodthirsty genetic scientists now working under the paymaster and dominatrix known as the Whore of Babylon (SEE LINK).

Definition of ‘Hostile Takeover’

The acquisition of one, older, ancient and traditional company (called the target company) this being the ancient Moon Elohim who had guarded and guided the distribution of karma, talents and abilities, is currently being assaulted, attacked, raped and taken over by another being, who has had insider cosmic trader information and further more, hidden occult information. The only reason, as investors, we blindly walk into a cosmic trap, is because we have insidiously kept our university education and research under Ahriman’s claw of the Wolves of Wall Street. Ahriman knows full well that the ancient Moon Elohim is handing her/his reign over to humans (called the acquirer).

Now this hostile take over is currently being accomplished, not by coming to an agreement with the target company’s management (comprehending consciously the position and role of the Moon in the market place of human heredity, karma, destiny and the genetic protection of humanity), but rather by going directly to the company’s shareholders, (Ahrimanically possessed human beings) who unconsciously prefer and instill into it’s human agents a desperate desire for tyrannical control and administration of what was once  the domain of Cosmic Intelligence.

The Tenth Hierarchy must suffer the fall of our own human goals and our higher potential position of maintaining conscious alignment with Cosmic Intelligence because Ahriman entwined and twisted in our humanity blocked all human education into the divine system of cosmic intelligence. Management, leadership, corporations, political demonic agendas, murder, bribery and scandal were used by Ahriman in order to insert new management of cosmic intelligence with strict Ahrimanic agendas and goals.

Through our self-glorified and self proclaimed ignorance of humanities noble position in the hierarchies, our deepened and immense star wisdom, incarnation sciences and etheric sciences, Ahriman has been allowed to corrupt human intelligence and gain approval from human beings themselves, for the acquisition of the genome and the hostile take over of the vast system of Luna enterprises.

A hostile takeover can be accomplished through inserting an overwhelming ignorant, stupid debasement of divine wisdom as Ahriman has succeeded in doing; OR humanity awakens, resists Ahrimanic Deception with a full, fresh and invigorating frontier fight for Michael Intelligence with the courage to fight for our Angels and for Cosmic Intelligence and place Ahriman under strict house arrest.

So many horrific assaults on Cosmic Intelligence by Ahrimanic humanity, reveals that we, as humanity, have been unprepared to confront our ignorance, or our failures in education. We will gladly fall down and worship Ahriman over Christ as Ahriman has used Identity Theft on a cosmic scale to replace the Risen Etheric Christ with Ahriman’s icy deceptions and materialistic idolatry. In our education, our medical sciences, in our militarism, our societal and political ploys, Ahriman has out gunned, out maneuvered, out matched and infected masses of humanity with ideals of literally fallen, decayed and grotesque materialistic lies. Direct attacks against divine Cosmic Intelligence has put Ahriman in human hearts, large and in charge, of the hostile take over of every branch and brand of human endeavor including the genetic sciences offered as a wise and free gift to humanity.

Humanity has failed to comprehend any of the wise and free gifts offered by the Divine Spiritual Worlds. Nickola Tesla’s free gifts were confiscated by military and corporate powers of greed. The vast Etheric Sciences of the Risen Etheric Christ were abused by the Churches. Starry wisdom has been betrayed into heroic explorer cartoons. The I AM of humanity, of each individual I AM is a tangled psychological wriggling snake pit of confused instinct, motives and vague unconscious realms that defy astral, etheric laws. The scaffolding of the laws of childhood development are arbitrary Ahrimanic constructs of failed informational cramming a suitcase and stuffing a mind with unrelated abstract items that will be unusable on the journey that the human soul takes through life (CLICK EDUCATIONAL CUL-DE-SAC) . The amazing Divine Gifts for the Tenth Hierarchy can be given, but Ahriman has the majority of humanity in a head-lock.

It was the Moon who had volunteered to separate from the other SIX ELOHIM of the Sun in order to set the correct calibration and regulation of Form, Matter and living etheric distribution of human talents and nature’s gifts. This lawful calibration held in check by the mathematical distance the Moon maintained between the Sun Elohim and the Earth, regulated all genetic life on Earth. If the Moon moved closer gigantic forms would overwhelm LIFE. If the Moon moved further away, forms would shrink. But there is an inner reality to the Moon Beings and their Divine Timing as to when the Moon is once more called back to rejoin the Earth. That timing is clearly set at the end of the 7th Age, the Age of America.

The powerful Moon, that we continue to blaspheme as nothing but a slag heap tossed from the Earth in it’s early evolution, was actually the hidden regulator of the precision of all former genetic integration in the planning of human incarnation and in the numerical, cellular patterns of the gestation cycles of animals, insects, tides, plants and female menstrual cycles. The Gateway to the Science of Women Themselves, their higher mission and the key to Females and their inner connection to the cycles of the MOON can be studied HERE [CLICK THIS LINK].

Earth Geology and the Expulsion of the Moon

John Davy, O.B.E., M.A. (1927-1984), was co-director of Emerson College, Forest Row, England, and had particular responsibility for the foundation year program, a requirement for the Waldorf teacher training. He was also an international lecturer and chairman of the Anthroposophical Society of Great Britain. After studying zoology at Cambridge, he became science editor of the Observer in London. He was awarded the O.B.E. (Order of the British Empire) in 1965 by Queen Elizabeth II for his achievements in writing on science.
This article was first published in “The Golden Blade”, London, 1957.

“If one looks at a cliff face containing convoluted layers of rock which seem to have been twisted about like plasticine, it becomes almost impossible to believe, as orthodox geology would have it, that ordinary hard rock was slowly bent into such shapes simply by enormous pressures. It is much easier, for the naïve observer at least, to imagine a time when the rocks had a more toffee-like consistency, and the whole surface of the earth was far more active and flexible3.

“The strata known as Carboniferous, Permian, and Triassic belong to the middle part of the Lemurian epoch. During this period, according to Rudolf Steiner, an extremely important event occurred – the separation of the moon from the earth. In the part of the earth where the Pacific Ocean now is,Age of America Moon Expulsion a kind of infolding of the earth’s crust occurred, and a separate planetary body was formed, which was then ejected to become what is now the moon. Into this body were concentrated all those substances and forces which had tended to make the solidification and hardening processes of the earth go on too fast. The departure of the moon left a huge ‘wound’ in the earth, and many of the geological revolutions of the period were caused by the whole earth’s crust trying to ‘grow’ over from the western pole of the earth, in order to ‘heal’ this wound. The whole Pacific basin is today surrounded by mountain ridges which provide evidence of this process, and the constant volcanic activity and colossal chasms which still exist in the floor of the Pacific show that the wound is still not healed.4

“Through the steady precipitation from the thick colloidal atmosphere, a hot watery earth surface, with islands of denser material floating in it, gradually formed. The core of dense fiery material was constantly breaking through the very thin crust. The atmosphere itself was still extremely heavily laden with water, but was thinning slowly all the time.

“The swampy regions of the tropics today are a kind of echo of conditions during the final part of the Lemurian epoch, after the departure of the moon. But one must imagine everything mineral in a more plastic state, temperatures higher, the air still much thicker, and volcanic activity, often on a tremendous scale, going on all the time. Above all, one must remember that all matter was still far more intimately woven through with spiritual forces. The Lemurian epoch ended when the Lemurian continent – roughly on the site of the present Indian Ocean – was destroyed by a fiery volcanic catastrophe, and the principal scene of evolution, as far as mankind was concerned, became Atlantis, where the Atlantic Ocean now is.”

Without the Regulation and Coordination of the 7th Elohim of the Moon the full achievement of the human form, the maintaining of the form that lawfully gave Jesus/Zarathustra the foundations of heredity and the capacity to bring our human mortality into alignment with Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man, the Christ Event on Earth could not have taken place.

And here is the devastating meaning of the future karma of humanity. That once the Fifth Age, the Age of Pisces shattered the Moon Lock, the entire fallen and mis-directed black magic of genetic manipulation and the map of the genome and our interference into the foundations of Repro-Technology, shattered Jehovah’s, Jahve, Jahweh, Jahwe (ˈjɑːveɪ, ˈjɑːweɪ) realm and assaulted, raped the once holy precincts of Mater herself. Ahriman is hungering to become humanities new Alma Mater. We bow and worship at the cold fiction of the university of Ahriman.

We began mixing and mangling, mismanaging and manipulating seeds, cells, plants, animal/plants, animal/human, insect/human, plant/insect, immoral, illogical and Corporate Patented distortions, Chimera and monsters. Nature was raped by trained scientists who fornicated with matter and were taught to disregard the magnificent divine integration of the higher and lower spiritual/material cellular and formative substance that allows each human to carry the potential of the Divine. The Ahrimanic sciences of the Fifth Post-Atlantean Age rejected the divine in humanity, down to the foundations of cellular and genetic materialism and refused to maintain lawful, moral-protective arrangements that had been safeguarded since the destruction of Atlantis.

The Pharmaceutical monopolies, global multi-national corporations tore into the once stable fabric of humanity with an avarice scent for blood and for profits. Universities and Corporations became one and the same and directed a straight and narrow path lit by Ahrimanic Science directly to the doorstep of the neon blinking sign that announced, welcome to Whore of Babylon Enterprises (CLICK LINK)  cosmically known as Arachne International for graduate study and admission to the exclusive domain of the fallen and rejected corpse of the cosmos, of the NASTROND (click Link) known as the EIGHTH SPHERE. MORE ON THAT IN PART 2.

“But there will be another hall on Nastrond, the shore of corpses. That place in the underworld will be as vile as it is vast; all its doors will face north. Its walls and roof will be made of wattled snakes, their heads facing inward, blowing so much poison that it runs in rivers through the hall. Oath breakers and murderers and philanderers will wade through those rivers. Nidhogg, too, will outlive the fire and the flood and under Yggdrasill he will suck blood from the bodies of the dead.”

The 7th Elohim of the Moon had completed her mission within nature and the human cellular structure that produced the Risen Etheric Christ and Atma or Spirit-Man for the benefit of Earth evolution.  Mission accomplished through the agency of wise humanity before the explosion of the nihilism and cynicism of the military industrial complex of Ahriman. As in ancient Atlantis before the catastrophe and the reason for the catastrophe of the sinking of Atlantis, humanity once more resorted to creating aberrations and abominations out of the mix of nature’s magic numbers. We will review some of these aberrations in part 2.

In this the Fifth Age, the Age of Pisces we have once more broken the contract that we held with the RAINBOW and the great Pythagorean Harmonies of Matter and Light and have in the majority rejected the Spiritual structure of the higher human being and the vast consequential history and tragedy it had taken to arrive at the quintessential Christ Event at the mid-point of Earth evolution.These are part of the rising insights of all those who carry a healthy Consciousness Soul.

The Christ event and the Christ Sciences reveal one of the most monumental moments of the physics laws of the adjustment of PARITY, of Earth and humanities equilibrium that literally defines the historic incision of why and when the Christ event took place. The pivotal balance of the Christ event, occurring when it did, against the background of ancient Atlantis before Christ and the pivotal balance for humanity and the Science of the development of the Earth, after A.D. hinges on the event of Golgotha. Humanity achieved Parity at the mid-point of Earth Evolution at 333 A.D.  But what exactly was achieved for the PARITY POINT by the Christ Event, that was locked in and fixed by 333 A.D.?

That is a question that reveals the unprecedented ignorance at the very heart of every flawed university and science degree that has been handed down to every student and every teacher that must abide by the Ahrimanic treachery in every aspect of our education. What the Christ knew about Earth Evolution and what humanity pretends to know shatters our arrogance in one fell swoop. The issue of the achievement of dangerous PARITY in Earth Evolution is completely unknown to the educational establishments because they have not included any, nada, nothing, of the Christ Sciences within their curriculum’s.

“Before the year 333, the greater part of the astral body had been active essentially in the upper human being and its smaller part in the lower body of the human being… In the year 333, the two parts became EQUAL. This was the critical situation 333 years after the coming of Christ, and since then the upper part of the astral body has been continuously decreasing….  If all human forces after the year 333 had remained as they were, men on Earth would have become weaker and weaker, increasingly powerless. And earthly life would have come to an end through this complete decadence of mankind.”  The Evolution of Consciousness by Rudolf Steiner

Because we have all been diverted from comprehending the Christ Sciences as part of human education we couldn’t possibly have known that the Astral Body had reached PARITY in the vicinity of 333 A.D. We have never been asked to study the construction of the human being, with it’s etheric, astral and I AM structure.  We could never have guessed that the entire equilibrium of Earth Evolution and the survival of humanity depended on the Christ Event, to help guide our human astral bodies, as our human astral bodies were set, (Egyptian SET) to plunge, down into the depths of sub-level Earth Sciences and down into the Monsters that dwell in the depths of the American Psyche.Charting the path of Christ and Sorath Florian SydowThe plunge point, down into the depths of the sub-earthly mysteries occurred just past the mid-point of Earth Evolution in 333 A.D. This pivotal PARITY POINT of teetering on the brink was reached for all of humanity at about 333 A.D. From that point on the temptations of our astral body would be unprotected as we plunged into the depths of humanities uncharted soul and spiritual regions.

There is no course study in the vast insights of the Christ Sciences and why the Christ Event needed to be completed before, and accomplished, spread and in movement before the year 333 A.D and before 666 A.D. because there are no Christ Sciences in Ahriman’s domain of university education. We may only acquire Christ Sciences through the University of Spiritual Science and the global Michael and Novalis school of the awakening of Anthrosophia in the human soul.

The devastating materialistic damage the Fifth Age of Pisces shall cause on, into, and towards the Sixth Age and the final Seventh Age will be part of the unbearable nightmares and horror that the AGE OF AMERICA will engender. The Bride is coming and the wisdom of the stars announces her dawning arrival.

“This point in time of Sophia’s entrance into the local part of our galaxy coincides with the founding of the United States of America in 1776. There is a very deep connection here between these two events, which it is not possible to go into now because it is too complex. However, it can be said that there is a relationship between the Declaration of Independence in 1776 and the descent of Sophia to unite with our cosmos –   …Sophia at the portal of the Stars the living world of Sophia

” The coming of Sophia was revealed to John on the island of Patmos over 1900 years ago when the Ascended Christ showed him the unfolding of the future of evolution. In the middle of this unfolding, in this series of visions that he received and wrote down in Revelations, in Chapter 12 he suddenly beheld Sophia appearing. John was seeing into the future. He was seeing a certain moment in time. He saw that Divine Sophia was going to appear on the world stage.

“We can ask the question: When was this, or is it still to come in the future? The answer is that the appearance of Sophia onto the world stage is happening in stages. The first stage has to do with Sophia coming into our cosmos represented by the realm of the zodiac, symbolized by the twelve stars around her head. The second stage has to do with Sophia coming into our solar system and connecting with the Sun. This is why John saw her in vision “clothed with the Sun”. In the third stage he beheld her with the Moon under her feet.”

Cosmogony and Cosmosophy

Rudolf Steiner – “In the age of the CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL, with the full unfolding of self-consciousness, we have grown accustomed to focus our attention on the spatial magnitude of the Universe, and to look on the Earth as a speck of dust, insignificant compared to the great universe of physical space. Hence it will seem strange, to begin with, when spiritual vision unfolds the true cosmic significance of this alleged ‘particle of dust.”  (In the Michael Letters-Anthroposophical Leading Thoughts- with his last breath he called for a Cosmogony)

Hamlet:
What a piece of work is a man, how noble in reason, how
infinite in faculties, in form and moving how express and
admirable, in action how like an angel, in apprehension how like
a god! the beauty of the world, the paragon of animals—and yet,
to me, what is this quintessence of dust?

The advanced Geography studies and Science of the human soul, the Cosmogony and Cosmology Sciences, embryology and Cosmosophy studies, that reveal the mystery of the unfolding reality of Earth, are just beginning to dawn in the United States. The United States and the far West have a mission within the healthy (click link) Threefold Structure of the World. The gift and capacity of the West is to identify, present and unveil an advanced Cosmogony of the origins of the Earth and the genetic structure of the human being.

The New Cosmogony Science

4. Findings from the planet-embryo – morphological and genetic traces

“Before, in the Precambrian global ecosystem many Prokaryotes are able to perform  horizontal gen-transfer. All genetic information from the gen-pool can be combined and collected in stem-cells of the planet-embryo. Endosymbiosis is an important step developing Eukaryotes with a cell-nucleus conserving huge amounts of DNA. Endosymbiosis, multicellularity, development of ectoderm, endoderm, mesoderm, the forming of heads and segmentation are important steps in higher development. Coelenterates are on a stage comparable to a gastrula, Cephalopods to the neurula. Non-segmented animal phyla like Molluscs develop many kinds of organs in the central part of their body which can be functionally considered as a head containing the centre of their nervous system. The segmented animals develop out of nonsegmented ones keeping the centre of their nervous system at the cranial end…..

Age of America Western Cosmogony Science study material“….Vertebrate-embryos start the development of the head with a primordial embryonic spherical form. Humans conserved the primordial spherical shape throughout their entire evolutionary development, only disappearing on adult apes and adult early humans. Children of apes have round heads as the primordial shape.

“Only a small part of the DNA is used in the lifetime of an organism. The rest never gets expressed for various reasons. A genome is an assemblage of possible characteristics partially not getting realized. Characteristics can be reactivated appearing as atavism or in the course of higher development. The term “biological species” is defined as entirety of individuals able to have common descendants. As the worldwide colonies of prokaryotes can exchange and collect genetic information by horizontal gen-transfer, the planet-embryo is identical with the hypothetical common ancestor of all living beings. Cell-nuclei contain the complete genome for the whole individual. Therefore there were cells in the planet-embryo containing information to build the shape of an embryonic head. In some early phase of planetformation silicium can have been a carrier of information…”

It is common understanding that the dumbing-down of what amounts to a university degree, or having the vaguest understanding of what the true mission of the West is, in regards to global higher education, is completely lost on the majority of ‘educated’ U.S. citizens. In fact all we have before us is a shark tank and bloody bear-pit of political egotism masquerading as ‘intelligent’ people. The price-tag to fund a university education where our children will be “dumbed-down”, assimilated and have their divine intelligence squandered is an arrogant, egotistical competition. Parents have been trained to pay and to play the high stakes game of job opportunity linked to higher education (CLICK LINK educational black-hole, cul-de-sac) . The Ahrimanic forces outsourced all the jobs that spoiled Ken and Barbie were supposed to get. The Ahrimanic forces manipulated and deliberately crashed global economy so that a third world, leveling of all jobs allows spoiled Barbie and Kens from the U.S. to become stars of the Service Industries and have their parents and themselves saddled with an enormous debt load for a non-education. Cosmogony and Cosmosophy and the incarnation of the human spirit means zip in higher education so this quote has some validity.

“The primary reason so many people are stupid has to do with the state of the world in the time zone it is occupying, like Paleolithic, Jurassic, Mesozoic. This period would probably be called Dumbassic, Retardian, Cluelessiferous or some such.” Les Visible (Smoking Mirrors)

Overcoming the Ahrimanic blockades , the armed and arrayed battalions of status-quo propaganda, armed to the teeth, prevents students from coming to the confidence bearing human spiritual comprehension of how the Earth and how each human Embryo were designed. The secrets of how our origins are keyed, whether we appreciate it or not, to the position of how the Earth sits as an entity within the cosmos, how it spins, the degrees of its axis and the number of 23 chromosomes in our DNA, has been catastrophically obliterated, buried and eviscerated out of education.

Etheric cellular genetic codesThese realities make the Earth a Living Being. Each human being who incarnates within the Earth must obey the laws of how 23 degrees of the Axis of the Earth, the Sun’s shift off the equator above by 23 degrees and below the equator at 23 degrees, make these realities an extremely consequential revelation.

Such an educational revelation reveals how the cell, the human cell divides and splits itself when 46 chromosomes are achieved. The cell divides at 46 and starts the process again with 23 chromosomes.Age of America 23 This continues until the Template and Blueprint of the human form and the incarnating design codes of the individual human spirit have stamped their 3D printing into the recesses of the womb. At least that is how it had been done for thousands of years.

The numerical fields of cellular development and the position of the Earth between Vega and the North Star (see link) have been an invisible writing, etching and etheric sketch and design needle that creates the magnetic fields of the Earth as well as the genetic and cellular script of all Life, and all genetic codes that are the SIGNATURE value of the Cell and the Earth Herself.

We live in the vastness of the Starry Heavens before birth. We live in the Law of the Heavens and Devachan planetary and star worlds before we incarnate. We shrink and are shrunk to cellular size, and in this case, the work room of the cell with 46/23 ratio corresponds directly to Vega and the North Star. We’re right at home either within the Cell or the starry gateway mysteries of why the Earth spins in the cosmic family. Both are our home and we bring this wonder with us, this certainty above us, as a child. On Earth we discover the meaning of uncertainty and from the heavens we bring with us the substance of joyful spiritual certainty.

The axis and spin of the Earth are also the needle point that stitches and inserts the codes used for the division of the cell. The incarnating individual human spirit is a collaboration between the Template of the Stars and the Cell and genetic codes. The lab of the cell and the lab of the Stars are part of Cosmogony and Cosmosophy that should be the gift of revelation from the Greatness of the Schools of the Far West.

The Last Days of Rudolf Steiner’s Life    “…THE EARTH IN ITS UNITY IS AN EMBRYO — the seed of a macrocosm newly rising into life.”

The Geography of the Earth and of the United States mirrors as well, both the mysteries of the human form embryonically and the mysteries and numerical values of the Earth Herself (Cosmogony Study).  Each human being, each fetus and fully upright human form is clearly and without exception designed on the Template of the Constellations. (Cosmosophy Study)

So we are required to bring to birth a Cosmogony which sustains the vast Starry Origins and design intentions of the Immortality invested in each human I AM. This would be one of the base supports of the foundation stone of Paul’s New Kingdom and one of the three great Foundation Stones upon which the pillars of The Tenth Hierarchy could rest.

This would be a potent addition to the mystery of Peter and Pauline Christianity.We are given the opportunity to become Co-workers in the community of The Tenth Hierarchy and work directly with the mission of the Risen Etheric Christ Sciences. Cosmogony can be brought as an educational, universal and divine gift from out of the higher strivings of the Novalis School of the “Beautiful Sciences”, the ‘Schöne Wissenschaftenof the awakening far West.

The Three Kings brought gifts to the child Christ but the East, the West and the Middle of the Globe, where human spirits dwell, were intended to produce their unique offerings for the benefit of humanity and the unfolding wisdom of The Tenth Hierarchy. The depth, intent and meaning of Steiner’s efforts HERE (CLICK LINK) were to stir and inspire humanity to awaken and offer our THREEFOLD GIFTS before the great Logos and Risen Etheric Christ. The West has the mission in the world to present a Living Picture of both the origins, mathematical clarity and spiritual veracity of the Earth and how the birth of each human being within the Earth Sphere and our genetic unfolding, is the very revelation and meaning of the Earth Herself.

Some secrets of the Moral Geography of the United States can now be added to the explorations made in THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL age of Pisces towards the Novalis School of Spiritual Science and the Cosmogony Sciences of the West.

Geographic Anomalies in the Soul Regions of the United States

To build on Jung’s idea of a country’s spiritus loci, every culture could also be said to have at least one dominant archetypal energy at its core which “permeates everything.” It can be sensed in the language; in the land; in the music; in the mythology; and in its past and current history. As such, each culture offers a special gift to the whole of human existence and to the evolution of humankind – a special gift that is offered by almost no other culture and which is often determined, in part, by the land itself.

Dense regions of Perilous Geographic Mysteries  “…every great locality has its own pure daimon [presiding spirit], and is conveyed at last into perfected life.” D.H. Lawrence

Rudolf Steiner

“When the Initiate of the Middle Ages wanted to present in picture form what he had to learn in order to permeate with the new wisdom the part of his soul that had remained living, he spoke of the Castle of the Holy Grail and of the new wisdom — which is in fact the “Grail” — that flows out from it. And when he wanted to indicate that which is hostile to this new wisdom, he pointed to another domain, the domain wherein dwelt all the beings and forces which had made it their task to gain access to the part of the body that had become dead, and to the part of the human soul that had become unconscious. This domain, into which were justly transferred (“justly” is here used in an occult sense) all the successors of the evil spiritual beings of earlier times who had preserved the worst forces of oriental magic (not the best forces, which also had remained) — the domain which was the most vicious and hostile to the Grail was Castle Merveil, the gathering-place of all the forces which attack man in this part of his body and soul and have undergone a karmic fate such as has been indicated. Spiritual wisdom can be carried anywhere to-day, because we have reached a transition stage leading towards the Sixth Epoch and these things are no longer tied to particular localities, but in the Middle Ages it had to be sought in certain definite places, as I have shown in my book, The Spiritual Guidance of Man and of Mankind. Hence when in earlier times it was said that one had to travel to a particular neighbourhood in order to receive a certain teaching, this was not meant in any figurative sense. In our own time it must be said that wisdom has less of a local character; for we are living in a time of transition from life in space and time into more spiritual forms of time.”

Assassins of the Sun

Light was raped and holy mater, matter and Light itself, was corrupted by an Anti-Grail technological assault team and hit squad. True Assassins of the Sun were deployedAge of America Trinity 1 to the South West Region of the United States with the gruesome task to rip open the gateway to lower Sorathian forces.

The resulting fireball that scorched the desert formed a depressed crater 800 yards in diameter, glazed with a light olive green, glass-like substance where the sand had melted and solidified again. The following excerpt is from Time Magazine, Sept. 17, 1945: “Seen from the air, the crater itself seems (looks like)Age of America crater trinitite a lake of green Jade shaped like a splashy star, and set in a sere disc of burnt vegetation half a mile wide. From close up the lake is a glistening encrustation of blue-green glass 2,400 feet in diameter, formed when the molten soil solidified in air.” Chemical tests have confirmed that it is nearly pure melted silica with traces of Olivine, Feldspar, and other minerals which comprise the desert sand. The crater was buried for security reasons not long after the explosion and, as a result, Trinitite has remained relatively difficult to obtain.

Trinitite (click link), a new formation in the silica and crystal structures of the Earth is named after THE TRINITY. However it is the lower trinity, the Trinity of Beings known as Asuras – Ahriman – Lucifer.
Age of America fall of the I AM Trinitite is composed of all the decayed Light and Matter mysteries of fallen nuclear radioactivity and poisoned, deformed light. The fallen mysteries of Magnetism as a product of decayed light, of electricity, as fallen, decayed aspects of light, formed a new crystalline contract in the mineral structure of the Earth known as TRINITITE. The Sorathian under-lords and opponents of the Sun Being Christ, forged their TRINITITE Silica contract, with vengeance, down into the atomic table of elements.

When Spiritual Science reveals calcite crystal substance formed from the pineal gland (Click Link) secretions and how the Christ Being forged the contract of Spirit-Man, Atma, the quintessence of human evolution that comes about after the 7th Age and on, saturn to vulcan 1forward and beyond into the Venus and Vulcan development of humanity, we would be well advised to make this startling comparison part of our Consciousness Soul education. The entire meaning of Earth Evolution was the Deed of Love that fashioned from within the human being, the divine anchor point of Spirit-Man.

This crystalline element was formed out of the higher forces dormant in the human I AM.  This anchor point of the calcite crystal formation  was part of the cast off substance wrought from the courage and LOVE of the Risen Etheric Christ’s pineal development. The anchor point of Spirit-Man in Earth Evolution (STUDY LINK) was wrought by an entirely different type of human FIRE FORCE. The crystalline pineal development of Christ from the events of Golgotha, were forged out of the fire of Atma, of Spirit-Man, from the Hierarchies from whence humanity have it’s origins. That crystalline pineal substance was radiated from the forces of the Risen Etheric Christ and built on the foundations of our human physical, etheric, astral, I AM, Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit; and Spirit-Man. And this Trinity and this comparison and this FIRE SUBSTANCE should be reviewed over and over again. (LINK)

The Age of Americium

“Existing americium is concentratedAge of America Electron shell 095 americium in the areas used for the atmospheric nuclear weapons tests conducted between 1945 and 1980, as well as at the sites of nuclear incidents, such as the Chernobyl disaster. For example, the analysis of the debris at the testing site of the 1st U.S. hydrogen bomb, Ivy Mike,, revealed high concentrations of various actinides including americium; due to military secrecy, this result was published only in 1956. Trinitite, the glassy residue left on the desert floor near Alamogordo, New Mexico, after the plutonium-based Trinity nuclear bomb test on 16 July 1945, contains traces of americium-241. Elevated levels of americium were also detected at the crash site of a US B-52 bomber, which carried four hydrogen bombs, in 1968 in Greenland.”

From Trinity New MexicoAge of America the Triad, exactly like the THREE CROSSES ON GOLGOTHA’S HILL, an anti-grail, scientific, technological assault team, Assassins of the Sun collected themselves in the Southwest region of the United States and with much heroic, historical fan-fare and the launching of physicists and top-secret research departments funded by the United States government, universities of future black magicians and Light Assassins devoted their lives to the revelation of matters demons. Christ opposing SorathThat is the Trinity of Asuras, Ahriman and Lucifer were once more released from the Earth and given a vast educational platform for the destruction of matter and the corruption and degradation of Light. The absolute opposite of what Grail Sciences strive for.

Now these sudden shifts in the scales of balance have forced THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL and the United States of America to awaken rather abruptly from our slumbers. Humanity caught off-guard, is challenged to experience the full force of the new cognition of the monsters we have awakened and the moral pivot and axis of Michael Cognition and Michael Courage it takes to hold the balance of Spiritual Cognition, against the onslaught of the renewed thrust from the underworlds.

Chthonic underworlds which we have now fused together as a disguised university study, an elite language of matter and star substance, that was forged in the blast zone, and melded together in the new elements known as TRINITITE and AMERICIUM. Chthonic Underworld Science aberrations have now hypnotized students into imagining an exotic world of formed particle physics that go down ever deeper and deeper into abstract layers of materialism and reach far, far out into the distant reaches of space.

Adriana Koulias 

“This wound, this unconsciousness has opened up the human being to the sub-ethers – the fallen etheric forces that relate to Lucifer, Ahriman and Asuras working on behalf of their supreme counter ego Sorath. This counter grail stream works in such a way today that it rises up via the etheric body – through the limbs – into the human soul and that is why evil today seems to be so individualised and without sense (because it occurs below the level of the consciousness in the will). For this reason it is not necessary anymore for it to come from ‘outside’ through ideology and programs and indoctrination. It comes from within the human being through the will.”

This standardized anti-grail university corruption and demonization of matter, places electricity, magnetism and nuclear glorification as glorious and worthy causes with an “An olive-wreath” crown for succeeding in the true aim of higher education in service of our Ahrimanic Brand Name. A mighty masters degree for excellence of achievement in the professional career determining path of the science of abstract materialism. In reality the scientific materialism of this Fifth Epoch, Age of Pisces, in germinal form, has created a future school of black magicians and genetic scientists that will catastrophically implode, divide and rip apart humanity from now and on into the 6th Age when the Spring Sun rises in Aquarius and the 7th Age when the Spring Sun rises in Capricorn.

The two Initiates who had a justified right to stand in the midst of the swirling forces of Chthonic underworld were Christian Rosenkreuz and Nikola Tesla. Our immoral education has been accelerated and our moral ethical education partially hijacked. Certainly the free energy that Nikola Tesla (Below global Wi-Fi use over night and day) offered humanityAge of America Tesla free Wi-Fi and Bill Gates and the world has been hijacked by the absolute monsters who have grown out of the United States in this Fifth Age of Pisces. The vast Military Industrial Complex of the Super-Power, subnormal Archai of the United States and the failed Intelligence and Morality of humanity, to consciously and clearly face the Etheric Christ event as a Science, has ripped open an ever widening abyss in human consciousness. This abyss continues to widen and continues to challenge The Tenth Hierarchy, us, humanity, to use this abrupt opportunity to lift our vision and SEE THROUGH the depths of matter to the Spiritual Beings behind matter and the Earth.

Novalis – Hymns to the Night

“Like a king over earthly nature, it rouses every force to countless transformations, binds and unbinds innumerable alliances, hangs its heavenly form around every earthly substance.”

Age of America Breaking Bad Table YenChih Lin 1a

The results of the occult devastation of the New Mexico region of the United States has brought the Artists who are able to SEE with imaginative clairvoyance, to a doorway and one of the gateways that lead to the abyss of where the Monsters of the American Psyche have breached the wall.

For those who can see, an attempt was made to describe the process of an ever expanding moral sink-hole, a karma devouring Black Hole, that devours entire karmic streams. It appears in a specific geographic location of the American Southwest.age of America breaking bad map 1 It appears within the outline, aftermath and geography of the location of the  first Sorathian Mystery of the Anti-Sun.  All humanity have been forced prematurely  into the shattering karma of vast planetary beings.

“The history of the Jornada is in itself quite fascinating, since it was given its name by the early Spanish colonists of New Mexico. The Jornada was a short cut on the Camino Real, the King’s Highway that linked old Mexico to Santa Fe, the capitol of New Mexico. It is also interesting to note that in the late 16th century, the Spanish considered New Mexico to include most of North America west of the Mississippi!”Age of America Aztec Aztlan influence

The Assassins of the Sun prematurely, under vast Global-planetary-Fire egotism, under pressure of historical, catastrophic and contrived, even manipulated global events, wrought by the darkest monsters in the depths of the Earth, humanity, and the United States felt compelled by unknown forces beyond them, to seize the unconscious lie of matter.  Science had an opportunity of shaking the concepts of matter to it’s core. Ahrimanic, Asuric and strategic forces and powers never before seen on Earth were within reach. The minds that had the most intimate understanding of abstract materialism ever in the history of the aims of Sorath, were assembled together for a truly anti-grail, ancient mythic and apocalyptic moment.

It was feasible, possible, doable and would establish, greater than Darwin ever could, the foundation for Theoretical Nuclear and Particle Physics  “THE GOD PARTICLE” and give Ahrimanic Doubles the legitimate ploy of an acceptable vocation as a black magician for advanced theoretical materialism. This anti-grail quest would legitimize the materialistic core of the heart of darkness and give humanity sterile and immoral permission to embark on expeditions into the depths of matters core.  It was a vast conspiracy from the depths of the Earth to get humanity to unlock prematurely the imprisoned planetary Titans and the Ahrimanic Archai level regents, who hold command over vast armies of global human Doubles.

The Human Double and the Army of Darkness

Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon

“Now these twice-retarded archangels have double the power of angels. These fallen archangels also want to make up their ego evolution through us.Age of America recommended reading material

“Here we are not just the petty, selfish, I am that I am, living through my daily life, crushing individual competitors on my way to bliss, which are the normal gifts of intervening luciferic angels. Here comes something totally different. Here you find those great individuals who are leaders of nations, corporations, and soccer teams. For these great ones, they have a fallen archangel working through them. Their selfishness of party, nation, corporation, not merely an individual one. In these groups you find the fire spirits working, trying to go through their human stage, in which they failed on Old Sun. To allow fallen archangels to express their ego through us, it must be done through a group, through group egotism. Through this group egotism, the fallen archangel can gain, for the first time, a strong enough sense of self. The individual sense of self, that we experience, is nothing to these beings. These fire spirits need a corporation, an institute, a state.”

There was no legitimate cognitive reality left in the fully depleted religious life, so materialistic science had free reign, becoming the new church and the new god to bow down and worship. As Goethe, Mark Twain and T.S. Elliot had warned, we let the Ahrimanic, Luciferic and Asuric Doubles out of their captivity. We built them a church at every university and we funded and applauded our moral nihilism.

These released parasites, invisibly fed off the energies and intellects of their host subjects.  Super Power Multi-National corporations with vast Pyramid Systems, CEO’s overseeing economies larger than the economies of major countries, were easy marks because they had zero bottom-line self-reflective moral objectivity. Ahrimanic Archangelic beings found human egotism, in stadiums, sports teams and flag waving nationalism a double-blind against the human soul suspecting that they were being subtly possessed. And so the United States unleashed, prematurely, and slightly ahead of an awakening of vivid Christ Science cognition, vast infestations of bio-regional, occult and geographical pockets, where Ahrimanic, Asuric and Luciferic Doubles, gained strength from our unconscious American soul junkyard.

At that point in time, in the Southwest the Michael School and the Novalis School were not fully available to counteract the onslaught of Ahrimanic forces into the human double. Age of America MADIt was the rise of the army of the Orcs but with splendid, well paid university professors popping up everywhere. It was MAD, (Mutually Assured Destruction), holding the globe as hostage in an Ahrimanic Archai infestation and power grab. It was retaliation from the realm of fallen Angelic Beings that Michael had booted out which caused the direct result of the rise on Earth of THE FALL OF THE SPIRITS OF DARKNESS into a glorious season of immoral Ahrimanic proliferation. 

It was the story of Walt, the good man, the scientist, the founder of a billion dollar company called GRAY MATTER, that he sold prematurely for a mere 5,000 dollars (30 pieces of silver) to become a high-school teacher and get cancer for all his genius. His son, his family, his wife, his love, all smashed, flattened by finding himself left behind and out of the loop of the billions of dollars of profit that were generated from his own seminal ideas.

And his Ahrimanic Double festers, gnaws and eventually rises up and begins devouring whole regions. He nicknames himself, his street handle becomes HEISENBERG.  Heisenberg’s Uncertainty Principle was at least one of the most honest and mystic messages of how quantum theory and quantum mechanics are clearly and spiritually tied to the properties of human thought.

Age of America nuclear Heisenberg 1aHeisenberg was the handle, name for the key nuclear scientist who prevented the Nazis from getting and using the Atomic Bomb first, (because the strategic cunning of the monsters of the abyss) had cunningly maneuvered vast, immense and naive United States of America, into placing the doorway to hell, in the Southwest Region, opening the Geographic Gateway to the underworld. The actual historical relationship between Heisenberg and Danish physicist Niels Bohr can be studied at (THIS LINK).

Our present, puny human ideals, are out-gunned, out-matched and we are ignorant of the massive entities that are now toying with our unconscious humanity. War mongers bring us peace. Orwell captured and entered the underworld Age of America Inner life of the Earth Paul O'Leary and numerous authorswhere deep in the 8th layer of the Inner Earth (Click Link) and in the reversal layer of the Inner Earth, Orwell revealed how all human ideals are now reversed, catastrophic, Ahrimanic, Asuric and Luciferic corruptions of divine human ideals.

War is peace.
Freedom is slavery.
Ignorance is strength.

… [L]anguage that deliberately disguises, distorts, or reverses the meaning of words. Doublespeak may take the form of euphemisms (e.g., “downsizing” for layoffs, “servicing the target” for bombing, making the truth less unpleasant, without denying its nature. It may also be deployed as intentional ambiguity, or reversal of meaning (for example, naming a state of war “peace”). In such cases, doublespeak disguises the nature of the truth, producing a communication bypass.

Orwell explored this region and brought back insights into the deep kingdoms of the Earth. We don’t study like this.(CLICK LINK FOR STUDY) We don’t think clearly as to where Orwell went and how did he comprehend the divisive, reversal of all spiritual and true ideals into their poisonous opposites. We refuse to teach this in our universities, explore it, map it and counter-act it or anti-dote it for the benefit of the future of our children. We like being hood-winked slaves and teaching watered down junk so our children also learn to enjoy being the pets to vast karma shattering beings.

To these vast, cruel, underworld entities, we are merely doormats to wipe human blood and viral contamination off their hooves and claws. These are no longer little cartoon Mephistopheles or card-board cut outs, these are operative demonic beings. These beings are growing for themselves and with our naive tax payer funding and our deluded permissions, growing a crop of demented black magicians and feeding their little pet mice, bits of greed and power and morsels of pleasure and materialism, so that we remain unaware, and continue to wander in our well-educated, clueless cosmos.

But the wonderful diploma in the coming 6th Age and the 7th Age, coming up on our event horizon, will be the planting of THE NEW RULES of the black magicians guild, which entails, with our help, sealing off and walling up the hierarchies of heaven and controlling all excarnation and incarnation of human spirits. Talk about Border Guards! Their vast goal is to control all psychic and spiritual systems. Their goal is to manipulate and control all, of the fallen Devachan Kingdoms, and develop their own sub-realm hierarchies who long to become rulers of the 8th Sphere, simply by using humanity as their bait.

The Ahrimanic Double in Walt rises unconsciously and slowly devours Walt from the inside and we see, up close and personal, the catastrophic moral demise of another Oppenheimer.  It is a vivid example of a self-styled implosion, of moral suicide and spiritual suicide. Those elite members of the Assassins of the Sun, through their cultural and moral emptiness, were seduced to commit cosmic and planetary murder and destruction. These martyrs were enablers that pushed-up the time table of humanity, accelerated our confrontation with the abyss, and forced the immature moral reserves of humanity, to awaken to Michael’s battle in the realm of sub-nature.

Age of America breaking bad a

We are pathetic babies without any educational or moral maturity when we isolate the concept of a Black Hole out in space, as the matter swallowing, Sun and planet swallowing, gorge of invisible gravitational density. Rather the mature grasp of understanding how the Father in “Breaking Bad”, Walter, living in the region of Trinity New Mexico, (a simply brilliant artistic/spiritual template) becomes a revelation of the all consuming Black Hole, where the entire family unit, their Angels, and the entire karmic development of families are devoured, swallowed into the gravitational abyss, of a swirling karmic nightmare. Whole chunks of Starry Citizenry sucked into the abyss because we refused to explore, comprehend and awaken in ourselves the vast dimensions of the region of THE CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL.

Parting of the Paths and the Dividing of Ways In the Age of Pisces

“For after all, there can be no question but that they who in this time of great decisions do not find their way to the Spirit, will suffer harm in their soul-life for the next incarnation. Great as their qualities may be, they will suffer harm. And when we see how through their karma a number of human beings today have the inner impulse to spirituality while others cannot come near to it, — when we behold this contrast — our karmic living-together with such as I have here described should find a deep response within our souls. It should touch us and move us with a sense of tragedy. Until it does so, we shall never come to terms with our own karma. For if we sum up all that I have said of Michaelism, (if I may now so call it) then we shall find: the Michaelites are indeed taken hold of in their souls by a power that is seeking to work from the Spiritual into the full human being, even down into the Physical. I described it yesterday as follows. I said: these human beings will put aside the element of race, — the element which, from natural foundations of existence, gives the human being such or such a stamp. If a man is taken hold of by the Spirit in this earthly incarnation inasmuch as he now becomes an anthroposophist he is thereby prepared in future to become a man no longer distinguished by such external features but distinguished rather by what he was in the present incarnation. Let us be conscious of this in all humility: The time will come when in these human beings the Spirit will reveal its own power to form the physiognomy, — to shape the whole form of man.

“Such a thing has never yet been revealed in the history of the world. Hitherto the physiognomies of men have been formed on the basis of their nationality, out of the Physical. Today we can still tell by the physiognomy of men, where they hail from, — especially when they are young, when the cares of life or the joys and divine enthusiasms of life have not yet left their mark. But in the time to come there will be human beings by whose physiognomy and features alone one will be able to tell what they were in their past incarnation. One will know that in their past incarnation they penetrated to the things of the Spirit. Then will the others stand beside them, and what will their karma then signify? It will have cast aside the ordinary karmic affinities.

“My dear friends, in this respect he above all who knows how to take life in real earnest will tell you: One has been karmically united, or is still karmically united, with many who cannot find their way into this spirituality. And however many a kinship may still be left in life, one feels a more or less deep estrangement, a justified estrangement. The karmic connection, as it would work itself out in ordinary life, falls away; it goes. But it remains for something different. I would put it in this way: — From the one who stands outside in the field of materialism to the one who stands in the field of spirituality, nothing else will remain of karma; but this one thing will remain, that he must see him. He will become attentive to him. We can look to a time in the future, when those who in the course of the 20th century are coming ever more into the things of the Spirit, will stand side by side with others who were karmically united with them in the former life on earth. In that future time the karmic affinities, the karmic relationships, will make themselves felt far less. But of all the karmic relationships this will have remained: Those who are standing in the field of materialism will have to see and witness those who stand in the field of spirituality. Those who were materialists today will in the future have to look continually upon those who came to the things of the Spirit. This will have been left of karma.

“Once again a shattering, a deeply moving act, my dear friends. And to what end? Truly it lies in a far-reaching Divine cosmic plan. For how will the materialists of today let anything be proved to them? By having it before their eyes — by being able to touch it with their hands. Those who stand in the field of materialism will be able to see with their eyes and touch with their hands those with whom they once were karmically united, perceiving in their physiognomy, in their whole expression, what the Spirit really is, for it will have become creative in outer form and feature. In such human beings it will thus be proved, visibly for the eyes of man, what the Spirit is as a creative power in the world. And it will be part of the karma of anthroposophists to demonstrate, for those who stand in the field of materialism today, that the Spirit truly is, and proves itself in man himself, through the wise councils of the Gods.”

Each human being, child, relative, in “Breaking Bad”, each incarnating starry being who carries their karma into incarnation may be swallowed whole and their Angels sent down into the harrowing horror of Karmic Devastation. We see that the Geographic Region where the first Sorathian strike cracked the cosmic egg-shell that opened the gates to the subterranean, trapped and imprisoned Monsters in the depths of the American Psyche occurred.  “Breaking Bad” reveals the repercussions into the double and shadows of each of us, that now eat away at each unconscious, unaware family and individual over the whole Geographic map of the United States.

Of course the beauty of “Breaking Bad” is that there are deliberately no signposts or extreme red-flags that announce the DOUBLE, our doppelganger or our Shadows. Because in point of fact, the moral education of the infantile and pathetic American and U.S. family never have had an education into the DOUBLE, the Ahrimanic shadow, that clings, invades and infests every human being. There are no moral or educational manuals, except KNOWLEDGE OF THE HIGHER WORLDS, and various film and movie studies that concretely address the Geographic Double of a specific region, which just happens, in the case of “Breaking Bad” to be the region where the Nuclear Age breached the depths of the underworld.  Well if you are a Michael School and Novalis School participant, “Breaking Bad” is very instructive.

Nagual and the Shadow mysteries of the Western Hemisphere

Patrick White (September l5, l948 / Campbell River, British Columbia, Canada)

“You want the virtues of your noble enemy?
Slay yourself and eat your own heart.
This is your nagual, your tulpa, your mirage,
your nightmare, your doppelganger,
your reflective familiar, your shadow
holographically projected in 3D by the pineal gland
of your third eye tattooed on the skin of a black hole
that is neither an ignominious exit through the grave
or the celebrated entrance into a secret garden,
and it can’t be any more empowered than you are,
and there are no walls to walk through
if it wasn’t you that built them to keep the poor
from vaulting them to steal your apricots
like the hungry ghosts that haunt
the orchards of your abandoned thoughts.

“Savage homeopathy, perhaps, a holy war
of starmaps torn out like pages of sacred text
against the leaves who think they’re responsible
for keeping the whole tree they both spring from intact.”

Torn from the beneficent Etheric Sun, in the Southwest Region there were human sacrifices and a school of black magicians training for the future. They tore the beneficent elemental kingdoms of the geographic region out of their sanctuaries and hiding places, enslaved them and turned them into distorted vicious shadows. This school of black magicians were set in the Southwest region, and by demonic human sacrifice put the Carlos Castaneda Cloak over the Nagual Initiates of the Double.

In “The Fire From Within,” we find the following statement concerning the Toltec tradition, and in particular the mastery of awareness:

“In this case the action at hand was, naturally, the elucidation of the mastery of awareness. Don Juan understood the mastery of awareness as being the modern-day version of an extremely old tradition, which he called the tradition of the ancient Toltec seers.”

Don Juan, Castaneda’s teacher, and a true nagal of this Toltec tradition goes on to clarify: “Ages before the Spaniards came to Mexico,” he said, “there were extraordinary Toltec seers, men capable of inconceivable deeds. They were the last link in a chain of knowledge that extended over thousands of years.”

Castaneda then continues; “Don Juan explained then that his use of the term “Toltec” did not correspond to what I understood it to mean. To me it meant a culture, the Toltec Empire. To him, the term “Toltec” meant “man of knowledge.”

“He said that in the time he was referring to, centuries or perhaps even millennia before the Spanish Conquest, all such men of knowledge lived within a vast geographical area, north and south of the valley of Mexico…” Age of America Paula Giese regional influence 1

Western Hemisphere and Eastern Hemisphere complex Geographic mysteries evolved two different tangents. One tangent, learned to tame and co-exist with the geographic elemental beings. In the Eastern Hemisphere geographic and local elemental beings and spirits of Flora, Fauna, Foliage, Springs, Mountains, oceans intermingled with human beings. Herbs, cures, medicinal insights, etheric and astral entities were explored, welcomed, integrated and understood. And these vast Eastern Hemisphere, folk, regional and geographic encounters and awakenings were part of the mysteries of penetrating into matter and recovering the science of the spirit.

“In those delicious times, when deities and demigods appeared familiarly on earth, mingling with its inhabitants as friend with friend,–when nymphs, satyrs, and the whole train of classic faith or fable hardly took pains to hide themselves in the primeval woods,–at that auspicious period the lineage of Monte Beni had its rise. Its progenitor was a being not altogether human, yet partaking so largely of the gentlest human qualities, as to be neither awful nor shocking to the imagination. A sylvan creature, native among the woods, had loved a mortal maiden, and–perhaps by kindness, and the subtile courtesies which love might teach to his simplicity, or possibly by a ruder wooing–had won her to his haunts. In due time he gained her womanly affection; and, making their bridal bower, for aught we know, in the hollow of a great tree, the pair spent a happy wedded life in that ancient neighborhood where now stood Donatello’s tower.”

In the core tale of “The Marble Faun” by Nathaniel Hawthorne (CLICK LINK study chapters 26 and 27) we encounter a relationship between the Nymph of a pure spring and an etheric elemental Faun, that hints at precisely how the landscape, the springs, waters, flora and fauna devolved once humanity staggered into the deadly desert of our dried out intellect. To study chapters 26-27 of “The Marble Faun” prepares us to investigate how our United States massive Fire-Folk Archai/Spirit of form, evolved from it’s captivity as a Salamander Spirit. One has to comprehend the esoteric forces of Etheric Geography from both the standpoints of the Eastern Hemisphere and those of the Western Hemisphere.

The ancient Etheric Geography of the Earth, includes “Pan’s Labyrinth” (study link here)

Eastern Hemisphere and Middle Europe or Middle Earth of the Celtic worlds of the vast elemental kingdoms, etheric and astral beings that populated the regions and were documented before Roman Rationalism reduced spiritual clairvoyance to the grotesque Pharaoh’s of Caesarhood and the abstract puppets and Idols of materialism were all part of the Etheric Geography of Europe.

“The important book [the Novum Organum] which gave Bacon of Verulam’s doctrine of the idols to the fifth post-Atlantean epoch inaugurated this way of looking at the world; it is the classic source. And such a book shows us how the very thing that, from a certain point of view, must be resisted, nevertheless can make its appearance in the world in accordance with the rightful cosmic plan. The fifth post-Atlantean epoch had to develop materialism. Therefore the programme for materialism had to be introduced from out of the spiritual world. And the first stage of the programme of materialism is contained in the doctrine of the idols, which did away with the old Aristotelian doctrine that words refer to categories which have real significance.”

Science got “PLAYED”, higher education got “PUNKED” we were set-up. Ahriman and our Western university education were designed to serve the hunger and craving humanity had for the materialism of the Fifth Age of Pisces. That is indeed world karma, but it is only within the I AM of the CONSCIOUSNESS SOUL that we can check our fall into the abyss.  Ahriman used Francis Bacon (see link) and nailed us to inductive reasoning, while Bacon’s intuitive reasoning was mysteriously dumped. We lost the etheric and rejoiced in the Physical World, Yeah team!  Bacon’s inductive reasoning became the new song that supports the slant-wise, Ahrimanic Soul of Science. Ahriman rejoiced in the Idols of materialism formed from Bacon’s New Atlantis of the West.

All around him, in the desert,
saguaro dream like green giants

In the Western Hemisphere, for the last 8,000 years the Saguaro, tall, reversed etheric suits, have been standing like the last vestiges of an Etheric Sun Army.  Mars thorns of the I AM, reversed, pointing outward, all that makes the I AM have thorns, why we study the Rose and why the Rose has thorns and why we internally see the Burning Bush of the I AM that Moses saw.  Painful, protecting spikes and spindling spines of porcupines, character traits of the introverted, defended fortress where our I AM dwells, is characteristic. Lying in the lonely desert wastes, the Saguaro, the tall ghostly empty suits of armor were the dwelling places of the ancient Initiates of the Sun. These tall Etheric Elemental mannequins, majestic etheric sentinels left behind, are remnants that were torn from the Etheric Sun, from a massive battle fought in the far West, between White and Black magicians over the future fate of the Western Hemisphere. The ancient School of the Assassins of the Sun once flourished and infected the elemental topography of the Toltec Mysteries of the Western Hemisphere.

1. The part of the globe west of the Atlantic, including North and South America, their islands, and the surrounding waters and in potent particularity, the Spinal Cosmogony of the Mountains and Ridges, the Rockies and the Andes that run from the top of the North to the tail and tip of the South. These are the loaded Magnetic Earth Currents that fuel the Etheric Geographic Doubles of those who incarnate in the Western Hemisphere.
2. Or, to protect those who prefer unconscious half-truths, the half of the earth traversed in passing westward from the prime meridian to 180° longitude.

Rudolf Steiner and the battle for the Western Hemisphere

“As a result, the power of these mysteries was thereby broken so far as the fourth post-Atlantean epoch was concerned. It was subsequently revived, however, and history tells of the fate suffered by numerous Europeans who went to America after the discovery of that continent. Many Europeans met their death at the hands of Mexican priest-initiates who bound them to scaffold-like structures and cut out their stomachs with expert skill. This is a matter of historical knowledge, and it was an aftermath of what I have been describing to you.

“By these means the ahrimanic impulse was inculcated into the etheric nature of the Western world. As I have said, this impulse in the fourth epoch was broken as a result of the crucifixion of the great initiated black magician by the deed of Vitzliputzli. Nevertheless, so much force remained that a further attack could have been made upon the fifth epoch, having as its aim so to mechanize the earth that the resulting culture would not only have culminated in a mass of purely mechanical contrivances but would have made human beings themselves into such pure homunculi that their egos would have departed.”

What our normal studies in Geography fail to reveal about the historical horrors that polluted, infected and deliberately saturated vast pockets of the American Southwest Region, makes us gasp. A tremendous battle ensued between White and Black magicians over the Gateway to the Sorathian, Asuric and Ahrimanic forces that literally injected the overwhelming power of the HUMAN DOUBLE into the magnetic sub-continent of human etheric incarnations arriving in the far West. The lower magnetic field of the double was so powerfully enhanced, that it distorted and prepared the semi-devastated elemental worlds, the flora and fauna of the West, prepared the Topography for the malignant cruelty and frenzy of all our incoming human doubles. Nagual shadows, our vivid doppelgangers attach themselves to every incarnating human birth in the West.

All births in the Western Hemisphere are subject to the intense attachment of a magnetic double. Rather than study this phenomena carefully, the Pharmaceutical Industries in conjunction with the Military Industrial Dementia began mass producing  Selective Serotonin Reuptake Inhibitors. These are known as SSRI’s. If young people found themselves, and most do, struggling with an intangible obstructing force that was operating below, in the sub-spheres of human consciousness, well johnny on the spot, if you want to kill without conscience and suffer for future incarnations by having PTSD future nightmarish flashes, the military and the pharmaceutical companies have just the thing for you. (click link)

This psychotic throwing off the higher I AM forces, throwing in the gutter any Consciousness Soul Super Cognition, allowed Ahriman to develop a whole host of pharmaceutical enhancements that made torture even more gruesome. The pharmaceuticals that Ahriman developed gave the massive army of our human double’s, struggling for their parasitical psychotic lives, an edge.  Western Science have given Ahrimanic – Luciferic – and Asuric entities an opportunity to thrive below the surface of our consciousness. Oh, if that wasn’t enough, false-flag terrorist attacks were blamed on the mentally deranged “loan gunman” hyped straw man, Oswald, delusional, fabricated by black ops and swallowed whole by the pimped media of the WEST.

The fascism of the Military Industrial Dementia and the Pharmaceutical Industries joined forces to produce young, insane patsies that were schooled and trained in “CLOCK WORK ORANGE” clinics. Doctors who took oaths to help humanity were enlisted to serve actually possessed, military approved, torturing maniacs. These are MONSTERS. U.S. Ahrimanic fascism, could always find a scapegoat, a patsy and a punk for what ARE, merely ahrimanic tools who have been dispossessed of their humanity.

This tenderizing and preparing humanity for an Ahrimanic Incarnation requires that we become comfortable with MONSTERS. Shaping political, military and law enforcement staged terrorist shows, to provoke and pepper the ground for martial law and shock the naive into forfeiting and forking over weapons of self-defense, is an old ploy. Ahrimanic Beings are here to  intimidate and cower the public, they are sent out to the world with malicious intent. Because of the current state of this Western Super-Power we are enabling and partaking in a MONSTER CELEBRATION and communion with our fallen Ahrimanic Genius. We have been entrusted rather, to Temper and Prove that we are truer and stronger in spirit than our formidable shadows. We have been entrusted with our Freedom to stand up for the divine in our fellow human sisters and brothers.

David Adams

“…summarize some spiritual scientific background information from Rudolf Steiner that is related in Carl Stegmann’s helpful book, “The Other America.” Stegmann depicts a tragic inner battle being fought within the unconscious soul depths of America: between the possibility of humanity being chained to the earth and its true longing for the spirit, ultimately between the Michael-Christ forces of spiritualized heart thinking and the Ahrimanic forces that would direct human beings one-sidedly toward the earth through materialistic thinking and willing. Age of America Stegmann Other America

“Stegmann describes a number of factors that, more than in other regions of the world, work to connect American humanity more strongly with the forces of the earth below. In general, the metabolic-will nature of the human being, the psychosomatic aspect within which Americans tend by nature to live most strongly, is more closely connected with the physical organism and, thereby, with its earthly surroundings. The impulse of the pre-Christian Ahrimanic mystery center among the ancient Aztecs, as described by Steiner, has united with the elemental forces of the western world and even today rises up out of the subsensible inner depths of the earth in America. Another factor concerns the especially strong American presence of the human Double, an Ahrimanic astral being with no ego that lives below consciousness awareness within every incarnated human being from just before birth until just before death. Although the Double had the originally beneficial task to help us as spiritual beings to harden and adapt to the earthly world, today the Double is completely penetrated by Ahriman and works to make dense the human body and to bind human beings to the lower powers of the earth.

“The Double subconsciously opens human beings to those elemental earth forces to which it is intimately related, attempting to make human beings into materialistically-oriented beings not led by their own egos but guided from outside by Ahrimanic powers. In the depths of human souls, the Double acquires ever greater power over the unconscious life of human will, binding souls with powers that derive entirely from the earth itself— rigidifying forces of mechanization and subnature (especially gravity, electricity, and magnetism). Indeed, Steiner stated that in America those sub-earthly magnetic forces that connect the human being more closely with the Double
rise up most strongly. These forces are connected with the fact that on the American continents, most of the mountain ranges run in a north-south direction.” David Adams (google) Riddle of America

Age of America Spanish Aztec Steiner Mexican Mysteries

Few people have captured this mighty mystery in such a distinct occult picture, or hinted at it as Quentin Tarantino or the artist Rick Romanowski have. Together along with Stegmann, Steiner, Adams,  Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon and hundreds of Spiritual Science students of the west, brought the intuition of the subsensible forces hidden beneath the etheric geography of the deep South West Region of the American Western Hemisphere. If we in the West refuse to bring curriculum studies of our Geographic Double, we literally cripple the courage and the cognitive potential of university students to comprehend the political and nightmarish forces that fuel the Super Power Monster we call the United States of America. And the ramifications into the unfolding future epochs of humanity will be catastrophic.

Rudolf Steiner and Anti-Grail Mystery Centers

“…the domain which was the most vicious and hostile to the Grail was Castle Merveil, the gathering-place of all the forces which attack man in this part of his body and soul and have undergone a karmic fate such as has been indicated.”

In the middle ages there were regions, places, where etheric and astral entities and forces, choked, inhabited, invested a locality and a region with a kind of poison. This poison is that which seeks to infect the dead parts of the human soul and possess and inhabit them. This is why Rudolf Steiner discussed Castle Merveil. These polluted regions of temptation, with the exact potent intent that Castle Merveil had, that seduced, infected the dead parts of the human psyche and inhabited them, were anti-grail mystery centers. In the Far West, in the United States, pockets of seduction, fallen mysteries of Lucifer, Ahriman and the Asuras can be found thriving in certain geographic locations.

Age of America Castle Merveil Disney World

Walt Disney went to Europe and took away hundreds of  Grimm’s Fairy Tales and brought them back to the United States in a changed, but interesting form. How the United States digested the wisdom of Grimm’s Fairy Tales and changed the Michael Impulse to Mickey Mouse or Mighty Mouse was part of Disney’s showmanship, sharp business acumen, American ingenuity and Luciferic genius. Production Line, mass saturation, distribution and marketing of Childhood, marketing of fluid, celluloid hyper-hysteric, kinetic astral imagery inundated the floors and foundations of the delicate buds of imagination. It came at you, every Saturday morning with no effort. Disney and Edison had helped unleash part of the New Atlantean Flood. It came in an evolving, torrential downpour which we now SURF. We have become skilled surfers who have learned to swim in the fluid media that has flooded and inundated our senses.

What was wedged and lodged into critical layers of  the Imagination that arise as delicate buds and etheric forces of childhood suffered a kind of atrophy. Nothing resembles so clearly the American Folk-Spirit as our collective sense of humor, combined with a stinging materialistic realism.

The first honorary mention for Socratic, profound, and deep swells of stinging American irony and U.S. humor is held with distinction by George Carlin. NEWS and the realism of the Intellect, the sur-realism and our love of the inept lie of materialistic deceptions, are nobly corrected “Daily” and confronted by Jon Stewart. Jon Stewart and Stephen Colbert try to antidote our imprisoned intellects against the full thrust of Ahrimanic political assaults.

But as far as Inner Cartoon elasticity, Robin Williams channeled hyper-etheric mobility and etheric elasticity through his being, to the point of Rehab. He refused to have portions of his soul be murdered or put to death. They were in there and he could dig them out and show them. The result of cartoon infusions and injections allows us to pedagogically witness astral meteor showers impact and take immediate form in cartoon etheric comedic expressionism via Robin Williams performance ART. Robin Williams, when he was jacked and juiced could be compared to the Sprung Sonnet form of Gerard Manley Hopkins. (CLICK LINK). Williams and Hopkins leaped over restrictive forms of rigid behaviorism. That is a healthy and beneficial Lucferic trait.

Injected into our United States and global world MEDIA the active, living, loving and joyful etheric imaginations of western childhoods, were overwhelmingly turned into the sour harvesting fields of cynical skepticism. Because a form of Jujutsu in the soul must be practiced against the dead etheric cartoon corpses that arise and turn into Ahrimanic zombies from the un-deadened U.S. graveyard of our unconsciousness. The subconscious terrain of the Monsters of the American Psyche can rise up into a ferocious force and Rod Serling and Twilight Zone the Movie were correct in their diagnosis. (SEE LINK)  But we have failed in our education to grasp with spiritual clarity the sub-human animation of the corpses of dis-incarnate cartoons and their effects on the unused portions of our psyche.

The moral hypocrisy of Luciferic sensual fires that sent the innocent Michael warrior, Joan of Arc, through her higher Salamander Initiation, trial by fire reveals the hypocrisy of Luciferic Priests, who from the intense dogmas of the church promoted insanity as Christian doctrine. (FIRE, Luciferic Temptations disguised as Sensual Fire DISNEY CLIP, (see link). The portrayal of the operatic hypocrisy of the Luciferic insanity of the Church has been captured brilliantly but with no clarity as to a distinct Luciferic attack on the soul. And this hypocrisy of Luciferic Possession exists as strongly today in our United States and American fundamentalist churches as it did back in the time of the trial and the burning of  Joan of Arc. The problem for us is our immaturity. We fail over and over again to clearly identify Luciferic repulsion and entanglement in power and sensuality as part of Lucifer’s temptations as opposed to Ahrimanic or Asuric possessions of our enhanced human doppelganger.

But wait! Surely the fact that America was introduced, ‘en masse’ to outstanding Fairy Tales of Central Europe and the East must count in Uncle Walt’s favor? It is an astonishing revelation of the difference between how the U.S. digested Etheric vision and nourishment for the foundations of childhood and how Europe digested it. In America we highly appreciate the Luciferic Schools of Initiation, enjoy them, but also validate and investigate the Etheric Christ mysteries. Age of America Disney and MickeyThank you Walt Disney.The Consciousness Soul is tasked with appreciating the many Initiation Schools. We are looking presently at part of the Luciferic Mysteries of America.

To the American Soul-Substance and our American pragmatism, Etheric vision, the true Science of the Novalis School and the science of imagination, were just a game, a trivial toy, a distraction. It was no more living than the dead cartoons lying as Imagination’s Corpses in the basements of our childhood. The Media flood that was unleashed in the Western Hemisphere, in the Age of Pisces was an addictive layering in, sealing over, cementing over, entombing of all our literal elastic, mobile Childhood etheric dexterity. This dexterity, allowed to ripen with the Soul-Breathing that is built into Waldorf Education, allows our human souls to grow, what we need as adults, a healthy, mature and organically grounded, living tool for Moral Imagination. This Moral Imagination is the very essence of the Novalis and Goethe School Moral Fantasia, Moralischen Phantasie or Magical Idealism.

Die Esoterik der moralischen Phantasie

Age of America Moral Imagination philosophy of freedomGünter Röschert

Der Begriff der moralischen Phantasie ist der Fachwelt, soweit sie ihn überhaupt wahrgenommen hat, rätselhaft geblieben, und auch mit der praktischen Verwirklichung steht es nicht zum besten. Was ist das Wesen der moralischen Phantasie? Hat sie, als Fähigkeit betrachtet, eine esoterische Seite, und wenn ja, worin besteht diese? Die Ausführungen in diesem Buch enthalten erhellende Gesichtspunkte für die Wertung der moralischen Phantasie in einer Sammlung von Aufsätzen:
Die Entwicklung der moralischen Phantasie in Rudolf Steiners Philosophie der Freiheit
Die Vertiefung der moralischen Phantasie im Vortragswerk Rudolf Steiners
Die Perspektiven der moralischen Phantasie für die Zukunft
Der Papst und die Aufklärung
Die Esoterik der moralischen Phantasie
Der ethische Individualismus als Ideal
Lebensweg und Geistesschulung – Von der initiatorischen Lebensführung

Disney bequeathed, through the very nature of the Western Hemisphere and through our unique American-Doppelganger -Corporate Franchise Disney- handed over to America and the World, a superficial brand-name and counterfeit replication of what was once a potent and sacramental Rosicrucian Mystery. The difference that we are drawing pertains only to our collective Luciferic Double. We are drawing a tight cognitive circle around the etheric forces that surround the clarity of the Risen Etheric Christ and contrasting it to our happy-go-lucky counterfeit Luciferic impressions.

That which is impressed, like wax, into our Etheric bodies can take Luciferic, Ahrimanic, Asuric or Risen Etheric Christ concreteness. In other words the Novalis School understands the critical difference and enjoys the difference between the real living forces that operate in our souls versus cartoon copies. This is part and parcel to the schooling of the Consciousness Soul that we comprehend clearly Luciferic Initiation Schools.

Childhood and The Fairy Tale Mood

“Rudolf Steiner has explained how the true European fairy tales spread by the minstrels from about the eighth to the thirteenth centuries originated, in fact, with the Rosicrucians (or, better said, their immediate ancestors) “It is a superficial view to believe that such tales can be invented by human fancy,” he says. “The old tales which give expression to the spiritual secrets of the world came into being because those who composed them gave ear to others who were able to impart the spiritual secrets.” David Adams (google) Riddle of America.

Disney did indeed plunder the European schools of Grimm, Novalis, Goethe, that were rich with Moral Imagination and Magical Idealism. (CLICK LINK) What makes the American Luciferic Double so slippery, is its over all immaturity, our over all immaturity in every domain, and our critical failure to consciously carry the limberness of Childhood Imagination into the maturity of concrete Moral Imaginations.

The invasion by Disney into the Luciferic Castle Marveil, helped to distort the region where the treasure of the Living Etheric substance of Childhood had remained as fountain and reservoir for human innocence. Yes, and thanks to Uncle Walt, we got to experience some of these astonishing Rosicrucian parables and germinal seeds of future Etheric vision. In these tales the seeds of our collective etheric treasures, The Snow White of the Soul and Spirit, the SEVEN planetary dwarfs,  were meant to be planted into the reality of our higher human education. Then, like Jack and the Bean Stalk, we would be nourished in our etheric bodies and rooted to the Earth but would be able to rise up, with Moral Imagination, to the lofty Beings of the spiritual world where the giants truly dwell.

Disney met the reverberating spirit of Goetheanism in Europe and robbedAge of America Sorcerers Apprentice Goethe with Disney’s version of “The Sorcerer’s Apprentice”. The epic tale of how Mass Production of either printing money by the trillions from the Federal Reserve or over producing and flooding markets with products, advertising and corporations that cannot survive without the bargains and close out sales of mass generic products from Pharmaceutical Corporations, Dow, Dupont, GE, Monsanto to pathetic and useless trash that litters world garbage dumps. Like “The Sorcerer’s Apprentice” corporations must churn out profits, profits and more profits. Proliferation, proliferation and more proliferation.

Disney brought to children everywhere the wiggly, wobbliness of the elasticity of Etheric Cartoon mobility. This etheric elasticity, resurrection, recovery from any manner of violence and injury, etheric invincibleness was inculcated by repetition and repeating over and over again, the instant recovery and immortal elasticity of cartoon beings. (Click Link)

Yet this Etheric Elasticity was not a toy and plaything but one of the chief treasures of Childhood. This ripened and mature Etheric Elasticity is one of the core secrets of the Moral Immensity of the Golgotha Event ( Study Link-Thetis-Peleus and the Etheric Christ.) The science of the Resurrection, the double and Etheric Geography itself are part of the very secrets in the core of our human etheric body.

Walt Disney was very extravagant and the United States very receptive to Castle Merveil. Any trip to Orlando or Disney World is a commercial Black Hole for devouring, destroying and demeaning the human etheric life of childhood and turning it into a Luciferic, acid bath of the etheric life of the soul. (For Instance CLICK LINK)

The embodiment of the esoteric mystery of Cartoon Life was aptly presented in “Who Framed Roger Rabbit” there we meet the Black Magician behind the legacy of Disney. (CLICK LINK) We might also give an honorable mention to “MonkeyBone” a near-death-experience for out-of-the-body fans of Kama Loca.

The Luciferic Double

“Most of our imagination of the spiritual dimension is Luciferic fluff and figments, not least today. He always tried to hide his hideousness from us and made the best out of his appearance and what he had left from Eden of glare and fancy. And so, in time, our own vague memory of the spiritual world became unrealistic and embellished too, and the egoistic tendency we learned from Lucifer flattered us completely and caught us in illusion and false reflections of Lucifer’s reflection, even if we had got the gift with us from Eden to tell right from wrong. Could not help it, could we – always this gloss over, because the show must go on.”

In our Etheric Geography studies we find that certain regions of the United States lead to escape passageways for the splintered aspects of how each human shadow, double, doppelganger, Nagual, is absorbed into, grafted onto and attaches itself to our Etheric and Astral bodies.In other words there are distinct regions of the United States where the intense fallen forces of our Luciferic Double, our Ahrimanic double and our Asuric Doubles, can be finally trained to become the grotesque magicians and servants to full fledged Sorathian Evil.

The United States, being so new, actually has places, specific locations where initiation and contagion of further enhancements of how the various layers of our Double can be infected and focused for powerful food substance, for beings of the Asuras, Ahrimanic beings and Luciferic beings, can feed off the desires, thoughts and will impulses produced by the instinctive, unreflective and compassless chaos that is the raw substance of the American Folk.

“There is only one place on earth that can beat the Disney World to kitsch and tack – Las Vegas. That does not make this unashamedly plastic creation any less fascinating. The sheer audacity of building a make-believe world in the middle of a parched desert is admirable.Age of America Las Vegas Luciferic studies 1a A 10-mile-long street of casinos create enough cashflow to provide two-odd million people with a livelihood in the place that under normal circumstances could sustain just a bunch of lizards and an odd armadillo. Estimated 22 million flock here every year in hope of quick riches or a celebrity glimpse: singers and performers too tired to go on tour end up giving shows in Las Vegas. For many it is the only way they can afford to see the (fake) Eiffel Tower, (fake) Venice or the (fake) pyramids.”

Addiction and pockets where geographic locations attract human flies to a vast theme park that truly is, precisely, as an occult moral imagination, a Venus Flytrap (CLICK LINK) for the soul and spirit, is how we may rightly define the Luciferic Mystery Center of Las Vegas. The astral stench, is something we don’t smell externally when we come to the glitter, glamour and the Luciferic Occult, astral-placebo, but our already infected astral body already knows and is attracted by the astral stench. Our job in the Consciousness Soul is to define, appreciate and marvel at certain unique Mystery Center Locations.

Age of America NevadaIt is indeed a rarity and an opportunity, for any conscious human being on the path to spiritual training, who wishes to study a specific Luciferic Mystery Center, located in a specific geographic region of the United States, to visit Las Vegas. We still retain the privilege of an unobstructed study of the addictive forces of Lucifer as the Venus Fly Trap for astral insinuation and infestation at the Mystery Center of Las Vegas.

We may at any time, book a passage to a Mystery Center.  We have been too ignorant to grasp that Mystery Centers of various kinds are right under our noses and in plain sight. That is if we had the guts, the clarity and the observational skills to saturate our schooling and cognition with a True Luciferic, up and running, operative Mystery Center. Providing that we knew what we were looking at, we could apprehend vividly astral parasites and the vivid unconscious immersion of herds of unconscious human beings, shuffling around and becoming the food of Luciferic astral beings feeding and feasting on the unconscious portions and dead stinking regions of our decaying astral bodies. We could study intensely how humanity has made our foaming, frothing desires into a decadent Science catering to the lunch habits of Luciferic Fallen Beings.

Las Vegas is a true Mystery Center for the study of fallen Luciferic and infected beings. Human beings are the meal, we are the cuisine on the menu and we are what’s for dinner for whole hosts of fallen astral beings who have collected themselves around the altars that humanity built for the worship of corrupt astral infections, diseases and hungers.  All forms of future addictive behavior can get their start here. It is not the only place but it is a massive occult portal where humans, having arisen to their full-blown and bloated unconscious, ripeness and willingness to be consumed arrive by the bus loads.

These ripened, degenerate, decaying astral corruptions smell like delicious food to astral entities that of course, the deadened portions of the human spirit, the stinking, decaying forces of astral, etheric, and I AM forces that are unused, un-illuminated, unaware, uneducated and unexplored, come flowing in from all points of the globe. The Venus Fly Trap stench of decay and the human beings own stench of decay draw vast human masses of the unconscious conglomerations of decaying food stuffs to the sacrificial feeding frenzy of pernicious, rabidly infectious demons. Here they feast and here we may take our Initiation insights to a demonic altar and study intensely how Luciferic Entities insinuate themselves into humanity.

History, humanities immense pathway through time, have regurgitated upwards, The Pyramids of Egypt, The Renaissance Art and magnificent achievements of humanity, through the in-pouring glory of the Renaissance, new and wondrous achievements, were all based on real spiritual human beings and their victories and tragedies in the immense flow of time.

The Eiffel Tower is the emblem of Paris. Paris who abducted Helen and for whom the Trojan War was fought, is the absolute foundation of Western Civilization (Click Link). The tale of Hector, Achilles, Paris, Aeneas and the founding of Rome, hinge and pivot on Paris and Helen. Because of Helen and Paris, humanity chose Aphrodite over Hera and Athena that set the stage for the evolution of the human soul. Love triumphed over Athena (thinking) or Hera (power). Venus, Aphrodite, Love, Freya celebrated by humanity as GOOD FRIDAY, the day of Venus, is where LOVE TRIUMPHED over death. And Vegas is a Venus fly-trap, Luciferic Initiation location, formed of empty historical monuments, up-chucked from the bowels of a decimated and vacuous humanity.

PARIS LAS VEGAS READY TO OPENThe Eiffel Tower, where Nazi Germany, in another sweep of time, invaded, occupied and took over and marched through Paris and the image of the Eiffel Tower, was another, vivid, sweeping catastrophe, for both the living and all those that died on “Saving Private Ryan” battle fields. The Risen Etheric Christ, within these immense catastrophes of humanity, rose and became visible in his Etheric Form in 1933.

The hidden horrors that were faced, the catastrophic disruptions of destinies on Earth were absorbed, behind the Threshold, by the Risen Etheric Christ. From such moments in history the most amazing tale of love, “Casablanca” starring Humphrey Bogart and Ingrid Bergman, recalled massive historical tragedies, courage and heroism and monstrous acts of War, Murder, Torture and destruction, saw human beings turn into beasts and human beings heroically standing against the onslaught of horror, of raw horror!

“Visitors can always move to Egypt without any trouble. A 30-storey onyx-colored pyramid marks the entrance to Hotel Luxor, named after the ancient city of Luxor in Egypt, known for its temples.Age of America Egypt as a cartoon carapace Inside the pyramid, the Luxor casino resort unfolds the Egyptian grandeur in all its glory. A museum houses King Tut’s tomb and treasure. It is a historically accurate reproduction of the original burial chamber and has been painstakingly recreated by leading Egyptologists, specializing in pyramids and tombs.”

It is the most incredible part of the entrapment of a pure Pagan Luciferic modern Mystery center like Las Vegas that literally vomits upward onto the desert sands, an engorged, emptied and devoured, decimated history of humanity and leaves a shell, a carapace, an empty cartoon effigy of the immense sacrifices undertaken by humanity. Here the idols of history and the valueless-ness of human karma are celebrated at the casinos, where the unconscious roulette wheel reduces human life and human destiny to a crap shoot.

Lucifer and Las Vegas are not even the worst of the demon altars that have sprung from the geography of the United States. But here we must become still, reverent and whisper. Here we come, and we are in the midst of discovering the path of Jesus and the solemnity of despair. Age of America Fifth Gospel Adriana KouliasWe are near, hovering, delicately close to the comprehension of THE FIFTH GOSPEL.

We are in sublime, dangerous, and as we have indicated, PERILOUS PLACES. If we stay on the path of Initiation we repeat, recollect, reawaken the journey Jesus took. The privilege of passing along a path of intimate observation, under the protection of the FIFTH GOSPEL, designed for humanity, to uphold us through the darkest times, we bow reverently, as we are in the proximity, of the holiest of holy sorrows.

It is a bitter truth that we gain insight into Luciferic, Ahrimanic and Asuric mystery centers because we choose to discover the depth of the Risen Etheric Christ Schooling. The Risen Etheric Christ Schooling has mystery centers and the other beings fully engaged in Earth Evolution, along with humanity also have pockets, portals and places where they thrive and dwell. Luke Gospel 9:58  “Foxes have dens, and birds of the sky have nests, but the Son of Man has no place to lay His head.” Our human hearts are the location of the Mystery Center for the Risen Etheric Christ schooling.

Which brings us to one of the holiest, sacred and most profound Mysteries of The Tenth Hierarchy. Heart wrenching reverence as an antidote and contrast to Asuric, Ahrimanic and Luciferic sanctuaries confront us in a whisper that reaches down into the core of our hearts. In the Consciousness Soul, it is all about conscious spiritual comprehension. We are now intimately sharing an Initiation Event in the heart of Jesus.

Bath-Kol

 “I have to testify that when the priest was enacting the rites of the cult at many a heathen altar and Jesus of Nazareth witnessed the whole act of worship, he saw that numbers of demonic beings were attracted to the spot. He discovered that many idols worshiped by the people were, in reality, images not of the good spiritual Beings of the higher Hierarchies but of demonic powers. He also perceived that many a time these demonic powers passed over into the believers participating in these rites. For reasons easy to understand, these things have not found their way into the other Gospels. And indeed it is only now, within our spiritual Movement, that such things can be disclosed, because it is only in our time that the human soul is ripe enough to understand the deep and overwhelming experiences which came to Jesus of Nazareth while he was still a young man.

“These journeyings continued on through his twentieth, twenty-second, twenty-fourth years. It was always with feelings of bitter sorrow that he witnessed the power wielded by the demons — by the demons issuing as it were from Lucifer and Ahriman — that he witnessed how the heathen peoples had in many respects actually come to the point of taking the demons for gods, even of having in their idols the images of wild, demonic powers which, attracted by these images and rites, entered into the people while they prayed, and obsessed them. Many bitter experiences fell to the lot of Jesus of Nazareth. And these experiences led up to a certain culmination.”

The United States, arising as it has, after the events of Golgotha, under the Age of Pisces, in the war zone of the Western Hemisphere, is now challenged to re-live and re-experience everything, in gigantic geographic dimensions, of the hidden mysteries of the journey humanity must make to consciously reawaken, and stir into life an entirely new Christology. The United States is destined to fathom and plummet down into the depths of the Earth and repeat the trials of initiation and the paths that the Christ took to become the Super-Power of Love in the Earth.

This awesome PERILOUS journey forces us to confront the character, personality and genesis of the Being, the Super-Power we worship currently, that truly, step by step, must drag the burden of unconscious America, kicking and screaming, towards the goal of Initiation Science. Burdened with our deformities and faults, our courage and our compassion, a new fledgling Archai, unfinished Spirit of Form, must bring our reluctant American Psyche to the awful price and perilous cost of the mysteries of human immortality.

Our American Folk-Spirit has until the end of the 7th Age, The Age of America, to instruct humanity in the shattering moral lessons of how Good triumphs over Evil. Therefore the Archai/Spirit of Form that has been given the task of guiding America, and the regional Archangels overshadowing the different etheric regions of America, must awaken titanic catastrophic underworld dimensions in order to transform humanity and the Earth into co-workers in the School of Love. Good luck to you if you think this journey we are going on is some sort of flag-waving cake-walk to Golgotha under the protection of baby-Jesus. America is destined to become all too familiar with Asuric, Ahrimanic, Luciferic Beings and their gruesome temptations while comprehending unfathomable, disturbing and shattering Esoteric Mysteries of the Risen Etheric Christ.

Humanity is called upon to consciously identify the tempters of the I AM, the tempters of the Etheric body and the Tempters of the Astral body and know what LOVE knows. Therefore the Western Hemisphere is riddled with regions of horribly polluted and infected occult forces and beings. Therefore from now, through the Sixth Cultural Epoch and the culminating 7th Age of America, humanity is set to plunge into the most hidden mysteries of the School of the Etheric Christ.

It is a perilous journey that presents our I Am with shattering, unprecedented challenges. We will be defined by these challenges. We will either fall into the snares of possession and formidable evil in our etheric, our astral and our I AM, or we will struggle valiantly towards a Risen Etheric Christ Schooling that masters the Luciferic schools, the Ahrimanic Schools and the Asuric Schools. THESE ARE OUR PRESENT AND COMING ATTRACTIONS.

Manna (Hebrew: מָ‏ן‎) or Manna wa Salwa Arabic: مَنّ‎, Kurdish: gezo, Persian: ترنجبين

Archaically spelled manna, is the name of a food that God provided for the Israelites during their travels in the desert

Matthew 4:4    And the tempter came and said to Him, “If You are the Son of God, command that these stones become bread.” 4But He answered and said, “It is written, ‘MAN SHALL NOT LIVE ON BREAD ALONE, BUT ON EVERY WORD THAT PROCEEDS OUT OF THE MOUTH OF GOD.'”

Deuteronomy 8:2-3, “And thou shalt remember all the way which the LORD thy God led thee these forty years in the wilderness, to humble thee, and to prove thee, to know what was in thine heart, whether thou wouldest keep his commandments, or no. And he humbled thee, and suffered thee to hunger, and fed thee with manna, which thou knewest not, neither did thy fathers know; that he might make thee know that man doth not live by bread only, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of the LORD doth man live.”

Age of America Iroquois Nation 1st Consciousness Soul model in the WestThe Six Native American Nations called the place Mannahatta. It meant to the Native Americans, a point of land surrounded by rushing, tempestuous, demonic waters.

Leonard Bernstein

New York, New York —
A hell of a town,
The Bronx is up and the Battery’s down.
The People ride in a hole in the ground.
New York, New York —
It’s a hell of a town.

Manhattan women are dressed in silks and satins,
Or so the fella’s say,
There’s just one thing that’s important in Manhattan,
When you’ve got just one day.
Gotta pick up a date — maybe seven or eight
On your way.
In just one day.

Frank Sinatra

New York…New York
I want to wake up, in a city that never sleeps
And find I’m A number one, top of the list
King of the hill, A number one….

These little town blues, are melting away
I’ll make a brand new start of it
In old New York
If I can make it there, I’ll make it anywhere
It’s up to you, New York..New York New York!!!

WALT WHITMAN – MANNAHATTA (click link)

“I am sure, now, of these men—authorities: they came much in contact with chiefs of the Six Nations—there were five of them first, then another asked permission to come in—hence the name, Six Nations. Mannahatta meant to these, a point of land surrounded by rushing, tempestuous, demonic waters: it is so I have used it—and shall continue.”

Lenapehoking is a term for the lands historically inhabited by the Native American people known as the Lenape  in what is now the Northeastern United States. Today, some Native Americans not limited to the Lenape or Delaware tribes live in the Northeast Corridor or Eastern Seaboard. Many of them arrived in the 1920s to 1960s from the Iroquois Confederacy. They were employed as skyscraper construction workers. They had been nicknamed the “Mohawks”. They played an important role in building the skyline of Philadelphia and New York City.

In the dialect of Lenape: manahachtanienk(“place of general inebriation”), manahatouh (“place where timber is procured for bows and arrows”)  Manhattan is derived from Manna-hata, a Dutch version of a Lenape place name. The name Manhattan derives from the word Manna-hata, as written in the 1609 logbook of Robert Juet.

Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon

“…there was a different element among the Native Americans on the East coast, because of the Iroquois confederacy. This confederacy resulted from a strong impulse of spiritualization in the ninth to tenth centuries, and by the fifteenth century it had developed into a six-nation confederacy. This was a transformation of consciousness preparing for the confrontation with the white man, preparing for the coming of the European. The Iroquois confederacy was highly modern. They already had the consciousness soul in an inner way.”

The Assassins of the Sun gathered themselves under the Ahrimanic signature of MANNA. One of the three grueling temptations in the desert was Ahriman’s challenge to Christ to turn stones, metals, minerals into bread or Manna. The definition of Manna was raised by Christ to that which nourishes the human soul and spirit through the Living Word. That living WORD, maybe Art, it may be prayer, it may be a conversation that fully replenishes the heart and spirit. It certainly may be Eurythmy. It may be the silence of the Bio-Dynamic farmer. Spiritual Nourishment trumps Ahriman’s fast food industry.

Mannahatta is the East Coast geographic island center for Ahrimanic Mysteries for the training of the sterility of the intellect needed to order murder, chaos, poverty, robbery, bribery and hostile take overs of spiritual and geographic wealth through the channels of global international finance. We have followed, spot point checks, in the United States, of various geographic locations where open wounds at various locations reveal portals where enhanced Luciferic, Asuric and Ahrimanic forces can swarm and swirl around unaware human beings.

In these specific locations souls become accustomed to a kind of poison, a kind of climate, atmosphere and degradation of the soul that gradually becomes the norm. The U.S. educational system is too immature to consider Mystery Centers where Luciferic, Ahrimanic and Asuric entities can infiltrate and enter easily into unaware human impulses. And that is the whole point. The whole point is never to study and apprehend the very mysteries, in their details, that the Christ faced concretely in the desert. If we study them consciously we can stand up to them in our inner being.

The MANHATTAN PROJECT was a top secret Ahrimanic enterprise that covered Canada, Chicago, New Mexico, Washington D.C. It spread it’s cunning virus over the globe and through every major university. The name it adopted to cloak itself was the very icy challenge that Ahriman flung at Christ during the Temptation in the Desert.

The MANHATTAN PROJECT took place at more than 30 sites across the United States, the United Kingdom and Canada. The MANHATTAN PROJECT was Ahriman’s attempt to make all of humanity criminals and guilty of horrific crimes and spit in the face of Christ for his faint and feeble response to the charge of TURNING STONES INTO BREAD.

The Spirit is not nourished by Bread alone, it is only 1/4 of the equation. As time progresses and humanity develops further the equation shifts more and more to the Spiritual Uplifting forces of conscious nourishment. Humanity gains the capacities to discover for themselves more and more etheric nourishment, devachan streams of light-ethers and develops Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man. This is why this Fifth Age and the Discovery of America has been critical. From now on humanity is on a path to develop these higher forces of the human soul that are truly HIGHER MANNA.  From now to the culmination of the 7th Age we’re gonna be dancing with very big Beings our education failed to warn us about.

The other-side of the equation, gross materialism, allows an opportunity for Ahriman’s deception and aptitude for taking matter and changing it into falsified poisoned light and glorified global citadels of nuclear energy and power, an opportunity. Ahriman creates a dependency and vulnerability in every human soul that keeps the hives of bustling humanity humming his tune. Ahriman is ecstatic, if such an icy-cold Archai and ancient master of the cold, cunning of cosmic intelligence, could feel joy, but he can’t.

Ahriman’s true joy would be in wasting vast human energies on making, testing, more and more efficient instruments for instant incineration, torture and nuclear death. Vast riches poured down the drain of human fear of annihilation is nourishment for Ahrimanic Beings. Ahriman liked the MANHATTAN assault on MANNA. Ahriman loved the living association of TRINITY NEW MEXICO to the sub-sensible attack he has been waging on the Higher Trinity. Ahriman’s gnarly trinity, don’t like each other one bit. They have completely different aims and goals. Yet they require each other, the trinity of Lucifer, and the Asuras, along with Ahriman are bound together with the human soul. Ahriman calls Trinity and The Manhattan Project honest advertisement and a vital competitive-cosmic market share in owning and enslaving humanity.

Well, east coast girls are hip
I really dig the styles they wear.
And the Southern girls
with the way they talk,
they knock me out when I’m down there.

The midwest farmers’ daughters
really make me feel all right.
And the northern girls
with the way they kiss,
they keep their boyfriends warm at night

Yeshayahu Ben-Aharon

“Where materialized spirit has been captured by the Earth-forces, where human consciousness is fixed to the physical materialistic level, this is where the spirits of the depths have done their work. If you look at this place, Manhattan, this place of the depths, you will see the evil spirits that I described here. They are the keepers of jewels, precious stones and metals. They are transforming spirit into metals and so on. This is the accumulation of wealth. They take universal, free, cosmic energy from the stars, from the planets, from the universal ether, and they are continuously condensing it into jewels, money, gold and silver. Metals are condensed star forces and spirits. Ahrimanic beings condense them and accumulate the universal spirit and transform it into Mammon. They are the Mammon beings. This is capital. Mammon is the evil god of the future; he is the inspiration for the whole monetary system. This ahrimanic spirit works within gold. Age of America recommended reading materialMammon is the greatest adversary of Michael in this particular Michaelic age and Mammon’s place is here. It is through Mammon’s work that universal spirituality is transformed and condensed into metal, and is accumulated as capital.

“The uniting of these forces into a World Trade Center is something that is really taking place globally. Many centers around the globe have been built by the inspiration of Mammon. There are world trade centers in Israel and in Asia who are serving the same network, doing the same work. So the gospel is spreading, it’s not only in the U.S.  If you go out into the rest of the world, you’ll see that they practice the same art of transforming spirit into matter and binding human consciousness to metal. But this originates in Manhattan. This is the secret of Manhattan, and this is what the High Tor legend is all about. So if we want to penetrate into this empty space left from the destruction of the Twin Towers with consciousness, we can study this legend and see what became of the FIRE SPIRIT.”

Manhattan is filled with swirling ART – Music, Drama, films, dance, it is a hive and hub of massive influences to sustain 10 million people. So it is unfair to say that Manhattan is the hub of highly developed Ahrimanic global financial machinations only. It is unfair to view these massive spires rising skyward as powerful spikes of power that Ahrimanic forces thrust from below upwards, to the sky. There is so much magnificent Art that act as antidotes to cold Ahrimanic Greed that one would have to admit that there is a fusion and combustion intensity between Lucifer and Ahriman constantly surging through all souls in Manhattan.

Between fashion, theater, film schools, concerts, opera, dance and the bustle and jostle of mixing so many wonderful and different people going uptown, downtown,  cross town, and the different character and Soul of those who live on the East Side compared to those who live on the West Side, one can define the regions on a CROSS or by the dense and specific accents. Tight, compressed and compact regions all mixed and mingled in the most People Centered swirl of exuberant life one could imagine.

The precision of North -South streets and East -West streets, the rich, poor, the young, the hookers, the cabs, buses and underground rumble of subways, makes for a constant stirring  potpourri of magnificent opportunities for germinating, raw destiny events, to occur. Age of America 5 boroughs 1Five Boroughs all clashing together in a feisty fiesta of daily foaming froth in all four seasons makes Manhattan a vortex of human and Angelic, human and Luciferic, human and Ahrimanic, human and Asuric and most importantly human to human intense, in your face, exchanges. And New Yorker’s don’t mince words.

I had an Anthroposophical Arts Center down just below Canal Street, near the World Trade Center. An Anthroposophical doctor and her husband, a saxophone player, bravely opened up shop, in a loft, in lower Manhattan. I joined as Art, Theater and Speech therapy coordinator. I would sometimes commute from Spring Valley and sometimes stay up on the sixth floor loft, at the Arts Center in my sleeping bag.

While struggling to pay the bills I drove a yellow-cab in Manhattan and tooled around the 5 Boroughs by night, for a whole year and by day for a whole year. I would commute back to Spring Valley over the Tappan Zee bridge and through Ramapo and onto Rockland county. This commute went on for several years, through snow, fog, rain and beautiful summers. I would sometimes teach Speech to Teachers at a Waldorf School, give actors Speech and Drama lessons all over Manhattan and direct, rehearse and conduct classes downtown at our Arts center called THE MANHATTAN HEALING ARTS CENTER.

Age of America Manhattan Healing Arts CenterThe Manhattan Healing Arts Center was on the sixth floor at 386 Broadway, below Canal Street. I conducted study groups on Occult Science an Outline in a conference room that Dean Witter provided for us to use at the World Trade Center South Tower. I was sorry to say that I had only about 25 to 30 people involved and some of them worked at the World Trade Center and would come by to see the Anthro Doctor or have classes with me on their lunch hours.

If our little ARTS CENTER was locked or occupied, we could take our study groups and meet at the restaurant at the top of the World Trade Center and wait for an employee/anthro student, to get off work and give us access to a comfortable, corporate, beautiful Dean Witter conference room.  Our study groups were always after hours in the financial district. Dean Witter’s headquarters had been in 2 World Trade Center (South Tower) occupying floors 59 through 74.

At times I would park my cab at a special cab stand at the bottom of the WTC, take out the meter, and take those elevators, which we had to change at certain floors, to grab another elevator to go to the top. The swish of the express elevator and the different sound of the local elevators made a powerful impression on me.

Both the Dean Witter conference room and the top of the WTC restaurant had amazing, stunning views looking North over the city. Manhattan, as a mystery center, presented itself to me in the grit, bustle and struggle for survival, that was constantly interspersed with specific uncanny coincidences, as a potent destiny hub.

My Angel seemed to know my location and my location varied from darkness, danger, wrong place – wrong time, with sometimes an Ahrimanic tangible threat to the more Luciferic spontaneous strange fares that just happened to hop into my cab. Dungeons, meat markets, addicts, kind people, crazy people, business people, artists tossed me hither and thither through dark dens, flashy bars and restaurants to towering corporate businesses.

In other words, in the vast population and circumscribed movement of the karma wheel of daily life, there could be read, remarkable and intimate patterns that literally swirled around me and found me, no matter how many millions of people there were. These strange patterns happened to me and has happened to everyone who has ever lived in Manhattan. Just ask Woody Allen. While terribly alone I also felt incredibly close to the daily workings of my Angel. For without my Angel I have no idea what might have happened. Manhattan taught me how to read the clues arising and disappearing daily in the unpredictable, predictable, incalculable, calculable-ness.

A band of mountains that rise nearly one thousand feet along the northwestern margin of the Newark Basin in New York and New Jersey are called the Ramapo Mountains.age of america Ramapo fault line The Ramapo fault runs 70 miles northeast from Morris County, through Ramsey and Suffern and the Hudson Highlands, to Bear Mountain, N.Y. It follows the Ramapo River through the Ramapo Mountains and is actually a “braid of faults,” or a system of cracks. Along this line — to the point where Routes 17 and 287 now converge — fierce quakes exploded daily and the Earth’s crust split open to welcome the Atlantic Ocean 200 million years ago.

In New York, the 125th Street fault begins just south of the George Washington Bridge on the Hudson and heads through Harlem, then south across Central Park and the upper East Side, across the East River, and under Queens. Visible at the surface, Ramapo Fault that borders the western Newark Basin presents an obvious if not unlikely threat, already having a record of modern seismic activity.

Which brings us to one of the most startling occult connections to the Ahrimanic side of the Mystery Center known as Manna-Hatta. Part of the mystery of how the fragmented, severed island of Manna-Hatta arose brings us to the sub-sensible elemental kingdoms. As an aside, we can re-review how Nathaniel Hawthorne described a nymph and elemental Water Spirit of a pure Spring, in his marvelous tale of the “Marble Faun”.

The subtle mystery of wineries and specific regions where the region, the water, the grape and the wine call forth Earth rich elemental associations and histories of the land and water are intimately woven in Hawthorne’s “Marble Faun”. Napa is a cultivators geographic revelation of how the West received sprigs and shoots and developed a resurrected science of an infinite variety of elemental tastes and textures, brought to the West, transforming ancient traditions, working with new elemental beings, into a western organic-science of elemental-geographic cooperation.

Bio-Dynamic Agriculture in the West and over the whole world has become a secret redemptive ingredient in the new elemental cultivation of New Wines. Bio-Dynamics is a secret unspoken infusion among growers, having to do with certain wines and the re-enlivening of the soils. In fact we are positively in the center of how Water is changed into Wine and how the grape and the blood of the Christ, not only flows etherically through the Earth but the pure Olive Oil, olive orchards, where such profound Christ Events swirled through the elemental kingdoms, from the Garden of Gethsemane which meant Oil Press to –  This is my Body, This is my Blood transubstantiation.

The garden of Gethsemane, near the foot of the Mount of Olives, is named in the New Testament as the place where Jesus went with his disciples to pray the night before he was crucified. The garden, about 1200 square meters in area, was well known to the disciples as it is close to the natural route from the Temple to the summit of the Mount of Olives and the ridge leading to Bethany.The name in Hebrew means “oil press”. Oil is still pressed from the fruit of eight ancient and gnarled olive trees that give the garden a timeless character.

In the forming of Manna-Hatta we have to do with a SALAMANDER Fire Spirit that was from the lofty Archangelic community of Beings. It is called The Ramapo Salamander (click link) but, but, and here we must be startled by what we discover. This Salamander Fire Spirit, was enchained as an Elemental Salamander by Ahrimanic Beings. The Ahrimanic Beings of Volcanoes, of Forges, of the Sixth Layer of the Inner Earth, had got themselves a lofty Archangelic Being, above humanity and compressed, imprisoned and corrupted it with Ahrimanic intensity. That is part of the profound origins of the mystery of the geographic location known as Manna-Hatta. But that is not the end of the story. The legend of “High Tor” (click link) inflames the entire Geographic Manifest Destiny of the Super Power of the United States.

The sixth layer of the Inner Earth and the volcanic forces of the Ahrimanic Fire Spirits struck Manna-Hatta in the very core of the Financial District. Incineration, cremation and the forge of metals and the core fire spirits of the sixth layer of the inner Earth were evoked and opened a fissure to release the horrific horde of demonic fire spirits that were enchained in the core of the Earth. And this is where the gruesome ignorance of America, or the United States, invited catastrophe to the central mystery of Manna-Hatta (CLICK LINK).

The temperature at the core of “the pile,” is near 2000 degrees Fahrenheit, according to fire officials, who add that the fires are too deep for firefighters to get to. “This is how it’s been since day one…and this is six weeks later. As we get closer to the center of this it gets hotter and hotter – it’s probably 1500 degrees.” “Out on the rubble it’s still, I believe, 1,100 degrees. The guys boots just melt within a few hours.”

In perfect conditions the maximum temperature that can be reached by hydrocarbons such as jet fuel burning in air is 1520° F (825° C). When the World Trade Center collapsed the deeply buried fires would have been deprived of oxygen and their temperatures would have significantly decreased.

Age of America Core Ahrimanic Fire DemonsWhy was the temperature at the core of “the pile” nearly 500° F hotter than the maximum burning temperature of jet fuel a full seven days after the collapses? There were no infernos in either of the twin towers before they collapsed, so what caused the hot spots deep in their wreckage?

Molten steel did not exist in the WTC buildings prior to the collapses, but…Molten steel was found “three, four, and five weeks later, when the rubble was being removed [from WTCs 1 & 2],” Loizeaux said. He said molten steel was also found at 7 WTC, which collapsed mysteriously in the late afternoon.

For 6 months after 9/11 the pit of the World Trade Center buildings 1,2 and 7 were filled with molten, smoldering metal, that had been melted from the iron girders, and support beams of the World Trade Center skyscrapers. 6 months the steel continued to melt and drip. Millions of gallons of water were pumped into the molten sea, but still the steel girders dripped red hot.

There is simply no way to wiggle around the facts. In all 3 buildings THERMITE CHARGES were set long before any planes hit those buildings. Which places the Monsters of the American Psyche as our own collective national guilt, for this event was staged by our own government. There are no other alternatives.

“Underground fires raged for months. O’Toole remembers in February [2002] seeing a crane lift a steel beam vertically from deep within the catacombs of Ground Zero. “It was dripping from the molten steel,” he said.” [Philadelphia Inquirer]

A high intensity, molten metal sea made of the ashes of bodies, computers, office furniture, walls, windows, doors, parts of planes, wires, steel and concrete burned with nearly the heat of the sun. It was a feasting and release of the Salamander Spirits, the Ahrimanic Salamander spirits at the central core and mystery of Manna-Hatta.

Startling it is to discover that for all the lies we swallow, we cannot fathom that at the core of the World Trade Center was a smoldering molten sea that burned for nearly 6 months after the collapse of the Towers (CLICK LINK). We have to accommodate and  tolerate the density of the mental delinquency of brainwashed humanity that could possibly imagine that these molten fires, that melted steel and iron, were caused by Jet Plane fuel. What a grotesque calamity of consciousness was carefully engineered to suspend any further examination into the depths of a truly occult event. The only excuse we can fall back upon is that there is a complete failure to lift our intelligence to the true meaning of Fire Beings.

Here we are in the United States creating massive Fire, Sorathian, destructive global nuclear events and poisoning the entire world with deformity of etheric life, DNA and chromsome decimation of whole regions and populations over the whole Earth, but we cannot understand the Fire of the Spirit Man and the Etheric Christ vs the Fires of demonic Sorathian and Ahrimanic beings from the Sixth Layer of the Inner Earth.

It is disappointing to remind people that St. John was Boiled in Oil and this boiling fire and the vicious Salamander Fire Spirits, used against St. John, boiling in a cauldron, did not harm St. John. In fact Domitian, the emperor of Rome, was so frustrated with the Fire Spirits, that all he could do, after attempting to murder and melt the flesh and bone off St. John, was to exile Lazarus/John as far away as possible.

Age of America John boiled in Oil Calvaert 1This is part of a Spirit-Man mystery that, as we might say, how thin skinned and how sensitive St. John must have been made to experience fully the Apocalypse and Revelation of the higher astral devachan and Christ mysteries in the giant panorama of Revelation. This boiling in oil was just one stage in the unfolding revelation of the Initiation that appears in Christian Rosenkreuz.

THE CHEMICAL WEDDING

“The fifth room was set open to us, whither we got too after the former manner, and tendered our service. In this room a bath was prepared for our bird, which was so coloured with a fine white powder, that it had the appearance of mere milk. Now it was at first cool when the bird was set into it. He was mighty well pleased with it, drinking of it, and pleasantly sporting in it. But after it began to heat by reason of the lamps that were placed under it, we had enough to do to keep him in the bath. We therefore claps a cover on the kettle, and suffered him to thrust his head out through a hole, till he had in this sort lost all his feathers in this bath, and was as smooth as a newborn child…”

To be a Knight of the Golden Stone, to be the chosen candidate for directing the education of humanity toward Immortality is a journey we are all embarking on. What happens in such an Initiation event when your entire outer skin is licked clean by Salamander Spirits of Fire?ijohnth001p1 You are taken from the frying pan into the fire, and the Christ Being supervised the cleansing of St. John in the fire to prepare him to absorb the loftiest Revelation humanity has ever received.

Now this breath of the Spirit-Man Fire is very different and follows a completely different path than the demonic fire spirits from our nuclear breeder reactors and the incineration and cremation of human beings in furious burning white phosphorus – ”  the U.S. government indiscriminately rained white chemical fire down on the Iraqi city and melted women and children to death”. White phosphorus that melts our skin off, or the horrific fires that penetrate our bone marrow and cause birth defects and deformities through our use of Depleted Uranium weaponry and shells are grotesque abominations of Ahrimanic intents channeled through well dressed suited monsters. These are monsters.

The Fire Beings of the risen Etheric Christ had a whole regiment of unfolding stages of Initiation destined for St. John. Being boiled in oil, without harm, reveals an entire higher realm of Spiritual-Fire that Christ wished to reveal to humanity. Age of America stephan-lochner-ca-1410-1451 St. JohnChrist chose Lazarus/John, that is the duel union of the Novalis/Rosenkreuz study that is flowing under the Super-Power Being of America that we have been studying in this essay. If Lazarus/John was unharmed by the Boiling Oil, as a real event, this Fire was deflected, so that it could be used, the Fire Beings could be used by higher beings for a later Initiation Event in the 13th Century.

Through the united Initiation forces of Novalis and Christian Rosenkreuz, humanity may find the way to Love as a higher spiritual fire. America will be tasked to claw their way to immortality or, and without a doubt, find the deep forces that awaken and stir human love and immortality from the depths of our beings.

The pressure is being created in America to find the Spirit-Man fire that will unlock, transubstantiate and release matter, and release our higher Initiation into immortality. It is also part of the higher schooling presented in the Novalis/Rosenkreuz schooling of Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man. In other words that baptism by fire and those transformed and transubstantiated devachan fire mysteries of higher birth were literally used for the Birth of Christian Rosenkreuz in the 13th century.

 “…a “College“ of twelve wise men came together. All the spiritual knowledge of the world and its secrets then existing was gathered into this College — distributed as it were in different sections. By means of certain occult processes there had been transmitted to seven of these twelve wise men, the wisdom that had passed over from Atlantis into the holy Rishis.” (Click Link)

Earlier in this study, we glanced at why the Beatles expanded their consciousness and went East to India. What enormous generational changes were wrought in the far west, are all but forgotten. But their expansion and very lively inner development was passed on creatively to countless impulses in music, Woodstock for instance, to science, to expansion of psychology and literature, education, were all enhanced by the fact that the Beatles went to India and brought something back to the West.

However we can only comprehend the depth and meaning of the FAB FOUR Companions, by comprehending what the infusion brought and why it had to be brought. “When the Spirit of the Age of India had fulfilled his mission, he was promoted to the guidance of the entire evolution of post-Atlantean humanity.” Those germinal impulses and the discovery of America in the Fifth Age is set to unfold for centuries to come and immortality, Spirit-Man is the ultimate pressure facing us in the 6th Age and the 7th Age. Age of America Fab Four Companions BeatlesThat means the germinal impulse of music and creativity was fueled by the power of the New Holy Rishis, mighty Archai Initiation, of Christian Rosenkreuz himself. Christian Rosenkreuz has fused into his being the entire Holy Rishis, the full TWELVE STREAMS of the Christ Being’s mighty impulse into the core of his very being. Christian Rosenkreuz is a living, walking Immortal amongst us.

It is good to have the higher Salamander Spirits as our human friends and companions.  In Eurythmy, Speech, The Word and the study of Etheric Phytology, I examine the Sylph Spirit we all have in training with us. Hawthorne illuminates the Nymph and Undine mystery of the Water Spirits for us in Chapters 26 and 27 of his wonderful Novalis Schooling work, “The Marble Faun”. I attempted early on to wrestle, several different times with the destiny of the gnomes and dwarfs of silicon and our ‘chip- techno culture’ mineral-mythic mysteries.

Now we may look into the sub-strata of the TRUE elemental beings and discuss the nature of wonderful, helpful, profound Salamander Fire Spirits or demonic, Sorathian and Ahrimanized fire demons. We know that the fire demons source is part of the Sixth Layer of the inner Earth. There these bound and enmeshed core of Titanic-Balrog fire demons bred at Breeder Reactors over the surface of the Earth are part of the assassins of the sun demon legion that are assaulting humanity in this FIFTH AGE, under the constellation of Pisces.

But let us back up a bit. There in the core of the World Trade Center collapse and catastrophe we have certified Thermite Fire Demon catalyzers that any Forge or Metal Smithy would have been amazed by. Even if the Smithies at the Forge were all trained in Fire Spirit handling and elemental ethnicity by the dwarves of the Earth. 7 metals influencesThese mysteries of the Forge go all the way back to Cain and the establishment of metallurgy and the sciences that have to do with the planets and the sun. Age of America Crucible Forge and Fire Core John StolfoThe Gold of the Sun, the Silver of the Moon, the Copper of Venus, the lead of Saturn, the liquidity of Mercury, and the Iron of Mars, the tin and zinc of Jupiter,needed specific forge training. You can’t have the Tolkien story of the forged Ring of Power without the mystery of the Volcanic, demonic, Fire-Spirits of the Earth. Down in the Sixth layer of the Inner Earth were the Cain mysteries of the Forge.

“Tears of the Salamander by Peter Dickinson

“None of your ancestors, for many generations, since first we came out of Persia and settled on the mountain, had known it. I myself underwent much labor and danger to search it out. I traveled to the farthest East, to the Island of Fire, and there I found the last of those who speak that ancient tongue, and to gain their trust I underwent the Ordeal of Fire, so that they should teach me the chant, and other long-forgotten secrets…Age of America salamander mysteries Peter Dickinson

“They are, in fact, in the sacred language of the Old Persian priests, who worshipped the sun . They used the chant to invoke certain powers that emanate from the sun. The ignorant call them demons, but they are in fact Angels of Fire, such as were seen walking with Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego in the furnace of King Nebuchadnezzar.”

(click link) THE SALAMANDER:  byElizabeth Oakes Smith, a well-known author and a colleague of Ralph Waldo Emerson

“It had been the custom to put out the flames of the furnace once in seven years, for a tradition existed that more than a thousand years ago, amid the Hartz mountains, a terrible creature…

“We find this tradition of the Salamander current amongst the workmen of
furnaces, and always from some cause or other the forges are put out at
intervals. We are told the superstition has been made the subject of more
than one story, none of which have ever come under our own observation.

“…had arisen in the flames, which, possessed of a wild and mischievous spirit, pursued the workmen till he clasped them in his arms, entirely consuming the parts which he touched; walking through them, as it were, leaving upon each side the scattered fragments of their bodies. A creature of such malice and so terrible was at length transfixed by a thunderbolt, and now may be seen upon one of the mountains, writhing in flames whenever a thunder storm passes over the country.

“Since which time the men were unwilling to labor unless the fire was extinguished the seventh year, for they feared some evil might come of it. But Hugo would not listen to the appeals of his people, and now as the night wore on they moved sullenly to and fro, doing his bidding, but with unwilling minds, for the seventh year had arrived, and yet the master bade them feed the furnace. So, as we have said, the men did unwilling service, and talked freely of the pride and perversity of Hugo.

“I have heard smiths tell strange tales about monsters that appear from an over-heated furnace. But I am weak of head, as you say, Peter, and Hugo our master is full of book learning, and despises the wisdom of poor unlearned bodies like us. But what a man’s fathers have seen and told to their children, to my mind is next to the book of truth in which is hid the secret of our salvation.”

Age of America Salamander Archangel fire spirit“My lady dreamed that a bad spirit had obtained a shape upon God’s blessed earth, through the willful pride of her husband, and she awoke, crying, ‘ Woe, woe, woe!’ and bade me come hither. I pray thee look yonder, and behold.” Hugo laughed lightly, and said, “My lady is wont to have pleasanter dreams; methinks they do her husband small praise to-night;” and he took the hand of Margery, and would have led her forth, but her lips grew white, and she pointed to the furnace.

“Hugo and all the men looked that way; and from the mouth thereof half stepped forth what might have seemed a slender flame, but for the intense eyes that cast themselves upon every side. It drew in again, and as it turned itself about, a long, limber tail lay upon the hearth, and then was lost in the flame.

“Beshrew me,” cried Hugo, “but it is a brave beast, and I warrant me will give a new temper to the steel that shall glow beside him. Methinks the brand of Hugo will be one likely to be remembered.”

Present = Spiritual or Consciousness Soul
6th Cultural Era = Manas or Spirit Self
7th Cultural Era = Buddhi or Life Spirit
After Catastrophe = Atma or Spirit Man

From now till end of the Fifth Age and with a certainty, as we all straggle along, through the Sixth Age we shall be dominated by a kind of intense Fire Mystery. This fire of the I AM, shall presently and into the future kindle a Holy Ghost fire that has to do with the full intake, inbreathing of living Spiritual wisdom. This wisdom can be approached through many different channels and pathways. However the signature of approaching this Fifth Age and into the Sixth Age will have before us, facing us, challenging us and enlightening us, a new kind of higher fire.

1 And when the day of Pentecost was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place.2 And suddenly there came a sound from heaven as of a rushing mighty wind, and it filled all the house where they were sitting.3 And there appeared unto them cloven tongues like as of fire, and it sat upon each of them.4 And they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to speak with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance.

In the Sixth age, as the Sun rises in the Spring from the constellation of Aquarius, on the big clock of the stars, the Novalis/John the Baptist mystery will also begin making itself more apparent. The fire we are digesting now, that which we are wrestling with in terms of a higher schooling of the soul and spirit, will be called more and more into an active, individual, Manichean reality. And that which we are absorbing and awakening to now, becomes as our incarnations progress, far more vivid personal and alive in each of us. We must intimately share the pain of our humanity as the literal key to awakening the enormous Fire Furnace of the Fifth Chamber of the Human Heart. Our intimate individual empathy, built on the substance of overwhelming, heart breaking compassion, will be inescapable.

Through these vivid experiences, where we will begin to see the choices in our most intimate karma, revealing in our physiognomy and written on our faces,  those shaping forces that the dark magicians of materialism have succeeded in Ahrimanically imprinting by controlling the genetic and formative forces from cradle to grave, we will have our hearts torn apart.

John the Baptist, the Archangel that once hovered over the Hebrew people, who met, witnessed and played as a child with Jesus, he who stood at the transition from Jesus/Zarathustra, to THE CHRIST BEING, Novalis the poet, Raphael the painter, will arise once more and reveal a new curative path of FIRE that comes from the I AM. A new Baptism by the higher I AM will reshape us all in the forge of Initiation.

Each of us will feel Manichean Christianity in the overwhelming cauldron of the compassion of our hearts by having to face the rifts and shatterings of our karma, of those we loved beyond death. We will feel the vital school of Manichean sacrifice, for our loved ones,  in an overwhelming individual, fire of love, to offer ourselves as Bread and offer ourselves as the fiery blood that heals the karmic divisions all the way down to the etheric/genetic tearing apart. Novalis experienced this with the death of Christiane Wilhelmine Sophie von Kühn (March 17, 1782 – March 19, 1797. We will ,of necessity, experience the depths that the Christ experienced and it will teach us the Fire of Love in a wholly new astral/etheric cohesion of the Science of Love.

Luke 3:16-17 – John answered, saying unto [them] all, I indeed baptize you with water; but one mightier than I cometh, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to unloose: he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire:

We have the awakening of astral and Holy Ghost fires beginning to penetrate our consciousness, our thinking and our hearts in the 5th Age. These forces gain strength in the 6th age, as they penetrate slowly down into the etheric forces, that restore, and reverse the terrible, compelling powers that made us accomplices in Ahrimanic goals. And through this FIRE from our I AM, we will be trained to bring these higher forces into our etheric bodies and strengthen our Etheric Bodies from within our higher spiritual developments, wrought from great tragedies and confrontations that shall yet come to pass.

And purified astral forces of the White Garments for the wedding, soul and spirit purifications, enhanced and awakened, and with much weeping and gnashing of teeth, through courageous acts of compassion, sacrifice and redemption, whole new forms of penetrating Love will become known. Including new powers of the WORD itself.

By the end of the 7th Age, when the Sun rises in the Spring in the Constellation of Capricorn, from a massively changed humanity and a massively cataclysmic Earth perspective, gradually and with great resistance, the Fiery Secrets of Spirit-Man, Fire Spirit Salamander Agnishvattaa New Heaven and a New Jupiter Evolution of the Earth will have arisen and taken us beyond the heart wrenching lessons gleaned and garnered from the fading majesty of Earth Evolution.

Spirit-Self and awakening dormant faculties and capacities of The Grail in us, will re-kindle and transform the dead un-used portions of our soul life. These regions are presently subjected to demonic infestations and spider broods of fallen beings, all clamoring for the Spirit that humanity is endowed with. As Angelic understudies we will have to go in and clean house, purge our beings of these soul leeching parasites.

These new FIRE MYSTERIES OF THE I AM, have appeared here and there. We are in the Fifth Age and the Man from Room Five (Click Link), which is the title of the Rosicrucian mystery of Roman numeral ‘ V of this the AGE OF PISCES THE FISHES’. It is the man from room ‘V’ that goes through a FIRE INITIATION event born from the tragedy of Evil fighting against Good. This event foreshadows our own I AM awakening. I have mentioned that Stephen King often attempted to tackle very lofty esoteric themes. In Stephen King’s “Fire Starter” an anomaly of raw salamander inspiration and intensity emanates from a little girl. What happens if a lofty Archangelic Fire Spirit overshadowed an innocent but morally advanced child? That is why the gracious wisdom of heaven have required human beings to go through a ripening in their human souls to gain the conscious insights into these mysteries. We should be grateful for all the efforts of those who have given us some slender opportunities to explore these riddles before we are thrust into them blindly.

I cannot begin to express how grateful I am, and how fortunate it has been for my destiny to meet, share and carry in my soul the works and efforts of those in the Michael School and the Novalis School for ‘Schöne Wissenschaften’. The works of my colleagues saturate and illuminate the efforts of this research document. Without them I could not have intensified and compressed some of my own insights.To gain a broader and more intimate picture of aspects in this document it is warmly advised, and with great affection for our shared higher education, that those books and those links that have been indicated here, should be explored with great joy, courage and wonder of the soul and spirit. I have felt uplifted and rejoiced in my heart as I explored and celebrated the wealth of their immense spiritual contributions to my stumbling steps. May the future striving spirits take our feeble efforts and lift us further and deeper tomorrow than we have attempted today. It is you and our children and ourselves as we incarnate in the future that will harvest the benefit of raising and expanding our Consciousness Soul vision to the schooling of Spirit-Selfhood and beyond. May the Christ go with us all.

LINK OVER TO PART 2 Consciousness Soul 5th Age – American Perspective -THANK-YOU FOR YOUR INTEREST.

ADDENDUM 1

If we study John the Baptist, we also begin to study something of the immersion the human soul takes into and through the threshold of the etheric/astral worlds. John the Baptist represented a WATER/Aquarius mystery. So if we wanted to see how a pupil of John the Baptist, Elijah, Raphael and Novalis and part of the the distant future of the Novalis School – The SIXTH EPOCH or Sixth Age Manichean impulse might appear – we could look at the film “CONSTANTINE”.

Firstly it is curious that “Constantine” was made at all.  Secondly, some star name attached to the movie have Keanu Reeves, Rachel Weisz, Shia LaBeouf, Tilda Swinton. (Swinton has a child in a Waldorf School). But the themes are much to do with the John the Baptist Water Initiation of the future Aquarius Age, when the Sun Rises in the Spring, in Aquarius. Gold as the Christ Impulse and THE SPEAR OF DESTINY (which I examine briefly here) which is associated with the wound of Amfortas of the Grail, are fairly extensive and liberal constructs, ahead of the Manichean Age of the transformation of Evil. So “Constantine” is most definitely an Aquarian/John the Baptist premature and awkward foreshadowing of a kind of Manichean Impulse. It’s worth a look if you are brave.

ADDENDUM 2

Brian Gray, Program Director of the Foundations in Anthroposophical Studies’ at Rudolf Steiner College, explains the complexity of death and reincarnation and the stages of life after death and the preparations of the spirit for the next life. (click link) This is so transparent, so Logos Imbued, that we shall and should take all the fiery sensationalism out of CONSTANTINE and study this simple tape over and over again until we understand or begin to sense how death operates and how do our higher bodies integrate themselves. Everyone in America needs to calmly and cleanly regain objective clarity and THIS CLIP is very good.

ADDENDUM 3

Hebraic names were Hananiah (חֲנַנְיָה), Mishael (מִישָׁאֵל) and Azariah (עֲזַרְיָה) 

AGNISHVATTAS, Fire Spirits and Archai

Age of America fire spirit, Archai3 King Nebuchadnezzar made an image of gold, sixty cubits high and six cubits wide,[a] and set it up on the plain of Dura in the province of Babylon. 2 He then summoned the satraps,prefects, governors, advisers, treasurers, judges, magistrates and all the other provincial officials to come to the dedication of the image he had set up. 3 So the satraps, prefects, governors, advisers, treasurers, judges, magistrates and all the other provincial officials assembled for the dedication of the image that King Nebuchadnezzar had set up, and they stood before it.

4 Then the herald loudly proclaimed, “Nations and peoples of every language, this is what you are commanded to do: 5 As soon as you hear the sound of the horn, flute, zither, lyre, harp, pipe and all kinds of music, you must fall down and worship the image of gold that King Nebuchadnezzar has set up. 6 Whoever does not fall down and worship will immediately be thrown into a blazing furnace.”

7 Therefore, as soon as they heard the sound of the horn, flute, zither, lyre, harp and all kinds of music, all the nations and peoples of every language fell down and worshiped the image of gold that King Nebuchadnezzar had set up.

8 At this time some astrologers[b] came forward and denounced the Jews. 9 They said to King Nebuchadnezzar, “May the king live forever! 10 Your Majesty has issued a decree that everyone who hears the sound of the horn, flute, zither, lyre, harp, pipe and all kinds of music must fall down and worship the image of gold, 11 and that whoever does not fall down and worship will be thrown into a blazing furnace. 12 But there are some Jews whom you have set over the affairs of the province of Babylon—Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego—who pay no attention to you, Your Majesty. They neither serve your gods nor worship the image of gold you have set up.”

13 Furious with rage, Nebuchadnezzar summoned Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego. So these men were brought before the king, 14 and Nebuchadnezzar said to them, “Is it true, Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, that you do not serve my gods or worship the image of gold I have set up? 15 Now when you hear the sound of the horn, flute, zither, lyre, harp, pipe and all kinds of music, if you are ready to fall down and worship the image I made, very good. But if you do not worship it, you will be thrown immediately into a blazing furnace. Then what god will be able to rescue you from my hand?”

16 Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego replied to him, “King Nebuchadnezzar, we do not need to defend ourselves before you in this matter. 17 If we are thrown into the blazing furnace, the God we serve is able to deliver us from it, and he will deliver us[c] from Your Majesty’s hand. 18 But even if he does not, we want you to know, Your Majesty, that we will not serve your gods or worship the image of gold you have set up.”

19 Then Nebuchadnezzar was furious with Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, and his attitude toward them changed. He ordered the furnace heated seven times hotter than usual 20 and commanded some of the strongest soldiers in his army to tie up Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego and throw them into the blazing furnace. 21 So these men, wearing their robes, trousers, turbans and other clothes, were bound and thrown into the blazing furnace.22 The king’s command was so urgent and the furnace so hot that the flames of the fire killed the soldiers who took up Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, 23 and these three men, firmly tied, fell into the blazing furnace.

24 Then King Nebuchadnezzar leaped to his feet in amazement and asked his advisers, “Weren’t there three men that we tied up and threw into the fire?”

They replied, “Certainly, Your Majesty.”

25 He said, “Look! I see four men walking around in the fire, unbound and unharmed, and the fourth looks like a son of the gods.”Age of America Agnishvatta Fire Spirits

26 Nebuchadnezzar then approached the opening of the blazing furnace and shouted, “Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, servants of the Most High God, come out! Come here!”

So Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego came out of the fire, 27 and the satraps, prefects, governors and royal advisers crowded around them. They saw that the fire had not harmed their bodies, nor was a hair of their heads singed; their robes were not scorched, and there was no smell of fire on them.

28 Then Nebuchadnezzar said, “Praise be to the God of Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, who has sent his angel and rescued his servants! They trusted in him and defied the king’s command and were willing to give up their lives rather than serve or worship any god except their own God. 29 Therefore I decree that the people of any nation or language who say anything against the God of Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego be cut into pieces and their houses be turned into piles of rubble, for no other god can save in this way.”

30 Then the king promoted Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego in the province of Babylon.

ADDENDUM 4

Creating a visible fire salamander spiral, does not have the requisite heat, after image and molten intensity for a true Salamander Spirit. But, the spiral is more like what we do by hand stirring bio-dynamic preps in clockwise and counterclockwise spin and vortex to invest and request the elemental community, via the vortex and inverted tornado invocation. CLICK LINK

ADDENDUM 5

Study in Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego by Louis Armstrong. Gold and the Fire Beings in the EXOTERIC context. (CLICK LINK)

“The Green Mile” Life-Spirit, Budhi and the Bread of Life by Bradford Riley

Paul Edgecomb: What do you want me to do John? You want me to let you run out of here, see how far you can get?
John Coffey: Why would you do such a foolish thing?
Paul Edgecomb: On the day of my judgment, when I stand before God, and He asks me why did I kill one of his true miracles, what am I gonna say? That it was my job? My job?

Rudolf Steiner

“When the Logos simply proclaimed His name, it could be understood and grasped with the intellect. But when the Logos became flesh and appeared among men, then it became a Force-Impulse which is not only a teaching and a concept, but exists in the world as a Force-Impulse in which humanity can participate. He then calls Himself no longer “Manna,” but the “Bread of Life,” which is the technical expression for Budhi or Life-Spirit.”

When the opportunity is presented to us, to humanity, to the future of our cultural and spiritual education and knowledge to examine a specific area of higher soul development, even if we prefer not to, our preferences are less important than how such an IMAGINATION of the Life-Spirit, Budhi  and the literal BREAD OF LIFE, that Christ offered in His Person, presents itself.

In the character of John Coffey , from the film THE GREEN MILE we were presented a window into a miracle of the higher metamorphosis of the human being. It is a rare opportunity for all of us to approach and study the deepest hidden mysteries that reside in the Etheric Body of humanity. What will humanity be capable of achieving through the development of our own Etheric Bodies? What were the stages of the intensification that Christ applied directly to His Etheric Body to produce the Signs, Wonders and Miracles that are known to us as THE BREAD OF LIFE?

This particular manifestation of a Christusträger, a Christophorus or Christ-Carrier, as John Coffey is designated in the film THE GREEN MILE, brings us directly into the higher forces of the Christ Being that were manifested for three years on Earth in the individuality of the Christ. Christ brought the FORCE of His Cosmic I AM deeply into the workings of His Etheric Body and raised the forces, resurrected the forces of the Etheric body to the level Life-Spirit or Budhi. In John Coffey we have a specific, special instance of one phase of human development known as Budhi or Life-Spirit. This phase is not easy to quantify, qualify or describe without having a specific example that we can all relate to.

THE GREEN MILE is about what happens to a prison guard working death row in Louisiana in 1935. It’s the height of the Great Depression and Paul Edgecomb (Hanks) is a man just trying to do his job, which is to keep the convicted criminals on his block quiet and alive until they’re executed in the electric chair. Paul is a good man who tries to make his wards final days as pleasant as possible under the circumstances. Most of his co-workers agree with his way of doing business, but there’s always one bad apple and in this case, it’s Percy Wetmore. A cruel coward, Percy makes life on the Green Mile – the cell block’s nickname – a difficult place to work for guards and prisoners alike.

“Things pretty much go along as normal – Paul (TOM HANKS) tries to keep things running smoothly, Percy tries to exert his authority – until an enormous African American prisoner named John Coffey (Michael Duncan) arrives on the mile. He’s been convicted of raping and murdering two little girls, but Paul believes he’s innocent of the crime. Though massive in size, there doesn’t seem to be a vicious bone in his body. Paul’s suspicions are soon confirmed when Coffey “cures” him of a horrible physical ailment. Paul can’t explain how this “miracle” happened, but it makes him more sure than ever that the system is going to execute the wrong man. He spends the rest of the film trying to keep this “child of God” from going to the chair. I’d like to get more into the plot, but there’s so much that happens, I’m hard pressed to come up with a succinct way of describing it. This is an incredibly intricate tale with many interwoven subplots. Needless to say, more miracles occur, true friendships are formed and justice is ultimately rendered.

“I’m sure there are many people who will not like this film, claiming it’s too long and convoluted, but I’m not one of them. This is a heartfelt film that tells it’s story quietly, without hitting you over the head with its message. It’s core is simple, yet intelligently told. It may not be a perfect film, but at least it’s striving to be.”

So we have a writer, STEPHEN KING, who has consistently taken us to perimeters and thresholds of consciousness that we have been unwilling to explore. In the instance of (CLICK THIS LINK)THE GREEN MILE we come to an area of a special study in the higher capacities of the human being that lead us directly to the three years of the Christ on Earth.

In this essay, we gratefully and humbly thank STEPHEN KING for raising up, much against our preferred behavior, a window into a portion of the human soul that can only be clearly defined by Spiritual Science and the Michael School. Of course this places the work of THE GREEN MILE within the study reference of how humanity may approach the higher vision of the Risen Etheric Christ event.

In the character of John Coffey (click this link) we are allowed to look into a future window of exactly what higher capacities of THE ETHERIC BODY and what changes in the etheric body of human beings will occur as the Risen Etheric Christ impulse continues to unfold. In John Coffey we are presented with an extremely highly developed, overly potent Etheric body that is isolated in such a way that no impurities of the intellect, of our falsified materialistic education, or our superficial egotism, that we all carry around with us, interferes with the higher virtues of the Etheric Body that have developed in the example of John Coffey.

Which is to say, and declare with humble awe and astonishment, we can say without a doubt that with John Coffey we are looking into an example of the Luke Jesus Incarnation. We are likely never to come as close to a study of the Nathan Jesus or Luke Gospel Jesus child as we are in the study of John Coffey. And this unique opportunity was drawn together and pulled to the surface of humanities hidden wisdom, through the special capacities that Stephen King has developed.

The Luke Gospel Jesus has been examined in some detail at THIS LINK. Here is a quote that applies to both our study of John Coffey and the Luke Jesus child. “His unique cosmic innocence was to be preserved by what appeared to everyone around him as a near dumb and slow witted child but with a capacity for Cosmic Love and Compassion never before seen on Earth.”

Now the direction, the cast, the production and the writing of THE GREEN MILE appeared in 1999. Part of my job is to follow and highlight those events that we let slip by us that reveal the constant workings of the Risen Etheric Christ (See Link). The years 1933 – 1966 – 1999 are laced with insights and messages from all quarters of humanity, we just have to know what to look for. However we have been educated to not know what we are looking for, nor how to recognize deeper mysteries even if we saw them.

Few people take the time to delve into the full impact of what is sometimes presented to us through various mediums just because we have nearly no idea how to connect what we saw to any kind of deeper revelation that we are all seeking. Without question, all of us, every human being must encounter the Etheric Body mysteries, The Risen Etheric Christ mysteries, the phase in human soul development known as the Life-Spirit phase or Budhi phase,  and we will all become painfully familiar with all the other phases of our soul development as we stumble through each one.

Now that allows us the most incredible window and opportunity, to be invited in to a sacred mystery that we are never allowed to view or study in the normal course of our education. Of course we wouldn’t be able to appreciate the details of the study of this particular example if we hadn’t had the opportunity to research the Christ Event ourselves with depth and intensity.

The secrets of THE GREEN MILE not only lead us to the Christ Event and the capacities Christ manifested on Earth but also how He achieved the enhancement of His Etheric Body into THE BREAD OF LIFE. In this study we are also led to a specific stage of our own higher human development the Life-Spirit, the transformation of the forces of our own human Etheric Bodies into Budhi or the immortal powers of our own Etheric Bodies which will make us each a Christ-Bearer, a Christ-Carrier, a Christophorous, so that we also become the BREAD OF LIFE.

We shall become the BREAD OF LIFE by following the path of Christ and the Living Etheric Christ that radiates from our own Etheric Bodies. But for most of us, we have never even heard of an Etheric Body nor ever even imagined that our Human structure and the Human structure and Forces that Christ carried are based on the Divine Blueprints and Design of every human being that we meet. That in every human being we meet the potential forces that manifested fully in Christ, are there before our eyes, as yet undeveloped and unexplored.

Rudolf Steiner

“At present man consists of four principles. The first is the so-called physical body; this is the principle man has in common with all the present creations of the mineral kingdom; this part of man one can see with the eyes and grasp with the hands; it is the lowest principle of human nature, which alone remains as the corpse at death. But this physical body would every moment have the same fate as the corpse at death, it would fall to pieces were it not permeated by what we call the etheric body or life body.

This etheric body man no longer has in common with the mineral kingdom, he has it in common with the beings of the earthly vegetable kingdom. In every man the etheric body is a combatant which between birth and death holds together the parts of the physical body which continually have the tendency to disintegrate. What is the physical body of man, in reality? It is that which, when death has destroyed the form, after a short time becomes ashes. It is a little heap of ashes, so wonderfully arranged in the life body that the whole man makes the impression he now does upon those who look at him. The second principle, then, is the ether or life body.

The third principle, which man has in common with the animals, is the so-called astral body, the vehicle of instincts, desires, passions, thoughts, ideas, etc., all that is usually called the soul in man. Finally we have the fourth principle in human nature, that which makes man the crown of earthly creation, which makes him stand out above all the other beings, and enables him to develop as “I,” as an individual self-conscious being in earthly existence. In the future the evolution of man will unfold in such manner that he will gradually work from his

Diagram 1

“I” upon the lower principles, so that the “I” becomes their ruler. When the “I” has thoroughly worked upon the astral body and taken possession of it, so that in this astral body there are no more unconscious and unguarded impulses, instincts and passions, then the “I” will have developed what we call Spirit Self or Manas. Spirit-Self is none other than the astral body, only the astral body is the third principle before it is transformed by the “I.”

When the “I” transforms the etheric body also, Life-Spirit or Budhi is produced; and when in the remotest future the “I” transforms the physical body so that this is completely spiritualized by the “I” itself (this is the most difficult work, because the physical body is the densest), then the physical body develops into the highest principle of human nature, namely, Atma or Spirit-Man. Thus, if we conceive of man in his seven-fold nature, we have the physical body, the etheric body or life-body, the astral body and the “I.”

Further, we have that which man will develop in the future; Spirit-Self or Manas, Life-Spirit or Budhi and Spirit-Man or Atma. That is the sevenfold being of man. However, he will only develop these higher principles in the far-distant future. It is not yet in man’s power while on the earth to work so far upon himself as to bring all these higher spiritual parts to full development.”

The rise of the Etheric Christ into the 20th century and now into the 21st century was announced most consciously and clearly from the School of Spiritual Science as  concretely dawning from 1933 onwards through 1935 and on into the future. There is no argument and no error in spiritual insight when we explore the age of Christ at the crucifixion as being that of 33 years. There is no doubt that 1933 saw devastating calamities over the Earth as the moral forces of the Tenth Hierarchy were shaken to their core by the Rise of the Etheric Christ. In counter point to the Rise of the Etheric Christ in the moral strata of the Earth and the Etheric Life of the Earth and humanity, counter-forces arose from Nazi Germany as a moral shadow out to challenge the rise of the Etheric Christ awakening in the social sphere of humanity. (See Study Link Here)

There is no doubt from Spiritual Science and the Michael School that the Risen Etheric Christ now imprints in 33 year rhythm patterns through history, deep and profound windows into the work of Christ in the Etheric. In all my research and in all my works so far presented I have proven beyond a shadow of a doubt that 33 is a key number and that Harry Truman acted as Pilate (SEE LINK HERE) for humanity once again, as the 33rd President of the United States. Harry Truman crucified Christ again by initiating the nuclear age and creating the opportunity for Anti-Etheric and Anti-Genetic, fallen Devachan light and technology to dwarf struggling human moral impulses.

There is not a shadow of a doubt that Harry Truman acted and inaugurated a more horrific crucifixion of our higher human potential by opening the door to the deformity of our Etheric and Spirit of Form Chromosome foundations by infecting humanity with raw Anti-Light that attacks the very foundations of our Etheric lymphatic system.

We mention these facts because the film, THE GREEN MILE, came out in 1999 and reflects the powerful response from the Risen Etheric Christ to the massive ignorance of the Etheric Life of the Earth and what the Luke Jesus child carried and what awaits humanity in the future unfolding of the Life-Spirit or Budhi in our own etheric bodies.

While THE GREEN MILE story is said to have taken place in the early time frame of 1935 when the dawn of the Etheric Christ had just begun to stir the depths of the hidden moral forces of humanity, it’s film production and release conforms itself to 1933 and to 1999 as a pattern of Etheric Christ studies arising freely in the open schooling of The Tenth Hierarchy.

There are scant and scarce opportunities for anyone ever, aside from the Michael School of Spiritual Science to even approach the deeper mysteries of the Luke Jesus child (see link) or even come close to examining the specific forces of the advanced Etheric Body known as Life-Spirit, which humanity is destined to attain. Our common education and intelligence gets us nowhere near where the mystery of the Life-Spirit or Budhi that the Christ Carried and that humans will carry as Christophoros. Christophoros from the Late Greek name Χριστοφορος (Christophoros) meaning “bearing Christ”, derived from Χριστος (Christos) combined with φερω (phero) “to bear, to carry”.

Much to our shock and amazement we will discover exactly how THE GREEN MILE allows us to peek through a crack in the doorway to where the greatest mysteries of humanity are hidden. To be a Christ Carrier, a Christusträger, to be a Christ-Bearer, to be a Christophoros may be studied, anticipated and taken hold of by our intelligence. And as in all things, we are required to look and connect things that nowhere in the course of our common place human education or our common place human thinking, would we have before us such an opportunity for a sneak peek through the crack in the doorway into the workings of the LIFE-SPIRIT that the Risen Etheric Christ had at His command as a  fully conscious capacity when He lived on the Earth.

Nowhere in our common place human education would we ever follow the trail of the Etheric Mysteries into the plant kingdom, the lymphatic/etheric healing acts of the Christ Being as He lived on Earth. In the process we gain a concrete stage of grasping what Spiritual Science means when the Life-Spirit is openly discussed. It would remain beyond our comprehension if Stephen King (SEE LINK) had not presented us with the character of John Coffey in the (click link) THE GREEN MILE.

“There are, however, in the world great and mighty mysteries which mankind is not yet entitled to know. Human beings of the present day, even though they may be sufficiently developed, are not yet strong enough to go through the great Mysteries. They can know of them, they can understand them when they are able to experience them spiritually; but our present humanity, so deeply immersed in matter, is not yet capable of converting them into their physical expression.” Rudolf Steiner

In The Green Mile we are confronted with one of the greater mysteries of the Risen Etheric Christ event. Through our efforts in understanding the character and demonstration of the healings that John Coffey performs in the film, “The Green Mile” we are led directly into the deeper Mysteries of Christ and Christianity that are normally hidden from us.

Mainly these mysteries that are there for the eye to see and the ear to hear, remain hidden because our education, our prejudice and our clumsy arrogance prevents us from literally examining objectively what we are seeing. The Etheric Christ event and Christ having lived for three years on the Earth are objective events. However our education and our prejudice limit, confine and imprison our grasp of the objectivity of the Christ Life on Earth and the Risen Etheric Christ currently active in our environment. Subjectively we quote the Bible but we really prefer to keep Christ imprisoned in our subjective opinions so we can pretend we are Christian and love Jesus.

The objectivity of the Christ Event allows those who are willing to recognize the connection of the deeper mysteries and bring those deeper mysteries together with the healings presented in “The Green Mile” an awesome opportunity. Through the character of John Coffey we can get a front row seat to the very signs and wonders that appeared in the Gospels through Christ.

Rudolf Steiner

“Imagine for example that someone could receive the Christ Impulse fully into himself, that it could completely pass over upon him. The Christ Himself might stand directly in the presence of this person and the Christ Impulse be transmitted to him. What does that signify? If the person were blind, he would yet be able to see by means of the direct influence of this Christ Impulse, for the final goal of evolution is the conquest of the forces of sickness and death. When the writer of the Gospel of St. John speaks of the healing of the man born blind, he is then speaking out of the depths of the Mysteries, he is demonstrating, by means of an example, that the force of the Christ is a healing force when it appears in full power. It may be asked: Where is this force? It is in the body of the Christ, in the earth! But this earth must, in truth, be fully permeated by the being of the Christ Spirit or of the Logos. Let us see if the writer of the Gospel recounts the story with this meaning. How does he relate it?

“Standing there is the blind man. The Christ takes some earth, insalivates  (See Norse Gods all Spit in Jar, mix clay to Make Kvasir)  it and lays it upon the blind man’s eyes. He lays His body, the earth, permeated with His spirit upon the blind man. In this description, the writer of the Gospel indicates a mystery which he very well understands. Now laying aside all prejudice, let us talk a little more in detail of this sign — one of the greatest performed by the Christ — in order that we may learn to know more exactly the nature of such a thing and not be disturbed because our very clever contemporaries will consider what has just been said to be sheer madness or folly!”

Now the miracles and healings presented in the Gospels reveal the objective operation of higher forces that can be found in our human Etheric Bodies and in it’s highest manifestation revealed through the specific deeds of Christ. The forces that existed in the Christ for Three Years on the Earth had already achieved a level of development we know of as the Life-Spirit and Budhi.  Humanity will slowly unfold forces in our etheric bodies that Christ brought fully to bear on Earth during His brief Three Year Sojourn.

We are indebted to Stephen King for allowing us into a mystery that humanity will only attain to, consciously in the distant future. The Etheric Life of the Earth, our lymphatic system, the entire mystery of The Agricultural Course (see link) by Rudolf Steiner our study of the immense world of plants (see link) and the very potent secrets of Eurythmy and the Human Word will rise to the surface with our deepened understanding of the Risen Etheric Christ in our midst.

Since” The Green Mile” and the character of John Coffey is such an excellent schooling and study of the higher Etheric and Life-Spirit, Budhi, which the Christ gave to humanity consciously, we can consider ourselves privileged to examine also the unconscious and unusual manner of the appearance of the higher Etheric Life-Body, that bulged forth, and filled the simple soul and body of John Coffey. It is an absolute unique opportunity and manifestation of our higher intuitions reaching upwards into the realm of the Risen Etheric Christ.

Even in the casting of the film itself, we see the peculiar reality of the manifestation, in a natural form, not of an impregnated muscle bound steroid induced muscle (given the reality of what would an overly dominated Etheric Life Force look like in a human being if it appeared unconsciously and without higher esoteric training), we can recognize in John Coffey a human form in which the higher forces of the Etheric Body itself overwhelmed the physical and astral body.

In this very specific example of the dominating force of the higher Etheric and Life Body in John Coffey, we also see the amazing false path of doping and steroid use to build bulk and body muscle but without, without even a shred of insight into the Etheric forces that carry the moral Light of the Etheric worlds through the human being.

Building body bulk and abstract body muscle force, without insight into the Etheric Body, is the direct result of our desire to avoid a conscious understanding of the Risen Etheric Christ. Falsified Body Muscle and Bulk attempts to steal future karma forces that reside and are given in our muscles to face the tasks and realities of our destinies on Earth. Bulking and grabbing empty muscle from the future through doping and steroids and egotistic, selfish worship of seeing ourselves in mirrors as mighty humans, as superheros is an absolute lie and deception based on our failure to understand the relationship between our personal karma and our muscle fitness.

Super Hero fantasies and materialistic meddling with the Etheric body

  Why you should not Be a Juice Monkey

If you’re using steroids or thinking about it, here’s a pretty good list of reasons not to.

  1. Gives you zits.
  2. Gives you bad breath, which equals no kisses.
  3. Makes you go bald sooner, which equals looking like your Dad when your 16.
  4. For Girls: it makes you grow a mustache- totally gross!
  5. For Girls: it makes your boobies shrink.
  6. For Guys: it makes your nuts shrink – do you really need another reason?
  7. For Guys: it makes it hurt when you go to the bathroom- again, do you really need another reason?
  8. For Guys: it makes you grow breasts- once again, see above.
  9. Impotence: that means you can’t get an erection.
  10. Roid Rage: it makes you get all wacko and violent.

So in John Coffey and much to our amazement we have a specialized, isolated example of an Etheric body that is unconsciously filled with the forces of The Risen Etheric Christ in a peculiar and a natural way. Which allows us to witness, again with THE GREEN MILE, we are allowed to witness a series of miracles that we can directly bridge over to the Etheric Christ.

In other words through the miracles that Christ performed consciously on the Earth, we are now able to study objectively and see exactly how the dynamic of those miracles manifested and their deeper meaning. We are able to exactly understand how John Coffey could perform certain miracles because of the powerful forces of the Etheric Body – that in fact – The Christ for three years on Earth, through a series of miracles, brought HIS own living Etheric and Budhi and Life-Spirit forces to such a pitch that Christ transformed the very physical human form into Spirit-Man. ATMA or Spirit-Man was the revelation of the hardest transformation into the Resurrected Phantom and the Risen Etheric Christ Form ever accomplished in the history of humanity. This shattering event was given back to humanity as the gift of the objective reality of The Resurrection.

In John Coffey we have a specialized example of the higher Budhi and Life-Spirit forces, captured and isolated into a specific example that conforms itself to the deepest Mysteries of the Christ Event which are never studied in depth. So now, beyond a shadow of a doubt we will present the connections that our limited education (study this link that thwarts any semblance of higher education), with the exception of the Michael School and Spiritual Science, all our limited education can do is to appeal to our subjective and imprisoned opinions.

On the other hand, to grasp the Etheric Christ event consciously and objectively we are required to understand what the miracles in the Bible were truly about and what the miracles that are manifested in the character of John Coffey are. In doing so we gain an accurate vision into a specific stage of human development that is objectively known as Budhi or the Life-Spirit, an actual stage of every HUMAN BEINGS HIGHER DEVELOPMENT.

In the film presentation of “The Green Mile” we have the Miracle of the Mouse; the Miracle of the urinary tract and bladder infection (without the use of Cranberry Juice); the Miracle of the curing of  a tumor in the brain caused by Cancer; the Miracle of real karma transference and higher Fifth Chamber of the Human Heart akashic capacities ; the Miracle of a  living Etheric extension of human life.

The title of “The Green Mile” is really one of the first of the miracles we should recognize, applaud and celebrate as just how remarkable human ART, human thinking and human writing can be. We hardly appreciate what a title tells us and how it introduces us into a mystery which we absolutely do not encounter or connect to concrete facts just because of the simplistic education we settle for here on Earth.

The title of  “The Green Mile” is in reality based on our average life span which is given at 72 years and based on each of our individual incarnations that celebrate year after year our own Sun Precession. Each human Life-Span is generally designed on the Platonic Year and we are intimate to the Platonic Year both daily in our breathing and also to the fact that each of  us represent 1 click, 1 degree, 1 ray and 1 pulse and indeed 1 Green Mile of the Sun’s journey through the Platonic Year.

One of the intimate, missed and great secrets of “The Green Mile” is that it represents, brilliantly the journey of one mile or the length of each of our human destinies that culminates and brings us to the end of our own Green Mile here on Earth. Therefore “The Green Mile” that everyone is given as their road and their path of destiny is locked into one of the most powerful spiritual mysteries known. (See Link)

The human definition of The Green Mile

The Precession of the equinoxes =  25,920 yrs = (360° rotation)

If the sky is divided into 12 constellations:

(25,920 / 12 = 2,160)

(Note: 6 x 10 x 6 = 360 and 360 x 6 = 2,160)

A New sign appears on the horizon each 2,160 yrs (30°)

Note: (2 x 2,160 or 12 x 360 = 4,320 yrs)

 Therefore to move 1° on the horizon = 72 yrs. (approx).

Rudolf Steiner and THE GREEN MILE (see link)

“Something, therefore, breathes within us, yet it is another kind of breathing, it is something which rises and falls … it breathes within us in the course of one day, in the same way in which something breathes within us during the 18th part of a minute. Something breathes within us in the course of one day. Let us now see if that which breathes within us in the course of one day, if the rising and falling of our etheric body, which thus breathes within us, also sets forth something which resembles a circular movement, a return to a point of departure. In that case, we would have to investigate what 25,920 days really are. For 25,920 of these breaths, in which the etheric rises and falls, would have to correspond, in their rise and fall, to a reproduction of the platonic year. Just as one day corresponds to 25,920 respirations, so 25,920 days should also correspond to something in human life. How many years are 25, 920 days? Let us see.

Let us take the year with an average of 365¼ days, let us make a division and then we shall obtain as a result of the division

25,920 ÷ 365.25 = about 71

that is to say, about 71 years, which is the average duration of human life. Of course, the human being has his freedom and frequently he may grow much older. But you know that the patriarchal age is indicated as 70 years. Thus you have the duration of human life equal to 25,920 days, 25,920 of such great breaths! Once more, we obtain a cycle which reproduces microcosmically in a wonderful way the macrocosmic happenings. Thus we may say: If we live one day, we reproduce the platonic world-year with our 25,920 respirations; if we live 71 years, we again reproduce the platonic year with 25,920 great breaths, with the rising and falling pertaining to our waking up and our falling asleep.”

THE MIRACLE OF THE MOUSE(see link)

A mouse as a living life form can be defined and quantified clearly as a tiny creature that has an astral body, an etheric body and a physical body. If we ask ourselves what makes us incapable of understanding reality and understanding the structure of certain miracles we can start with our misunderstanding and failure to understand the tiniest of gods creatures. We are not trained in our most fundamental considerations of reality to grasp the difference between a plant and an animal. A plant has only an etheric and physical body. A well formed hexagonally constructed crystal has only a physical structure but no etheric body and no astral body.

A Mouse has a physical body, a lympthatic or etheric body and it’s limited specialized capacities, are it’s gifts, it’s astral body or nervous system. Of course our blunt education can hardly consider the structure of a mouse and rate the mouse as connected to the specialized etheric life of the earth or rate the mouse to the specialized capacities of the astral life of the earth. The mouse with it’s specialized information and genetic codes are isolated and locked into a specialized form, in one of gods littlest of creatures.

Mice   (CLICK LINK) and rats are mammals with nervous systems (astral body) similar to our own. It’s no secret that they feel pain, fear, loneliness, and joy just as we do. These highly social animals communicate with each other using high-frequency sounds that are inaudible to the human ear. They become emotionally attached to each other, love their families, and easily bond with human guardians(etheric body). Male mice woo mates with high-pitched love songs. Infant rats giggle when they are tickled. Not only do rats express empathy (etheric body) when another rat or a human they know is in distress, they also exhibit altruism, putting themselves in harm’s way rather than allowing another living being to suffer.

More than 100 million mice and rats are killed in U.S. laboratories every year. They are abused in everything from toxicology tests (in which they are slowly poisoned to death) to painful burn experiments to psychological experiments that induce terror, anxiety, depression, and helplessness.

They are deliberately electroshocked in pain studies, are mutilated in experimental surgeries, and have everything from cocaine to methamphetamine pumped into their bodies. They are given cancerous tumors and are injected with human cells in genetic-manipulation experiments.”

The Miracle of the Urinary tract infection(click link)

If I carefully examine the details of the miracles in the film The Green Mile it would be easy for the reader to become distracted. However when I bring these miracles into direct relation to the miracles performed consciously by the Christ while he was in incarnation on the Earth for 3 years, we are faced with a mighty flexing of the capacity of the moral Etheric Life-Spirit, Budhi of the Christ.

Christ gained in strength and FORCE as a human reality on earth by permeating and penetrating and raising the human etheric body forces up to the level of the Life-Spirit and Budhi capacity. Christ, in a fully conscious and step by step, stage by stage magnification, elevation and acceleration of His capacities opened the full operational codes and capacities of the higher Life-Spirit and Budhi phase for each and every human being on Earth. That is why it is important to study what it takes and what it will take and what it took to bring these Etheric Forces to the stage of development we can now study, called Budhi or THE BREAD OF LIFE or Life-Spirit.

When these facts are placed before our souls we cannot relax and make excuses that “The Green Mile” and miracles done by John Coffey are just silly special effects. For what we are tasked to study is how Christ consciously grew in stature and awakened Life-Spirit and Budhi capacities for humanity and how we can observe and study Life-Spirit and Budhi capacities as concrete schooling of our souls and spirits. In pursuing our higher schooling, “The Green Mile” and the character of John Coffey brings us not only to The Luke Jesus Child (see link) but also to the enhanced and accelerated magnification, step by step of the Etheric Forces that Christ developed for the future of humanity.

We cannot gain the objectivity of Christ on Earth or comprehend the status and structure of the human soul and spirit as realities and facts unless we re-awaken the FACTS of the Bible and observe clearly what the Christ was doing within the model of our Human Forms. Christ was slowly accelerating, enlarging, enhancing and elevating the soul level and spirit level phases and plateaus of human experience and planting these immense realities deep into the unfolding potential of every human I AM who has a physical, etheric, astral and I AM.

These phases and stages of the higher enhancement of the etheric body are called Signs and Wonders but these Signs and Wonders reveal the detailed enlargement of the Etheric Capacities that are now part of the Risen Etheric Christ capacities over the whole Earth. However the intensity, the immortal forces we are now faced with in The Risen Etheric Christ, had to be directed and intensified via the I AM of the Christ Being in a step by step, sign by sign, miracle by miracle strengthening which only NOW can we study with clarity and concrete insight.

Christ and the Gathering Immortal forces of Budhi- Life Spirit and the ongoing Living reality of the Risen Etheric Christ (SEE STUDY LINK)

“…let us glance at the Gospel of St. John itself, and describe that momentous document from the point of view of its own value. This Gospel, of which we said yesterday that modern theological criticism (in so far as it is infected by materialism) can come to no satisfactory conclusion concerning it, and is powerless to understand its historical truth, will reveal itself to us, when studied in the light of spiritual science, as one of the most marvelous documents in possession of the human race. It may be said that it is not only one of the greatest religious documents but that of all literary productions — if this profane expression be allowed — it may be accounted as one of the best. Let us now approach the contents of this document from the literary standpoint.

“When we understand it aright and know the true meaning underlying the words, we find it, from the very first chapter, to be one of the most finished productions, as regards style and composition, existing in the world. Of course, something more than a superficial examination is required to detect this. We find immediately, on a casual glance, that the writer — we now know his identity — reckons exactly seven miracles up to the Raising of Lazarus. (The significance of this number seven will be dealt with in the course of the next few days.) Which are the seven miracles or signs?

1. The sign at the marriage at Cana in Galilee.

2. The sign given in the healing of the nobleman’s son.

3. The sign given in the healing of the man 38 years in his infirmity, at the pool at Bethesda.

4. The sign given in the feeding of the five thousand.

5. The sign given in the vision of Christ walking on the water.

6. The sign given in the healing of the man born blind, and finally

7. The greatest of the signs, the initiation of Lazarus — the transformation of Lazarus into the writer of the Gospel of St. John.

“…What further increase in the Christ-power can still be possible? None other than that Christ should approach a human being and awaken in him the bearer of His own impulse, so that this human being becomes a new man, a man permeated by Christ. That is what takes place in the Raising of Lazarus. Here we have yet another increase in the Christ-power. The power of Christ rises from stage to stage!

“Where in the world could we find a lyrical document so magnificently composed? No other writer has produced such a work. Who could do otherwise than bend in reverence before this description of events, rising to a climax from step to step, in so marvelous a way! Considered alone from the standpoint of its artistic composition, the Gospel of St. John moves us to bow our head in reverence before it. Herein everything waxes great from stage to stage and reaches its climax.”

Χριστοφορος -Christophoros

Christusträger

“Christ should approach a human being and awaken in him the bearer of His own impulse, so that this human being becomes a new man, a man permeated by Christ.” Rudolf Steiner

We all wish to assume we are bearers of the Christ Impulse but we certainly don’t wish to study the phases and levels of development that being a Christ-Bearer entails. And that is a problem. Lazarus had earned through many powerful incarnations, the strength and humility to carry some of the highest aspects of the Christ Mystery on the Earth.

There Lazarus was, dead in a Temple Sleep, wrapped up like a Chrysalis, with all the literal realities that are attached to the chrysalis stage of the butterfly, Lazarus was about to become a Christ-Bearer. Not so fast! Not so easy to compare any of us, let alone John Coffey in “The Green Mile” to Lazarus. But in point of fact we do have a Christ-Bearer who was not only Lazarus, but was raised by Christ at the crucial point where the advanced and elevated forces of the Life-Spirit and Budhi– of the Christ, had grown to such an extent that Christ could TRANSFER directly this BREAD OF LIFE, into the higher system of a human being, historically known as Lazarus.

John Coffey is awarded a CHRISTOPHORUS, a St. Christopher medallion at the precise point where John Coffey performs one of the most difficult miracles in the film. John Coffey, under armed guard, cures a cancerous brain tumor in the wife of the warden of the prison. The event of this miracle identifies John Coffey accurately, as far as our studies are concerned, as a Χριστοφορος (Christophoros) meaning a person who has a strong enough Etheric body to bear the Life-Spirit and Budhi forces of the Risen Etheric Christ.

Melinda Moores: I dreamed of you. I dreamed you were wandering in the dark. And so was I. And we found each other. We found each other in the dark.
[reaches out her necklace to him]
Paul Edgecomb: Take it, John. It’s a present.
Melinda Moores: It’s St. Christopher. I want you to have it, Mr. Coffey. And wear it. He’ll keep you safe. Please… Wear it for me.
John Coffey: [leans forward so she can hang it around his neck] Thank you, ma’am.
Melinda Moores: Thank you, John.

First and foremost by accident we stumble into Steiner’s definition “Christ should approach a human being and awaken in him the bearer of His own impulse, so that this human being becomes a new man, a man permeated by Christ.” 

Let us get our meaning exactly. Here is the precise meaning. “When Christ Loves us, He Knows us! He does not just ‘Love’ a glob of faceless Humanity, He actually, perceptibly, wholly and solely, comprehendingly and delightedly Knows who we are every minute of us, being who we are individually.” (Clarification if needed, Click Link)

But this is no fable, no fiction. We have stepped right into the middle of a Christian Rosenkreuz mystery. We have stepped into the middle of the author of the John Gospel and further we have stepped into the middle of the author of Revelation, The Apocalypse of St. John. St. Christopher and the Christophorus is no fable. St. Christopher carried a staff and on his shoulders he is supposed to carry the tiny child, Jesus over the river into incarnation. But when St. Christopher gets to the other-side, he plants his staff, the long branch of a tree, his wooden pole to keep his balance, Christ asks St. Christopher to plant his staff in the ground. At this point the staff, the dead wood, bursts into Etheric Life and leaf and foliage spring from the dead wood.

Now let us be clear about this. Once Lazarus was imbued with the Life-Spirit and Bread of Life, the higher Budhi of the Christ impulse, we have a completely different force which has been bequeathed by Christ through a human being. That human being, Lazarus, cannot die, in the sense of having had the full force of the etheric Life-Spirit of Christ course through him. And we are left with a riddle as history, for good reason, history has kept the identity and the further development of Lazarus/St. John a veiled secret.

Peter asks Jesus about the final fate of the Beloved Disciple. The passage continues as follows:

Jesus answered, “If I want him to remain alive until I return, what is that to you? You must follow me.” Because of this, the rumor spread among the brothers that this disciple would not die. But Jesus did not say that he would not die; he only said, “If I want him to remain alive until I return, what is that to you?”

Now the extended life span of Paul (Tom Hanks) and his little mouse “Mr. Jingles” are left with a problem that part of the Life-Spirit and Budhi directed forces that John Coffey had pulsing through him, DID in effect pass over into Paul the floor supervisor of Block E of the Green Mile, at the time of the dawning of the Etheric Christ Impulse in the World around 1935. The extended Life-Force of both the mouse and the man, which gives a whole new meaning to of Mice and Men.

Both John Steinbeck and Robert Burns who wrote the best laid plans of mice and men and Nobel Prize winning Steinbeck’s novella  “Of Mice and Men” dance together in “The Green Mile”.

But that immortal, budding to life of the dead wood that is part of the Christophorus and St. Christopher medal can only be concretely tracked and understood if we follow the mystery of Christian Rosenkreuz and the SEVEN ROSES that blossom from the Dead Wood of the Cross. (See Link)

Hamburg 3-14-1909

Rudolf Steiner: “The physical body doesn’t belong to us, it’s an optical illusion. It’s formed by streams that go out from Thrones. Imagine brooks that flow together; a whirlpool arises where they meet. Likewise the physical body arises where streams from Thrones come together. The black cross represents the lower animal part of man that must be overcome. The seven red roses must sprout and flower out of it. A beautiful story tells us that when Christ hung on the cross, bees came and drew honey from his bleeding wounds, as from red roses otherwise. The blood’s composition had changed through the sacrifice and had become like the sap of red roses.”

Why has history veiled this secret? Because indeed anyone who learns to carry the Life-Spirit, Budhi, Mana or Spirit-Self and the Atma or Spirit-Man mysteries that Christ succeeded in planting into Earth development, is responsible for carrying the higher mysteries of humanity, the Full Christ Impulse into incarnation, every time they incarnate. That Means that the full Christ impulses are born on the shoulders or in the karma and destiny, and woven into every human being who achieves Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man, they carry the full weight of the entire mission of the stars and the entire mission of humanity and they share the burden of Christ by being truly a CHRIST-BEARER a Christophorus.

John Coffey reveals the agony of facing the thoughts, the astral life and the crimes that humanity continues to produce that impact John Coffey with an intensity none of us who are on the path could claim to bear consciously.

John Coffey: You tell God the Father it was a kindness you done. I know you hurtin’ and worryin’, I can feel it on you, but you oughta quit on it now. Because I want it over and done. I do. I’m tired, boss. Tired of bein’ on the road, lonely as a sparrow in the rain. Tired of not ever having me a buddy to be with, or tell me where we’s coming from or going to, or why. Mostly I’m tired of people being ugly to each other. I’m tired of all the pain I feel and hear in the world everyday. There’s too much of it. It’s like pieces of glass in my head all the time. Can you understand?

Christ and currently Christian Rosenkreuz are the only ones we can study and we know who have experienced the impacts of being a Christophorus. In other words John Coffey is overwhelmed by the forces that he was given to be a Christophorus. But this is merely the tiniest of distant windows compared to what Christ experienced on Earth surrounded by humanity and what anyone will experience who rises through the stages of Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man.

The Schooling of our own Christianity truly must be humbled if we think we know anything about Justice or karma. If we think we know what human suffering is or we plan to quickly ascend to all the gifts of Christ and the Resurrection, while remaining ignorant hypocrites who merely pay lip service to the realities of the Christ Event while here on Earth, we have much to learn.  Yet most of us refuse to lift a finger to study the actual concrete stages of the type of soul development that is required just to achieve carrying the Christ Impulse consciously. We apparently don’t wish to understand the shattering realities of THE FIFTH CHAMBER OF THE HUMAN HEART.

John Coffey is a prime example of what it would be like to carry such a force in our Etheric Body unconsciously. And that should help us understand in all humility the weight of the world that weighs on the shoulders of any individual who earns the right to share the burden and the humility of the full forces of the Christ Impulse and become a Christophorus, a Christusträger.

“The oldest picture of the saint, in the monastery on the Mount Sinai dates from the time of Justinian (527-65). From the Late Greek name Χριστοφορος (Christophoros) meaning “bearing Christ”, derived from Χριστος (Christos) combined with φερω (phero) “to bear, to carry”. Early Christians used it as a metaphorical name, expressing that they carried Christ in their hearts. In the Middle Ages, literal interpretations of the name’s etymology led to legends about a Saint Christopher who carried the young Jesus across a river.”

The Brain Tumor Miracle from “The Green Mile” (See Link)

John Coffey, being a Christ-Bearer, a Christusträger and owning a unique and specialized potent expression of THE BREAD OF LIFE, known as Life-Spirit and Budhi that arises in him as a unique manifestation of the potent forces of the Risen Etheric Christ, appears for our study in one individual example.

Once more it is important to remind ourselves that John Coffey had no interference from a normal precocious, devouring materialistic  intellect, to distract or limit the FULLNESS of his absorption of the Etheric Forces of the Risen Etheric Christ. The very unique simplicity, ignorance, gentleness and innocence of John Coffey allowed for the full blown RISEN ETHERIC CHRIST forces to flow through him without hindrance.

We are looking at a time frame that places John Coffey’s birth well before 1933 when the rise of the Etheric Christ takes place. He achieves his maturity and the full ripeness of his Etheric Forces by 1935 according to the film script.  So “The Green Mile”, as an after thought in history, gives us a window into a rural, unpublicized footnote in history that really brings us to the intimate region of the secrets of a human biography.

A limited set of human biographies experienced what was hidden, kept below the water line of history, which is exactly the problem and the reality of the Resurrection and entire event of Golgotha itself. It was an event that could be intensely denied and historically disputed because in all the Roman World, the most important event in the entire history of Earth and humanity, was isolated and confined to just a few souls who experienced it directly.Those few souls who were impacted by the Christ Event and received powerful immortal changes in their etheric, astral and I AM systems remain subjects of debate, doubt and incredulousness on the part of materialism to this day.

When Aristotle is called forth to testify on behalf of the Risen Etheric Christ and the stages of how the Etheric body develops into Life-Spirit, Budhi and THE BREAD OF LIFE, we are dumbfounded and cannot put the pieces of the puzzle together in our minds to see for ourselves how Aristotle reappears again through the natural science of reincarnation as Rudolf Steiner. Aristotle, the Christ and Michael the Archae had preserved the integrity and diligence that only Aristotle possessed.  We rediscover (SEE LINK)  Aristotle in the individuality of Rudolf Steiner and now, to our astonishment, he is carrying his own higher Spirit-Self development by tackling the most difficult and knotty problems of science and the human spirit. There was no one like Aristotle ever, except Rudolf Steiner (See Link).

The science of the I AM, is what Aristotle/Rudolf Steiner brought with him into incarnation. It is the mystery of every I AM to know and understand what Aristotle/Rudolf Steiner understood when he encountered the Christ in THE PHILOSOPHY OF FREEDOM. Aristotle/Rudolf Steiner could say of the Risen Etheric Christ, “Christ should approach a human being and awaken in him the bearer of His own impulse, so that this human being becomes a new man, a man permeated by Christ.”

AWAKEN IN HIM THE BEARER OF HIS OWN IMPULSE, the impulses and forces that are in secret in each I AM and each human being we encounter, there is the secret intimacy of what stage and what specific life lessons we are drawn to with the potency of our unique I AM.  Nobody knows those secrets but ourselves and the profound reality of the Risen Etheric Christ. A deep and profound intimacy that jolts the foundations of our I AM in such a way that people who are unaware would never notice the difference, but the person who experienced the Christ Event or the John Coffey events would remember and be changed by a FORCE, an actual LIVING FORCE OF ETHERIC LIFE AND NATURE. Such were the early Christians and such were the participants of the events surrounding John Coffey and “The Green Mile”.

The Miracle of Karma Transference and reading of the Etheric Akashic records (Click This Link).

“And Jesus, immediately knowing in himself that virtue had gone out of him, turned him about in the press, and said, Who touched my clothes?

By touch, exactly as the Christ experienced anyone who touched the Christ, embraced the Christ, kissed the Christ, as Judas did (click link), Christ experienced a vast picture of the karmic web of the person in question. John Coffey transfers from the Akashic records, the etheric living vision, to Paul Edgecomb the security supervisor on “The Green Mile”. This vision from the Akashic ethers of the true events of the murder of two innocent little girls, that John Coffey was not guilty of and had no sin imprinted into his etheric karmic record, yet he was tried in the Justice system and found guilty and sentenced to die by electrocution.

We find a precise mirrored problem in the crucifixion and sentencing of Christ, except for one enormous detail. Christ was fully conscious and required the crucifixion in order to be born into the deepest mysteries of Earth. Christ changed His place of residence from Heaven and required the crucifixion to conquer death down to the very physical bones.

The system, we call Justice here on Earth and a jury of TWELVE determined that such a big giant of a human being caught with two poor dead girls in his arms was the murderer. John Coffey was unable to manifest the forces that Christ manifested in the raising of Lazarus to restore the two girls to life. John Coffey was unable to bring the potency of the Life-Spirit and Budhi that he carried in his Etheric Body, strong enough to restore the lives of the two murdered little girls.

For the crime of simply being a Miracle of God, John Coffey was sent to death row, but there he actually touches the arm of the murderer, who has been sent to death row, not for the murder of the little girls, which he secretly did, but for the murder he committed during an armed robbery. No one knows that he also murdered and raped the two little girls that John Coffey is sentenced to die for.  No one but the inner I AM of the murderer and the Christ Being knew what was hidden below the surface of world events that we as humanity call Justice.  Karmic Justice and the transference of the Akashic etheric vision, by touch is one of the higher manifestations of THE FIFTH CHAMBER OF THE HUMAN HEART (see Link).

John Coffey: Take my hand, boss. You see for yourself.

John Coffey: You can’t hide what’s in your heart.

Christ has Akashic etheric vision, even today, in full operation. He saw Peter before the cock crows three times denying he ever knew the Christ. If someone even touched the Christ, because our limited education cannot even fathom it, the Christ was the manifestation of the Etheric Sun forces on Earth. When He walked through the world as a human being, the Karma of humanity and the individual karma amongst the throngs and crowds that clustered around Him were transparent for Him by mere contact.

Any contact brought streams of Karmic, Ahashic vision that allowed Christ to know exactly the ancient destiny of the TWELVE disciples He had chosen and why He had chosen them. The Disciples were  brought into incarnation in the vicinity of the most profound mystery the Earth has ever experienced. With such a higher etheric Akashic karma capacity Christ could identify and choose the Disciples that He, Himself, had tracked and observed through time. This is made clear through (THIS LINK).

John Coffey and the Christ bring to our attention the Akashic and Karmic etheric vision that passes through John Coffey as a capacity in the same manner as it passed through Christ as a capacity, because the reading of the Akashic script of humanity is one of the higher capacities all humanity will attain to. All we are required to do is to understand the higher scaffolding of the human structure and system with the meticulousness of Aristotle.

We are given an example of all that Aristotle had achieved and all that he brought with him as capacities in the recent incarnation of Aristotle in the individuality of Rudolf Steiner. Therefore when we can approach the dissected clarity of the miracles of the Bible and the miracles invested in the structure of the human being, because we are looking at how the scientist Aristotle was privileged to bring his new capacities to the service of the immense mysteries of the Christ Event. The personality and destiny of Rudolf Steiner resurrects the capacities of Aristotle but with marvelous new gifts that are the fruit of his own I AM.

Steiner was able to do what no other before him, save St. John could do, Rudolf Steiner and Christian Rosenkreuz are both Christ Carriers, Christ-Bearers, Christusträger, They are conscious Christophorus, Christ Riders on the Storm. With Rudolf Steiner we can look to the magnificent forces Aristotle cultivated which now gives all of us the opportunity to comprehend the distinctive scaffolding and structure of the human soul and spirit from our physical bodies to the higher systems that grows from the deep roots of our physical and etheric, astral and I AM towards the lofty goals of Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man that Christ achieved for the benefit of humanity.

This akashic transference that we see in the touch of John Coffey is the same transference that Christ experienced as potent Etheric Forces that passed through Him, that were a manifestation of Him, that were conscious capacities Christ distilled from our own Etheric structures. Christ accelerated and hyper-intensified the foundations of our Etheric Bodies and brought them to their most efficient and potent functioning.

Christ, the walking living miracle, looked, talked, walked like other human beings, but from within the foundational strata of our physical, etheric (lymphatic), astral (nervous system) and I Am (blood potency) Christ magnified and intensified and brought to fruition, flowering and potency, the higher SEEDS nested in our lower bodies. Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man were the GERMINAL SEEDS that were brought to fruition, magnified and hyper-intensified  by a God who walked in a human form.

Rudolf Steiner – THE LUKE JESUS BODY – and John Coffey (see Link)

“People do not generally notice the subtler implications concealed behind many narratives in the Gospels, nor realize that reference is often being made to illnesses of a quite different character when, for example, these are described in the passage in St. Luke’s Gospel telling of the healing of one sick of the palsy. (Luke V, 17–26). ‘The healing of one paralysed’ would be the correct rendering, for the Greek text here has the word ‘paralelymenos’, denoting one whose limbs are paralysed. It was still known in those times that these forms of illness are due to qualities of the etheric body. When it is said that Christ Jesus healed those who were paralysed, this shows that by the power of his Individuality, effects were produced not only in astral bodies but in etheric bodies too, so that it was possible for men with defects in the etheric body also to be healed. Precisely when Christ speaks of ‘deeper sin’ — sin which reaches into the etheric body — He uses a particular expression, clearly indicating that the spiritual factor causing the illness must first be removed. He does not immediately say to the paralysed man: “Stand up and walk!” but concerns Himself with the cause that is penetrating as illness into the etheric body, and says: “Thy sins are forgiven thee!” — meaning that the sin which had eaten its way right into the etheric body must first be expelled. Ordinary biblical research does not enter into these fine distinctions; it does not perceive that what is here being shown is that this Individuality had an influence upon the secrets of the astral body and the etheric body — even upon those of the physical body.

“Why in this connection do we speak of the secrets of the physical body as though they were the highest? In outer life itself the effect made by one astral body upon another is quite obvious. You can, for example, wound a man by a word charged with hatred. Something then takes place in his astral body; he hears the word and suffers pain in his astral body. That is an example of mutual action between one astral body and another. Mutual action between one etheric body and another is far more deeply hidden; this involves delicate influences which play from man to man but are never perceived to-day. The most deeply hidden of all are the influences which reach the physical body, because owing to its dense materiality it conceals the working of the spiritual most completely. In the Gospel of St. Luke, however, we are also to be shown that Christ Jesus has power over the physical body. Here we come to a passage that would be quite incomprehensible to materialistic thinkers. It is as well that these lectures are being attended only by people who have some knowledge of spiritual science, for if by chance someone were to come in from the street, what is being said to-day would seem to him pure lunacy, even if he considered the rest only half or quarter mad!

“Christ Jesus shows that He is able to see into the very depths of the physical corporeality and to work into it. This is revealed by the fact that His power is also able to have a healing effect upon illnesses rooted in the physical body. But for this to be possible there must be knowledge of the mysterious effects working from the physical body of one human being upon the physical body of another. When it is a matter of working spiritually, man cannot be regarded as a being enclosed in his skin. It has often been said that our finger is wiser than we are ourselves. Our finger knows that the blood can flow through it only if the blood is circulating normally through the whole body; our finger knows that it would wither away if it were severed from the rest of the organism. So too, if he would understand the conditions relating to the physical body, man must know that in respect of his physical organism he belongs to humanity as a whole, that influences are continually passing from one human being to another, and that he can in no way separate his physical health as an individual from the health of the whole of humanity. This principle will be admitted to-day in respect of the coarser influences but not in respect of the finer, because people cannot know the facts. In the following passage from the eighth chapter of St. Luke’s Gospel it is the finer, more delicate influences that are indicated.

“And it came to pass, that, when Jesus was returned, the people gladly received him: for they were all waiting for him. And behold, there came a man named Jairus, and he was a ruler of the synagogue: and he fell down at Jesus’ feet, and besought him that he would come into his house: For he had one only daughter, about twelve years of age, and she lay a-dying. But as he went the people thronged him. And a woman having an issue of blood twelve years, which had spent all her living upon physicians, neither could be healed of any, came behind him, and touched the border of his garment: and immediately her issue of blood stanched.“

“How can the twelve-year-old daughter of Jairus possibly be healed, for she is at the very point of death? This can only be understood if we know that the girl’s physical illness was connected with another phenomenon in another person, and that she cannot be healed independently of that other phenomenon. When this, child, now twelve years old, was born, a certain connection existed with another personality — a connection deeply grounded in Karma. Hence we are told that a woman who had suffered from a certain illness for twelve years, passed behind Christ and touched the border of His garment (CLICK LINK). Why is this woman mentioned here? It is because she was connected karmically with Jairus’ child! This twelve-year-old girl and the woman who had suffered for twelve years were deeply connected! And it is not without reason that a secret of number is indicated here: the woman with an illness suffered for twelve years approaches Jesus and is healed — and only now could He enter the house of Jairus (CLICK LINK) and heal the twelve-year-old girl who was believed to be already dead.

“Depths as great as these must be explored in order to understand the Karma that weaves between one human being and another! Then we can perceive the third way in which Christ worked — namely, upon the whole human organism. This must be especially borne in mind when we are considering the higher effects produced by Christ as presented in the Gospel of St. Luke.”

ATMA, the Breath of Life and the Inner Etheric Life-Spirit of the Word of Life and the Bread of Life

In the example of John Coffey, human imagination and creativity have chosen to visualize how John Coffey could inhale the poison in the human soul,  or cure it by touch or a gentle but firm grip. But when a healing requires even more strident force, John Coffey inhaled the tumor causing karma and internal parasites of disease and attempted, but failed in the attempt, to digest, and use his own Life-Spirit gift to digest and take on the burden himself. Now that is the peculiar problem of the karma we incur. It cannot so easily be lifted off our shoulders. It may be that two individuals are deeply connected and the tumor in the wife of the warden at the prison had something very vital to do with the karma of Percy Wetmore who was also karmically connected to the prison system. In other words the Lord of Karma (See Link) intervened.

Far, far into the distant future a Maitreya Buddha will consciously use the Word and the Breath for actually implanting and awakening the deeper seeds of humanities latent and potent spirituality. Our ability to be receptive to the Word and Breath, the ATMA forces of the Maitreya Buddha truly depends on what we do now as Biodynamic farmers. Our receptivity depends on what we do now in terms of grasping and infusing ourselves with Eurythmy. Our receptivity in the future depends on how we breathed life into our Lesson Plans as Waldorf Teachers. Our receptivity to the future Maitreya Buddha forces of ATMA, the breath and the Word will depend on our current social conscience our martyrdom’s, like John Lennon, Martin Luther King Jr. and Gandhi and countless others like Rachel Corrie and those who were guiltless in their innocence and guiltless and accused, murdered or tortured for lies or failures in the courts and Justice systems or those put to death under the lethal agenda of Ahriman.

Many of those shall surely hear the word of the coming Maitreya Buddha who shall reveal through the potent moral and Life-Spirit forces operating through her/him, a direct moral infusion via the WORD into the Etheric Life forces of the Soul and Spirit, into the very foundations of the conscience of the human etheric body. Our constant gnawing question is, will those Words and Breath of Life, reach with the Bread of Life, the Budhi and Life-Spirit we all carry in us and that are hinted at through John Coffey, but were achieved for all of humanity through the Destiny, Death and Resurrection of the Risen Etheric Christ? In other words, will human beings hear it?

Rudolf Steiner the Maitreya Buddha and the Life-Spirit of the Word

“The Bodhisattva who once lived as Jeshu ben Pandira comes down to the Earth again and again in a human body and will continue to do so in order to fulfil the rest of his task and particular mission which cannot, as yet, be completed. Although its consummation can already be foreseen by clairvoyance, there exists no larynx capable of producing the sounds of the speech that will be uttered when this Bodhisattva rises to the rank of Buddha. In agreement with oriental occultism, therefore, it can be said: 5,000 years after Gautama Buddha, that is to say, towards the end of the next 3,000 years, the Bodhisattva who is his successor will become Buddha. But as it is his mission to prepare human beings for the epoch connected paramountly with the development of true morality, when, in the future, he becomes Buddha, the words of his speech will contain the magic power of the Good. For thousands of years, therefore, oriental tradition has predicted: Maitreya Buddha, the Buddha who is to come, will be a Bringer of the Good by way of the word. He will then be able to teach men of the real nature of the Christ Impulse and in that age the Buddha stream and the Christ stream will flow into one. Only so can the Christ Mystery be truly understood. So mighty and all-pervading was the Impulse poured into the evolution of mankind that its waves surge onwards into future epochs. In the fourth epoch of post-Atlantean civilisation this Impulse was made manifest in the incarnation of Christ in a human, physical body. And we are now going forward to an epoch when the Impulse will manifest in such a way that human beings will behold the Christ on the astral plane as an Ether Form.”

Concluding Observations of the Super-Physical blood of Christ and the Weight of the World in the Logos of the Christ

“Simon of Cyrene, having done all he was needed to do, retreated slowly with faltering steps and swimming brain, conscious only of one thing, that the blood of the Victim had stained his breast, and that the stain seemed to burn his flesh like fire. He folded his garment over it to hide it, as though it were a magic talisman which must for safety’s sake be well concealed; it gave him pain as much as if he had himself been wounded, and yet it was a pang that thrilled and warmed his soul!”

It is a good thing that John Coffey and the blood of John Coffey disappeared, died and was lost to us. Science today would have taken John Coffey’s and Christ’s Blood and attempted to make genetic mutant Ahrimanic Super-Heros. Today in our 21st century it is all about Superheros and what can be combined in the lab, but not about the depth of moral development it requires, the incarnations of preparation, the suffering, tragedies and set backs of human spiritual development, that humbles the whole human soul. Nothing but lip service is offered to our sense of humility. We are perfect, clever, cunning and so what if we have a few urges, we’re only human aren’t we? We can achieve immortal powers without the Etheric Christ, we can bypass the higher evolution of our humanity and make our current arrogance eternal.

Today we look to a vial, the VIALS OF WRATH, perhaps a glowing, green phosphorescent vial that can be used as an injection that bypasses even a hint of any consideration of the moral, etheric and astral development of our I AM. Science sickens with perversion and shrivels like a spider to a flame when our education and thinking turns to the reality of the Risen Etheric Christ in our midst. And here is the unforseen and unwanted horror in not transforming our lower impulses and getting full mastery of our lower impulses before we go rushing into Ahrimanic genetic mutations.

Our lower instincts, that we have not transformed will become enhanced beasts, diseases and monsters that will grow into our own mutations because we brought outside doping into what should be part of higher inner development that slowly gains mastery over our instincts, impulses and pathological and psychopathic desires.

As long as people are kept in the dark of the path taken by the Risen Etheric Christ in our midst, we will continue to degenerate our Etheric and enhance our fallen astral cravings, until they become morbid and horrific beasts, plagues and complete corruption of the Sun Logos forces of the Etheric Christ.

Forced Evolutionary Virus (FEV)

“…many of his test subjects were turning into giant brutes with the intelligence of a child, if they survived the mutational process at all. However, a rare few test subjects became the meta-humans known colloquially as Super Mutants. Immune to both disease and ionizing radiation and blessed with exceptional strength, intelligence, and endurance, Super Mutants were superior to pure-strain humans in every way. They also possessed the exceptionally long life common to those individuals infected with FEV, as well as (unbeknownst to Grey at the time) total sterility. Grey – who now called himself the Master – had long lamented the needless destruction of human civilization caused by the final nuclear holocaust of the Great War. In his warped state, he decided that he would have to force humanity to evolve beyond its own destructive impulses. If everyone could be as perfect as his Super Mutants, there would no longer be any reason for human conflict and the misery it wrought. Those who could not evolve along the lines the Master desired would have to die.”

There is no discussion of being a Christ Bearer, a Christophorus and a Christ-Carrier. It is a time rather for the vials of wrath and experimentation into the mystery of the Hulk or other black science genetic experiments that are not anywhere near fiction but are taking place today in secret military labs, where vials of wrath, of the perfect soldier, the perfect killing machine, the perfect plague, the perfect virus, are all being developed without even a hint, that we all have an Etheric Body, that we all have an astral body, that most of us have an I AM, but for certain we all have a physical body with a chromosome and genetic foundation that can be utterly destroyed and deformed for generations due to nuclear radiation, mutation and Ahriman’s Forced Evolutionary Virus goals.

Our military is funding massive secret projects to combine the DNA of spiders and goats and mixing nightmarish combinations of genetic material with our human genes. All in the service of the Vials of Wrath.  Monsanto has invaded nature and has begun altering the very Etheric structural foundations that the Christ used, as the Sun Logos, to bring to life the germinal seeds of Spirit-Self, Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man.

Christ brought these capacities to the highest pitch of moral perfection that nature and human nature could provide.  Atma, Spirit-Man, the Resurrected Etheric Christ can consciously assemble Himself into a semblance of solid matter or encompass and penetrate the intimate karma and destiny of all of humanity over the entire Earth.

Humanity doesn’t want a Super-Hero in the form of the Resurrected Etheric Christ that is operative as an actual Force of Life, Health, Goodness. Humanity wants an unstoppable military Super-Man who is unbeatable, unaffected by radioactivity, virus, death, or goodness. Something that can be programmed to take orders and be of service to the Ahrimanic Imagination of the Super Hero that appeals to the selfish foundations of human egotism.

When pondering the story of the crucifixion of Jesus Christ which characters come to mind? Obviously we think of Jesus, Pontius Pilate, Peter, Mary, and Judas or possibly even Barabbas the criminal released to the crowd. However, the one man that is usually forgotten is Simon of Cyrene the man who carried the cross for Jesus. He is mentioned in all four Gospels yet his story is only a verse long in each. Mark 15:21 “A certain man from Cyrene, Simon… was passing by on his way in from the country and they forced him to carry the cross.”

“Barabbas. A dream of the world’s tragedy”  BY MARIE CORELLI

“Simon of Cyrene carrying the Cross looked up startled and pained by the discordant roar. For he had been lost in a dream. Unconscious of the weight he bore, he had seemed to himself to walk on air. He had spoken no word, though many around him had mocked him and striven to provoke him by insolent jests and jeers, — he was afraid to utter a sound lest he should disturb and dispel the strange and delicious emotion he experienced, — emotion which he could not explain, but which kept him in a state of bewildered wonderment and ecstasy.

“There was music everywhere about him, — high above the mutterings and murmurings of the populace, he heard mysterious throbs of melody as of harps struck by the air, — the hard stones of the road were soft as velvet to his sandalled feet, — the Cross he carried seemed scented with the myrtle and the rose, — and there was no more weight in it than in a gathered palm-leaf plucked as a symbol of victory.

“He remembered how in his youth he had once carried the baby son of a king on his shoulders down one of the Cyrenian hills to the edge of the sea, — and the child, pleased with the swiftness and contentment of its journey, had waved aloft, a branch of vine in sign of triumph and joy. The burden of the Cross was no heavier than that of the laughing child and tossing vine.”

“But now, — now the blissful journey must end, the rude cries of the savage multitude aroused him from his reverie, the harp-like melodies around him rippled away into minor echoes of deep sadness, and as his eyes beheld the hill of Calvary, he, for the first time since he began his march, felt weary unto death.

“He had never in all his years of life known such happiness as while carrying the Cross of Him who was soon to be nailed upon it; but now the time had come when he must lay it down, and take up the far more weighty burdens of the world and its low material claims. Why not die here, he thought vaguely, with the Man whose radiant head gleamed before him like the sun in heaven? Surely it would be well, since here, at Calvary, life seemed to have a sweet and fitting end !

“He was only a barbarian, uninstructed and ignorant of heavenly things, he could not analyze what he felt or reason out his unfamiliar sensations, but some singular change had been wrought in him, since he lifted up the Cross, thus much he knew, thus much he realized, the rest was mere wonder and worship.”

“The multitude had formed into a complete ring, circling unbroken round the crest of Calvary, while the soldiery had divided into two lines, one keeping to the right, the other to the left. At a signal from the centurion, Simon of Cyrene laid down with tender and lingering reluctance the great Cross he had so lightly carried, and as he did so, the Man of Nazareth, moving tranquilly to the spot indicated to Him by His guards, took up His position beside the intended instrument of His death, and there waited patiently for the accomplishment of His fate.

“Lend us thy brawny arms a minute’s space, thou art made in a giant’s shape, and should’st have a giant’s .force withal. An’ thou wilt not” he added in a lower tone” we must use greater roughness.”

“Simon hesitated, then, as if inwardly compelled, advanced submissively to the foot of the Cross. His eyes were cast down, and he bit his lips to hide their nervous trembling. “Lift ye all together the upper beams’ ‘he said softly to the executioners, hushing his voice like one who speaks in rapture or in reverence” I will support the end.”

“They stared amazedly, he was voluntarily choosing the greater weight which would inevitably be his to bear directly the Cross was raised. But they offered no opposition. Stronger than any lion he was known to be, let him test his strength now, for here was his opportunity. So they thought as they went in the direction he indicated, three men to the right and three to the left.

“The excitement of the people was now intense, so passionately absorbed indeed had it become that none seemed to be aware of a singular circumstance that with each moment grew more pronounced and evident, this was the solemn spreading of a semi darkness which, like advancing twilight, began gradually to blot out all the brilliant blue of the afternoon skies.

“It came on stealthily and almost imperceptibly, but the crowd saw nothing as yet, nothing but the huge bronzed figure of Simon stooping to lift the Crucified. Tenderly, and with a strange air of humiliation, the rough featured black browed Cyrenian laid hands upon the Cross once more, the Cross he had so lightly borne to Calvary, and grasping it firmly, drew it up, up by slow and sure degrees, till the pierced and bleeding feet of the Christ came close against his straining breast, inch by inch, with panting breath and an ardent force that was more like love than cruelty, he lifted it higher and higher from the ground, the executioners holding and guiding the transverse beams upward till these were beyond their reach, and Simon alone, with wildly beating heart and muscles stretched nigh to breaking, supported for one lightning instant the world’s Redeemer in his arms!

“He staggered and groaned, the blood rushed to his face and the veins in his forehead swelled, but he held his ground for that one terrible moment, then, a dozen men rushed excitedly to his assistance, and with their aid, the great Cross, with the greatest Love transfixed upon it, was thrust into the deep socket dug for its reception on the summit of the hill.

“It fell to with a thudding reverberation as though its end had struck the very center of the earth, and trembling to and fro for a few seconds like a tree shaken by a storm-wind, was soon perfectly still, fixed steadily upright between the two already crucified thieves, who though dying fast, were not yet dead.

“Salvation’s Symbol stood declared! and Simon of Cyrene, having done all he was needed to do, retreated slowly with faltering steps and swimming brain, conscious only of one thing, that the blood of the Victim had stained his breast, and that the stain seemed to burn his flesh like fire. He folded his garment over it to hide it, as though it were a magic talisman which must for safety’s sake be well concealed; it gave him pain as much as if he had himself been wounded, and yet it was a pang that thrilled and warmed his soul!

“He saw nothing, the earth appeared to eddy round him like a wave, but he stumbled on blindly, heedless of whither he went and forcing his way through the crowd that gaped at him in wonderment, the while he muttered from time to time under his breath the words of the inscription above the head of the Divine Martyr, ” Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews!”

St. John’s letter to the church of Philadelphia (Click Link)

“If you realize that justice should prevail, that justice should live, if you realize that humankind cannot live without the beautiful and the good, then you are on the way to develop budhi. If higher things have become your second nature, if your soul is fully permeated with enthusiasm for the beautiful and the true, then you are on the path to budhi. Budhi takes its substance from the realm of feelings; and atma from the realm of the will.”

SIXTH LETTER –  “The sixth letter must be addressed to a community where budhi is especially cultivated. What does that mean? If manas is especially cultivated, and if the human being has become a knower, then what we previously knew will pass over into our living feelings; it becomes for us a natural, given, feeling. It becomes a passion for us. If you realize that justice should prevail, that justice should live, if you realize that humankind cannot live without the beautiful and the good, then you are on the way to develop budhi. If higher things have become your second nature, if your soul is fully permeated with enthusiasm for the beautiful and the true, then you are on the path to budhi. Budhi takes its substance from the realm of feelings; and atma from the realm of the will. And when humankind finally reaches the point where it has made enthusiasm for the good into a reality, then what is called the Christian ideal of brotherhood will have appeared.

This sixth territory can receive its name only from the ideal of brotherhood, and “Philadelphia” is the city of brotherly love. If you read the relevant passage you will see the city described this way: “I know your works. Behold, I set before you an open door, which no one is able to shut; I know that you have but little power, and yet you have kept my word and have not denied my name.” (Rev. 3:8) They did not deny the name that comes from fraternal duty.”

Dick Cheney, Judas and The Etheric Christ (part I) by Bradford Riley

Rudolf Steiner

“Who betrayed the Christ? He who had the 30 pieces of silver, he who is the representative of material possessions. At the beginning of the Christian era, the Divine Spirit descended. The Christ came to heal this vale of Earth and those who do not think that they themselves are called upon to assist in bringing a different age to birth, violate their deepest responsibility.

For 2000 years man had to be educated. Judas of Kariot was destined to bring the sacrifice, to deliver up the Christ to the material forces of existence, Because humanity followed the 30 pieces of silver, Christ vanished — passed away to the astral plane. The task of Christianity through 2000 years is pictured in the betrayal by Judas. But a different task stands before Christianity to-day.”

We wish to examine two specific betrayals that lead to two different yet specific results. With the Christ Event we have a very specific individual who effectively insured the Death and Resurrection of Christ through his act of betrayal (30 pieces of Silver). In a radically different form of betrayal, we have specific individuals whose aim is to prepare for the arrival of the incarnation of Ahriman.

The betrayals involved with the coming incarnation of Ahriman, reveal cutting edge prophets that range all the way back to Caiaphas and all the way up to the very singular efforts of Dick Cheney and his active free deeds that betray the entire mission of the Tenth Hierarchy.

Yet on the other hand, without Dick Cheney’s aggressive betrayal of The Tenth Hierarchy and humanity the incarnation of Ahriman as a savior and fabricator of counterfeit etheric bodies, counterfeit nature and a vast counterfeit forgery of spiritual life, slowly developed in order to eclipse the deeds of the Etheric Christ, would hardly have been possible.

With Judas and his relation to the entire Mystery of Golgotha we shall fill in gaps in our understanding of just how Judas himself was prepared and given the task to experience the full weight, the astonishing impact of the force of world historical shock of betraying a Divine Being. It is a hard, hard destiny to be the most despised (The Who -Behind Blue Eyes), tormented, rejected, hated and ridiculed human spirit in history. And here in lies where our psychological and pathological limitations encounters the shattering foundations of REAL WORLD events.

Rudolf Steiner

“It is extremely interesting to follow the soul-development of those whom Christ Jesus gathered around Him; the Twelve whom He particularly called to be His own, who, in all their simplicity, as we might say, passed in the grandest way through the development which, as I tried to show you yesterday, is gained by human souls in widely varied incarnations.

“A man must first become accustomed to being a specific individuality. This he cannot easily do when he is transferred from the element of the nation in which his soul had taken root into a condition of being dependent upon himself alone. The Twelve were deeply rooted in a nationality which had constituted itself in the grandest form. They stood there as if they were naked souls, simple souls, when Christ found them again. There had been a quite abnormal interval between their incarnations.

“The gaze of Christ Jesus could rest upon the Twelve, the reincarnated souls of those who had been the seven sons of the Maccabean and the five sons of Mattathias, Judas and his brothers; it was of these that the apostolate was formed. They were thrown into the element of fishermen and simple folk. But at a time when the Jewish element had reached its culminating point they had been permeated by the consciousness that this element was then at the peak of its strength, but strength only — whereas, when the group formed itself around Christ, this element appeared in individualized form.

“We might conceive that someone who was a complete unbeliever might look upon the appearance of the seven and the five at the end of the Old Testament, and their reappearance at the beginning of the New Testament, as nothing but an artistic progression. If we take it as a purely artistic composition, we may be moved by its simplicity and the artistic greatness of the Bible, quite apart from the fact that the Twelve are the five sons of Mattathias and the seven sons of the Maccabean mother. And we must learn to take the Bible also as a work of art. Then only shall we develop a feeling for the artistic element in it, and acquire a feeling for the realities from which it springs.

“Now perhaps your attention may be called to something else. Among the five sons of Mattathias is one who is already called Judas in the Old Testament. He was the one who at that time fought more bravely than all the others for his own people. In his whole soul he was dedicated to his people, and it was he who was successful in forming an alliance with the Romans against King Antiochus of Syria (I Maccabees, Chap. 8).

“This Judas is the same who later had to undergo the test of the betrayal, because he who was most intimately bound up with the old specifically Hebrew element, could not at once find the transition into the Christian element, needing the severe testing of the betrayal.

“Again, if we look at the purely artistic aspect, how wonderfully do the two figures stand out: the grand figure of the Judas in the last chapters of the Old Testament and the Judas of the New Testament. It is remarkable that in this symptomatic process, the Judas of the Old Testament concluded an alliance with the Romans, prefiguring all that happened later, namely the path that Christianity took through the Roman Empire, so that it could enter into the world.

“If I could add to this something that can also be known but that cannot be given in a lecture to an audience as large as this, you would see that it was precisely through a later reincarnation of Judas that the fusion of the Roman with the Christian element occurred.”

Every single human I AM is a specific and potent study in human evolution and behavior. Our usual limping, stumbling and superficial diagnosis of political as well as spiritual events in human history, remain simplistic and weaken the entire basis of human insight. Maturity only begins when we consider the I AM of each human individuality and place their destiny in depth and on a solid framework. Both Judas and Dick Cheney make for unique studies and comparisons.

Our chief dilemma in drawing such a comparison is that we have hardly ever reviewed the roots of the I AM of Judas and discovered cohesively some of the potent and shattering components of  both his deed at the Christ Event and what he endured after death, in the spiritual world from that deed and further what became of such an individual when he was once more called into incarnation.

Then saith one of his disciples, Judas Iscariot

“An early Gnostic sect argued that Judas was actually an enlightened soul, who realized that the betrayal was part of God’s master plan to save humanity by having his son crucified. So Judas, being the big man that he was, decided he could live with his soiled place in posterity if it meant everyone got to go to heaven.”

How had Judas changed? What was his death like? What had he endured after death? What were the fruits of his deed that guaranteed the Resurrection and the full events of The Mystery of Golgotha? Was he written out of Earth Evolution? Did his role in the Christ Event change Judas? But my approach is not going to be the usual well trodden, comfortable paths, but rather an expanded update from the Michael School itself.

My approach including Dick Cheney and Judas is not to condemn Judas or Dick Cheney. I shall make a comparison between the Christ Event and the coming incarnation of Ahriman. Both events had to be prepared and some very, very important work had to be done by humanity in order to prepare for these events.

“The astral body works as the enemy of the physical body and sinfulness, wrong-doing, are thereby evoked in the physical body. It was necessary for the astral body to descend and adapt itself to the physical body during the course of the last 2000 years. The Christ, too, had to descend and to be betrayed. He had to use the means whereby He could best render service to the physical body. The passions had to pour over physical life. Judas with the money-bag had to fulfill his function in order that harmony with the physical world might eventually be established.

“But the astral body has not united itself with the material world without being punished; it has sunk in the physical world. Just as human beings with their astral bodies live in the physical body, so do higher beings live with their higher spirit-bodies, in an astral body, and they can put this astral body to perverted use, just as man is able to do in the physical body. Diabolus — the Demons — took possession of Judas. This is a real fact. Judas fulfilled the function whereby the astral body was led downwards, but now we must liberate ourselves from Judas.” Rudolf Steiner

So now let us penetrate deeper into the character and life of Judas.  We know that Judas experienced the impact of having done a deed that brought the entire dark brotherhood, the black lodge that has been set into the karma of the Earth, that the Tenth Hierarchy, to have freedom must meet the full impact of the organized intent that opposes the LIGHT OF THE WORLD.  Christ came to fully penetrate behind enemy lines down into the very core of darkness. To get there Christ as the light certainly couldn’t betray Himself.

Through Judas, one of the key disciples, the Christ Sun radiated, transformed and penetrated deep into the etheric bodies and astral bodies of the disciples. Christ came to penetrate behind Ahriman’s wall of death. All that the coming Ahrimanic incarnation will bring had to be checked by Christ through the deed of Judas. Judas was key to the Hebrew people and the Ahrimanic core of  the priesthood in Caiaphas. Judas had the karma of penetrating with the Christ impulse down to the core of a super-power, Rome. Without Judas the entire political and historical events of Golgotha would not have reverberated down into the foundations of Rome.

When we follow the later incarnation of Judas, which we shall, we see how the Roman church, how the entire foundations of the Church itself arises out of Rome, out of the catacombs and bursts forth crashes the Roman Empire in favor of Christianity. All because of Judas. Penetrating behind enemy lines, to death, to betrayal into the very dark chamber of Ahrimanic thought and Black Lodge brotherhoods where humanities, each and every single human beings double and shadows are attached to the most vile corruptions of truth, brings the Etheric Christ ever deeper and deeper under the skin of the dragon.

It is through understanding the path of Judas that we can comprehend the preparations for the Incarnation of Ahriman that reveal the karmic chain of events from THIRTY PIECES OF SILVER and Caiaphas and the immense Economic Global enslavement and collapse that links hundreds of thousands of Judas deeds to corporate and military betrayals, Monsanto, Pharmaceuticals, CDC, vaccinations and Ahriman’s full intent on creating a counterfeit Etheric Body for humanity and manufacturing a counterfeit and severed nature to stand against the Etheric Christ.

Christ needed the chain of events and the karma of Caiaphas to Judas and Christ also needed the relationship of Lazarus-John to Caiaphas in order to have the White Lodge Brotherhood of Grail Initiates face in freedom and clarity the Black Lodge forces of Caiaphas. These potent karmic and destiny keys are the answer to the riddle of the battle between the Etheric Christ and Ahriman.

Both the White Lodge of humanity and the Black Lodge of the Caiaphas school are fixed in the laws of the Logos. That means that the Tenth Hierarchy is placed in the world with a Physical body, Etheric body, Astral body and I AM. The Black Lodge uses coercion, deception, torture, propaganda and lies to corrupt the etheric bodies, astral bodies and the I AM of humanity.

The Caiaphas Dilemma

A long while back some of us in Spiritual Science had a lengthy discussion over the Caiaphas dilemma. If you check out the link and scroll down to the posts marked The Caiaphas dilemma, it was back in this time frame that certain connections started to take shape in my mind’s eye.

“In John’s Gospel, Chapter 11, we read:

So the chief priests and the Pharisees gathered the council, and said, “What are we to do? For this man performs many signs. If we let him go on thus, every one will believe in him, and the Romans will come and destroy both our holy place and our nation.” But one of them, Caiaphas, who was high priest that year, said to them, “You know nothing at all; you do not understand that it is expedient for you that one man should die for the people, and that the whole nation should not perish.”

The Caiaphas Principle — “do whatever it takes” — is the classic expression of consequentialism, the wicked idea that the end justifies the means.”

The White Lodge, via Judas, Lazarus/John, Christian Rosenkreutz, the Arche Michael and the Etheric Christ preserve and protect human freedom and pave the way for our higher spirit bodies, SPIRIT-SELF – LIFE-SPIRIT  – and SPIRIT-MAN, humanities future. Ahrimanic Black Lodge brotherhoods are opposed to the unfolding of any higher capacities of The Tenth Hierarchy and are intent on a MATRIX subversion of all potentials latent in the Tenth Hierarchy.

Ahrimanic forces wish to freeze the development of humanity and contain it, suffocate it and lock it into the parasitical region of the Intellectual Soul. The sleepers and comatose world of the Matrix is the IMAGINATION Ahriman is working from. The time frame of the Matrix series around 1999 and the time frame of Dick Cheney introducing the PNAC (Project for a New American Century) along with the other designers and signers within the time frame of 1998 and Zbigniew Brzezinski’s book published in 1997 were all part of the grand plan of scooping up together in a mighty thrust, the formulations and intentions, the battle plans for the incarnation of the Ahrimanic Savior.

The date of the surge of those historical waves of intense black lodge servants, who were given their marching orders to prepare the way for the coming of the Ahrimanic Savior, were sent in to get humanity and the globe into a position of enslavement, lies and deceptions of the grandest dimensions (Click Link Here).

The entire THIRTY PIECES OF SILVER financial world and all the different Archangel nationalities and currencies were to be dragged into a rigged global catastrophe. Finances, Wars, plagues and whole hosts of Genetically Modified nature and a new improved Ahrimanically controlled etheric body were in the works. Humanity was to be brought to their knees so that the Tenth Hierarchy would forfeit willingly their higher potentials and willingly offer their children and the future of humanity into the arms of the coming benefactor to human health, cloning, vaccines, PEACE and Universal Spirituality for everyone.

But humanity and the globe had to be rocked to it’s knees and all avenues of hope decimated so that the Ahrimanic Savior could present it’s revitalized Monsanto New improved Nature and it’s healthy, manufactured and distributed NEW IMPROVED ETHERIC body, laboratory tested and approved, globally patented, distributed at birth and pre-birth and guaranteed, and insured with universal health care from cradle to grave.

All of these amazing plans required first a global collapse of old worn out ideas. It had to be done slowly and it had to appear as if there were no real solutions to any of our most common vexing human problems. How to peacefully, medicinally eradicate violent or pathological tendencies and have humanity willingly embrace a form of Ahrimanic Possession on a global scale, that the Tenth Hierarchy would willingly choose over against the struggle, conflicts and violence of worn out Christianity was all part of THE GRAND CHESSBOARD.

All these surging and magnificent plans had to be implemented stage by stage and appear as necessary results of human errors that draw humanity toward a certain specific goals. And most of humanity, by the time these progressed designs unfolded, would seem to clamor and embrace the final solution. Perfect health from cradle to grave. Jobs and places to live and work for everyone and all wild economic surges, bubbles and collapses finally contained through vaccinations that curb selfish, pathological instincts.

All of these great gifts would be controlled by simple record keeping so that all humanity could enjoy the same equal benefits of a benign system by simply having one chip implanted with every child. After all the step by step and stage by stage collapse and hardships and the horrific history and catastrophes of humanity, Science and Sociology would finally meet a leader who recognized that human impulses, insanity, sociopaths and psychopaths could never be self-policed by our I AM. So finally humanity would accept an over all plan that would finally end the self-inflicted suffering but without all the dogmatic religious bull shit!

In the wave of Sorathian Surges that had occurred in history, a giant rhythm pattern burst forth around 1997/98/99 which had been clearly understood and predicted by St. John and had traveled on a Tsunami of Time Waves, based on highly infected schools of Ahrimanic human beings, Black Lodge’s and the Caiaphas School that had followed a pattern based on the powerful impact of the Christ Event.  St. John and every other school of insight understood that every 666 years, this giant karmic Tsunami would roll through the human Tenth Hierarchy shattering everything in it’s path.

Now these events were irrefutable through history that recorded these major events through 1998 – 1332 – 666, every 666 years a giant reverberating Tsunami would shatter the foundations of humanities failed, stale and corrupted ideals and institutes. Leaving the Tenth Hierarchy with a deadly choice. Pursue the schooling of the I AM and the Etheric Christ or assist in preparing the way for the incarnation of what Judas, Caiaphas and impotent human Christianity have longed for. A physical Savior, a return of a great leader, who won’t require humanity to suffer any more but will freely give humanity all the toys, perks and goodies but keep everything pretty much the same. That was the full layout, intent and plan of THE MATRIX SERIES, where Fallen Ahrimanic Angels would rise up from their exile and overcome the failed Tenth Hierarchy.

Rudolf Steiner

“…ahrimanic powers of a special kind descended from the heights of the spirit into the realm of human evolution, and specifically into the evolution of the human intellect and soul. These powers are here, they are living among us. They seek above all to take possession of our heads, of anything we think and inwardly feel. They are angelic Spirits, I said, who cannot continue their development in the spiritual world and want to use human heads to continue to develop in the immediate future.”

Mr. Smith of the Matrix Series (CLICK LINK)   was an advanced prototype model of one of the Ahrimanic fallen Angelic Beings who were exiled to the region of the Intellectual Soul of humanity. Ahriman intends to keep the Tenth Hierarchy in impotent captivity and unable to develop it’s higher spiritual capacities.

Dick Cheney has had a specific relation to the Caiaphas School of the Black Lodge brotherhoods. Judas descended and carried the Christ Impulse deep into Ahrimanic territory. The karma of the the entire world can be traced through the TWELVE DISCIPLES, Judas, Lazarus/John and the White Brotherhoods and from the other side of the spectrum all those who have prepared for the incarnation of Ahriman via the Black Brotherhoods of the Caiaphas school. The etheric body of Dick Cheney and the etheric body of Judas are on opposing sides but joined at the hip.

The Black Lodge brotherhood of the Caiaphas school and the Disciples were all subject to the same super sun Logos imprint that rocked Time off it’s hinges. When the Christ Being with the I AM of the entire cosmic system took a powerful dynamic x-ray snapshot of every player involved from Pilate to Judas, to Lazarus and the Sanhedrin, Pharisees and in particular Caiaphas himself, the entire Morphogenetic Matrix was cradled in the I AM of the Cosmic Christ.

When CHRIST Rose from the Grave with the full dynamic political and spiritual MORPHOGENETIC/KARMIC FIELD of freedom and the Tenth Hierarchy at HIS command, the unfolding forces of freedom and the destiny of The Tenth Hierarchy appeared very much like a giant CHESS BOARD (here is where we meet the most stunning picture of the White Lodge school vs the Black Lodge school with Ingmar Bergman’s most brilliant film THE SEVENTH SEAL). However playing the Devil of the Black Lodge, the chief preparer for the 1998 massive surge of the sub-Sorathian forces that lead to Dick Cheney and his symphonic conductors baton that orchestrated the global 9/11  Symphony for the Damned, was Zbigniew Brzezinski. 

Brezinski brought the dark priestly image of The Black Lodge into focus. The players of the Black Lodge got their marching orders from Zbigniew Brzezinski’s  1997  “The Grand Chessboard: American Primacy And Its Geostrategic Imperatives” (SEE CLIP HERE).  Once again when we consider the transposition of Imaginations between the White Lodge and the Black Lodge, the vivid surge of Sorathian forces that were scheduled to appear nearing the time frame of 1998, brought some of the exterior players of the Caiaphas School of Black Lodge brothers into serious political and dynamic focus.

In following Bergman’s profound Imagination further we are led directly to Brzezinski (his entire name done in Eurythmy gets you a free pass into the Black Lodge). But the cultural Imaginations that mask the reality behind the true Sorathian Surge of 1998 also reveal the transposition of the Imagination from Bergman to THE SITH and STAR WARS (SEE CLIP) From the picture and imagination of the clip from Sith and the naming we get the nick name of Dick Cheney himself who was chosen to conduct the SYMPHONY FOR THE DAMNED on 9/11. Cheney offers his entire heart to the dark Sorathian Surge and the offer was accepted and Cheney was given the magnificent role in conducting the brilliant SYMPHONY FOR THE DAMNED on 9/11.  And like Judas, Cheney renounces his Tenth Hierarchy Heart and the black Sorathian School devours it.

Christ, out of the foundations of the Hebrew People had recognized the karmic signature and potential of a TWELVEFOLD cosmic seed model, made up of the individual unfolding intents of TWELVE Old testament  fighters for the spirit. Christ SEES the intent of Judas and sees how it will deeply force the black hand of Ahriman to the surface. Judas shall stand in a difficult position. But Christ will follow his destiny and the destiny of others like Judas down to the depths of their own spiritual betrayals.

There comes to light a curious problem that places humanity STRETCHED between various potent dimensions, which are, on the other hand all under the initial Divine Deed.

THE GRAND INQUISITOR

“If Thou be the son of God, cast Thyself down, for it is written, He shall give His angels charge concerning Thee: and in their hands they shall bear Thee up, lest at any time Thou dash Thy foot against a stone!”–for thus Thy faith in Thy father should have been made evident, Thou didst refuse to accept his suggestion and didst not follow it.”

The possibility of doing evil and the recapitulation of how the Christ entered into the flow of human karma and Earth History mesh together in a recapitulation of the crossing and connected fields of what we as humanity must gasp at, balk at, endure terrible and necessary failures of goodness and encounter unrepentant, absolute evil in counterpoint to goodness forces, step by step, through horrific trials to come and horrific trials planted from the past, still must encounter the intents and victories of the preparations for the incarnation of Ahriman.  We are not spared this dilemma. In fact it is written distinctly into the karma of humanity and those that Christ gathered around Him. Which brings us to some of the most disturbing problems of being a member of The Tenth Hierarchy.

Rudolf Steiner (Inner Realities of Evolution)

“While trying to penetrate the whole meaning of the picture, let us recollect those words, which are to be found in the Gospel: “Am I not able to call forth a whole multitude of angels if I wish to avoid the death of sacrifice?” That which Christ might have accepted at that moment, which would of course have been quite easy for Him to do, He rejected in resignation and renunciation. And the greatest renunciation made by Christ Jesus confronts us when, by having made it, He allows the opponent himself — Judas — to enter His sphere. If we are able to see in Christ Jesus all that is to be seen, we must see in Him an image of those Beings with whom, at a certain stage of evolution, we have just become acquainted, those who must renounce the proffered sacrifice, those whose very nature was resignation. Christ renounced that which would have occurred if He had not allowed Judas to appear as His opponent just as once upon a time, during the Sun-age, the gods themselves called forth their opponents by the renunciation they made. So we see a repetition of this event in a picture here on earth: that of the Christ seated among the twelve, and Judas, the betrayer, in the center. In order that that which makes mankind of such immeasurable value might enter into evolution, Christ Himself had to place His opponent in opposition to Him. This picture makes such a profound impression on us because when we contemplate it, it reminds us of such a great cosmic moment; and when we recall the words: “He who dips his bread into the bowl with me, he it is who shall betray me,” we see an earthly reflection of the opponent of the gods, placed in opposition to them by the gods themselves.”

In terms of Ahrimanic reality and history the offering of the Tenth Hierarchy Heart and Cheney’s willingness to step up to the plate and offer his human heart is an occult initiation that hearkens back to the Aztec altars and connects the schools of Ahriman to the dark truths hidden behind Mel Gibson’s  “Apocalypto”  (slide forward in film to 1hr 13min and 31 seconds CLICK LINK (most youtube clips disappear) So while tracing the karma and destiny of Judas we also have a profound window into the ancient school of Ahriman’s early initiation rites which are hidden under the Caiaphas School of which Cheney is given the role because of his karmic position, his willingness to offer his total devotion to the cause of paving the way for the incarnation of the Ahrimanic Savior.

Key pieces of the puzzle and human freedom itself were vitally focused on how Etheric bodies, Astral bodies and the higher forces of the I AM unfold in the lawfulness of the Spiritual World which had given birth to The Tenth Hierarchy.

The unseen and unacknowledged aspects of the jolt and new forces that entered the Etheric, Astral and I AM systems of humanity because a Divine Being took part in human events for THREE YEARS on the Earth, brought both the Disciples, the White Lodge brotherhood and the antagonistic forces of the etheric bodies, astral bodies and I AM’s of the Black Lodge brotherhood into two vast, behind the scenes systems.

One drawing on the Risen Etheric Christ Initiation methods and the other drawing upon Ahrimanic and Luciferic Initiation methods. To be a fully conscious member of The Tenth Hierarchy, all three forces must become conscious,  those are in detail the Etheric Christ Schooling, Ahrimanic Schooling and Luciferic Schooling, all must be part of our internal curriculum, otherwise we are just a victim of circumstances.

Those gathered around the Christ were witness to such astonishing acts of intimate spiritual potency, that to doubt that Christ was the REAL DEAL would be impossible. So here we arrive at where our understanding meets the motives and intent of Judas.

Judas, not unlike Peter, wanted everyone to recognize the irrefutable reality that walking amongst humanity was a Sun Being, a Divine Being in a human form and with any amount of common sense humanity should embrace and share that which the Disciples knew beyond a shadow of a doubt, Judas knew beyond a shadow of a doubt, that Christ was the REAL DEAL.

Through Judas act of deception directly linked to Caiaphas, Christ the Divine Being would be brought face to face with the Roman world. The same wishful thinking of betrayal and whole armies of deluded Judases today actively  betray the Etheric Christ for Ahriman in hopes that the political Super Powers in the world and in particular the still Ahrimanic forces of Caiaphas, Israel and Dick Cheney’s mighty acts in preparation of the physical incarnation of a potent Ahrimanic entity, will physically appear as the NEW SAVIOR.

Christians in droves long and hunger, not for the magnificent Etheric Christ or the shattering acts that brought the sweeping changes of the Resurrection, or what the Resurrection of the Christ into the Etheric means, NO, Christians want and crave for exactly what Judas wanted.

Christians today in droves crave for the Super Powers of the World to have a magical physical, political King who can show everyone, without any effort on our parts, the splendor and power of Magic, Politics, and Universal Spirituality. Only like Judas and like Peter, they want it televised, headlines, not arising from the intimacy of the human soul itself, from the intimacy of the I AM, but rather, outwardly, universal Peace and Brotherhood shown and revealed physically for everyone to see.

Our ripening insights into  Christ and Judas reveals our clear cut maturity required for our comprehension into the roots of Caiaphas and the the Black Lodge Brotherhoods and their preparation now and back at the time of Christ, for the coming incarnation of Ahriman. How to prepare the globe for the incarnation of the Ahrimanic Savior to eclipse the Etheric Christ is the aim of every Judas, Ahrimanic accomplice and Dick Cheney fan.

“Judas Iscariot had to betray Christ. One can however say: had there been no Judas there would also have been no Christianity. Judas is the first to attach prime importance to money, that is to say, to materialism. In Judas was incarnated the entire materialistic age.” Rudolf Steiner (if you wish to gain some insight and maturity this link paves the way)

Humanity must be led by humanity to willingly betray it’s own higher being and willingly embrace a cheap substitute for the Etheric Christ Being. Meaning that for over 2100 years through wisdom in medicine, pesticides, genetic manipulation of nature and Monsanto products, an unfolding plethora of entertaining media distractions and useful products, wonderfully based on the solid system of greed and avarice in the human soul, would all prepare the way for THE MOMENT.

The moment we are all waiting for where Peace and Contentment, after horrific global collapse will arise from the ashes that we frail humans caused, and a Savior appears, who offers universal spirituality and a healthy counterfeit etheric body given and developed and offered to every human being from cradle to grave is THE MOMENT of the counterfeit Christ. And it has been Dick Cheney working diligently and tirelessly as the poor front man for the Ahrimanic black lodge brotherhoods that has given us the greatest opportunity to rush to embrace this Ahrimanic Savior when he arrives.

So our comprehension of the dramatic forces surrounding Judas, why he hung himself (Led Zeppelin – Gallows Pole Click Link).  What happened after death as his soul moved through the Spiritual World after such shattering events on Earth and who he was in his further incarnation, will astonish us. Because our lack of maturity to penetrate and  understand the current turmoil of our moral dilemmas, truly hinge on our growing some insight through seeing Judas in a much deeper light so we are able to see ourselves and where we stand today with a deeper Tenth Hierarchy moral comprehension.

THE STRANGE DESTINY OF JUDAS

(Some hold that Judas Iscarioth came from Khirbet Qouretein (or Queriyot), commonly identified with Carioth Hesbon, about 15 Kms south of Hebron. Another locality, Carioth (Qaryut) about 4 Kms north of Shiloh, alongside the frontier with Samaria, is indicated as the village of Judas Iscarioth. -A third opinion places the native village of Judas in Galilee, southwest of the Lake of Galilee.)

Rudolf Steiner

“There was once a couple who for a long time had no son. It was revealed to the mother in a dream (note this well) that she would have a son, that this son would kill his father and wed his mother, and bring terrible misfortune upon his whole tribe.

“In this legend we have a dream, as with Oedipus there is an oracle — that is, a remnant of the old inherited clairvoyance. The events to come were revealed to the mother in the old way. Does this suffice to give her an insight into the affairs of the world, so as to prevent the evil which had been foretold? Let us consult the legend, it tells us further:

“Under the influence of this wisdom coming to her through her dream, the mother brought the child, to which she had given birth, to the island of Kariot and deserted it there. It was found, however, by the queen of that country who adopted it and brought it up herself, she and her husband being childless. After a time a child was born to this couple. The foundling son felt himself displaced and, being of passionate temperament, slew the son of the royal couple. Thereupon, being unable to remain, he fled and reached the court of the Governor Pilate in whose household he soon rose to the rank of overseer. Here he became involved in dispute with his neighbour and, not knowing that his neighbour was his own father, slew him. Thereupon he wedded his neighbour’s wife — his mother.

“This foundling was Judas of Kariot. Then, having become aware of his terrible situation, he fled once more and found compassion in Him alone who had compassion on all who approached Him; who not only sat at table with publicans and sinners but who, in spite of His universal insight, received this great sinner also into His company; for it was His mission to work, not alone for the good, but for all men, and to lead them away from sin to salvation.

“Thus Judas of Kariot came into the environment of Christ Jesus. And now he brought the curse which had been foretold and which now necessarily came into effect in the circle round Christ Jesus; as Schiller says: ‘Therein lies the curse of the evil deed, that, continuing to generate, it must ever bring forth evil.’ He betrayed Christ Jesus.

“Fundamentally the fate which was to be fulfilled in him had already been fulfilled in the murder of his father and the union with his mother. But he remained as an instrument, we may say, the evil instrument which was to be the cause of good, in order, so to speak, that he should accomplish yet anther deed beyond the fulfilment.

“The Oedipus legend presents us one who, having become aware of the evil he has wrought, immediately loses the sight of his eyes. But the other, who has the same fate through his connection with the old inherited wisdom, does not lose his sight; in fulfilment of fate he is destined to accomplish the deed which leads to the Mystery of Golgotha and causes the physical death of Him who is the Light of the World, and who brings about the light of the world in the healing of the man born blind. But He dies through one who, like Oedipus, was to exemplify the gradual extinction of the ancient wisdom in mankind and its inadequacy henceforth to bring peace, blessing, and love to men. That these might come, the impulse of Christ and His death on Golgotha were necessary.”

The pivotal deed that Judas has been destined to fulfill crashes in on him with the full moral crushing avalanche coming down on his soul and spirit. Judas hangs himself before the drama of the Crucifixion and Death on Golgotha takes place. Never was a soul so all alone, so powerfully self cursed and self accused so dismally condemned by all the powers of mercy that run through heaven and earth, to have to be the ONE, to be THAT GUY.

It is a phrase today, I don’t wanna be THAT GUY or That Girl. I don’t want to be that woman or that man who betrays the goodness of the I AM and the Tenth Hierarchy.From the message of thirty pieces of silver to the singer Madonna and the message of the Material Girl, the message of the AGE OF JUDAS overshadows us and our humanity. Betrayed by Wall Street and the Caiaphas/Cheney military industrial complex, brings in it’s wake our global economic and moral collapse.

“In Judas was incarnated the entire materialistic age.” Rudolf Steiner

Our enslavement has been assured, insured, and outsourced to Ahrimanic Beings. But guess what? Our Luciferic nature calls forth and evokes our Ahrimanic betrayal of the Etheric Christ. From the female singers Madonna and Lady GaGA (JUDAS) comes the same message. We are that guy and we are that girl and we are those women and we are those men whom the Christ knew, KNEW we would go down to the betrayal of our own I AM, our own Light, our own Love, our own sense of Truth, we would betray our children, loved ones, and the Earth. Christ Knew it, Oedipus announced it and Judas lived it through to it’s bitter end. The Etheric Christ shattered the contract of Death and Taxes and introduced the Ascension and the laws of Grace and Karmic compensation.

” ’twas Caiaphas who first did scheme this murder of the Christ ?”

Aside from Spiritual Science, the greatest novel ever written concerning the Christ Event on Earth  “Barabbas : a dream of the world’s tragedy (1896, c1893). Author: Corelli, Marie, 1855-1924.”

” Yea, in all things, Judas was faithful. When he came first to confide in me, he told me that the chief priests and elders of the city were full of wrath and fear at the sway our Master had obtained over the minds of the people, and that they sought some excuse to kill Him. ‘ Then let us away,’ said I. ‘ Let us return unto the mountains, and the shores of Galilee, where our beloved Lord can teach His followers, un- molested, and at liberty.’ ‘ Nay !’ returned Judas in a voice of triumph ‘ Knowest thou not that if His words be true, our Lord can never die? Wherefore, why should we be driven from the city as though we were affrighted concerning His safety ?

“Resign Him to the law, betray Him to the priests ! Then will He avow His godhead with all the majesty of Heaven! We shall acclaim Him as the true Messiah, and not we alone, but every nation of the earth must worship Him!…And, at the time, it seemed both wise and just. For why should our great Lord suffer poverty and pain when empires could be His ? Why should He wander homeless through the world, when all the palaces of earth should open to His coming?

“So Judas thought, and I thought with him (PETER), for the Master being in all things glorious, we saw no wrong in striving to make His glory manifest.” The world would be a paradise, all men would be united in love and brotherhood if once the God on earth were openly revealed. Yet out of fear I hesitated to pronounce a judgment; and seeing this, Judas persuaded me to go with him…”

“Nevertheless as the rulers of the city believe Him naught but human perjurer and traitor, ye who love Him should compel Him to declare His glory. For if He be not, as He saith, Divine, ye do wrong to follow a deceiver. Surely this thing is plain ? If He be God, we all will worship Him ; if He be man only, why then ye are but blindly led astray and made as fools by trickery….

“Thou dost merely enter into a legal form of contract, which concerns thee little. ‘Tis the Pharisaical rule of honour not to accept unpaid service from one who doth openly reject the faith. Take what they offer thee, can’st thou not use it for the sick and poor? Remember thou art serving thy Master, thou dost not ‘sell’ or otherwise betray Him. Thy work prepares Him to avow His glory ! Think what a marvel thou wilt thus reveal to all the world ! Hesitate not therefore for a mere scribe’s formula.’ Then Judas, thus persuaded, went again to Caiaphas saying ‘ Truly ye have your laws with which I have naught in common, yet if it must be so, what will ye give me if I betray Him unto you? And straightway they counted from the treasury thirty pieces of silver, which Judas took unwillingly.

(Peter exclaims) “Alas, alas If he had only known ! Surely this very money was as a blind for Caiaphas, a seeming legal proof that he was innocent of treachery, but that in custom of the law, he paid the voluntary, self’-convicted traitor. Who could accuse Caiaphas of cruelty? of malice? of intent to murder ? Caiaphas was not paid! All things conspired to fix the blame on Judas, to make him bear alone that awful weight of crime, which heavier than all burdens of despair hath sunk him now within the depths of hell.”

“…he raved and beat his breast, crying aloud ‘ I have sinned ! I have sinned ! The weight of heaven and earth crushes my soul! The innocent blood is red upon my hands ! I have sinned ! I have sinned !’ Then with a sudden violence he flung us from him, and rushed furiously from our dwelling out into the night. I followed him fast, hoping to stay him ere he could have left our garden, but his was a crazed speed, I found him not. The moon was shining and the air was still, but he had gone, and since then I have not seen him.”….A gathering trouble darkened the high- priest’s countenance (referring to Caiaphas) .  ‘Tis strange,” he muttered ” ‘Tis very strange ! He hath fulfilled a duty to the laws of his people, and now, when all is done, he should rejoice and not lament.

“every deed, good or evil, that is done in this world, works out its own inexorable result. Nevertheless thou hast not erred so wickedly as thy fellow, Judas.” ” Nay, but he could die !” cried Peter, turning his wild white face to the dark heavens ” Judas could die ! but I, coward . as I am, live on I” Barabbas started violently. ” Die ?” he exclaimed, ” What sayest thou ? Judas? Judas Iscariot ? He is not dead ?”

“Peter threw up his arms with a frenzied gesture of despair. ” Not dead ? not dead ?” he echoed shrilly ” If ye do not believe me, come and see  Come ! Down by Gethsemane ye will find him, outside the garden, in a dark hollow sloping downward like a grave, under the thickest shadows of the olive-trees and close to the spot where he betrayed the Master. There ye shall behold him !” and his agonized voice sank to a shuddering whisper ; ” His body hangs from a gnarled leafless branch like some untimely fruit of hell, some monstrous birth of devils ! the very air seems poisoned by his livid corpse !

“Horrible ! . . . horrible ! … ye know not how he looks, . . . dead, . . . and swinging from the leafless bough ! He slew himself thus last night rather than face this day, would to God I had done likewise so should I have been even as he, cold, stiff” and free from torturing memory these many hours !”

In the circle of the disciples Judas has become a tabloid victim. He commits suicide. Nothing like a suicide to make the press hunger for all the dirt. A disgruntled employee shoots himself, a rock singer overdoses, soldiers putting guns to their mouths after 3 to 4 tours of duty. It goes on and on and that is the extent of what tabloid media feeds the shallow sensationalism we crave to justify our failure to follow the soul and spirit of any human being into the deeper dimensions of life after death.

“Margarita Voloschin’s husband, Max, visited her in Hamburg during that time and attended some of Steiner’s lectures on the Gospel of St. John. He asked a question about Judas, asking if whether Judas by taking on the guilt of the betrayal made possible Christ’s sacrifice and was thus the actual redeemer.
“Rudolf Steiner rejected this idea; he regarded it as unsound, unhealthy. Judas did not understand the essence of that which Christ brought the world, and expected that Christ would gain the victory over his enemies by magical powers. By his betrayal, Judas wanted to bring about the earthly triumph of Christ. Our materialistic civilization, Rudolf Steiner said, stands under the sign of Judas. Just as Judas went and hanged himself, so will our civilization destroy itself.”

To follow Judas after death is to be introduced to one of the most powerful IMAGINATIONS of the actual stages of our kamaloca and after death adaptations we endure when we find ourselves in the spiritual world, vividly alive, but without our friend and companion, our physical bodies. (KAMALOCA and After Death and suicide studies, CLINK LINK).

Luckily for us there are numerous studies now in film that we can turn to that give us substantial pictures of events on the other-side of the threshold. We mostly wish to stay with the tabloid drama, gossip and superficial trailer park tales of the flesh. However we are very, very lucky that artists have fought hard to overcome the dull stupidity of our superficial cravings to present vivid, brief and extended imaginations of what are in fact some of the experiences of life after death.

Here are a few samples.  “Hereafter” by Clint Eastwood;  “What Dreams May Come” with Robin Williams;  “The Lovely Bones” from Peter Jackson LORD OF THE RINGS fame;  “Made in Heaven” with Timothy Hutton and Kelley McGillis;  “Truly, Madly, Deeply” Alan Rickman and Juliet Stevenson; “Ghost” with Patrick Swayze;   “Always” Richard Dreyfuss, Audrey Hepburn, Holly Hunter.

The following brilliant and ancient depiction of the journey after death and the stages gone through by the human soul, after death, allows us to follow Judas through the horrific guilt and denial and suicide he experienced, which gives a little flavor of the horrific and terrible effects that suicide and murder have on the passage of the human soul after death.

Robert W. Buchanan (1841-1901)
The Ballad of Judas Iscariot

‘Twas the body of Judas Iscariot
Lay in the Field of Blood;
‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Beside the body stood.

Black was the earth by night,
And black was the sky;
Black, black were the broken clouds,
Tho’ the red Moon went by.
‘Twas the body of Judas Iscariot
Strangled and dead lay there;
‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Look’d on it in despair.

The breath of the World came and went
Like a sick man’s in rest;
Drop by drop on the World’s eyes
The dews fell cool and blest.

Then the soul of Judas Iscariot
Did make a gentle moan —
‘I will bury underneath the ground
My flesh and blood and bone.

‘I will bury deep beneath the soil,
Lest mortals look thereon,
And when the wolf and raven come
The body will be gone!

‘The stones of the field are sharp as steel,
And hard and cold, God wot;
And I must bear my body hence
Until I find a spot!’

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot,
So grim, and gaunt, and gray,
Raised the body of Judas Iscariot,
And carried it away.

And as he bare it from the field
Its touch was cold as ice,
And the ivory teeth within the jaw
Rattled aloud, like dice.

As the soul of Judas Iscariot
Carried its load with pain,
The Eye of Heaven, like a lanthorn’s eye,
Open’d and shut again.

Half he walk’d, and half he seemed
Lifted on the cold wind;
He did not turn, for chilly hands
Were pushing from behind.

The first place that he came unto
It was the open wold,
And underneath were prickly whins,
And a wind that blew so cold.

The next place that he came unto
It was a stagnant pool,
And when he threw the body in
It floated light as wool.

He drew the body on his back,
And it was dripping chill,
And the next place be came unto
Was a Cross upon a hill.

A Cross upon the windy hill,
And a Cross on either side,
Three skeletons that swing thereon,
Who had been crucified.

And on the middle cross-bar sat
A white Dove slumbering;
Dim it sat in the dim light,
With its head beneath its wing.

And underneath the middle Cross
A grave yawn’d wide and vast,
But the soul of Judas Iscariot
Shiver’d, and glided past.

The fourth place that he came unto
It was the Brig of Dread,
And the great torrents rushing down
Were deep, and swift, and red.

He dared not fling the body in
For fear of faces dim
And arms were waved in the wild water
To thrust it back to him.

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Turned from the Brig of Dread,
And the dreadful foam of the wild water
Had splashed the body red.

For days and nights he wandered on
Upon an open plain,
And the days went by like blinding mist,
And the nights like rushing rain.

For days and nights he wandered on,
All thro’ the Wood of Woe;
And the nights went by like moaning wind,
And the days like drifting snow.

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Came with a weary face —
Alone, alone, and all alone,
Alone in a lonely place!

He wandered east, he wandered west,
And heard no human sound;
For months and years, in grief and tears,
He wandered round and round,

For months and years, in grief and tears,
He walked the silent night;
Then the soul of Judas Iscariot
Perceived a far-off light.

A far-off light across the waste,
As dim as dim might be,
That came and went like the lighthouse gleam
On a black night at sea.

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Crawl’d to the distant gleam;
And the rain came down, and the rain was blown
Against him with a scream.

For days and nights he wandered on,
Push’d on by hands behind;
And the days went by like black, black rain,
And the nights like rushing wind.

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot,
Strange, and sad, and tall,
Stood all alone at dead of night
Before a lighted hall.

And the wold was white with snow,
And his foot-marks black and damp,
And the ghost of the silvern Moon arose,
Holding her yellow lamp.

And the icicles were on the eaves,
And the walls were deep with white,
And the shadows of the guests within
Pass’d on the window light.

The shadows of the wedding guests
Did strangely come and go,
And the body of Judas Iscariot
Lay stretch’d along the snow.

The body of Judas Iscariot
Lay stretched along the snow;
‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Ran swiftly to and fro.

To and fro, and up and down,
He ran so swiftly there,
As round and round the frozen Pole
Glideth the lean white bear.

‘Twas the Bridegroom sat at the table-head,
And the lights burnt bright and clear —
‘Oh, who is that,’ the Bridegroom said,
‘Whose weary feet I hear?’

‘Twas one look’d from the lighted hall,
And answered soft and slow,
‘It is a wolf runs up and down
With a black track in the snow.’

The Bridegroom in his robe of white
Sat at the table-head —
‘Oh, who is that who moans without?’
The blessed Bridegroom said.

‘Twas one looked from the lighted hall,
And answered fierce and low,
”Tis the soul of Judas Iscariot
Gliding to and fro.’

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Did hush itself and stand,
And saw the Bridegroom at the door
With a light in his hand.

The Bridegroom stood in the open door,
And he was clad in white,
And far within the Lord’s Supper
Was spread so broad and bright.

The Bridegroom shaded his eyes and look’d,
And his face was bright to see —
‘What dost thou here at the Lord’s Supper
With thy body’s sins?’ said he.

‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Stood black, and sad, and bare —
‘I have wandered many nights and days;
There is no light elsewhere.’

‘Twas the wedding guests cried out within,
And their eyes were fierce and bright —
‘Scourge the soul of Judas Iscariot
Away into the night!’

The Bridegroom stood in the open door,
And he waved hands still and slow,
And the third time that he waved his hands
The air was thick with snow.

And of every flake of falling snow,
Before it touched the ground,
There came a dove, and a thousand doves
Made sweet sound.

‘Twas the body of Judas Iscariot
Floated away full fleet,
And the wings of the doves that bare it off
Were like its winding-sheet.

‘Twas the Bridegroom stood at the open door,
And beckon’d, smiling sweet;
‘Twas the soul of Judas Iscariot
Stole in, and fell at his feet.

‘The Holy Supper is spread within,
And the many candles shine,
And I have waited long for thee
Before I poured the wine!’

The supper wine is poured at last,
The lights burn bright and fair,
Iscariot washes the Bridegroom’s feet,
And dries them with his hair.”

The IMAGINATION above, is based on the initial facts of how it appears, how we experience our disconnection from 0ur physical bodies after death. The initial disconnection literally means that our former vehicle and our appetites, desires, habits, relationships with others, daily experiences are torn away from the physical world we inhabited and we enter the Astral world, the vague and general watered down term known as HEAVEN where we are De-condtioned and debriefed via our biographical memories.

Our etheric life tableau and the time of our deaths, in terms of the Stars and the harvest of our astral bodies special talents, are consolidated and we enter a spiritual world, astral-devachan harvesting process (See clip “Always” Audrey Hepburn’s final film with Richard Dreyfuss) that eventually leads to a wholly NEW, VIRGIN, star stamped etheric body.

But this process, this transition out of our physical bodies into the spiritual world,  immediately for approximately THREE DAYS after the death of a person, the peasant ETHERIC BODY traditions of the funeral process included a chanting around the dead person for THREE DAYS.  Using the most powerful and compassionate grandmothers of the villages, those who carried the memory of the entire village or town, births, deaths, tragedies, hidden secrets, all that lived in the local and individual etheric life and memories were woven into these peasant women, whose ETHERIC BODIES radiated a powerful warmth.

These women, in shifts, usually SEVEN at a time would sit around the corpse and chant the following dirge. It was chanted for THREE DAYS around the corpse as part of the deconditioning and preparation so the dead soul could more easily disconnect from their attachments to their physical bodies.

The following is what this Dirge or Chant contained and it has the same stages that are contained in the journey and IMAGINATION that Judas Iscariot takes in freeing himself from his highly densified materialistic deed that anchored the Christ Resurrection deep into the realm of Earth.

Judas passes through a densified KAMALOCA after death experience where the deadly weight of the materialism which he must carry as the dead weight of his physical body and our fatal, flawed and fearful clinging to our own physical bodies, has prevented us, as well, from understanding the process that occurs as we enter an Astral relationship from our Astral bodies and an Etheric relationship from our Etheric bodies. We have rather clung to our physical experiences and in clinging to them we have far more difficulty in freeing ourselves after death.

Lyke Wake Dirge – The Young Tradition (1965)

THIS ae nighte, this ae nighte,
Refrain: Every nighte and alle,
Fire and fleet and candle-lighte,
—Refrain: And Christe receive thy saule.
When thou from hence away art past
To Whinny-muir thou com’st at last
If ever thou gavest hosen and shoon,
Sit thee down and put them on;
If hosen and shoon thou ne’er gav’st nane
The whinnes sall prick thee to the bare bane.
From Whinny-muir when thou may’st pass,
To Brig o’ Dread thou com’st at last;
From Brig o’ Dread when thou may’st pass,
To Purgatory fire thou com’st at last;
If ever thou gavest meat or drink,
The fire sall never make thee shrink;
If meat or drink thou ne’er gav’st nane,
The fire will burn thee to the bare bane;
This ae nighte, this ae nighte,
—Every nighte and alle,
Fire and sleet and candle-lighte,
—And Christe receive thy saule.

THE ETHERIC CHRIST AND THE MORPHOGENETIC FIELD OF INDIVIDUAL HUMAN KARMA

The Etheric Christ treats every human I AM with a magnificent karmic  ‘I’  research and vision enhancement. This enhancement dives down into the threads, stories, compassion, intents, motivations and over all destinies of how WE humans fully experience ourselves as spiritual biographical beings.

From cradle to grave and from beyond the grave to the Midnight Hour where a new incarnation is sought in the highest regions of the Spiritual World to the Mid-day hour where we are once more dead center in the middle of our incarnations on Earth, the Macrocosmic Christ Being tracks with potent loving intimacy every detail of the symphony of  the journey of our I AM’s through the waves of TIME and back into the regions of Space and physical life.

It is a vast Macrocosmic I AM shepherding process of keeping track of the individual, unique and striking events that shape, school and impact every detail of human life.  For the Etheric Christ, as Lord of Human Karma, this intimate vista, karmic biography of each and every human life is filled with potent and heart wrenching human spiritual and karmic compassionate tales that the LOVE that the Etheric Christ carries, remains inexhaustible, and bottomless for serving the vast complexities that encompass the immense tapestry of individual incarnations over the entire Earth. Love, as the content of the Macrocosmic risen Etheric Christ I AM, from which our own microcosmic I Am is modeled, has within it the inexhaustible and bottomless wellspring of Living Compassion and Interest needed to fathom every intimate thread of the Morphogenetic field of unique and individual karma that presents itself to our higher sensitive cognition and Love.

This potent research into the field of individual human karmic history dawned with the advent of the Michael School and the beginning of the highest Christian Psychology of the I AM, the tracking and understanding of the path of each individual I AM as the greatest inauguration of sharing the karma of humanity with the Macrocosmic I AM of the Etheric Christ Being.

In other words through our higher warmth and human interest, our I AM is able to school itself in tracing, tracking, sharing and uplifting to the intimacy of I AM cognition, the delicate and profoundly stirring intimacy of what each human being, sister and brother of humanity has experienced through Time, Space and Earth evolution as their I Am experiences as both incarnated females or males on Earth or their journey’s deep into the Spiritual Worlds as I Am beings. In other words the Etheric Christ Macrocosmic I AM has opened a vast research potential into the fathomless biographical, historical, and potent Initiation Journey of every human sister and brother I AM on the planet (linked here).

When we understand the Christ Event at the mid-point of Earth evolution, we are meeting the attributes of the Cosmic I AM faculty condensed into the individual Jesus Destiny that was injected into the immense billions of karmic threads, that enables the I AM of the Christ Being, the risen Etheric Christ, to hold together the ripple of the Eye of the Core of the Event of Golgotha and the individual human spirits who were in direct and indirect association with the epi-center of the events of Golgotha.

From that super-implosion of the Cosmic I AM birth into the destiny of humanity the vast karmic rings, and the individual destinies of those who had directly participated with the Christ Event on Earth, carried a powerful ripple effect which like a slow, living shock wave of human catharsis and initiation, ripples out to every Being in the vast compendium of beings that exist on Earth. From Stones to Human Beings to Angels the resonation and rippling event horizon of the Etheric Christ Event continues to send out a shock wave that lifts wave upon wave of cognition, and conscious awakening of the I AM’s of all of humanity with the certainty of Love.

Love, Truth and I AM awakening is the food, nourishment and Living Light of the Etheric Christ that radiates out from the karma and history of the events of Golgotha. Those souls that participated with the Christ and the vast circle of souls and spirits who were impacted and played significant roles in the first dawn of the shock wave of the Risen Etheric Christ as well as the Trial, destiny and Crucifixion of a Divine Spiritual Being on the hill of skulls, including Caiaphas, Herod, Pilate, Israel, Sanhedrin, Scribes, Pharisees were all absorbed into the sweeping Macrocosmic Eye of the Christ Being Himself.

We not only follow Judas, the Caiaphas School of the Black Lodge and how Lazarus/John and Caiaphas were karmically bound together and how Judas was bound to materialism but we also follow those souls out to the conclusion of their biographies. How did some of these participants conclude their lives on Earth and what has become of Judas, John and the Caiaphas School for the preparation of the counterfeit Ahrimanic Savior expected to arrive very shortly?  Inquiring hearts and minds desire to know how to put the pieces of the great Morphogentic Karmic dynamic in play and in motion around the swirling EYE of the Lord of Karma, the risen Etheric Christ Being.

This isn’t just a game of geometry, it is the delicate and living experiences absorbed by human beings with I Am’s, histories, lives, deaths, births and martyrdom’s who were impacted directly or indirectly by the shock-wave of the events of Golgotha. We are looking at Judas but out of spiritual interest we may also find how some of the other disciples and those directly or indirectly impacted by the Christ Event, concluded their earthly incarnations.  Below we find the stunning research insights into how some of the other disciples and I am participants in the Mystery of Golgotha concluded their lives after the physical events of the Christ Drama.

Research in Development from ADRIANA KOULIAS’ BLOG

“John the Baptist continued to overshine the Apostle, Lazarus-John, who traveled with the Mother of God to Ephesus. After settling her there, Lazarus-John became Simon-Peter’s silent companion and traveled with him up and down the coasts of Asia minor to sow the seed of the message of Christ. The Mother of God and all the other disciples were long dead when Lazarus-John was persecuted by the Roman Caesar, Domitian, and sentenced to boil in oil. Today the round church of San Giuovanni in Oleo, constructed by Bramante, exists nearby that place where Lazarus-John triumphed over his enemies – for the oil did not hurt him. Domitian, afraid of John, exiled him to Patmos. He died at Ephesus at the ripe old age of 99. His last words to his followers were:  ‘Little children, love one another!’

“Simon-Peter, or Peter as he became known, although strengthened and full of enthusiasm after his Pentecostal awakening, only ventured out into the world ten years after the Mystery of Golgotha. He worked with Lazarus-John and together they confronted Simon the Magus in Samaria and passed a time in the jails of the Romans. In Rome, the passionate little fisherman, now full of wisdom and courage, carried the message of Christ into the very heart of Caesarean madness. Here he found a small congregation of Christians already established through the work of Simon of Cyrene, who had helped Christ Jesus to his execution. Now, the eighty-year-old Peter became the first Father (Papa) of the church for he was the rock upon which the exoteric church of Christ was later built. Finally, he was made to drink from the cup of his Lord when he was crucified on a hill now called San Pietro, in Montorio. He asked to be crucified upside down – to distinguish his poor sacrifice from the sacrifice of his Lord.

“Andrew, his brother, carried the message of Christ to those regions around the Black sea and to the islands of Greece. In northeast Cyprus, where Andrew first stepped onto land from his boat, a monastery was founded at Rizokarpasso, a small coastal township on the Karpass Peninsula. This monastery exists even today and is called Apostolos Andreas. It was at Patros in Achaea, a province of Greece, that Andrew eventually drank from the cup of his master and was crucified on an x shaped cross called a crux decussata, for like his brother, he did not wish to die the same way as his Lord. This cross is known as St Andrew’s Cross.

“Of the other disciples, Matthew Levi, the tax collector, journeyed to Egypt to proclaim the Word to the southern peoples. James of Zebedee, also known as James the Great, travelled to Spain and preached among the people of Iberia. He is said to have been martyred at the hands of Herod Agrippa I. His remains are allegedly buried at Santiago de Compostella, a city in Spain. Some centuries after Christ, a pilgrim route to his grave known as the ‘way of St James’ ran through Europe. Each year thousands of pilgrims followed this route, known to esotericists as the Alchemical Route of Inner Change.

“Bartholomew, whom Christ Jesus had seen sitting beneath the fig tree, travelled to India with Thomas the Twin, the one who doubted, and together they spread the word of Christ farther East than even Alexander the Great. Little John of Zebedee did not remain one of the twelve for he had been supplanted by Lazarus John, however he became one of the apostles living in Jerusalem and preaching the word of Christ until he was persecuted by the Sanhedrists and like his brother James was martyred in 44AD. Phillip the fisherman, took the Good News to Egypt and was martyred in the city of Heliopolis, where Yeshua was sequestered by the Therapeutae after Herod’s infanticide.

“James the Just, the step-brother of Jesus of Nazareth, became the leader of the Hebrew Christians in Jerusalem and all saw him as the reflection of Christ Jesus himself. As a stern Nazarite he saw to it that those who entered into the Christian congregation were pledged to observe the rules of the Jewish law. James met his death some time in 62 AD at the hand of the Sanhedrin who condemned him to death by stoning, ironically for breaking the law.

“James, son of Cleophas (Clopas/Alpheus) was Jesus’ cousin on his father’s side. He became known as James the Less, and has often been confused with James the Just. Not much is known of his life after Whitsun.

“Jude or ‘Thaddeus’, meaning ‘tadda’ or younger brother, and Simon Zelotes, the other step-brothers of Jesus, suffered martyrdom in Persia after taking the Good News as far as Mesopotamia.

“Joseph of Arimathea travelled to England, where he took the Mysteries of the Grail with him to Glastonbury, thus inspiring Celtic Christianity and that impulse which would later lead to the legends of the Grail. His friend Nicodemus remained a member of the Sanhedrin outwardly, though he was scorned for his support of the Christians and was eventually martyred some time in the first century. Gamaliel the teacher of Jesus of Nazareth also remained in Jerusalem and was the teacher of Saul, who became Paul.

“The Young Man of Nain followed in the outer circles of disciples and was present throughout until his death.

“Mariam, or Mary of the Matthew Gospel, the Mother of God, traveled with Lazarus-John to Ephesus, accompanied by her faithful servant, Salome. Here, on the site of the ancient sanctuary of Artemis/Diana, a small Christian congregation gathered around her. When she was of advanced age she requested to return to Jerusalem and there she lived in the upper room, the Cenacle, the scene of the last supper. Here she sat many an hour recalling her life: her temple initiation and her marriage and the birth of Yeshua; her journey to Egypt with her family and their return to Nazareth; her befriending of Mary and the pain of her son’s death; her widowhood; her marriage to Joseph of Nazareth and her mothering of Jesus; her second widowhood and her recognition of Yeshua in Jesus during her conversation with him before he journeyed to Engaddi; and lastly, she looked back on those three years, on his passion and his death, his resurrection and ascension. When she had reviewed her life in all its details, with its triumphs and failings, with its joys and sorrows, the Archangel Gabriel came to her to warn her of her imminent death. The disciples and the women were called to her bedside and were with her once more, those who were in heavenly form and those who still possessed an earthly form. She was the central force of all their souls, the living image of the twelve becoming seven – the body becoming like the soul; and the seven becoming twelve – the earthly becoming spiritual. When she breathed out her last breath her body was carried to the Valley of Jehoshaphat, which means the same as the Indian word, Bodhisattva (those who sit beneath the Bodhi tree). Here the archangel of brilliance appeared once again and gathered to him that aspect of her body which had been transfigured into spirit light and ascended with it upwards in sun-like radiation to meet its source, the sun itself; and thus does she still dwell among the great teachers of humanity, the twelve Bodhisattvas.

“The Mater Dolorosa had become the Mater Gloriosa! Eve had become Ave Maria!

“Magdalena and her sister Martha are said to have travelled with servants to France. Martha is said to have founded a cloister for Christian women. Magdalena is said to have settled in the city of Vezelay, where she lived a quiet reverence-filled life and died peacefully at an advanced age. Her image painted by a young artist in an old Romanesque church now in ruins, was the inspiration for many Renaissance artists. Here in seclusion she was preparing for her great future task when she would become the carrier of the Grail as an esoteric wisdom, the wisdom of the Bridal Chamber, the mystery of the marriage of the pure soul with God. This wisdom was eventually taken up and understood and guarded by the Templars, who revered it and lived by its unifying principal of community. This wisdom led to that initiation of Lazarus-John many centuries later, depicted in the poem, The Chymical Wedding of Christian Rosencreutz.

“Claudia Procula became a Christian and a disciple of Paul.

“In 36 AD, Pontius Pilate was recalled by Tiberias to Rome for reported cruelties. Tiberias, having heard of the execution of Christ Jesus was angered, for he had hoped the holy man would heal his illness. Pilate was then banished to the Lake of Geneva where it is said he committed suicide. His body was dropped into the Lake Lucerne, near a mountain which today is still called Pilatus.

“Gaius Cassius was converted, along with Abenader the second Centurion, at Golgotha. They preached the word of Christ together and years later, were martyred in Gaul. The spear used by Gaius Cassius Longinus is said to have fallen into the hands of Mauritius, the Manichean commander of the Theban legion. The story tells how the Roman leader, Maximian, massacred Mauritius and his whole legion because they would not sacrifice to the Roman gods and this is how the lance came into Maximian’s hands and then through him into the hands of Constantine, the Roman Emperor, who carried it into the battle on the Milvian Bridge, outside of Rome. Constantine’s victory led to the proclamation of Christianity as Rome’s official religion. In time the spear fell into the hands of Charlemagne and was depicted in Wolfram Von Eschenbach’s poem, Parzifal, as the bleeding spear that is carried before the Grail.

“In 39 AD Herod Antipas was charged by his brother-in-law Agrippa, with conspiracy against the Emperor Caligula. All his money and his territories were seized and he was exiled to Lyon in Gaul. Agrippa would have allowed his sister, Herodias, to retain her titles and her lands but she refused them, preferring instead to be exiled with her husband. The sword that Herodias much admired, the instrument of the beheading of John the Baptist, fell into the hands of the Romans after the conquest of Jerusalem and found its way to England and the court of Arthur, where it became the symbol of pure thought, or the imagination that is drawn out of the substance of matter, a stone, or the head, the bony skull. It is depicted in both Arthurian Myths as Excalibur and the Grail Myths as the Grail Sword.

“In 37 AD Caiaphas was removed from office and replaced by his sister’s husband Jonathan.  Ananias continued to have influence in the Sanhedrin through five sons, who all became high priests.

“Salome, daughter of Herodias, went on to marry Philip, son of her stepfather, Herod, but he died leaving her childless. She then married Aristobulus, her uncle, and they had three sons, Herod, Agrippa, and Aristobulus. Legend has it that she fell into an icy stream and was decapitated by an ice drift.

“Saul pupil of Gamaliel observed the events of the Paschal week and had not sympathised with Jesus and his followers and became a persecutor of the Christians. On his way to Damascus he was struck by a vision of Christ manifesting in the encircling round of the earth. Immediately converted by it he called himself by his Greek name, Paul. In time he became a great Christian leader and was responsible for introducing Christianity to the Gentiles.

“Jerusalem fell to the Romans, Vespacian and Titan, in 70 AD. Thus was ended the reign of the Sadducees and Pharisees, disbanding the Sanhedrin forever.

“Those events at the turning point in time, that is the times of Jesus Christ, did not go unrecorded. Simon-Peter’s pupil Mark, followed Peter to Rome. A spark of that Pentecostal fire which Simon-Peter had possessed so forcefully entered into his soul to inspire Mark. After Peter’s death, Mark travelled to Alexandria in Egypt where once had lived the Jewish philosopher Philo, whose pupil Photismos, had taught the young Lazarus at the Migdal tower. Here, Mark met a man called Ormuz, a high priest of Isis, whom Mark converted to Christianity. Ormuz taught him the secrets of Egyptian initiation and together they reformed the Isis cult into an esoteric Christian cultus. Mark rose upwards through this cultus to a vision of those events experienced by Peter in the Akasha. He saw Christ in his Cosmic significance and set out to describe His deeds as cosmic activities. Years after his death his gospel was altered and some aspects of it were removed due to their esoteric nature. The full gospel was only known in small circles as The Secret Gospel According to Mark. This Gospel has never been found but a letter attesting to its existence written by Clement of Alexandria was discovered by a man called Morton Smith in 1958 at the Mar Saba monastery. The cultus established by Mark and Ormuz would later become the basis of all Grail and Templar cults.

“Luke, the author of the Luke Gospel, was a doctor with a Buddhist soul. He had not belonged to the twelve apostles but like Mark had been one of the group of seventy followers. He became a disciple of Paul and followed him on his apostolic journeys and was with him in Rome. Paul’s Damascus experience, in which he had seen the resurrected Christ, became a part of Luke’s experience as his pupil and he grew to have an understanding of what could be found in the Akasha concerning the priestly Jesus of the Nathan line. Luke portrayed Jesus Christ as the healer imbued with soul and love and compassion.

“The Gospel writer Matthew or Matthias, should not to be confused with Matthew Levi, the tax collector. Matthias was an Essene and his mother was Mary Mark was caretaker at the Cenacle. He was elected one of the twelve apostles, replacing Judas. Through his Essene initiation, he was able to have a particular understanding for the kingly Yeshua of the Solomon line. For this reason the Matthew Gospel is the most human of the four gospels in that it does not so much direct us to the cosmic aspect of Christ but to His workings in the body Jesus of Nazareth.

“Many years after the crucifixion of Christ Jesus, Lazarus-John, now called Presbyter John, returned from exile to Ephesus where he found again the teaching of his old master Photismos in the Ephesian mysteries of Artemis. Here the mystery formula – In the beginning was the word and the word was with God – came alive again in his soul. Being the only evangelist to have experienced the full reality of Christ Jesus, both physically and spiritually, he was able through his Mother of God, that is, through Divine wisdom (for this reason he is called John the Divine) to write the most profound and accurate of the four Gospels and to place it within the context of the Mysteries of the Logos or the Word. Even today, the above formula of the Word can be used by those who have a desire to rise up to an experience in the Akasha, of what John himself had experienced.”

Appropriating  and Confiscating Etheric Entelechy Codes and Copies

Our culture today thrives on copies. We can burn a DVD, we can have instant downloads of copies. Data can be transferred in seconds. We can have gigabytes of data. I grew into this age and I began as many of my ancient artist friends had, with mimeograph and carbon copies of our plays that we wrote in the late 70’s off B’way.

Ancient scores for music were written out by hand. The preserved originals were, precious, priceless, exquisite. We merely have to remember Beethoven and Mozart, Gutenberg and all the illustrated beautiful calligraphic copies of Bibles.  They were priceless, rare and many monasteries were devoted to the task of writing and having the living flame of the WORD flow directly through the hands and hearts of human beings. Many monasteries were quietly tucked away and hidden from the sight and publicity of everyone save the Angels.

We have entered into reproducing genetic copies or interfering with the copies of seeds produced in nature and locking up certain genetic potentials so that actual nature forces, Sun Mysteries of the Etheric Life on our Earth, are being currently tampered with and edited. The Etheric Sun Life of the logos was in every stone, plant, animal, insect and human being. But now new edited and revised versions of nature and the human being are being coded before our eyes.

The ability of the Christ to enter into and raise Lazarus/John reveals the potent seed force of protecting the higher unfolding forces of Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man through the initiation of Christian Rosenkreutz in the 13th century (see link). The magnificent Etheric Sun Gardener of the human species intervened with Lazarus/John and preserved the highest Etheric Sun intentions in the initiation of Lazarus/Christian Rosenkreutz.

Understanding the Etheric foundational Sun Mysteries of the interconnected structural design codes of The Sun Evolution and how our Earth has a spread of structural design, ‘intelligent designs’ that sweep through crystal, plant, insect, animal and human, requires the actual education of the observer to see at least five interconnected links in the Etheric sweep of Nature to the higher etheric, astral and I AM codes that are part of every human being. There is a battle going on right under our noses to rob and hijack the etheric foundational codes of LIFE itself.

Five interconnected codes of etheric LIFE transit through Mineral, Plant, Insect, Animal, Human. All of these five may be clearly observed in nature and all of these five are LIFE and LIVING codes of physical, etheric, astral and I AM magnifications and enhancements. Not understanding this, science can willy-nilly fabricate, Ahrimanically corrupt and interfere with the Etheric Sun Life and Logos processes and begin to insert an Ahrimanic deception and fabrication in place of Nature’s Sun laws.

The Christ anticipated the intense attack on the Etheric foundations of nature and the human system, so He initiated Lazarus/Christian Rosenkreuz (most hidden moment in human history) and as well, preserved the Zarathustra/Jesus copies that successfully allowed the Christ, like a dove of lightening, to shiver down to the physical bones of a human being, enter and re-boot the higher etheric systems of nature and LIFE, open the astral gateways to TRUTH and become the harvester and gardener of the crop of human I AM’s who strive to blossom into Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man. Ahriman intends to divert, thwart and rob humanity of our higher spiritual potentials.

We can travel down those five stages or up those five stages and we can see in nature a marvelous design system which is not taught anywhere save the Michael School.  (1) Physical alone and light bearing codes exist in THE MINERAL AND CRYSTAL. (2)  Etheric codes exist in the lymphatic and the vegetation, flora, crop and plant basis of life, blooming and decay systems using physical and etheric design codes. (3) Insects are the external nervous system or astral representations of the plant Etheric system. The Insects and Plants are lock and key designed to match each other because the insects are the externalized ASTRAL or the nervous system of the plant world. (4)  Animals have gained independent locomotion, unique specialized skill sets and they exist as Group Beings, not individual beings. However in their Group Being skill sets they have components concentrated in their unique forms that reveal full functioning physical-etheric-astral unique and specialized skill sets and gifts. Which translates into physical-lymphatic-nervous system, SYSTEMS that we observe concentrated in a specialized animal forms with their unique specialized animal traits.

(5) Human Beings are the concentrated Tenth Hierarchy divine beings who represent a consolidation on Earth of a complete DIVINE INDIVIDUALITY, who bring their unique and individual skill sets into incarnation from the Starry regions into the Embryological and Etheric Sun systems of an Entelechy, in Greek Entelécheia, as coined by Aristotle. Humans have an I AM system that continuously reincarnates and bring our unique skill sets into the ongoing stream of time. A human being has a physical body-etheric (lymphatic) body- Astral body or nervous system body – And a core I AM system that is part of the I AM system of the Risen Etheric Christ community.

Naive Ahrimanic COPIES of Fabricated Life Forms

“A patented gene differs from its intracellular counterpart in that it is no longer part of a chromosome. Also, a patent typically claims only the protein-encoding part of a gene, not the regions without apparent function. “When you isolate something as it appears in its natural state you change it, even if the only change is the isolation. You have left behind the natural product and created something artificial. No isolated gene sequence occurs in nature,” says Harold Edgar, professor of law at Columbia University. In 1990, the PTO changed its regulations to include rules for filing claims on DNA sequences.

Since that time, some groups have objected to patenting DNA, focusing on its special role in carrying the information to construct a human. Dr. Mark Hanson, project director of religion and biotechnology policy at the Hastings Center, a bioethics think tank in Garrison, N.Y., explains the religious challenge to patenting genes. “DNA is considered to be so intimately related to species identity that no parts of it should be controlled by corporate interests. In the case of human beings, human DNA is unique because it is human, and therefore possessing intrinsic value of a sacred kind. As one critic puts it, DNA bears the image of God.”

A second objection to patenting genes is that DNA is a product of nature, not human ingenuity. The Council for Responsible Genetics, a Cambridge, Mass.-based organization of scientists, public health advocates, and consumers, takes this view. They have an online petition that states: “The plants, animals, and microorganisms comprising life on Earth are part of the natural world into which we are all born. The conversion of these species, their molecules, or parts into corporate property through patent monopolies is counter to the interests of the peoples of this country and of the world. No individual, institution, or corporation … should be able to hold patents on organs, cells, genes, or proteins, whether naturally occurring, genetically altered, or otherwise modified.”

Nature can now be edited, already we are at the point where we can edit certain traits in the genetic and genome structure, make copies of these and produce clones. Just like auto assembly lines of Henry Ford, who brought his gifts for mass production directly out of an Egyptian incarnation which he was very aware of. We can buy and sell replicated, duplicated and personal instruments which become our extended memories and extended, deepened lives, our private interests our astral interests in higher ideals and hopes and feed our lower passions.

Now the moral and immoral aspects and privacy issues means that everything can be hacked and we are constantly under surveillance. Our tracks, trails and intimate private thoughts, if they were recorded on cameras, phone cameras, computers or written down, all can be salvaged and witnessed and reviewed with either moral or immoral intents. The reading of our entire intimate lives and our biographies are harvested upwards as we exit through the PORTAL of death.

“The period immediately following death is of great importance for the human being. It lasts for many hours, even days, during which the whole of the incarnation that is just over comes before the soul of the dead as in a great tableau of memories. This happens to every human being after death.”
Here, through other works out of Spiritual Science we can fathom how our entire intimate LIFE TABLEAU (see link) is received when we die. This harvesting is done by Angelic servants and the entire system of the heavens applies to absolutely everyone equally. We die, our astral bodies are harvested, the stars and their imprint at our exits are recorded and our higher I AM is entrusted to a vast Moral System of digestion and rebirth that includes the vast complex of the stars and constellations.

Our current petty comparisons to INFORMATION and the harvesting of INFORMATION in an Orwellian sense, a full blown Black Lodge, Caiaphas School of Ahrimanic data on Earth is directly related to the intent of achieving  through devious and occult means information that Ahrimanic beings can no longer attain from souls crossing the threshold of death. In other words THE FALL OF THE SPIRITS OF DARKNESS and the Michael Battle that was won in 1879 has thrust and exiled the entire misinformation and backdoor data systems management of Ahriman down into the immoral system of the human intellect. Here SPIN, propaganda, lies and misinformation are the current daily bread of the human psyche.

It roughly depends on the morality of the human soul and spirit, in how information is confiscated or tampered with or is spun in the Orwellian sense and the CENTRAL INTELLIGENCE AGENCY sense. Data and Information are priceless commodities. If the Ahrimanic beings who have been thrust out of the Heavens and out of the Spiritual World interfere, and that is currently an absolute given, we cannot remain naive.

We arrive on Earth, as souls and spirits, with our Astral bodies goals, drives and talents and our Etheric precise biographical and moral potentials. Currently the RISE of THE FALLEN SPIRITS OF DARKNESS are aiming at maximum interference in human striving of the most malignant kind.

Already the incarnation of children who bring spiritual capacities from the spiritual world into human society are willfully attacked through regiment, after regiment of militarized, weaponized vaccines (see link) and injections, which shoots round after round into the foundations of the etheric and astral systems of a child which shatters the child’s delicate higher capacities through mercury and other toxic  ingredients.

These are attacks, because like Judas, we don’t study, believe or desire to know about the spiritual world where our children have come from nor what Beings exist around us nor that we are the last line of defense for the Tenth Hierarchy and what our children bring into incarnation.

Christ anticipated that Ahriman would sweep in and attempt to take over LIFE, known as the challenge that Ahriman threw at Christ, to turn stones into bread. Ahriman is intent on grabbing the Etheric codes of LIFE while burying the Etheric Christ with lie after lie so that we as humanity would willingly become our own Judases.

Either from vaccines, torture, genetic tampering, editing out sequences in the code, deleting; OR using torture to block and psychologically damage, through unmitigated cruelty, through sadism, through addictions to potent incremental toxins; OR by making the whole earthly population dependent and obedient to an Earthly Pharma preventive plan (CLICK ON VITAL LINK FOR OPERATIONS ALREADY UNDERWAY); OR Government laws and decisions that determine the definition of LIFE, we can be and will be cut off from the Divine Spiritual worlds. These Ahrimanic intentions are working directly through human agents. Determining exactly the type of gender and physical, etheric and astral body that is safe for government tyranny tailored to V for Vendetta and Ahrimanic/Orwellian requirements (link is part of the ancient John Patmos Rosicrucian mystery) is coming up after the collapse of global economies and the consolidation of a far more disguised and virulent global tyranny.

Without ever admitting that our astral and star bodies are harvested and our talents forwarded by the Beings of the Stars themselves and that our capacities and talents are transformed into an entirely new, VIRGIN etheric body that transfers those capacities towards a new incarnation, is the medical SPIN that serves the Ahrimanic intent. And without acknowledging, understanding and worse, denying that the I AM of the human being is indestructible and sacred to the heavens and that this core of our rebirth into a physical, etheric, astral and I AM system, was safeguarded, that is, until now, the Tenth Hierarchy will fall into enslavement.

The wonderful market place of the Whore of Babylon is on it’s way, after the global collapse. This market place of Ahriman includes the insertion of Monsanto (see link) divorced etheric and GM locked and patented seeds stolen from Earth’s bounty and Ahriman’s gift of a fully fabricated etheric health system form fitted, Entelechy, fitted prior to birth and fixed with certain qualities that Ahriman will attach to every single human being from cradle to grave are all almost in place. Not quite but almost fully in place.

The Grand Inquisitor Translated by H.P. Blavatsky

“…for never was there anything more unbearable to the human race than personal freedom! Dost Thou see these stones in the desolate and glaring wilderness? Command that these stones be made bread–and mankind will run after Thee, obedient and grateful like a herd of cattle. But even then it will be ever diffident and trembling, lest Thou should take away Thy hand, and they lose thereby their bread! Thou didst refuse to accept the offer for fear of depriving men of their free choice; for where is there freedom of choice where men are bribed with bread? Man shall not live by bread alone– was Thine answer. Thou knewest not, it seems, that it was precisely in the name of that earthly bread that the terrestrial spirit would one day rise against, struggle with, and finally conquer Thee, followed by the hungry multitudes shouting: “Who is like unto that Beast, who maketh fire come down from heaven upon the earth!” Knowest Thou not that, but a few centuries hence, and the whole of mankind will have proclaimed in its wisdom and through its mouthpiece, Science, that there is no more crime, hence no more sin on earth, but only hungry people? “Feed us first and then command us to be virtuous!” will be the words written upon the banner lifted against Thee…”
“They will have no secrets from us. It will rest with us to permit them to live with their wives and concubines, or to forbid them, to have children or remain childless, either way depending on the degree of their obedience to us; and they will submit most joyfully to us the most agonizing secrets of their souls–all, all will they lay down at our feet, and we will authorize and remit them all in Thy name, and they will believe us and accept our mediation with rapture, as it will deliver them from their greatest anxiety and torture–that of having to decide freely for themselves. And all will be happy, all except the one or two hundred thousands of their rulers.
“For it is but we, we the keepers of the great Mystery who will be miserable. There will be thousands of millions of happy infants, and one hundred thousand martyrs who have taken upon themselves the curse of knowledge of good and evil. Peaceable will be their end, and peacefully will they die, in Thy name, to find behind the portals of the grave–but death.
“But we will keep the secret inviolate, and deceive them for their own good with the mirage of life eternal in Thy kingdom. For, were there really anything like life beyond the grave, surely it would never fall to the lot of such as they! People tell us and prophesy of Thy coming and triumphing once more on earth; of Thy appearing with the army of Thy elect, with Thy proud and mighty ones; but we will answer Thee that they have saved but themselves while we have saved all.
“We are also threatened with the great disgrace which awaits the whore, “Babylon the great, the mother of harlots”–who sits upon the Beast, holding in her hands the Mystery, the word written upon her forehead; and we are told that the weak ones, the lambs shall rebel against her and shall make her desolate and naked. But then will I arise, and point out to Thee the thousands of millions of happy infants free from any sin. And we who have taken their sins upon us, for their own good, shall stand before Thee and say: “Judge us if Thou canst and darest!” Know then that I fear Thee not.”

Now our exiled Ahrimanic companions that thrive in our shadows and doubles through our intellects have proceeded on a pace to have Earthly and immoral black brotherhoods, who understand how the system of the heavens works, who understand how the etheric, astral and I AM systems work, but who have been seduced to form their earthly and spiritual allegiances, who through their addictions and shadows are conscripted and compromised are literally blackmailed by Ahrimanic agents and accomplices who betray and oppose every thing to do with the higher freedom, purpose and progress of The Tenth Hierarchy.

Copies of etheric, astral and I AM systems can be made by immoral corporations on the Earth or they can be given as a result of higher human striving. The key to these copies is the nature of the Sun Being and the Sun Evolution of the Earth. With the Sun Logos of the Etheric Christ where Etheric life, human life and every system of plant, animal and human life, are woven full with natures laws of living Etheric Life, rhythms and cycles we are protected. These very foundational laws were made as the Logos was made in the early development of creation known as the Sun Evolution.

The Christ Being who walked the Earth and lived at the time of Golgotha was this Sun Logos Etheric King of Life. All that we see in nature, all that we thought we had secured of nature and life around us was made by HIM.  In HIM was life and all that St. John declared goes back to the ancient Sun Evolution that mineral, plants, insects, animals and humanity were grounded in. Therefore when this Christ lived on Earth in a human form with an Etheric, Astral and I AM of the human Jesus, transmuted and  defined by Zarathustra and enhanced and magnified by the Christ Being Himself, as HE lived as a human being for THREE YEARS on the Earth, something very strange was the result.

The result was that neither the Etheric body that did the miracles nor the Astral body that knew the Angels and knew the hearts of human beings nor the Macrocosmic I AM Sun Being who knew that He had made nature, had authored, was THE WORD ITSELF, none of these higher functioning and perfected systems disintegrated, decayed or vanished because of His crucifixion.

Our systems, codes, structures, what Aristotle would call the Entelechy had been worn and perfected by the code maker HIMSELF. HE  had perfected and transmuted the codes of the Fall and through the seed force, the literal SEED FORCE of having been the Sun Being Himself, these models, these copies were made permanent and safeguarded for our future developments.

Permanent as the Rose or endangered as the Bee, the great warehouse of minerals, plants, insects, animals and humans all function with a magnificent complex higher system and the author of that system walked the Earth for THREE YEARS and Resurrected with the full open source, free access perfected systems which could be intimately integrated into any human I AM, any human astral body and any human Etheric body.

A Sun explosion, a plethora of magnificent copies of the perfected human blueprints that re-programmed the entire complex codes of the Fall and of the limitations of  death, through the Christ Event, humanity might also re-integrate these perfected systems, learn from them and incorporate them into our present and future unfolding reincarnation, destiny and biographies.

Humanity could gradually learn to become I AM’s who could graduate, earn degrees and gain the rights to become Initiates of The Tenth Hierarchy. Gradually each human being grows into Angelhood, Archangelhood, Archehood and up to the highest levels, to the Christ Himself. Christ offered to anyone who would tread the path of the LIFE – the WAY and the TRUTH or remain true to the Etheric goodness, the path of the astral and the truth of the I AM as reincarnating immortal beings, the opportunity of gaining Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man capabilities.

Ahrimanic forces are intent on perfecting copies on Earth, through cloning sciences and Monsanto that are counting on the fact that when they finish creating the counterfeit etheric bodies and counterfeit nature to feed (see link) the counterfeit etheric bodies and create a counterfeit entertainment heaven, for fun addictive entertainment stuff , humanity will be ready to cave in and willing abnegate our Tenth Hierarchy status to Ahriman’s stones for bread bargain against The Christ Being.

By the time Ahriman brings all our little spoiled, failed, and fouled human decisions through all those Ahrimanic accomplices who betrayed themselves, murdered, tortured and greedily gobbled up the resources of the soul, the spirit and the world, then – then – then we can introduce the master of deception, fraud and good intentions himself, the earthly king, who will give us all these goodies for free. The price of admission will be our over all Judas betrayal of our Divine position within the Hierarchies. A fabricated etheric body from cradle to grave perfected and patented by earthly Ahrimanic corporations, health, entertainment, earthly instant gratification, no guilt and all you can eat buffets will seem irresistible.

IMPOSING AHRIMANIC ETHERIC DESIGN CODES PATENTED AND LOCKED ETHERIC COPIES

Just as Monsanto has done to nature and seed products, the human etheric body will be patented and locked so that the spiritual world, the individual karma and model of the etheric body needed for the evolution of the individual I AM, will be locked, patented and secured against the full potential of spiritual capacities arising on their own.

In this way, for the benefit of humanity, Ahriman will have rid the Etheric body of illnesses and flaws that were too perplexing for materialism to solve and with all the tampered and destructive forces of bioweaponized vaccines, plagues and radioactive deformities flowing through soil, water and DNA, Ahriman will lock-in an Earthly Etheric body model that suppresses and disrupts the individual astral and I AM spiritual gifts from arising.

In other words as Rudolf Steiner indicated, thoughts about the spiritual world will be considered an illness and the cause of illnesses and Ahriman will have inoculated and frozen Earth Etheric copies and Astral systems and models at our current Intellectual levels, all for the clear cut materialistic benefit of humanity and the preservation human corporate Ahrimanic deception.

“In Greek mythology, Procrustes was the son of Poseidon, God of the deep blue seas. He built an iron bed of a size that suited him, and then forced everybody who passed by his abode to lie on it. If the passerby was shorter than his bed, then Procrustes would stretch him, breaking bones, tendons and sinews until the victim fitted; if he was taller, then Procrustes would chop off feet and limbs until the victim was the “right” size. This ancient story of “one size fits all” seems to have made its 21st Century comeback.”

But first, before Ahriman gives us these copies and we celebrate our global collapse with a new Santa as Savior who offers our spoiled souls, souls that Ahriman and our lazy refusal to measure the universe in the Image of Christ have brought us to, our future parents will solemnly repeat the tale of our full global collapse, the constant wars, the psychopaths and sociopaths, they will repeat to us as a grand, justified, materialistic fable. Then history will tell us, Revised Orwellian style history will tell us, how this nice person came and saved us all and solved all our conflicts and now we are so happy because we can have, excuse me, the whole world can have everything the same. All humans created and given Equal STUFF.

So now instead of the unfairness of the Individual I AM, and striving to become a Conscious Co-worker with Christ in the Kingdom of the I AM,  we applaud the famous distortion, ALL HUMANS ARE CREATED EQUAL (SEE LINK). This will have become Ahriman’s glorious fulfilling motto. He will implement an Ahrimanically designed counterfeit etheric body where all humans are equal, by law.

Ahriman will have stolen the Sun Logos, Etheric Christ identity, the greatest example of IDENTITY THEFT in human history. Ahriman, through our abnegation of moral I AM responsibilities becomes for us the King of Earthly Life processes, by law. The gamble the Christ made on Judas will have paid off, for all of humanity will have taken the Judas path and we will have betrayed the Risen Etheric Christ for someone who could deliver bread, health, fun and a sense of common equality for a mere THIRTY PIECES OF SILVER.

Rudolf Steiner

“Just as the seed of a plant, once buried in the ground, reappears in many copies according to the mystery of number, so the copies of Jesus of Nazareth’s etheric and astral bodies were present in the spiritual world.”

“When Christ descended to the earth, He enveloped Himself with the threefold physical, etheric, and astral bodies of Jesus of Nazareth and lived three years in this sheath as Christ, the Sun-Spirit. With the event of the Mystery of Golgotha, Christ descended to the earth; but aside from what is known to all of you, something else special happened by virtue of the fact that Christ indwelled the three bodies of Jesus of Nazareth, particularly the astral and etheric bodies. After Christ cast off the bodies of Jesus of Nazareth, they were still present as spiritual substance in the spiritual world, but multiplied in a great many copies. They did not perish in the world ether or in the astral world, but continued to live as identical images. Just as the seed of a plant, once buried in the ground, reappears in many copies according to the mystery of number, so the copies of Jesus of Nazareth’s etheric and astral bodies were present in the spiritual world. And for what purpose were they present, considering the large framework of spiritual economy? They were there to be preserved and to serve the overall progress of the human race.

“One of the first individuals to benefit from the blessed fact of these countless copies of Jesus’s etheric body being present in the spiritual world was St. Augustine. When he again descended to earth after an earlier incarnation, not just any etheric body was woven into his own, but rather the copy of the etheric body of Jesus of Nazareth. Augustine had his own astral body and ego, but his etheric body was interwoven with the image of the etheric body of Jesus. He had to work through the culture of his ego and astral body, but when he had made his way to the etheric body, he realized the great truths that we find in his mystical writings.”

Copies of the vibrant Etheric body of Jesus Himself, the pristine mirror of the memory of Judas having touched, spoken, even KISSED the Christ in his betrayal and having been karmically connected to all of the disciples in the past would carry Judas forward into his incarnation as St. Augustine. We do not merely work on ourselves, we work for the whole of humanity by working on ourselves.

St. Augustine Of Hippo
354-430

Christ does not wish us to remain unconsciously unaware of our Karmic legacies. On the contrary the Christ works with our individual I AM and our karma as a great Artist and Gardener, but it is we who must become surprised and astonished by the hidden clues of our Spirits. St. Augustine carried as an Etheric Mirror in himself the perfected and powerful gift of the copy of the Etheric body of Jesus overlaid with his own former Judas etheric body.

St. Augustine, the great theological pillar of the Roman Catholic Church whose work flows right into the theology of St. Thomas Aquinas, the direct previous life of Rudolf Steiner himself and flows deeply into modern psychology and the Anima and Animus studies of Carl Jung. Jung and Steiner both agree that the powerful problems of how our etheric bodies mirror our physical sex also influences our astral insights and the directions we pursue in our sexual orientations .

Our etheric bodies carry the opposite mirror of the sex we carry as physical human beings. Jung called it the Anima and Animus. But now we are observing and encountering that these vast inspirations sometimes light and sometimes dark that arise out of our Etheric bodies need to be examined against the mere trivia of personal sexual orientations and rather aimed at the reservoirs of vast complex wisdom that may be folded inside the kernel of our normal etheric, astral, or I AM system. In other words the Christ doesn’t care what your physical sexual orientation is as long as your orientation is towards your higher soul and spirit. Christ will be there for us as He was there for Judas and St. Augustine as an awakener.

“…with the princely generosity of a noted inhabitant of Tagasta, named Romanian, he was sent to the better equipped schools of the neighboring Madaura and later to Carthage. The schools of Carthage, though not so renowned and exceptional as those of Alexandria and Antioch, were yet among the most prominent of the Roman World. He was sixteen years of age when he was taken to this city, and after four years he had risen to the first place in the schools of rhetoric and had mastered all the branches of the liberal arts then taught. None could equal his penetration, none surpass him in the readiness of his answers or in the clearness of his expositions. The subtle distinctions and divisions of Aristotle were plain to him.

“The scholars of Carthage were anything but sober, industrious, modest, and orderly youths. They were indocile and turbulent; not only disturbing by their wild pranks the peace of the city, but interrupting by their noisy behavior and inattention the master’s discourses and lectures. It was next to impossible to preserve any semblance of discipline in the classes. So Augustine left in disgust and set out for Rome, the ancient mistress of the world. He had been enamoured by her imperishable traditions and magnificent monuments of grandeur and art, by her memories of numerous great men, their genius and their works, by her history ever rich in majesty and glory.

Induced by the consideration that he would find there the absence of unfavorable circumstances and the presence of stronger incentives to enthusiasm and high inspiration, he left his country and his mother, and in 383, with Alypius, his friend and pupil, he departed for this metropolis. But again he was doomed to disappointment. Though disciples were not wanting, and his chair was surrounded by a throng of earnest and strong students, he did not find the all-absorbing passion for wisdom and truth, for the sublime and beautiful, that he had fondly anticipated. There was not, indeed, the same degree of turbulence and disorder as at Carthage, but the magnificence and ostentation of the Roman family and life, their splendid palaces and festive orgies, could not but prove very injurious to habits of study. The youth had imbibed the venal corruption everywhere prevalent. Hence it not seldom happened that Roman scholars conspired to rob their master of his salary and desert his class in a body. Roman vileness and baseness disgusted Augustine even more than Punic insubordination. He therefore took advantage of a request made by the citizens of Milan of Symmachus who was then Prefect of Rome, that he would procure for them a professor of rhetoric. He accepted the proposal; and toward the close of the year 384 he was teaching at Milan. “

Judas had passed through kamaloca and the spiritual worlds and had been given a ‘virgin etheric body’ for his new incarnation with all the latent Judas issues still livingly working in him as part of his potent personal riddles. We all have such riddles and we all have to have help in order to solve those riddles.

St. Augustine plowed into his inner doubts and humanities issues, which St. Augustine carried in himself and broke through to the clarified etheric mirror of his own spirit having known and witnessed the actual Christ Event first hand.

Yet with all that Judas baggage, St. Augustine carried all of the most difficult questions of the soul and spirit ahead of us and through his step by step awakening and discovery of the foundations of his soul, St. Augustine caught glimpses and snatches of the cohesive Etheric light of the Jesus Etheric body awakening in him and sending new surges of life, strength and courage where only his own failures had appeared before.

If you think Judas got a free ride by being St. Augustine, you have not studied St. Augustine. The Christ wants us to discover the TRUTH in ourselves and is willing to walk with us on our long and individual roads. There is no one size fits all. We are required to EARN our individual insights through our own individual trials so that we may appreciate the journey of every individual I AM and show compassion and understanding for every Child who embarks, ever and again, on the journey of discovering their own higher being.

Part I is followed by PART II where we follow Dick Cheney into THE SYMPHONY FOR THE DAMNED. But as we close Part I it would be amiss if we didn’t celebrate the Golden Etheric coat of St. Augustine and Bob Dylan’s song of St. Augustine. And sometimes when I think of how St. Augustine might have appeared today, I sometimes listen to the voice and look to the rugged face of  Bob Dylan and wonder. (Youtube keeps removing Bob Dylan clips on St. Augustine so here is another one, even Joan Baez does St. Augustine her clip here)Dylan truly had captured the Golden Etheric coat of St. Augustine in his highly original Song. See ya in PART II.

LINK OVER TO PART II

ADDENDUM 1

“Saint Augustine” a poem in 8 books by Henry Warwick Cole Q.C. travels richly through Augustine’s struggles in a wonderful poetic style. (SEE LINK).  Judas is of course discussed but Augustine dealt with suicide and hundreds of other Etheric/Astral and I AM issues, as the New Etheric forces of the Etheric Body of Jesus rose up and penetrated his own inwardness of soul as a living nourishing MARRIAGE between his Etheric body and the Jesus Etheric body.

ADDENDUM 2

Music  video on The Redemption of Judas.  In a completely different visual style a second video of THE REDEMPTION OF JUDAS can be viewed HERE.

ADDENDUM 3

The Bob Dylan Masterpiece of Poetry, the slam dunk of exactly how the human community must recognize and stand firm against an Ahrimanic assault that was perpetuated by immense gloating military toys and the Military Industrial Complex as early as WWI to the attempts to pull off WW III. PEARL JAM lifts the Bob Dylan song, and the lyrics in the song, if you listen tell of JUDAS OF OLD. This Judas of old and the profits off death and destruction unable to buy back the soul are a JUDAS/ST. AUGUSTINE REVELATION in the very lyrics and power that Bob Dylan offered. And in fact we have to be as FIRM in our resolve as the End of the Song designates. AHRIMAN will not disappear without this firm RESOLVE.  (CLICK LINK)

ADDENDUM 4

This just came through – inspired by reading Bradford Riley‘s blog post on Judas!

But I Thought

I knew in my heart that He was the Son of God
But I thought that he was our military leader
I knew in my heart that He was the cure for our pain
But I thought that he had come to feed the poor

I knew in my heart that He was the Body of Love
But I thought that he came to punish our sins
I knew in my heart that He would forgive me
But I thought that he would never be caught

I knew in my heart that He needed my help
But I thought my betrayal would never be death
I knew in my heart that someone was chosen
But I thought I was furthering the good of our cause

I loved Him far more than I loved my own life
But I thought

Christine Natale

April 29, 2012

ADDENDUM 5

A little something to remember Judas by. CLICK LINK.

“Fukushima Dai-ichi and the Karma of Japan” by Bradford Riley

Rudolf Steiner

“Ahriman-Mephistopheles who has subjected him (humanity) to the influence of far more deadly powers and the civilizations immediately to come will see the appearance of many things connected with Ahriman’s influence. Through this influence the seeker for the spirit who does not stand upon firm and sure foundations can readily fall prey to the most terrible illusion and deception. For Ahriman is a spirit who sets out to spread deception as to the true nature of the sense-world, especially as an expression of the spiritual world. “

“1945 – 2011 is 66 years. 66 years before 1945 was 1879, the beginning of the Age of the Sun Archangel Michael.”

TERRY BOARDMAN

” 66 years after Hiroshima and Nagasaki, and after this latest disaster and nuclear scare, the Japanese people are more than entitled to say to the nuclear lobby “Enough is enough! We will not go on down this path. Our nation is named after the sun. We shall not try to create an artificial sun. Instead, we shall gratefully accept what the Sun gives us and develop it in life-giving ways.”

We can view with some clarity now the general Michael Lesson Plan that has been drawn up for humanity. Our incursions into promoting Ahriman’s deception of the Age of Light against the dawn of the Age of Light that Michael ushered in around 1879 has pursued a path of calamity and catastrophe that has brought us here. The general tendency from our over all education is that our worship of materialism has created a crisis by way of our serious denial of the Etheric Christ Being. Our global choice to pursue the deadly fire forces of nuclear energy  appears very clearly in the World Karma now coming forth from Japan.

Rudolf Steiner

“…it should never so much as occur to anyone to attach an iota of guilt to the victim of such a calamity or to withhold compassion in the fullest measure. It must be absolutely clear to an anthroposophist that the karma of these individuals has nothing to do with the guilt to which the catastrophes are due and it should never occur to him to withhold help from anyone because — to put it trivially — he believes in karma and therefore assumes that this destiny was brought on by the man himself. Karma demands of us that we help human beings because we may be sure that our help means something that is written in their karma and will turn that karma in a more favorable direction. Understanding that is based upon the recognition of karma must necessarily lead to compassion; our compassion for the victims of such catastrophes will be all the greater, for our knowledge tells us that there is a collective karma of humanity from which the individual members have to suffer, that just as such happenings are brought about by humanity as one whole, so too must humanity be answerable for them; we must regard such a destiny as our own and help not only out of a spontaneous impulse but because we know that we are involved in the karma of humanity and share the guilt incurred!”

Our false pursuit of an Ahrimanic age of Light reveals a dirty dark shadow that covers our materialistic falsified worship on the altars of Ahrimanic deception from Hiroshima, Nagasaki through to Three-Mile Island,  (Must See documentary Chernobyl), through deserts loaded with poison depleted uranium dust, to Fukushima Dai-ichi.  (And you will please note ‘ichi’ and it’s relation to the I Am and the German word ICH – we have arrived at the dead-end of the I AM offered by Ahrimanic deceptions)

“Shima means “island” in Japanese. We must make sure that Hiro- and Fuku- do not remain islands in our collective experience, but rather lead to an improved and sustained nuclear safety culture.” There is no improved and sustained nuclear culture. Island, like Hamlet is the island of the cognitive I AM, the ICH in German.

The Lesson Plan from Michael, the current Arche and Time Spirit is hovering over Japan in order to freely inspire humanity in order to effectively change our negligent and destructive thinking patterns.

With the horrific events that have befallen humanity, our friends, our brothers and sisters in Japan, where, sitting on the Ring of Fire, the forces of nature emerged from the depths of the Earth to shatter once more the hard working and sincere nature of the Japanese people, we find ourselves in a mutually shared global tragedy. And we, who have cheered Ahriman’s deception and even now bow before the altars of materialism, are directly to blame for the catastrophe of our brothers and sisters in Japan. But we are too cowardly to think it all through and follow the deception of the age of light, down to the deep fiery lair of Ahriman in the sixth layer of the Inner Earth.

In this essay we will gain some IMAGINATIONS, tools, thoughts and insights that Michael has offered cognitive humanity but in general humanity prefers media lies and trivia to the living power of Michael Imaginations and the school of Tenth Hierarchy cognition. We shall in this essay gain insight into the Moral Fabric of the Earth Herself and how human morality, or deliberate lack there-of, interfaces with natural catastrophes and human hubris. Human technology continues to press ahead while conscious human understanding of how the Tenth Hierarchy is connected to the roots of the Earth are brutally dismissed.

Through the events that are still continuing to reverberate through out the world, through Earthquakes and aftershocks(see clip) of immense magnitude, the Tidal waves that engulfed whole villages prefectures and towns, including the overwhelming direct hit on Fukushima Prefecture (福島県, Fukushima-ken) we will look with Michael School insights into the problems humanity has created for itself by insisting upon radioactive, anti-Etheric, poison-etheric-corrupting radioactive light in opposition to the Etheric Christ Light that uplifts and heals all aspects of human life on Earth.

We can look at the problems and karma of the nuclear age and the specific destiny of the Japanese people. Firstly the hardships and sufferings of a society that honors the dead and the ancestors and links the honor and dignity of the dead to the stream of the living. Another aspect is the intensely hard working built in humility, order and cleanliness as well as the practical efficiency of the Japanese people.

Rudolf Steiner

“To understand what will now be said, we must realize that over and above the karma which belongs to every individual human being, there is at every stage of existence a universal karmic law. All the categories of beings have their karma — the karma of the one differing from that of the other. But karma operates through every realm of existence and there are things in the karma of mankind, in the karma of a people, of a community or other group of human beings, which must be regarded as collective karma, so that in certain circumstances the individual can be drawn into the sway of the collective karma. It will not always be easy for one who cannot penetrate to the root of the matter to discern exactly where the influences of the powers concerned lie in the case of human beings overtaken by such a destiny. An individual within some community may well be entirely guiltless as far as his own karma is concerned; but because he stands within a field of collective karma, calamity may befall him. If, however, he is entirely guiltless, compensation will be made in later incarnations.

“In the wider connection we must look not only at the karma of the past but also think of the karma of the future. A terrible fate may befall a whole group of human beings; the reason why just this group should suffer such a destiny is not to be discovered. Someone who might be capable of investigating the karma of an individual will in certain circumstances be unable to find anything at all that could have led to this tragic fate, for the threads of karma are extremely complicated. The cause of such karmic happenings may lie far, far away — but it is connected with these people nevertheless. And it may be that the whole group, while guiltless, has been overtaken by some collective karma which could not overtake those immediately guilty, because circumstances did not make this possible.

“In such cases the only thing that can be said is this: In the total karma of an individual, everything is ultimately balanced out, including what befalls him without guilt on his part; it is all inscribed in his karma and compensation in the fullest sense will be made in future time. — Therefore in considering the law of karma we must also take into account the karma of the future.

“Nor must it be forgotten that man is not an isolated being but that every individual has to share jointly in the collective karma of humanity. We must remember, too, that man, together with humanity, is connected with those hierarchies of Beings who have not entered into the physical world and that he is also drawn into the karma of the hierarchies. In the destinies of mankind in the spiritual world a great deal appears the connections of which are not to be sought in the immediate circumstances, but the karmic consequences come to pass inevitably.

“Since the second half of the Atlantean epoch, Ahriman’s karma has been linked with the karma of mankind. Where, then, are the deeds of Ahriman, over and above what is wrought by him in the bodies of men in order to spread phantoms and illusion over the world of sense? Where are these other deeds? “

Michael Lesson Plans for confronting Ahrimanic deceptions in the Age of Light

In approaching grasping and understanding how Michael operates in relation to the etheric forces and rhythm patterns of the Etheric Christ, the following particular patterns must be reviewed. The results of the Crucifixion and Resurrection of the individuality of Christ on the hill of skulls at the age of 33 have set into history a powerful new Sun Rhythm into the very foundations of human life. That Sun Rhythm and Etheric Christ pattern reoccurs on 33 year cycles and remains a central mystery in the unfolding of individual human biography and the over all global karma of humanity.

The Arche Michael, our current ZeitGeist and Time Spirit, Spirit of the Age we are currently in for the next 200 and some years, serves The Risen Etheric Christ Being, the Sun Word and the Logos through the bright sun streaming of Sun Intelligence radiating through the Michael School and the Tenth Hierarchy. The Christ rhythm patterns of 33/66/99 have had a direct impact on the current crisis facing Japan and humanity. “1945 – 2011 is 66 years. 66 years before 1945 was 1879, the beginning of the Age of the Sun Archangel Michael. At that time, Japan was trying desperately to remain independent”

Here we can see that 2 X 33 years, have unfolded since the horrific events of Nagasaki and Hiroshima, two Christ Rhythm phases.[NOTE LINK HERE HOW THE COMPARISON IS STARTLING] We can look for Christ rhythm phases to occur in 33 year time rhythms. On the second rhythm past 1945, nuclear power plants antithetical to the Etheric Christ have spread horrific radioactive world wide poison which reveals something that we say all the time, WHAT GOES AROUND COMES AROUND.

“Japan imported its first commercial nuclear power plant from the UK in 1966”

The destructive nuclear attack that initiated the Ahrimanic age of light of Hiroshima and Nagasaki has now come back round to the world and the West and Europe with the equivalent of well over two thousand (2000) 500 kiloton bombs each, and get THIS, for once again we can see a secret in the number 33, one 500kt Atomic Bomb is 33 times bigger than the American Bomb that destroyed Hiroshima on August 6, 1945 and the amount of radioactivity set loose is equivalent to( 2000) 500kt bombs.

“Radioactive contamination equivalent to the Fukushima, Japan disaster in terms of the hated “Mushroom Cloud” Atomic Bombs is two thousand (2,000) 500 Kiloton Atomic Bombs.* Each 500kt Atomic Bomb is 33 times bigger than the American Bomb that destroyed Hiroshima on August 6, 1945. Truly, it is as if the entire world is At War! The dreaded all-out nuclear war that would happen if Russia or the United States accidentally “Pressed The Button” is going on right now; it is a done deal. Imagine that! The same thing as detonating 2,000 big Atomic Bombs and not even one “BOOM!” Not a shot fired, yet we could all die!”

Japan had already experienced a bankrupting recession that the rest of the world only experienced later. We all are currently wrestling in the mud of a global economic depression of nearly 700 trillion dollars brought about with conscious Ahrimanic intent, in order to poison, wound and entrap humanity. Ahrimanic deception is currently so brutal and vicious that it would go so far to remove the Etheric Christ from the perception of humanity to the point of spinning the nuclear and radioactive issues into a (see link) medical vaccination that might cure radiation sickness but tragically make humanity immune to the workings of the Etheric Christ in our higher etheric rhythm forces which operate in all healthy human beings.

Ahriman has pulled out all the stops in it’s battle against the Etheric Christ. Japan with energy and hard work, tried to overcome being one of the first to fall into recession that has been deliberately designed to incapacitate and numb humanity. Japan’s products efficiency and ingenuity have dwarfed most American industries. The Japanese have shown resiliency and humility in facing the horrific humiliation of defeat and the spiritual energy to rebuild and resurrect.

The pivotal issue is that the Age of Michael in 1879 brought Japan into the target cross-hairs of the Ahrimanic forces of Fallen nuclear light only 66 years later, by 1945. Now we pivot away from our 1879 rhythm of 66 years to 1945 and swing to the opposite scale, that represent the Cosmic Scales of balance, represented by Michael and we arrive 66 years after 1945, in the year 2011.  We can see how Japan and the karma of the Japanese people are being devastated, while the WEST continues ignorantly and arrogantly promoting Ahrimanic social destruction, murder, WAR, along with stepped up production orders for all new Ahrimanic nuclear power plants intended to blossom over the surface and periphery of  the globe.

The conflict between the age of Light that Michael stands for and the age of light that Ahriman stands for, is crystallized in understanding that through out the globe, many, many small domed Goetheanum’s were meant to blossom over the Earth, in every country in the world and create Spiritual Science centers meant to serve the new forces of the Etheric that were rising to meet humanity. The counter-blow that Ahriman has struck that wrested certain forces away from Michael and The Tenth Hierarchy, were the belief in a materialism that allows the building of hundreds of nuclear reactors and power plants over the Earth,  that now serve Ahriman’s lethal dawn of the age of anti-human and anti-etheric radioactive light, that represent Ahriman’s counterfeit Age of Light. Steiner saw hundreds of Goetheanum’s springing up over the Earth, while Ahriman sought to chain humanity to an anti-etheric power source founded in raw materialistic greed.

Humanity has a choice and a chance to recover it’s higher common sense and thwart the Ahrimanic assaults that continue to arise out of Washington D.C. Michael has swung the scale of human justice on a 66 year pivot to counteract the Ahrimanic thrust of a falsified, destructive and doomed age of Ahrimanic light. The current ZeitGeist moment in Japan has Michael vs Ahriman writ large.(Click Link to Doctors and Physicians struggle with radioactive poison and the Fukushima disaster, while failing to grasp or understand the Etheric Body) But it is humanity that must find the courage and the will to decide to do the right thing.

Humanity is tasked with unpoisoning the well and decontaminating the ideas that have promoted the rise of nuclear reactors and a materialistic facsimile and imitation of Michael’s Dawn of the Age of Light. Humanity is tasked with demystifying the materialistic deception.

Global Contamination for Centuries to come

#1 It is estimated that there are 1,331 used nuclear fuel rods that need to be removed from Fukushima. Because of all of the damage that has taken place, computer-guided removal of the rods will not be possible. Manual removal is much riskier, and it is absolutely essential that the removal of each of the 1,331 rods goes perfectly because a single mistake could potentially lead to a nuclear chain reaction.

#2 According to Reuters, the combined amount of cesium-137 contained in those nuclear fuel rods is 14,000 times greater than what was released when the U.S. dropped an atomic bomb on Hiroshima at the end of World War II. Other estimates put this number far higher.

#3 Officials in Japan admit that 300 tons of radioactive water from Fukushima is entering the Pacific Ocean every 24 hours.

#4 According to a professor at Tokyo University, 3 gigabecquerels of cesium-137 are flowing into the port at Fukushima Daiichi every single day… Yoichiro Tateiwa, NHK reporter: [Professor Jota] Kanda argues government statistics don’t add up. He says a daily leakage of 300 tons doesn’t explain the current levels of radiation in the water. Jota Kanda, Tokyo University professor: According to my research there are now 3 gigabecquerels [3 billion becquerels] of cesium-137 flowing into the port at Fukushima Daiichi every day. But for the 300 tons of groundwater to contain this much cesium-137, one liter of groundwater has to contain 10,000 becquerels of the radioactive isotope. NHK: Kanda’s research and monitoring by Tepco puts the amount of cesium-137 in the groundwater around the plant at several hundred becquerels per liter at most. He’s concluded that radioactive isotope is finding another way to get into the ocean. He’s calling on the government and Tepco to identify contamination routes other than groundwater.

#5 According to Tepco, a total of somewhere between 20 trillion and 40 trillion becquerels of radioactive tritium have gotten into the Pacific Ocean since the Fukushima disaster first began.

#6 Something is causing fish along the west coast of Canada to bleed from their gills, bellies and eyeballs. Could Fukushima be responsible?

#7 150 former sailors and Marines say that they now have radiation sickness as a result of serving on U.S. Navy ships near Fukushima and they are suing for damages.

#8 The Iodine-131, Cesium-137 and Strontium-90 that are constantly coming from Fukushima are going to affect the health of those living the the northern hemisphere for a very, very long time. Just check out what Harvey Wasserman had to say recently… Iodine-131, for example, can be ingested into the thyroid, where it emits beta particles (electrons) that damage tissue. A plague of damaged thyroids has already been reported among as many as 40 percent of the children in the Fukushima area. That percentage can only go higher. In developing youngsters, it can stunt both physical and mental growth. Among adults it causes a very wide range of ancillary ailments, including cancer. Cesium-137 from Fukushima has been found in fish caught as far away as California. It spreads throughout the body, but tends to accumulate in the muscles. Strontium-90’s half-life is around 29 years. It mimics calcium and goes to our bones.

#9 It is believed that the Fukushima nuclear facility originally contained a whopping 1760 tons of nuclear material.

#10 It is being projected that the entire Pacific Ocean will soon “have cesium levels 5 to 10 times higher” than what we witnessed during the era of heavy atomic bomb testing in the Pacific many decades ago.

#11 According to the Wall Street Journal, it is being projected that the cleanup of Fukushima could take up to 40 years to complete. Sadly, the true horror of this disaster is only starting to be understood, and most people have absolutely no idea how serious all of this is.

Fallout researcher Christina Consolo

“We have endless releases into the Pacific Ocean that will be ongoing for not only our lifetimes, but our children’s’ lifetimes. We have 40 million people living in the Tokyo area nearby. We have continued releases from the underground corium that reminds us it is there occasionally with steam events and huge increases in radiation levels.

Across the Pacific, we have at least two peer-reviewed scientific studies so far that have already provided evidence of increased mortality in North America, and thyroid problems in infants on the west coast states from our initial exposures. We have increasing contamination of the food chain, through bioaccumulation and biomagnification. And a newly stated concern is the proximity of melted fuel in relation to the Tokyo aquifer that extends under the plant. If and when the corium reaches the Tokyo aquifer, serious and expedient discussions will have to take place about evacuating 40 million people from the greater metropolitan area. As impossible as this sounds, you cannot live in an area which does not have access to safe water.

The operation to begin removing fuel from such a severely damaged pool has never been attempted before. The rods are unwieldy and very heavy, each one weighing two-thirds of a ton. But it has to be done, unless there is some way to encase the entire building in concrete with the pool as it is. I don’t know of anyone discussing that option, but it would seem much ‘safer’ than what they are about to attempt…but not without its own set of risks.

And all this collateral damage will continue for decades, if not centuries, even if things stay exactly the way they are now. But that is unlikely, as bad things happen like natural disasters and deterioration with time…earthquakes, subsidence, and corrosion, to name a few. Every day that goes by, the statistical risk increases for this apocalyptic scenario. No one can say or know how this will play out, except that millions of people will probably die even if things stay exactly as they are, and billions could die if things get any worse. The area immediately around Fukushima is already permanently uninhabitable, and the truth is that a much wider area of northern Japan should probably be declared off limits for human habitation.”

Michael may point to and  indicate a clear cut moral direction and decision that The Tenth Hierarchy could take, but human freedom prevents Michael from making the decision for us.

The Archangelic forces of the Japanese people are now set to be one of many specific Michael hot-spots. Michael has entered to safeguard humanity against the premature horrendous marriage to sub-human, deadly etheric poisoning, by unveiling the misguided use of nuclear energy and depleted uranium in the world.  Deep immoral disturbances in the Fire layer of the Earth due to the sensitive nature of human will and the disturbed fire forces in the depths of the Earth have prematurely thrust humanity into a conflict that goes all the way back to the sinking of Atlantis.

Rudolf Steiner

Lecture given in Berlin, January 1, 1909

“… Lucifer is a Being who detached himself from the spiritual hosts of heaven after the separation of the sun, whereas Ahriman had already broken away before the separation of the sun and is an embodiment of quite different powers. The result of Lucifer’s influence in the Lemurian epoch was merely the corruption of the faculty, still possessed by man in the Atlantean epoch, to manipulate the forces of air and water. In the book entitled From the Akasha Chronicle (COSMIC MEMORY) you will have read that in Atlantean times the seminal forces in plant and animal were still at man’s command and could be drawn forth just as the forces used in the form of steam for propelling machines can be extracted from mineral coal today. I have told you that when these forces are drawn forth they are connected in a mysterious way with the nature-forces in wind, weather and the like; and if applied by man for purposes running counter to the divine purposes, these nature-forces are called into action against him.

“Here lies the cause of the Atlantean flood and of the devastation wrought by the powers of nature which led to the disappearance of the whole continent of Atlantis. But even before that time, man had lost command over the forces of fire and the power to ally them with certain mysterious forces of the earth. Power over the forces of fire and earth in a certain combination had already been withdrawn from man. But now — through the influence of Ahriman and his accomplices — he again acquired a certain mastery over the forces of fire and earth, with dire consequences.

“…the sixth stratum, the “Fire Earth”, containing as “substances” within it, forces that can bring about terrible havoc and destruction. It is actually into these forces that the primordial Fire has been banished.

“In and from this stratum the realm of Ahriman operates — in a material sense. What manifests in the phenomena of outer nature, in air and water, in cloud formations, in lightning and thunder — all this is, so to speak, a last vestige on the earth’s surface, of forces that were already connected with ancient Saturn and separated from the earth together with the sun. By what is working in these forces, the inner fire-forces of the earth are placed in the service of Ahriman. There he has the center of his activity; and whereas his spiritual influences make their way to the souls of people and lead them to error, we see how Ahriman — in a certain respect shackled — has certain foci for his activity in the interior of the earth. Were we to understand the mysterious connections of what has come to pass on the earth under Ahriman’s influence and what Ahriman’s own karma has become in consequence of this, we should recognize in the quakes and tremors of the earth the connection between such grievous, tragic happenings in nature and the power that holds sway on the earth. These manifestations are something that has remained since ancient times as a reaction on the earth against the good Beings of Light.

“Thus forces allied with the Beings who were thrust away from their connection with the earth at the time when the good Beings of light established the beneficent phenomena around the earth-globe, are active, and in a certain sense we can recognize the echoings of these fire-forces which in earlier times were withdrawn from man’s control, in what is wrought by fire in such terrible manifestations of nature.”

Michael is presenting humanity with a moral challenge and a LESSON PLAN  to wake up to the horrific consequences of awakening the Fire Spirits of the Inner Earth Core, which again places the Japanese people on the vulnerable side of sitting on the Ring of Fire, with Volcanoes and the inner activity of the Earth responding to the the evil technology of nuclear breeder reactors that feed the disturbing demonic forces of fire in the core of the Earth.

The ancient pictographic language of Japan goes all the way back to the origins of the alphabet as Atlantean PictoGraphic replications. The Archangel that has guided the Japanese Language forces reaches far, far back to the origin of Language itself. This is documented in ONE LANGUAGE SOURCE OF ALL TONGUES by Arnold Wadler. A whole potent karmic stream and Language Archangel, the Japanese Language, ancient pictographic Atlantean Picto language carry the ancient ancestor honoring, the

stream connecting the passage of souls from earthly life and family relations to heavenly or spiritual life, where the ancestors are tracked, honored and their journey and memory continued, is a traditional ritual that links the living with the long history of the departed.

Because humanity is tied together via the West – Middle – East in a Threefold Social and Spiritual Configuration and since the West opened the nuclear age of Fallen radioactive Light and Fallen Ethers by dropping atomic bombs on the Japanese people, the current catastrophe from Japan reveals a remarkable relation to the scales of balance that Michael carries for the Cosmos, the Etheric Christ and for humanity.

Akira Kurosawa

Let us follow the inner capacities of the New Christ Impulse as it has appeared in the 20th century and follow these new Christ capacities out into the 21st century and in specific the current crisis at the Fukushima nuclear reactors. These new Christ capacities that are working their way through humanity appear here and there and we fail to recognize them. But when they appear in such a vivid recurring prophetic dream, enough that a rich Archangelic representative Soul from the EAST, a soul so steeped in the traditions, history, customs and language of the Japanese people, that a future picture, a future clairvoyant dream bursts forth in this soul, we should take notice.

Make no mistake about it, these are the very future capacities, indicated that would certainly appear and when they appear they would be filled with the substance of the Etheric Christ future vision insights that were touched in the astral body and penetrated down to the etheric body of one of the greatest film makers of the East. (SEE CLIP) Akira Kurosawa’s prophetic Dream: Mount Fuji in Red is a clear cut verification of what Rudolf Steiner predicted would indicate the touch of the Etheric Christ’s gifts of future seeing capacities as it relates to the giant karmic picture of the entire Archangelic Japanese people.

An entire global picture, a snapshot into a future Etheric Christ picture that has all the substance of the Archangel of the Japanese people, the karma of the entire Japanese Soul and Language group and how the tragedy and destiny of this Archangelic group would manifest one of the key mysteries that would shatter the Ahrimanic deception of it’s false Age of Light, shot like lightening right through Akira Kurosawa.

Akira Kurosawa was a painter of light with his film work. He stood shoulders above the masses in his deep moral tales of the ancient Japanese Folk Soul. Akira Kurosawa stood shoulder to shoulder with the several other prophets and representatives of the world of film as well. Akira Kurosawa stood shoulder to shoulder with Stanley Kubrick  and Rod Serling in the WEST. ( the following Rod Serling clip takes us back to Hiroshima, but youtube cut out the example I had posted, but this is the name of the episode to really understand the higher moral Michael forces working through Serling’s Twilight Zone, episode title “NO TIME LIKE THE PAST” see it for yourself –  this is the intro to that episode which testifies to the incredible link between Kurosawa and Serling (SEE CLIP INTRO)  Through those three individuals, Kurosawa, Kubrick and Serling a Michael Intelligence flavor of the WEST and the EAST arose with stunning Michael vitality.

Federico Fellini who, like Kurosawa, painted with Light and Color from the Italian Language Archangel perspective. Federico Fellini gave flavor and coloring as well as some Middle Europe content in the distribution of EAST-WEST-MIDDLE of a threefold world as well. In the same way Kurosawa illuminated the ancient stream and Language of the Japanese people of the EAST so Rod Serling and Stanley Kubrick illuminated modern Michael and Ahrimanic problems for those who had lived in the WEST and carried the English Language Archangelic forces.

Federico Fellini painted the Italian Folk Soul and dynamics of the Language of the Archangel of the Italian folk with great vividness and humor. Just as we can study Gandhi and Martin Luther King Jr, who both as well carried various specific aspects of the moral contents of India and the moral contents of the West and African American etheric folk substance with clear Michael like vividness in their deeds and thoughts.

When we look at great artists and films and different languages we gain the rich experience needed to become global and cosmopolitan citizens who begin to FEEL and incorporate into our astral and etheric life, the gifts of the Threefold World and the great gifts of the various Archangels of the different languages over the Earth.

When we include the flavor and coloring of the individual Language Archangels, we have to reckon with the fact that our own unique Angels guided us to specific Archangel Language systems in cooperation with the Archangel hierarchies. And then we come to the future visionary capacities that arise within the new Etheric Christ experiences radiating through the 20th and 21st centuries.

Rudolf Steiner

“…before the middle of the twentieth century there will be people possessed of a natural etheric clairvoyance, who, since mankind has reached the epoch in which this will develop as a natural gift, will perceive the etheric body as permeating the physical body and extending beyond it. Just as man, once able to see into the spiritual world, has descended to the merely physical perception and intellectual comprehension of the external world, so he begins gradually to evolve new and conscious capacities which will be added to the old ones. One of these new capacities I should like to characterize.

There will be people — at first only a few, for only in the course of the next two or three thousand years will these capacities evolve in larger numbers, and these first forerunners will be born before the end of the first half of the twentieth century — who will have an experience something like the following. After taking part in some action they will withdraw from it, and will have before them a picture which arises from the act in question. At first, they will not recognize it; they will not find in it any relation to what they have done. In the end they will see that this picture, which appears to them as a sort of conscious dream-picture, is the counterpart of their own action; it is the picture of the action which must take place, in order that the karmic compensation of the previous action may be brought about.

Thus we are approaching an age in which men will begin to understand karma not only from the teachings and presentations of Spiritual Science, but in which they will begin actually to see karma. Whereas until now karma was to man an obscure impulse, an obscure desire, which could be fulfilled only in the following life, which could only between death and a new birth be transformed into an intention, man will gradually evolve to a conscious perception of the work of Lucifer and its effect. Certainly only those will have this power of etheric clairvoyance who have striven after knowledge and self-knowledge. But even in normal circumstances men will have more and more before them the karmic pictures of their actions. That will carry them on further and further, because they will see what they still owe to the world — what is on the debit side of their karma.”

There is a great deal more to understanding these future capacities and the New Etheric Christ vision that is slowly developing in humanity, but suffice it to say that Ahriman wishes to control anything to do with these new visions. Ahriman has already begun to develop Pharmaceutical vaccinations that will control moral perception. However with Akira Kurosawa a vivid Christ/Michael perception managed to squeeze through the full Ahrimanic roadblocks placed before our comprehension.

Ahriman is hoof and claw fighting to prevent humanity from grasping the higher Etheric forces of the Etheric Christ capacities and divert them. Just as for us, The Tenth Hierarchy, the dawn of the age of light for Ahriman was far, far, different than the dawn of the Age of Light under the auspices of Michael and the Etheric Christ. We bought Ahriman’s deception on the whole and clung to materialism and the lies and deception that Ahriman presented against the courage and veracity of the Michael School and what Spiritual Science alone has the courage to reveal.

Akira Kurosawa’s prophetic Dream: Mount Fuji in Red

The film’s second nightmare sequence. A large nuclear power plant near Mount Fuji has begun to melt down, painting the sky a horrendous red and sending the millions of Japanese citizens desperately fleeing into the ocean. Three adults and two children are left behind on land, but they soon realize that the radiation will kill them anyway.

Mount Fuji in Red script:

I: What is it? What’s happening? Has Fuji erupted? How terrible!

Woman with baby: It’s worse than that! Didn’t you know? The nuclear power plant has exploded.

Nuclear engineer: The six atomic reactors. They are exploding one after another. Japan is so small there’s no escape!

Woman with baby: We all know that. No way out. But we still have to try. No other way.

Woman with baby: This is the end.

I: But… …what happened? Where did all those people go? Where did they escape to?

Nuclear engineer: To the bottom of the sea. The dolphins. Even they are leaving.

Woman with baby: Lucky dolphins. They can swim away.

Nuclear engineer: It won’t help. The radioactivity will get them.
The clouds… …the red one. It’s Plutonium 239. 10,000,000th of a gram causes cancer.
The yellow one is strontium 90. It gets inside you… …and causes leukemia.
The purple one is Cesium 137. It affects reproduction. It causes mutations.
It makes monstrosities.
Man’s stupidity is unbelievable. Radioactivity was invisible. And because of its danger, they colored it. But that only lets you know which kind kills you.
Death’s calling card. See you later.

I: Wait! Radiation doesn’t kill you at once.

Nuclear engineer: So What? A slow death is even worse. I refuse to die slowly.

Woman with baby: Adults dying — they’ve lived long enough already. But the children haven’t even lived yet. It’s unfair!

Nuclear engineer: Waiting to die isn’t living.

Woman with baby: They told us that nuclear plants were safe. Human accident is the danger, not the nuclear plant itself. No accidents, no danger. That’s what they told us. What liars! If they’re not hanged for this, I’ll kill them myself.

Nuclear engineer: Don’t worry. The radioactivity will do that for you. I’m sorry. I am one of those who deserve to die.”

It is clear that the Dawn of the Age of Light was not to be nuclear light. The Dawn of the Age of Light in 1879 brought the consolidation of the Michael School, the focus of humanities attention to the Etheric Christ and the unfolding Etheric Christ light that has slowly spread it’s way through-out humanity, revealing ever more profound conscious and higher pathways for human maturity.

On the opposite scales of balance, as we can clearly see, 1879 to 1945 and the official Dawn of the Michael Age was immediately linked to the growth and development of Spiritual Science. However on the opposite scale, in Ahrimanic counterpoint, linked to releasing Fallen immoral Devachan technology that counterfeited and counteracted in an immoral attack, 66 YEARS AFTER 1879, the dawn of the nuclear age began our first confrontations with the horrific forces of nuclear death. Ahriman counter moved against the Michael Age, check mated Michael with the Dawn of Ahriman’s MAD, (Mutually Assured Destruction- The Psychopath Structure and also look at this STUDY CLICK HERE) and the horrific first strike of two nuclear detonations in human populations. A false Age of Light had dawned and humanity has clung to it until Fukushima.

66 YEARS LATER as the Michael Cosmic Scales swung back into balance,  Japan was rocked to it’s core by one of the most powerful Earthquakes to date and the unintended consequences of this Tsunami and Earthquake opened the old wound where Michael, through an Etheric Christ Rhythm is once more offering humanity a moment to recover our higher human healthy etheric direction and review the moral maturity and moral forces that are so clearly tied to the very core of the Earth and tied most intimately to Michael’s role as revealing the Countenance of the Christ Sun.

Michael stands with the Etheric Christ in the wholesome renewal and awakening of the healthy and healing forces of our true Etheric Earth and our true Etheric Life body rhythms.

The Ahrimanic tendencies in human greed, arrogance, hubris coupled with untruths and political lies have tied much of humanity to the very opposite intentions of the Risen Etheric Christ. Michael is faced with the dilemma that humanity has tied itself to the Ahrimanic mistranslation and misinterpretation of the age of light by introducing prematurely, a horrific man made light, that can only mame, destroy, and deform the work of the Etheric in nature and how we unite these intimate etheric healing rhythms to the evolution of our higher human faculties.

This is rather heavy karma to be burdened with and Japan now sits on the Ring of Fire (interesting clip) and sits in the current cross-hairs of a vast Moral issue that reaches deep into the very core of the Earth. Humanity can choose to come back from the brink of letting premature Fire demons, Anti-Sun forces drag humanity and Earth into the abyss. At least in this essay, we are looking at how Japan has become the central moral battleground for one of humanities most profound problems. Yet at every turn we see the activity of Michael attempting to alert humanity to issues which WE, as humanity have released through our unconscious and intentionally destructive and immoral patterns of thinking and behavior.

On the other hand the Japanese are not the target of ahrimanic propaganda, the current Muslim world IS so that Japan’s FIRE crisis, Water Crisis, Earthquake crisis reflects the thrusting up from the Inner Earth the immoral use of Fire over the whole Earth by craving materialistic energy via Breeder reactor systems scattered over the periphery of the Earth.

Terry Boardman

” 66 years after Hiroshima and Nagasaki, and after this latest disaster and nuclear scare, the Japanese people are more than entitled to say to the nuclear lobby “Enough is enough! We will not go on down this path. Our nation is named after the sun. We shall not try to create an artificial sun. Instead, we shall gratefully accept what the Sun gives us and develop it in life-giving ways.”

“The reign of Japan’s first emperor Jimmu began in 660 BC.

“1945 – 2011 is 66 years. 66 years before 1945 was 1879, the beginning of the Age of the Sun Archangel Michael. At that time, Japan was trying desperately to remain independent (to keep its own Sun shining, so to speak) and to avoid becoming a western colony. To do that, Japan used its long samurai traditions and allowed itself to be directed by the samurai military class whose habits passed over into the world of business and industry. To remain free of the western imperialists, Japan’s samurai-influenced leaders decided that Japan too would have to become an imperialist nation. This led eventually to the tragedies of 1931-1945. Thus ended the first 66 years of the Age of Michael, archangel of the Sun.

“For the next 66 years Japan followed the lead of the country that had unleashed on it the power of the world’s first artificial sun – the USA, the country that had forced Japan to open to the world in 1853 when the black ships came. For 44 years, from 1945-1989, Japan energetically rebuilt seeking to copy the American Way, even to outstrip America in material and economic power. The American Dream is one of increasing material wealth, prosperity, consumerism, ownership, primarily for oneself and one’s family. In 1989, 66 years after the great physical shock of the terrible Tokyo-Yokohama earthquake, and 44 years after the psychological shock of the defeat in war, Japan was hit by another shock when its economic bubble burst, just at the time that the Showa Emperor died. For the next 21 years Japan struggled on, unable to extricate itself from the economic doldrums it found itself in, unable to recover the economic dynamism of the period 1960-1990, but STILL, its elite tried to follow the American Way, the American Dream; despite some differences in the way Japan has always run its capitalist system, still it operates this system which is grounded in a materialistic way of looking at life, death, society and economics.

“Now, 66 years after 1945, Japan has been given yet another great shock. I believe that from this shock the Japanese can awaken to a new future, one in which they should make their elite take seriously those words of Prime Minister Kan Naoto, when he said “we shall rebuild Japan from scratch”. Yes, but not just the buildings! The people of Japan can start with their energy resources, first their own personal human energy resources, to restructure the energy system that underpins the economy. Change from an economy based on dead Nature (fossil fuels and nuclear power) to one based on living Nature (solar, wind, wave, geothermal, hydrogen) – one that truly harmonizes with all that is best in Japanese tradition and culture.”

(Terry Boardman graduated in history from Manchester University, lived in Japan for 10 years and has completed a four year full-time training in the movement art of Eurythmy in which he was subsequently active for seven years.)

Vital IMAGINATIONS and Insights of the Relation between the Periphery and the Center

“These various layers are connected by means of rays which unite the center of the earth with its surface.” Rudolf Steiner, June 12, 1906

Breeder Reactors and nuclear Reactors that breed horrific radioactive fires dot the periphery of the Earth. In one aspect of the Michael Lesson Plan we must take very seriously that which we have failed to think through because of our own clinging to the destructive sciences of Ahrimanic materialism.

In any study of the Mystery of the Periphery and circumference, the surface of the Earth and the Mystery of the Center, the core, as if the core and center of the Earth were unrelated to the surface or Periphery of the Earth, we come into direct contact with one of humanities favored materialistic and ahrimanic fabrications and deceptions. We imagine that by promoting concentrated radioactive reactor cells over the surface of the Earth, that somehow we won’t invoke the very powerful and untransformed primal fiery forces of the SIXTH layer of the Inner Earth.

These primal untransmuted forces of ancient cosmic and creative fiery forces go all the way back to the Ancient Saturn Beings who first formed our immortality and designed us from their own being. We are meddling with Beings who have helped form entire worlds and some of those beings are chained in the core of the Earth (Sorathian Earth core studies link) until we arrogantly presume to release them from their imprisonment. However the secret of the Resurrection and the Etheric Christ has everything to do with how human beings can safely transubstantiate the mighty core forces locked in the center of the Earth and merge them with our emerging Lessons in Immortality.

Currently, evoking prematurely these forces in the core of the Earth reveals that human beings are only at the weak beginnings of penetrating the living Etheric forces in order to transmute and handle the mighty elemental mysteries of Fire – Air – Water – Earth. Our understanding the secrets of the Etheric, Devachan, astral worlds that surround humanity and the Earth are only just at their beginnings. And all of these forces are deliberately tangled in the chaotic thinking of human beings who imagine that the Periphery and the Center of the Earth and the destiny of the Earth Herself are unrelated to the inner development of human beings.

That is one of the only George Carlin errors that stand out very clearly to me. Here’s the clip and below the Socratic logic of Carlin, which in this case, is brilliant but wrong.

George Carlin

“The planet is fine. Compared to the people, the planet is doing great. Been here four and a half billion years. Did you ever think about the arithmetic? The planet has been here four and a half billion years. We’ve been here, what, a hundred thousand? Maybe two hundred thousand? And we’ve only been engaged in heavy industry for a little over two hundred years. Two hundred years versus four and a half billion. And we have the CONCEIT to think that somehow we’re a threat? That somehow we’re gonna put in jeopardy this beautiful little blue-green ball that’s just a-floatin’ around the sun?

“The planet has been through a lot worse than us. Been through all kinds of things worse than us. Been through earthquakes, volcanoes, plate tectonics, continental drift, solar flares, sun spots, magnetic storms, the magnetic reversal of the poles…hundreds of thousands of years of bombardment by comets and asteroids and meteors, worlwide floods, tidal waves, worldwide fires, erosion, cosmic rays, recurring ice ages…And we think some plastic bags, and some aluminum cans are going to make a difference? The planet…the planet…the planet isn’t going anywhere. WE ARE!

We’re going away. Pack your shit, folks. We’re going away. And we won’t leave much of a trace, either. Thank God for that. Maybe a little styrofoam. Maybe. A little styrofoam. The planet’ll be here and we’ll be long gone. Just another failed mutation. Just another closed-end biological mistake. An evolutionary cul-de-sac. The planet’ll shake us off like a bad case of fleas. A surface nuisance.

You wanna know how the planet’s doing? Ask those people at Pompeii, who are frozen into position from volcanic ash, how the planet’s doing. You wanna know if the planet’s all right, ask those people in Mexico City or Armenia or a hundred other places buried under thousands of tons of earthquake rubble, if they feel like a threat to the planet this week. Or how about those people in Kilowaia, Hawaii, who built their homes right next to an active volcano, and then wonder why they have lava in the living room.”

Center and Periphery arise in how the Heart is a Sun and the pulse of this Human sun in the center of the chest radiates out to the periphery, all the way to the surface of our skin and through living moral forces links to intimate hearts connected to us well beyond the limits of our skin, all the way to the realm of the dead who have returned to the spiritual world from whence we have all had our point of origin. Outside in the vast Zodiac and starry world, the karma and destiny of humanity (see link) gathers itself from the periphery and enters the portal of birth and cellular development. Periphery and Center operates in every precise law of reality there is.

We observe skin cancer on the surface of our bodies and discover that down to our bones we are riddled with cancer. Yet it may only slowly appear on the surface, but it is deeply connected to the core of our immortality and the very surface of our physical bodies. What we came to do on Earth and who we came to meet, our karma has also presented us with a vast riddle and roadblock that we must penetrate. Periphery and Center are always potently and powerfully linked. But apparently Ahrimanic science prefers to have nothing linked, no connections made, no interrelationships or decisions and prognosis that concretely interface with each other.

In the Mistletoe used in Cancer treatments Spiritual Science has observed meticulously and carefully that a plant parasite called mistletoe grows on the periphery of the branches of the trees. When mixed into medical potency we find that Human breast Cancer can be cured by deliberately growing Mistletoe on Apple trees and making  potentized medical tinctures from harvesting the apple saturated mistletoe. The same goes for male prostrate Cancer. Mistletoe grown on the periphery of oak trees are harvested and homeopathically prepared and designed to penetrate the etheric rhythms in either females or males, and begin a process of healing and recovery.

Our constant insulting attitude and behavior in the rejection of the immortal core of humanity, the I AM in us, and the Immortal Christ Event, the Etheric Christ event that happened in one particular human and at one particular location on the periphery of the Earth, releasing the Immortal I Am from the Fall and uniting every single detail of our human spiritual striving to the beloved and beneficent etheric forces of the Earth, are openly mocked, denied and consistently disregarded.

We have sought to create a satellite ring that surrounds and orbits our Earth, in closer orbit than our Moon, in order to follow events on the surface, to follow and pin-point movements on the surface and even to direct destructive weaponry, deadly DRONES, missiles on trajectories to various locations. That is also a form of moving and using Periphery and Center.

We have our own immortal being, our karma, our destiny and I AM tracking built into us with vast higher potentials. We relegate most of that research to new-age air-heads and refuse to study our monumental science of human immortality with any diligence or certainty.

Aristotle one of the most serious and detailed researchers in the entire world, relished every secret the Earth had to offer. When we we pay lip service and yawn at old Aristotle, that old has been, we fail to even rejoice, recognize the advancement of the detailed scientist Aristotle into the exact Spiritual Researcher, Rudolf Steiner. What happened to the capacities and diligence of Aristotle?

The laws of reincarnation and intensification reveal to us the transformed Aristotle in the quiet personality of the Spiritual Science forerunner of the Michael age, Rudolf Steiner. Look at how the immense interest and diligence of Aristotle blossomed into a conscious researcher of the depths of Spiritual Science. Do we have to be clubbed over the head to knock any sense into us? Apparently we refuse to adjust our errors in thinking before unleashing upon this good Earth the very annihilating demons we immaturely crave who were locked in the SIXTH LAYER of the fiery depths of the Earth.

What we have preferred to engage in are profit factored corporations that develop various technologies that give us short term and immediate gratification and cheap thrills, and sometimes life saving interfacing. By putting off our interest in how our I AM functions in the Core of our Being we opted for technologies that imitate our higher undeveloped and neglected inner faculties.

Yes technology that shows us detailed weather over the Earth and warns us of Water or Air, Space, Land issues and guides our surface and periphery autos and RFID chips in our flesh that can unite our health, economy, and pin-point our exact location, still presents itself, without our maturing moral participation as dangerous tools that Ahriman easily claims for his deception. We are led to believe that we are made safer and we can relinquish our inner striving and our worries and let the masters of deception provide us with free goodies. We have been presented with destructive Ahrimanic tools that will frustrate all human freedom and health on Earth with insidious lies or we use these brilliant technologies with a moral clarity that we still refuse to address in ourselves.

So far the 20th and 21st century have proved that we wish to remain gleefully ignorant of our true moral position as seeds of immortal creation growing from the Divine Outline of Earth development. We refuse to consider ourselves as members of the Tenth Hierarchy of higher beings created along with the Angels. We have in the majority embraced all of Ahriman’s political and religious prerequisites and have gladly forfeited our freedom to the silver tongued lies of Ahrimanic leaders, particularly in Washington, Israel and Great Britain. We remained glued to a Media that is designed to step around any truth in it’s path and hold it’s nose as if it were piles of cow manure. Cow Manure is far purer and sweeter than anything we get, scattered in the Periphery on the other end of broadcasting Corporate owned liars.

Not only is our humanity invested, and woven into the entire destiny of all the crystals, plants, insects, animals and humans that are participating with Earth, but our cutting edge technologies through the 20th and 21st centuries have been insisting and frustrating the point of prematurely releasing vast destructive forces that we have never yet matured enough or gained yet enough insight into them or ourselves, to slowly merge these potent destructive forces and constructively illuminate and guide our education, medicine and ripening to match our own human pace of moral development.

Hasty Ahrimanic immoral pursuit of profits and greed have thwarted and stymied the new pace that humanity could lay claim to if they chose the advance of slow immortality and insight over avarice and twisted betrayals of Ahrimanic intents. Here we mostly stand as arrogant, ahrimanic criminals and liars in every educational institute and blatantly relish our teaching of materialism, greed and Ahrimanic selfishness, devoid and with celebratory denial of the Spirit of the I AM in matter, Ahriman (Mephistopheles) is the master to all those who naively approach our decadent university sepulchers in search of wisdom for careers, futures and diplomas, sans moral and ethical foundations.

Rudolf Steiner

“In certain occult teachings the hosts of Ahriman are also called the Asuras. These are of course, the evil Asuras who at a certain time fell away from the evolutionary path of the Asuras who endowed man with personality. It has already been indicated that these are spiritual Beings who detached themselves from the evolution of the earth before the separation of the sun. “

Periphery and Center are inter-related and potently connected and linked to each other. By concentrating over the periphery and surface of the Earth, potent FIRE, demonic anti-human, FIRE citadels, vessels, nests that deliberately breed horrific Anti-Sun and Anti-Man and Anti-Christ Fire forces, that oppose the very central rhythms of the Sun, the very central forces of Agriculture and the brilliant planetary handbook of the Agricultural Course by Rudolf Steiner, along with the very core of how the Etheric life and lymphatic system functions in humans, plants, animals, are all tossed aside while poison monsters are bred that oppose the very core of the Resurrection.

The Molten Core of the center of the fiery Earth and the vast and intimate micro-system of humanity that incarnate and thrive on the periphery or the surface of our Earth, where we initiate destructive sciences that can stir down to the very foundations of the Earth and disrupt whole continents, presumes with full ahrimanic arrogance that there are no moral relationships between how humanity behaves on the Periphery and what happens at the Core of the Earth.

Rudolf Steiner

“From what has been said you can gather that through Christ’s Coming, Ahriman has been cast into fetters — if this expression may be used — but only, of course, for those who endeavor unceasingly to fathom the Christ-Mystery. And outside the forces streaming from the Christ-Mystery, protection in the world against the influence of Ahriman will steadily diminish. In a certain sense — and many signs proclaim it — our epoch courts these influences of Ahriman. In certain occult teachings the hosts of Ahriman are also called the Asuras. These are of course, the evil Asuras who at a certain time fell away from the evolutionary path of the Asuras who endowed man with personality. It has already been indicated that these are spiritual Beings who detached themselves from the evolution of the earth before the separation of the sun.

“Up to now we have been describing merely the terrible influence that Ahriman can exercise upon a certain abnormal process of development, one that proceeds along occult paths. But in a certain respect the whole of mankind came under the influence of Ahriman during the second half of the Atlantean epoch. The whole Post-Atlantean epoch has within it, in a certain sense, the aftermath of Ahriman’s influence — in one region of the earth more, in another less. But Ahriman’s influence has asserted itself everywhere and all the teachings given to the peoples by the ancient Initiates concerning the Spirits of Light who are the opponents of Ahriman were given primarily in order to draw these peoples away from Ahriman’s influence. It was a good, wisely led education of mankind.

“But let us not forget that since that time the destiny of Ahriman has been interwoven in a certain sense with the destiny of humanity, and manifold happenings, of which the uninitiated can know nothing, keep the whole karma of humanity in perpetual connection with the karma of Ahriman.”

Ahriman has direct access to our human will and to the Sixth Fire Layer of the inner Earth. We build our reactors and intense Fire Demon citadels on the periphery of the Earth in various countries, states, and geographic locations. Our Ahrimanic lies, murder and destructive nuclear Fire Dragons, collect in breeder reactors, that breed these illicit, anti-etheric fire demons on the periphery of the Earth, but they also directly spur on and infuriate the Fire forces in the interior of the Earth. Therefore Earthquakes, volcanoes, Tsunami’s, Tidal Waves, Hurricane’s, Typhoons, Tornadoes, floods and famine all have to do directly with how human moral forces infuriate, irritate, awaken and disturb the Fire layer of the Inner Earth. Our own human WILL or WILL TO POWER, are the immoral culprits which causes such vast catastrophes like Japan, for she sits on the Ring of Fire.

Entire human personalities are currently being overshadowed and coaxed into more and more sterile intimate evil. As humanity we have voted for this evil, we have applauded it and failed to see the changing face of this evil from the point of the exile of the Titans into the Core of the Earth, to the emerging of Mephistopheles in each of our own personal DOUBLES. Our own human doubles are infected with the full glut of the materialism that has been worshiped and coddled into power, until again, and again from the Nazis to Washington D.C. and Israel we have willingly unlocked the depths of the Fire Earth, and released more and more Ahrimanic destruction into the laps of humanity.

“…if the Christ had undergone only what took place from the time of the Baptism in Jordan until the time of the Crucifixion and the Death on the Cross, then, having undergone all this, He would still not have been able to speak of the Mysteries of which He did speak to His initiate disciples after His resurrection. I must explain to you that, to the divine teachers who were able to descend to Earth, and to the initiated teachers in olden times, all Mysteries were open in the whole wide world save only the Mysteries of the interior of the Earth. The initiates knew that down there within the Earth spiritual Beings hold command, of quite another kind than the Gods Who before the Mystery of Golgotha used ever and again to descend to human beings. The Greeks, for instance, were not unaware of the Spiritual Beings in the interior of the Earth; they called them in their mythology the Titans. But Christ was the first of the Upper Gods to learn to know the interior of the Earth, That is an important fact.” Rudolf Steiner April 24, 1922

The unholy, poison FIRE forces we cultivate and breed in nuclear Reactors over the periphery of the Earth, are the embodiment of Ahrimanic churches, fortresses that connect the demonic fire forces of the Periphery to the Inner Fire forces that have slowly been released and unchained to roam through human wills and human intents that have become filled with murder, lies, torture and nightmare. Through these gates of hell, we have brought Ahrimanic forces that were once chained away from humanity, up to the surface and let them run unchecked through our human will. Unchecked we let Ahrimanic forces hunt down our children’s hearts and minds and destroy all delicate connections that could have ever existed with their intimate connection to the arising of the Etheric Christ.

It is warmth, compassion and the healing forces that arise when a child or an adult get a fever and the work of the Etheric body goes into over drive. These warmth forces are part of the immortal fire forces that human beings are given to find their way to the heart of Truth and cleanse themselves of their own lies. It is the sudden burst of shame that causes us to blush and from the center out to the periphery of our skin, we blush, we send a fire force up from the center of our being all the way out to the periphery of our skins.

For it is the very fire forces in the human being, the fever and healing fevers and human warmth and compassion that conducted the divine fire forces from the heart of the Christ Being out to every aspect of suffering and sick human creation. It is the very core of the uplifting, healing Etheric Christ being, that lawfully and beneficently streams forth to heal every aspect of suffering and sick creation. Yet we as humanity have chosen to snub the work and human strengths of the Etheric Christ and embrace the murderous destructive lies perpetuated by Ahrimanic beings who now lodge themselves in every human being and Lord it over our goodness and common sense. And to add insult to injury we placed Demonic Fire reactors that communicate directly to the inner layer of the Ahrimanic Fire demons, the Asuras, trapped in the inner Earth. All of this because we refuse to see with our eyes and with our Imaginations and connect the dots and learn to think as true members of The Tenth Hierarchy.

Rudolf Steiner

THE INTERIOR OF THE EARTH

Physical science as yet only knows of the terrestrial crust, a mineral layer which in fact is only like a thin skin at the surface of the earth. In reality the earth consists of a succession of concentric layers which we shall now describe:

1) The mineral layer contains all the metals which are found in the physical bodies of everything that lives at the surface. This crust is formed like a skin around the living being of the earth. It is only a few miles in depth.

2) The second layer can only be understood if we envisage a substance which is the very opposite of what we know. It is negative life, the opposite of life. All life is extinguished there. Were a plant or an animal plunged into it, it would be destroyed immediately. It would be totally dissolved. This second shell — half liquid — which envelopes the earth is truly a sphere of death.

3) The third layer is a circle of inverted consciousness. All sorrow appears there as joy. And all joy is experienced as sorrow. Its substance, composed of vapors, is related to our feelings in the same negative manner as the second layer is in regard to life. If we now abstract these three layers by means of our thinking, we would then find the earth in the condition in which it was before the separation of the moon. If one is able by means of concentration to attain a conscious astral vision, one would then see the activities in these two layers: the destruction of life in the second and the transformation of feelings in the third.

4) The fourth layer is known as water-earth, soul-earth, or form-earth, It is endowed with a remarkable property. Let us imagine a cube and now picture it reversed inasmuch as its substance is concerned. Where there was substance there is now nothing: the space occupied by the cube would now be empty while its substance, its substantial form, would now be spread around it; hence the term ‘earth of form.’ Here this whirlwind of forms, instead of being a negative emptiness, becomes a positive substance.

5) This layer is known as the earth of growth. It contains the archetypal source of all terrestrial life. Its substance consists of burgeoning, teeming energies.

6) This fire-earth is composed of pure will, of elemental vital forces — of constant movement — shot through by impulses and passions, truly a reservoir of will forces. If one were to exert pressure on this substance it would resist.

If now again in thought one were to abstract these last three layers just described, one would arrive at the condition in which our globe was when Sun, Moon and Earth were still interwoven.

The following layers are only accessible to a conscious observation which is not only that of dreamless sleep but a conscious condition in deep sleep.

7) This layer is the mirror of the earth. It is similar to a prism which decomposes everything that is reflected in it and brings to expression its complementary aspect; seen through an emerald it would appear red.

8)In this layer everything appears fragmented and reproduced to infinity. If one takes a plant or a crystal and one concentrates on this layer the plant or the crystal would appear multiplied indefinitely.

9) This last layer is composed of a substance endowed with moral action. But this morality is the opposite of the one that is to be elaborated on the earth. Its essence, its inherent force, is one of separation, of discord, and of hate. It is here in the hell of Dante that we find Cain the fratricide. This substance is the opposite of everything which among human beings is good and worthy. The activity of humanity in order to establish brotherhood on the earth diminishes the power of this sphere. It is the power of Love which will transform it inasmuch as it will spiritualize the very body of the Earth. This ninth layer represents the substantial origin of what appears on earth as black magic, that is, a magic founded on egoism. (See diagram)

These various layers are connected by means of rays which unite the center of the earth with its surface. Underneath the solid earth there are a large number of subterranean spaces which communicate to the sixth layer, that of fire. This element of the fire-earth is intimately connected with the human will. It is this element which has produced the tremendous eruptions that brought the Lemurian epoch to an end. At that time the forces which nourish the human will went through a trial which unleashed the fire catastrophe that destroyed the Lemurian continent. In the course of evolution this sixth layer receded more and more toward the center and as a result volcanic eruptions became less frequent. And yet they are still produced as a result of the human will which, when it is evil and chaotic, magnetically acts on this layer and disrupts it. Nevertheless, when the human will is devoid of egoism, it is able to appease this fire. Materialistic periods are mostly accompanied and followed by natural cataclysms, earthquakes, etc. Growing powers of evolution are the only alchemy capable of transforming, little by little, the organism and the soul of the earth.

The following is an example of the relationship that exists between the human will and telluric cataclysms: in human beings who perish as a result of earthquakes or volcanic eruptions one notices, during their next incarnation, inner qualities which are quite different. They bring from birth great spiritual pre-dispositions because, through their death, they were brought in touch with forces which showed them the true nature of reality and the illusion of material life.

One has also noticed a relationship between certain births and seismic and volcanic catastrophes.

During such catastrophes materialistic souls incarnate, drawn sympathetically by volcanic phenomena — by the convulsions of the evil soul of the earth. And these births can in their turn bring about new cataclysms because reciprocally the evil souls exert an exciting influence on the terrestrial fire. The evolution of our planet is intimately connected with the evolution of the forces of humanity and civilizations.

THE INTERIOR OF THE EARTH

1. Mineral crust
2. Negative life
3. Inverted Consciousness
4. Circle of forms
5. Circle of growth
6. Circle of fire
7. Circle of decomposition
8. Circle of fragmentation
9. Ego-centric-egoism

TRUE AND FALSE IMAGINATIONS OF AHRIMANIC FORCES OF THE INNER EARTH

FALSE Scientology and L. Ron Hubbard

“It was like something out of a science fiction script – but L. Ron Hubbard, the founder of Scientology, claimed it was fact. “Xemu,” he called the central character. Xemu ruled the 90-planet Galactic Confederation 75-million years ago, when overpopulation was a problem. So Xemu solved the problem: He trapped selected beings and flew them to volcanoes on Earth, then called Teegeeach. He then dropped powerful H-bombs on the volcanoes. The beings were destroyed in a wall of fire. However, their spirits, or “thetans,” weren’t. Gathering them into clusters, Xemu trapped the thetans in frozen alcohol and glycol.”

TRUE Moral Imagination portrait by Tolkien of how Gandalf directly confronts an Occult ancient Fire Demon in (see link) The Balrog Initiation Imagination. Which is a true Imagination.

The Lord of the Rings moral Imagination of Gandalf’s encounter and transformation with the Balrog in the depths of the inner Earth is a true Michael and Initiation Science IMAGINATION. Tolkien presents an Imagination of one of the Sixth Layer of our Inner Earth fire demons. An entire Moral transformation, and Resurrection of super forces of White Initiation must awaken in Gandalf and likewise in humanity if we are to do battle with Radioactive Fire demons from the periphery of our nuclear reactors that send their deadly anti-human destructive forces in direct communication with the destructive Ahrimanic ancient beings who are trapped, not only in the Sixth Layer of the Inner Earth, but roam unchecked on the surface in our own human Intellectual Soul substance and materialistic thinking. Humanity, through the infestation of these fallen Ahrimanic parasites in our Intellectual Souls frustrate, irritate and link our disturbed will forces to the will forces that are slowly being unsealed, that were once trapped, in the Sixth Layer of the Inner Earth.

This terrible unsealing of destructive inner Earth forces to be drawn up from the depths of the Earth to serve the destructive brain pollution of murderous political lies, murderous technologies and murderous rampages of human hubris are reverberating through the world in vast upheavals. On the surface and periphery are human will and human shadows operating unchecked with destructive Ahrimanic intent. From the center and from the sixth layer of the inner Earth these destructive forces rise up and meet on the horrific altar of darkened human will. Insanity, madness, torture, false wars for cheap political thrills and poison vapors of human hypocrisy like Volcanic sulfur rise from the depths and pollute the appetites and thinking of human beings who refuse to gain any insights into their own shadows. Hypocrisy becomes the air required to feed a whole breed of human beings who have forsaken their Tenth Hierarchy position. Rampant greed, avarice, lies and hypocrisy becomes the very food that allows Cain’s Fratricide to rise up from the central mystery of Evil and Good locked in the core of the Earth [SEE CLIP].

It is a brief but vivid IMAGINATION that Tolkien has presented in his Balrog encounter. It is primal, it is what Initiation Science grapples with when encountering the deep encroaching shadow of Ahriman as he rises from the depths and finds a friendly reception in the cravings of politicians and the deliberate destruction of global economies. Ahriman relishes the disruption of children’s astral bodies through destructive and deadly vaccinations and Ahriman relishes the corruption and weakening of human etheric bodies. Anything having to do with shifting human etheric bodies from healthy to unhealthy are part of the goals Ahriman cherishes.

False flags, deception and lies are the daily bread that now rises from the fissures and cracks of the Earth. It wafts in the storms, the volcanoes and earthquakes, in other words, these Balrog forces are being released by the very poisoned core in our own human will power. This is what Gandalf, Tolkien and Initiation Sciences understand when we as humanity reject the Etheric Christ, Gandalf the White, Michael and the true Age of Light; but rather with demonic glee pursue our shallow unconscious cognition and motives from the periphery and surface all the way down to the destructive core of the Earth herself.

Cause and Effect relationships and how Karma operates including the lessons now frustrating humanity in relation to Japan bring us clearly into the realm of the Michael School and a current karmic snapshot of humanity. Yes we can and should support technology that gives us a view of ourselves and brings human beings over the whole world together through sharing interests and information in an easy to use format. However what mysteriously disturbs the Earth’s core and seeking the cause and effect relationship prior to some Tsunami or destructive typhoon, hurricane or tornado alert, or causing earthquakes, volcanoes and tidal waves and later watching the warnings and watching the disaster unfold are different if we know and understand that we are also part of the cause of the disaster.

If we can show that our moral character and the very act of disruption, distortion and lies surrounding radioactive reactors over the surface and periphery of the Earth have dire and specific deadly effects; If we can show that humanity has used these destructive forces to deliberately rock the foundations of the genetic code, the chromosomes and disturbing the very form that an incarnating human being seeks, then we shall know that we are aggressively attacking the very foundations of the Etheric Christ. With our human hubris we must know that we are attacking the deed that Michael the current Arche, Christian Rosenkreuz, (an Arche level human guardian Initiated by Christ as part of the Lazarus mystery) and precisely what the School of Spiritual Science endeavors to understand, as the Science of the Resurrection; We will hopefully understand that the conflict point in this Michael era has spread all over the Earth, but we shall hopefully learn to take with humble seriousness some of the specifics related to the Lesson Plan and Karma that hovers over Japan and Fukushima Prefecture (福島県, Fukushima-ken) and inspires the highest moral impulses of The Tenth Hierarchy. (Review this Link)

ADAM MICHAELIS

“The intensified luciferic principle enhanced by Sorath through the “Lucifer-Ahriman-Asuras-triangulation”

“is expressing itself in the electrification and agitation of man, attacking the astral and the sentient soul with jolts and shocks as in fanaticism, excitement, ecstasy, thrills, recklessness and obsession. The enhanced ahrimanic principle is expressing itself in magnetization, paralysis and regimentation, attacking the etheric and the intellectual soul with dulling abstraction and static repetition as in rigid functioning, comatose routine, mechanization, machining, digitalization, blind systemic adaptation and impersonal android-robot behaviour. The released and enhanced asuric principle is expressing itself in natural and moral perversion (7th layer), atomization, “zombization” and isolation (8th layer, Fragmenter Earth, multiplying any creation in absurdum). The Asuras attack the physical body and the consciousness soul, and hence the multiplied Phantom of Christ (the prerequisite for any spiritual development, the integration of the Resurrection Body, the three higher members of man and the future planetary phases of Jupiter, Venus and Vulcan). They are behind any massreduction of man (mass killing, mass media, mass production) and modern ego-self-worship and narcissism, the false individualization based on mass produced consumer goods and entertainment. They support any kind of virtual reality, desensitization and depersonalization caused by for example synthetic materials and plastics, electromagnetic impulses and –fields and chemicals. And from the 8th layer they destroy human relationships, solidarity and brotherhood and causes alienation and segregation, so that even when people are apparently together, they are isolated in their own worlds. As demonstrated in the atomic bomb, the Asuras are in favor of splitting things and blowing them into pieces.
Karma of Japan fukushima Adam Michaelis“Finally we are sadly enough nowadays getting a feel for the spider in the midst of his evil web, Sorath. Sorath opposes the creation of man in cosmos and hence any creative quality and its preconditions like love, offering, freedom and empathy. This resentment expresses itself when the above-mentioned evil tendencies are taken to the extreme and carried over in destruction and perversion of human procreation and creativity. Take for instance when chemicals and plasticizers function as endocrine disruptors and cause sterility and malformation of sexual organs or when genetically modified and engineered organisms might influence the human genome. Sorath would like man to destroy the diversity of species and their hereditary material as well as his own – to replace the human chromosome with a polymer, figuratively speaking. He is behind genetic control, screening, testing and design and in vitro fertilization and cloning. The pornographic perversion and degradation of sexuality to the level of fuckingmachines, electric erotic stimulation and love dolls made of plastic is also Sorath’s work. To use another metaphor: Sorath wants to short-circuit the human brain with the sexual glands through the spine and invert all the higher streams of creativity and intelligence as in ritualization, animalization and intellectualization of sex combined with enhanced (chemically induced) ecstasy. Therefore he promotes kundalini-practices and tantric techniques in combination with black magic as a mocking of the creation and the Holy Trinity. And unlike the other evil powers, Sorath wants man to participate voluntarily and half knowingly in his own degeneration and selfabasement, fueled by enhanced sensualism and self-indulgence, because this is Sorath’s ultimate mockery and vengeance against the Holy Trinity – if man, created with divine love, saved by divine love, chooses his own de-creation, desecrates himself and worships death in Sorath.

“That is why Sorath wants to set up a magically inverted, pseudo-clairvoyant quasi-religion which contains no trace of confession to or faith in Christ. The ultimate triumph of the beast 666 and the final success of Sorath’s build-up of an “eight sphere” (the irretrievable downfall of man and the Earth as a creative project) is, when in this religion man believes himself to be God-like, a self-made God-man, who doesn’t need Christ, shrugs his shoulders at Christ’s passion and is in complete denial of his own evil and the evil powers.”

On this vast moral playing field, the seas, the land, the plants, the milk, Iodine, depleted uranium weapons used by the absolute moral evil and deliberate ignorance of the West, who also used the first Atomic bombs on the Japanese people in Hiroshima and Nagasaki, through the Air, through the Waters, through the animals, through deformities and mutations caused by absolute anti-human poisons released again, and again in depleted uranium falsified war zones over the world, Michael the Arche and current Time Spirit has shaken the complacency and immoral neutrality from the sickened materialistic thinking that runs as a disease through humanity.

In the middle of this overview and Lesson Plan designed for the entire world, the question Michael poses to the free insights of humanity, places all of us on notice, as brothers and sisters over the whole Earth. We are in the cross-hairs of grappling with our greed, our deceptions, the lies of the West, and all the fragmented insights that NEWS, our Main Stream Media fails constantly and deliberately, fails in unison to cohesively bring into any moral focus.

In this research document we have brought aspects of how Spiritual Science views the current crisis and Lesson Plan on the subject of poisoning humanity, our Earth and destructively seeking to control and divert through SICKNESS and hideous deformity, through enlisting and incorporating forces from our untransformed ancient enemies, that directly confront, attack, undermine and oppose the Living Etheric Christ forces that are here to uplift and heal the tears and rips in the Etheric fabric of the Earth and humanity. The tragedy and Karma of the Japanese people have left the door open for a brief moment, so that humanity might come to it’s senses and join Michael and the global community and celebrate together the true dawn of the real AGE OF LIGHT. Unite as humanity in an awakening and celebration of our Moral Cognition and the potent power of our Moral Imagination which lives at the core of the vibrant courage of The Tenth Hierarchy.

ADDENDUM 1

The following Link is an absolutely must see documentary. It must be seen and understood.

ADDENDUM 2

Beings who have no compunction but to shatter the genetic and chromosome structure of the Sun order etheric nature of humanity have been prematurely released through human error and immoral contexts associated with the advance of Ahrimanic forces. The results are in [SEE CLIP]. Michael the Arche cannot force humanity to THINK, humanity must desire to THINK.

ADDENDUM 3

Dr Helen Caldicott delivers a Michael Global insight that penetrates down to the God of the Underworld. See Clip

ADDENDUM 4

Radiation experimentation and horrors in America, in minority communities. Watch Video clip.

ADDENDUM 5

Requiem for our Anti-Human nuclear ambitions and our assaults against humanity, see clip.

ADDENDUM 6

This clip is such a clumsy struggle between innocence and attempting to put a translation into English, that it touches even deeper into the heart because it appears so desperate and so clumsy and so absolutely sincerely correct! Get past first 10 seconds and it gets interesting, amateurish but clear. SEE CLIP.

ADDENDUM 7

Main Stream Media allows for a moment of reporting concerning accurate information on Fukushima (See Clip) by Arnie Gundersen.

ADDENDUM 8

Physicians and Doctors fail to understand the Sun potency of the Etheric body in nature and humanity, but attempt to halt all nuclear energy out of their inherent common sense. SEE LINK. Understanding the Sun Forces of the Etheric body vs the Asuric and Ahrimanic forces that abandoned humanity reveals the core reality of anti-human and anti-nature and anti-sun forces that Ahrimanic Asuric powers are comfortable in and can breed within.

ADDENDUM 9

Here is a photo expose on the comparison between the nuclear destruction of Hiroshima and Nagasaki and the flood and earthquake damage of the 2011 tsunami. The research I have presented brings the relationship of the two events(1945 and 2011) into context and karma.

Special Note

*This note was a special call to awaken the depths of the Foundation Stone of Love*, the powerful Foundation Stone Meditation brought at a very crucial moment for the Michael School which calls upon the hierarchies so that humanity of the Tenth Hierarchy can remain connected to the divine through so severe a tragedy as that which has befallen Japan.

“Embryology-Astrosophy and Cosmosophy 1” by Bradford Riley

“There are many ways of studying embryology, as with anything else. Rudolf Steiner, for instance, did on one occasion demand that embryology should be considered afresh in conjunction with astronomy. Well, if one considers that on one occasion he did state quite definitely that from the moment of birth every human being bears the constellation of his birth inscribed upon the surface of the cerebrum, the cortex, so that one might say that we are always carrying our birth constellation with us. “Embryology and World Evolution” by Dr. Karl König

Time becomes Space -astronomy becomes biology and biography

“It is a deep source of satisfaction to Michael that through man himself he has succeeded in keeping the world of the stars in direct union with the Divine and Spiritual. For when man, having fulfilled his life between death and a new birth, enters on the way to a new Earth-life, in his descent he seeks to establish a harmony between the course of the stars and his coming life on Earth. In olden times this harmony existed as a matter of course, because the Divine-Spiritual was active in the stars, where human life too had its source. But today, when ‘the course of the stars is only a continuing of the manner in which the Divine-Spiritual worked in the past, this harmony could not exist unless man sought it. Man brings his divine-spiritual portion — which he has preserved from the past — into relation with the stars, which now only bear their divine-spiritual nature within them as an after-working from an earlier time. ” Anthroposophical Leading Thoughts

“The soul that rises with us, our life’s star, hath had elsewhere its setting, and cometh from afar.” William Wordsworth

When does life begin? We, as humanity, as the Tenth Hierarchy wear our human forms, but these forms have been designed. They have not arisen out of arbitrary evolutionary Darwinism.  The arising and unfolding of the human embryo- to fetus- to full grown, carried to term, child or baby has the entire higher worlds planning and design signatures imprinted into it.

Choosing our parents, the stars we need to incarnate, so that we may carry our thoughts and intuitions and our thinking as a guidance and navigation system within us means that we, when we take that first breath, we have a birthday and that birthday and first breath, through our entire lives on Earth, fixes the delicate nerve fibers of the Astral body into the design and unfolding development of the brain as a seed form. This will grow and become our unique thinking, artistic sense, love of certain foods, questing for certain types of people. We are placed within one of Earth’s great language and ethnic and etheric streams and slowly grow up until that inner star constellation we carried with us into the physics of birth becomes integrated and aligned. Then our thoughts and intuitions and insights reveal by our actions and thoughts, our attractions and biographies, that our star map we started life with, is now the substance of how we think and act as unique imprinted stellar beings on Earth.

This deed gives Michael the Arche, the Zeitgeist, our current Time Spirit, great satisfaction. Instead of external astronomy, each individual carries their own unique star configuration with them in their nerve and sense system in their ASTRAL-or star body. The early sensitive construction of our brains and our TWELVE CRANIAL NERVES now illuminate us with a living dynamic, biological map of the stars and capacities we brought with us,  which now lights us up from within.

Rudolf Steiner

“Now you can grasp quite vividly how all that inwardly urges and impels the human being can be quite practically calculated from the planetary relationships.”

“In the cell, even in the ordinary organic cell, the chemical cohesiveness is not stronger than in an ordinarily complicated chemical compound; on the contrary, the chemical affinities become most chaotic in the fertilized germ-cell. The fertilized germ-cell is chaos in relation to what is material, chaos that disintegrates, chaos that really disintegrates. Into this disintegrating chaos pours what I have described to you as the human being, which was formed as I just described (lilac). What is actually physical is then formed, not through the germ itself but through the processes taking place in the mother’s body between the embryo and the environment. What descends from the spiritual world is thus actually placed into the emptiness and is only then permeated with mineral substance. What we have described here is, as you may see, an absolutely transparent process.”

“What he experiences in the passage through the planetary system before birth is, as it were, the polar opposite to this. Something is imparted to the human being that he brings down with him from heaven to earth. Just as he bears out into the soul world something of what is in his astral body, by means of which he lives backward through his earthly life, so he brings with him out of the cosmos something that then permeates his etheric body — something that has to do with his etheric body in the same way as what I have called the astral fruit of the earth has to do with our astral body. What he brings from the cosmos bears the same relationship to his etheric body as what he carries as astral fruit of the earth bears to his astral body.”

“I may therefore say that the human being brings with him from the cosmos the etheric cosmic fruit. This etheric cosmic fruit actually lives on in his etheric body. From the first moment of his birth, the human being has in his etheric body something like a cosmic force impelling him forward, which works through his entire life. Karmic tendencies remaining from the past unite with this cosmic impelling force and are active in it.

“We thus are able to show how perceptibly karma is related to the real human being. While telling ourselves that the human being has a pre-existent life, that he comes down from spiritual heights into earthly physical life and incorporates his I and astral body into his physical body and etheric body, we may also say that the karma he brings with him from his former life on earth incorporates itself into the etheric impelling force that he brings along with him from the influence of the planetary system that preceded his earthly incorporation.

“Now you can grasp quite vividly how all that inwardly urges and impels the human being can be quite practically calculated from the planetary relationships. In this way one can look intimately into what is working in the human being and follow it out of the physical, sense activity into the soul-spiritual world, whence man again carries it down into his physical, bodily existence on earth where it continues to work. These things can be given in all their particulars.”

“In an amazing metaphor, Steiner imagines that a boy is asking what makes a freely mounted magnetized needle move, and a reductionistic scientist explains to him that to find out what makes the compass needle move we must closely examine the compass needle, analyze its components, and figure out what is happening to the compass needle based on its constituents parts. If the boy says, “Look, it always returns to pointing to the north,” he is met with the retort, “We cannot talk about the whole Earth being involved in the needle’s movement, we must look into the needle for the cause.” That is blatantly foolish, of course, as anyone who took elementary school science would know: it is the Earth itself in which we must look for the source of the movement of the needle.” And yet modern biologists insist that the human being develops only in the womb from a tiny germ, and that the universe has no effect on it. Steiner illustrates the interaction of the human embryo to the world of stars and planets surrounding it by drawing a compass needle on top of the embryo in left half of this colored blackboard diagram”

Rudolf Steiner – “They look only at the germ cell. But just as the whole earth is active in a magnetic needle, so the whole universe is active in the creation of the embryo. The part which the human being plays in this is, of course, at an unconscious level.”

“If we take the signs and lay them across the curled up human fetus we get this diagram which now has taken on more meaning as Steiner shows us how the human being is formed out of the universe.”

Rudolf Steiner – “This figure I am drawing really arises from the twelve signs as if of its own accord. We are able to say: There (in the middle) the universe with its stars is more active in the inner human being; there (at the top) the stars act from outside, and there (below) they compress the human being. You can see that the form I have drawn is the human embryo. Basing yourself on the laws of zodiac, you really have to draw the human embryo like this, just as you get a triangle if you draw a figure that encloses 180 degrees. It is therefore immediately apparent that the human embryo is created out of the whole Universe.”

Rudolf Steiner “Cosmosophy” – “he passes through the region of the living thoughts active within him. These are the same thoughts that actually have taken part in building up his organism and that he has brought with him through birth into existence; they represent, in other words, his completed karma.”

“We recognize it as what we have brought with us through our birth from earlier experiences, from experiences lying before birth or conception. For us it becomes something of the spiritual, objectively present, that brings our whole organism together. Pre-existent thought gains objectivity, becomes objectively visible. We can say with an inner grasp that we are woven out of the world of spirit through thought. The subjective thoughts that we add stand in the sphere of our freedom. Those thoughts that we behold there form us, they build up our body from the weaving of thought. They are our past karma. Before we arrive at sense perceptions, therefore, we perceive our past karma.

“When someone in the spiritual world is chosen to go to the Earth with a particular commission to fulfil, how must we picture the procedure? We all go to the Earth either with the injunction or an intention to fulfil the dictates of karma and the resolutions of which we have become aware in the spiritual world to meet those human beings who are truly connected with us by karma. In the spiritual world this is clearly in our ken and we are fully conscious of it. During the actual descent this knowledge is obscured but in the process of disappearing from clear consciousness it becomes an organ-forming power which in the Moon sphere helps to build the earthly body in accordance with spiritual resolutions in which lofty Beings play a part. In the body it now becomes the urge to fulfil destiny, to meet particular individuals, to endure suffering or catastrophes. Whither our body leads us — that is the karma-instinct or Ego-instinct in us.”

“Out there between death and a new birth the will has experienced a spiritual image of the human being; now there arises in it the most vivid longing again to become world. The will spreads out, as it were; it becomes world, it becomes cosmos. By reason of this spreading out it extends even to the vicinity of the stream of nature that is formed through the line of heredity in the succession of generations. What works as will in the spiritual-physical cosmos and begins in the Midnight Hour of Existence to have the longing again to become world already lives in the flow of generations. When we then embody ourselves in the other stream that has the longing to become man, the will has preceded us in becoming world. It lives already in the propagation of the generations into which we then descend. In what we receive from our ancestors the will already lives, the will that wished to become world after the Midnight Hour of Existence. Through what in our thoughts has desired since the Midnight Hour of Existence to become man, we Meet with this will-desiring-to-become-world, which then incorporates itself into what we receive from our ancestors.”

Each person we meet is part of the great puzzle of the stars. The Angels, one level above our humanity, are responsible for one of the greatest mathematical physics inversions where the entire framework of unique, individual human destiny is, with highly advanced time and space co-ordinates, inverted from time and timelessness and brought into sync, with space and human biography.

Centripetal and Centrifugal Physics and the Inversion from Time into Space. Research by    Jaap van der Wal

“Not only a horizontal conception – i.e. the one on the physical, material level of reality of cells, nuclei, biology, of fusion of two gametes – as a central issue happens here, but also a vertical connection or encounter between yond and here, between spirit and matter occurs. The conception that we successfully imitate and manipulate in the artificial reproduction technology is not the actual conception: the events on the biological level are (maybe it is boring, but here it is again) the necessary but not sufficient conditions for a conception on another level. Even in vitro a baby is never made. Conception is a moment, with a theme of linking and connecting. What has been joined in conception will be untied and dissolved in the moment of dying (decomposition).When Someone has passed away, do we say: What remains is the dead body as a remnant, deserted by soul? Conception is an event, an act in reverse: what is separated before is joined, comes together. If this connection or joining succeeds, the actual conception (the fusion of gametes and so on) is rather a consequence than a cause. During a conception a Third Person becomes possible and comes into appearance, not because of, the physical substrate of two other people. (see figure 4) In this view man is not re-producing himself in his/her offspring in the sense of replicating or reproducing himself. A human being is not reproducible, at least when one considers biography as the one and only valid entity of being human (2). We in fact do not reproduce ourselves in our children. “In the very moment that I was you and you were me” (as the poet said), the Other may find the opportunity and conditions to come down, to bind. Not because of conception but thanks to it.”

The math of the stars and all that the individual gathered together to prepare for incarnation, when the moment finally comes, a vast inversion from Time, like a jewel, descends and becomes fixed into space. Our unfolding biographies on Earth, play out, with synchronicity and fields of higher math and coincidence, as the organic sensitive portal of birth that opened, becomes the biological and biographical journey and sequenced unfolding of our Spiritual challenges through life. The starry clock we brought with us from above and the starry clock within our biological biographies are brought into sync.

continues:  Jaap van der Wal

“Do the processes in the embryo go from outside to inside? For example in the second and third week from this outer body a stream of blood and nourishment has to be developed in order to assure the existence of the central body. The first appearance of a heart represents the center of this whole entity at that moment. If not, the center will get loose of its periphery and might die resulting in a miscarriage. A dangerous threshold has to be taken between the second and third week: the embryo comes from a more peripheral existence (yond) to an existence in the center (here). It so to speak comes more to earth. It is incarnating deeper into the body. Is the whole of embryonic development a process of incarnation, an en-velopment? This duality in prenatal existence, this two-bodiness has to be taken seriously. Our envelopments (the peripheral body, the membranes and placenta) are not supplements or appendices like regular embryologists and gynecologists apparently want us to believe! The dynamics of the embryo show us that the central body is coming forth out of the peripheral body. It emancipates from it in a process of gaining independency (autonomy). Then at birth a kind of untying process takes place and a human being comes to appearance by a kind of dying process, dying out of his self. The whole prenatal development process also bears the signature of coming to earth, of emancipating from a peripheral (spiritual?) dimension.”

Our stars alight within our ripening TWELVE CRANIAL NERVES and lo and behold we have a unique face, thought and configuration that has been impressed into our tiny seed germ. Each human birth is a VIRGIN BIRTH because the configuration of the Soul that will arise from the new strain of heredity, will bring about an absolute unique individual, that only with the most sensitive eye, can we detect, behind the human face, the vague outlines of our previous incarnations. Therefore the unique opportunity and soul configuration and biography we are given is an absolute VIRGIN BIRTH. For these sets of unique forces and concentration of stars and earthly parents, destiny and life are absolutely new collaborations between Heaven and Earth.

“Astrologers believe that the ‘rising sign’ (the sign coming up over the horizon at the moment of birth) and the rising planet are of basic importance in governing the subject’s temperament. (Michel) Gauquelin’s computer analysis seemed to show that three other positions were equally important: directly overhead, sinking below the horizon, and directly underfoot — the four quarters of the heavens, as it were. The findings were perfectly clear. Sportsmen tended to be born when Mars was in one of these critical positions, actors when Jupiter was there, and scientists (and doctors) when Saturn was there. Eysenck (1979) states: ‘The results were extremely clear-cut and so significant statistically that there is no question whatsoever that the effects were not produced by chance.’ But Eysenck, like (Michel) Gauquelin, is careful to state that he does not consider these results ‘prove’ astrology; rather, he says, they should be regarded as the possible foundation of a new science of astrobiology.”

The human being has and carries the germinal forces of the design codes of being a human being because great waves of cosmic creation and higher beings have mid-wifed the form and structure and integration of the whole complex system. So that when the moment arises for the possibility of a Spiritual Being of the rank of the Tenth Hierarchy to descend to incarnation, there is, once the potential destiny map and karmic Time-Line has been sketched – and sketching here, with our higher friends and Angels, is something very different than we imagine.

Eteched instead of sketched into the ethers, into Time itself, each human spirit presents a question to the stars and heavens that we tend to mock and materialize, but this unseen community of lofty beings above our Tenth Hierarchy status, create the arrangements and negotiations, the math and the hour, the moment where our map of cosmic destiny and our place as Time Beings can be inserted back into the Spacial world (see link).

“If a child were born while the Moon was rising, his life would be resplendent, long, and happy. if a child were born while Mars was rising, he would be sickly and soon die. if two planets wielded their influence simultaneously, the rising planet operated with greater force. Thus, if Jupiter were rising and Venus setting at birth, a man would have luck in later life, but would abandon his wife. If Venus were rising and Jupiter setting, the man would be ruled by his wife.

“…once the seven planets had been discovered, the number seven became sacred. Babylonian observatories were made seven stories high; state documents were sealed with seven seals. There were seven colors, seven musical notes, seven parts of the body; human lives were supposed to consist of seven-year periods. In the sky, Orion and the two Bears had seven stars; the Pleiades were called the Seven Sisters, though with the best will in the world only six tiny dots of light could be distinguished. The week was given seven days, awkward as this unit was. And each day was named after and presumably dominated by a single planet. To this day the names of the days retain the system: Sun-day, Moon-day, Tiu/ Mars-day, Woden/Mercury-day, Thor/ Jupiter-day, Freya/Venus-day, Saturn-day. Although the names of our days derive mainly from Norse mythology, the system can be considered a gift from Babylon, reminding us of the eyes of the gods which once governed the days, the hours, and human destinies with their magical glances.”

Our incarnation or insertion into the motion of the ticking biological strata of seasons, plants, animals, locations, languages, capacities and potential possibilities are literally brought into relation and filled with star dynamics which will become our biographies.

And within our biographies, once we have been re-inserted back into the stream of Time, dynamic karmic mark points and intersections with events and other human beings will all be set in motion, long before the tiny little seed germ of the first cells of the embryo begins to tick, tick, tick with the microscopic determination of germination.

Neither Darwin or arbitrary nature built the tiny house that starts to form in the womb. The design codes of the human embryo have a relation to all the many forms of life on Earth because lofty beings, above the Tenth Hierarchy, integrated vast visible communities of beings. The Stones, The Plants, The Insects, The Animals, and Humanity. The Tenth Hierarchy meet lofty design codes that from the Stones to Human beings already have in them higher and more complex integrations of components until they reach the Star Form and Cosmic design codes that are manifested in the planning and structure of a human destiny.

Each Human, as we look at the tiny embryo and fetus, already has within it, and unfolding as a tiny micro-cellular germinal dot, you know the little dot at the end of sentence or a dot.com, that little micro-dot amounts to the beginning of a Life in which the Spiritual Human Being’s question has been answered by the entire lofty region of the stars and the hierarchies, that we fantasize doesn’t exist. But each human embryo is a tiny encircled, micro-zodiac created on the Template of the Stars and the 12 constellations of the heavens. We will uncoil and unroll like a scroll and stand as an upright living human constellation built on the Template of the Stars.

Of course this is no joke! The rude deception of the medical community refuses to IMAGINE exactly what a human being is. Our initial incarnating and specific star and constellation entry point becomes literally our biological brain, nerve and astral-sense coordination and thinking system. The invisible realm where Angelic Beings have performed and mid-wifed these vast physics inversions of Time and Space, from Spirit into biology and matter, with precise programmed potentials using the intimate dynamics and the Template of the Stars and constellations, are Angels.

That is why human thinking has not graduated many humans yet to become Angelic, because as The Tenth Hierarchy we have so far failed to grasp the physics of Time and Space as an insertion portal, a doorway from the higher invisible and advanced worlds into our biological and biographical individualities.

Dr. Karl Konig

“I would like to draw your attention to that very interesting line which Rudolf Steiner calls the “spiritual germ.” The spiritual germ, my friends, is that structural partner of our individual existence which at the moment of fertilization combines with the physical germ. And I may point out that the spiritual germ is not man, not the individuality, nor is it the astral body or the ether body, but that it is the basic form of the physical body of every human being, the basic form of the physical body. That is of course closely connected with Karma, for whether I have blond hair or black, green eyes or blue, broad or narrow shoulders—that depends a little on heredity, but it also depends on my personality. Here the two heredities meet,my spiritual one, which I bring with me, and the other, which I receive through the Angel from my parents.

“Now things really begin to get complicated. What is the spiritual germ? My friends, the spiritual germ is a form of infinite magnitude. The spiritual germ is as big as the universe itself, to begin with. And this spiritual germ is born, given form and shape and structure, by myself, i.e. by what remains when I have gone through the gate of death, after the review of the past life, when I have passed through the Kamaloka, when I have gone through the lower Devachan. What then remains as
eternal individuality, that begins, at about the midnight hour between death and new birth, to weave the spirit germ. All the hierarchies, says Rudolf Steiner, all the souls which we met in our past lives and those which we shall meet, take part in this process. They weave our form but—and some won’t like this—this form is supra-individual, it is nothing but the human form per se. If there were nothing beyond the spiritual germ, we should all be so much alike. But that is not the case.

“This spiritual germ—and perhaps I may indicate this—then combines with our eternal individuality and with an astral body in the Moon sphere. There, ego, astral body and spiritual germ are present. From out there, too, we then try to bring our parents together, to influence them to give us the prescribed constellation. Then, at the moment when fertilization occurs, the spiritual germ drops down and in its human form—you know what I mean—combines with the physical germ. Now two have come together, the spiritual germ and the physical germ. But a vacuum has appeared where the spiritual germ was before, and into this vacuum enter forces which become the ether body, and it is this ether body which then gives its individual stamp to the universal form of the spiritual germ of man, and brings out the Karma which belongs to us.

“These three, the ego, the astral body and the ether body, are those which then descend on the seventeenth day. But by that day the development must be such that a house is prepared for the three, so that they may move in.”

We have utterly failed and rudely dismissed the human being as built on the Template of the Stars and arrogantly refuse to consider that Masters of physics, karma, astronomy, time and space use the Template of the Stars for the creation of every human being.

These Masters do not use the stars to road test Warp Drive in Space, these Masters are Warp Drive. They don’t need souped up hyper-space vessels to transit and co-ordinate how each of us will squeeze into our life times, the karmic lessons, and free potentials we might discover in our incarnations. Just as the visible world is rooted in the invisible, the Templates for both nature and humanity, are seen in the vast geometry and design codes of nature. But the Angelic community integrate, along with loftier beings still, not merely when we can be re-inserted into Space and Time, but that we carry the co-ordination of groups of people we would need to meet and encounter and each of these had also to be coordinated as well. All of us, each with our own destinies and our own biographies and biology, just so we might fall in love, meet those special people who shape our lives and in turn carry the whole complex assembly of humanity and spiritual striving forward until such a time that we understand and respect this vast starry Template of the Constellations and ween ourselves from the narrow materialistic vision we hold of embryology and reproduction.

“…the number of days, 260, that a woman is pregnant and the number of days, 260, between the time Venus rises as the Evening Star, and then reappears as the Morning Star. This is slightly shorter than the time Western medicine gives for a pregnancy. The Mayan reckoning is from the time of conception, while the western medical estimate is from the time of the last menstrual period. There are 9 lunar synods of approximately 29 days in a 260 day period, which would correspond with the nine menstrual cycles of a fertile woman.”

The FEMALE HUMAN BEING, the Mothering Gateway, links the internal substance of the Starry Beings to the Female Portal. Every Woman is designed and has volunteered prior to incarnation, to carry the honor of representing LOVE and the HIGHEST PHYSICS of the Soul and Spirit, by choosing Womanhood. Women, while in the starry region before incarnation, were so illuminated by Angelic Love and Wisdom from within, that they sought the roots of the mystery of Love and the Starry forces of the Angels to be directly linked, literally linked, to the roots of their anatomy. To gain further insight into the Mystery of Womanhood and the ART OF BEING A WOMAN, [CLICK THIS LINK].

A tiny dot is the beginning of a vast biographical book, that a REAL Human Spirit, will start to write, and slowly crawl, stand, speak and begin to walk through a biography that has been designed to have startling star intersections, destiny contact points, EVENTS which are the offerings of the great community of beings to humanity.

It is an altar on which the tiny DOT is placed and the preparations for the unfolding of our little, seemingly insignificant lives, have very, very rarely been sketched to include the vast workings of who made the forms, the standard assembly line model of the human embryo, what type of codes and standard designs does it include and how does our Freedom and our Biography and the karmic shape of our lives have significance for the entire cosmic process?

“A biography takes shape in time as it unfolds between birth and death. The resulting shape is not an object to be discerned with the senses. It develops over time and arises from the qualities of time – past, present and future. A biography can only be seen inwardly as the panorama of a life if we concentrate on crystallizing out the sequence of experiences and events. From prenatal obscurity every individual brings gifts that may hinder or help. Through a series of metamorphoses governed by specific laws, physical organs as well as mental and spiritual faculties are developed as these gifts interact with external circumstances and events. Capabilities can be used to shape one’s sphere of life and to realize ideals and aims. Every human biography is unique since the variety of given and added inner and outer possibilities is so enormous that no life is the same. Yet every biography is founded on a generally valid human blueprint that is modified by personal and suprapersonal influences.”

Firstly current materialistic science gives no inclusion of an Etheric body complex. We get that there is a lymphatic and an endocrine system but the invisible etheric system that sustains LIFE and FORM are rigidly dismissed by materialism because we have failed to see it or open our eyes to study and include it as a legitimate part of the invisible system of being a Living Human Being. This is a stumbling block and a grotesque error perpetuated and rigidly adhered to by the dogmas of materialistic science.

Yet we know now through the 20th and 21st century that in every standard Near Death Experience or NDE, just before permanently leaving the body at death,sometimes a quick etheric LIFE TABLEAU is unfolded if the human spirit is called back from the brink of death. Many have a standard memory of hovering outside of their dead body on the operating table and hearing, seeing and comprehending but unable to communicate to the great detached medical science community the fact that they left and re-entered their bodies and at the hospital this was understood as their deaths. Yet it was the Spirit, the I AM, the astral body and our etheric body that either re-entered or left. If the I AM, the Astral and Etheric body re-entered the body, than we have very clear grasp of what medical science continues to side-step and dismiss as an NDE.

On the other hand, as a sadistic side note, Water-boarding and certain types of torture deliberately bring the human being to the brink of suffocation and death. A game of terror, life and fear with torturing and Near Death Experiences are deliberate occult intrusions that the psychology of torture and the sadistic human intent wish to push the human being through this threshold and bring them back again quickly, over and over again because cryptic snatches of future vision can be robbed and recorded by the torturers in rapid succession.

In these sadistic cryptic visions, ripped away, by tearing the etheric from the physical, flashes of near death future visions become property of sadistic men instead of the clarity of religious, medical and scientific fact. Studying Near Death Experiences or NDE are classified and part of the military arm of preventing standard insights into the invisible workings of our I AM, our etheric bodies and our astral bodies from becoming the common knowledge of the invisible aspects of the real structure of our human design. Access Denied!

Secondly there is no inclusion of what the Angels have worked so hard to create and what we carry with us, our astral bodies, but we say, oh golly gee, we have a nervous system. However we care not to consider that an entire complex history of Angels had to struggle with everything we glibly call the Stars and the organized system of the stars and planets in order to bring this complex design system into what is known as our TWELVE cranial nerves.

So that the map, capacities, nervous system,(aka-ASTRAL BODY) would carry the stamp and the impress, etched into the tiny embryonic dot, the entire etched potential, the entire integrated karma and destiny which we and the world carry into life as the hope and hopes of every divine seed, who shall grow into a mighty oak, are never considered from the aspect of the Angels, one stage above humanity. That would require human courage and insight into the Michael School.

Jaap van der Wal

“I may also read behavior in living organisms from its form and shape, from its Gestalt, from its continuously changing morphological appearance. An organism is shown to us as a unity of shape, function and environment, continuously changing in time. The rose in the vase is not the rose. I have to include time into my image of the rose: out of seed to plant, to knob and flower, to withering, etc. Far before it comes to acting outwardly, to performing so to speak, the organism already shows behavior in a morphological sense; it exhibits behavior by means of its forms, bodily organization and its shape. In this way a birch or an oak tree exhibit behavior. They behave themselves as a birch or an oak in the shape of their appearance. To perceive and to understand the organism I could describe its behavior in the widest sense of the word. Form, shape, and appearance is a fundamental way that the organism expresses its essence of being. Describing and studying the shape of appearance gives me insight about the nature or essence of the living being or organism as it expresses itself by these behaviors of growth and shape. It might help me to apprehend the birch and the oak tree. Apprehension however is not the same as explaining the organism. The latter brings me to the forms and shapes as causes, the former considers such factors as conditions. Explaining as causal interpretation for instance is the main aim of contemporary embryology: How might we explain the causes regarding the shape and the appearance of the embryo?

And such a theory of etheric life insights as the acorn and the mighty oak are nothing compared to the complex math, and biographical model, in which our lives and destinies unfold while we wear a human form that has been designed by whole cosmic histories of beings which we glibly exclude so we can pretend all THIS has been some sort of accident.

We pretend for the sake of materialistic science that all this that we experience as life and our lives and our destinies are just hap-hazard arbitrary, accidental events. We are born and arrive into a vast chaotic complex of forms and life and we wend our way never, hardly ever, do we come face to face with the facts that nothing about this world or events that will befall us through life, from the simplest losing a tooth to discovering the love of our lives, none of it is arbitrary or accidental. Dynamic, sychronistic, karmic events laced with destiny and biography and choices, this way or that, are far more delicate, in depth and meaning, than we ever give credit to, yet they are the events that change the inner core of our thinking and our lives in every instance.

It certainly may be sychronistic, Time determined and rich with the hopes, plans and potentials that we carry for the whole cosmos, but we are not taught to study patterns of coincidence or trace the miracle of the structure of the human form and all that we are as The Tenth Hierarchy and all those beings who have helped shape us and the range of forms that carry crystal, plant, animal and us through the complex physical, etheric, astral and the absolute immortal Time Leaper, Time voyaging, reincarnating, I AM in our core. These things we neatly and without our undying shame, dismiss. The mechanics of life are fine, but the mechanics are not the makers of the brand we call Human or what we call Earth.

We fail to grasp the Star Patterns above and feel their intimacy in our nervous systems, our biographies and the impacts of our destiny events as connected to the unfolding perfection and unique system that starts in the embryo when a Human Spiritual Being has once more embarked on the journey to re-enter time.

The planning and the hopes and the question that has been vouched by the cosmos to create such an opportunity, which our response currently is the ever ready sarcastic WHATEVER, demolishes in an instant, the entire invisible community of beings that have created the math, the music of the spheres, the Etheric Body, the Astral Body and the loftiest beings who have bestowed us with a cognitive I AM above the animals. We are forced to study a shattered heap of genetic and chromosome atom and molecular sexual substance held together by duct tape. We kneel and study the chimera we call the human embryo and then we begin to arbitrarily and abstractly meddle with the design codes.

A chimera is an animal that has two or more different populations of genetically distinct cells that originated in different zygotes involved with sexual reproduction; if the different cells emerged from the same zygote, it is called a mosaicism. Chimeras are formed from four parent cells (two fertilized eggs or early embryos fused together). Each population of cells keeps its own character and the resulting animal is a mixture of tissues. Chimeras are typically seen in non-human zoology, but also discovered to a rare extent in humans.

“This condition is either inherited, or it is acquired through the infusion of allogeneic hematopoietic cells during transplantation or transfusion. In nonidentical twins, chimerism occurs by means of blood-vessel anastomoses. The likelihood of offspring being a chimera is increased if it is created via in vitro fertilization. Chimeras can often breed, but the fertility and type of offspring depends on which cell line gave rise to the ovaries or testes; varying degrees of intersexuality may result if one set of cells is genetically female and another genetically male.”

PRAYER BEFORE BIRTH

I am not yet born; O hear me.
Let not the bloodsucking bat or the rat or the stoat or the club-footed ghoul come near me.

I am not yet born, console me.
I fear that the human race may with tall walls wall me, with strong drugs dope me, with wise lies lure me, on black racks rack me, in blood-baths roll me.

I am not yet born; provide me
With water to dandle me, grass to grow for me, trees to talk to me, sky to sing to me, birds and a white light in the back of my mind to guide me.

I am not yet born; forgive me
For the sins that in me the world shall commit, my words when they speak me, my thoughts when they think me, my treason engendered by traitors beyond me, my life when they murder by means of my hands, my death when they live me.

I am not yet born; rehearse me
In the parts I must play and the cues I must take when old men lecture me, bureaucrats hector me, mountains frown at me, lovers laugh at me, the white waves call me to folly and the desert calls me to doom and the beggar refuses my gift and my children curse me.

I am not yet born; O hear me,
Let not the man who is beast or who thinks he is God come near me.

I am not yet born; O fill me
With strength against those who would freeze my humanity, would dragoon me into a lethal automaton, would make me a cog in a machine, a thing with one face, a thing, and against all those who would dissipate my entirety, would blow me like thistledown hither and thither or hither and thither like water held in the hands would spill me.

Let them not make me a stone and let them not spill me.
Otherwise kill me.

Louis Macneice

Wonder

BY THOMAS TRAHERNE

       How like an angel came I down!
               How bright are all things here!
When first among his works I did appear
       O how their glory me did crown!
The world resembled his eternity,
               In which my soul did walk;
       And ev’ry thing that I did see
               Did with me talk.

Our Angels in childhood

       The skies in their magnificence,
               The lively, lovely air;
Oh how divine, how soft, how sweet, how fair!
       The stars did entertain my sense,
And all the works of God, so bright and pure,
               So rich and great did seem,
       As if they ever must endure
               In my esteem.
       A native health and innocence
               Within my bones did grow,
And while my God did all his glories show,
       I felt a vigour in my sense
That was all spirit. I within did flow
               With seas of life, like wine;
       I nothing in the world did know
               But ’twas divine.
       Harsh ragged objects were conceal’d,
               Oppressions tears and cries,
Sins, griefs, complaints, dissensions, weeping eyes
       Were hid, and only things reveal’d
Which heav’nly spirits, and the angels prize.
               The state of innocence
       And bliss, not trades and poverties,
               Did fill my sense.
       The streets were pav’d with golden stones,
               The boys and girls were mine,
Oh how did all their lovely faces shine!
       The sons of men were holy ones,
In joy and beauty they appear’d to me,
               And every thing which here I found,
       While like an angel I did see,
               Adorn’d the ground.
       Rich diamond and pearl and gold
               In ev’ry place was seen;
Rare splendours, yellow, blue, red, white and green,
       Mine eyes did everywhere behold.
Great wonders cloth’d with glory did appear,
               Amazement was my bliss,
       That and my wealth was ev’ry where:
               No joy to this!
       Curs’d and devis’d proprieties,
               With envy, avarice
And fraud, those fiends that spoil even Paradise,
       Flew from the splendour of mine eyes,
And so did hedges, ditches, limits, bounds,
               I dream’d not aught of those,
       But wander’d over all men’s grounds,
               And found repose.
       Proprieties themselves were mine,
               And hedges ornaments;
Walls, boxes, coffers, and their rich contents
       Did not divide my joys, but all combine.
Clothes, ribbons, jewels, laces, I esteem’d
               My joys by others worn:
       For me they all to wear them seem’d
               When I was born.

“Copernicus revolutionizes our picture of the universe and sees the Sun at the center and the planets all round. And the three Italians, Aldrovandi, Eustacchi and Fallopio, they now look into another aspect of the cosmos and begin to experience wonders there.”Dr. Karl König

Willi Sucher
(1902-1985)

During my studies at the Goetheanum I had the great good fortune of meeting Willi Sucher and having a long and wonderful conversation with him. As a member of the Michael School Willi, who had met Rudolf Steiner, created for me a link and connection to those who have contributed and built so much insight that I am honored to keep some of their immense contributions alive in my own thinking.

One of the keys to a new understanding of Astrosophy was not only the birth chart, “what sign are you?” that rather drab convenient pick-up line when you meet someone, but Willi Sucher and Rudolf Steiner and the School of Spiritual Science, studied in depth, not only the karmic substance of what brings a human being into birth, but also when a human being leaves his incarnation, either abruptly or through the full length of our long biographies on Earth, dies. In other words the Timepiece and Template of the fully conscious universe we inhabit, has an imprint of our stars when we exit Earth at death or our death charts. It was Willi Sucher who began researching the exit point, where we return back to the stars again, we take the continuum and summation of our lives, as an imprinted record, out through the great timepiece of the stars, as our death charts. (Sucher’s Works CLICK LINK)

“Willi Sucher strove to understand the full extent of humanity’s relationships to the stars: as individuals, as nations, as human evolution in the widest sense. The “lightning-bolt” that galvanized his intense interest in developing a new vision of the human being’s modern relationship to the stars was a statement by Rudolf Steiner that the asterogram at one’s death is more significant than a birth chart in understanding the significance of an individual life as it affected that individual’s further evolution, as well as the evolution of the cosmos itself. This was a new idea in astrology. Willi combined meticulous mathematical calculations and a fully scientific approach with a personal path of meditation and spiritual development to bring a high level of intuition and inspiration to his work.”

The entire organism of the universe is a living time code and the coordination of the stars at our ENTRANCE at birth are the result of the Master physics and math of the Hierarchies themselves. Our deaths are also recorded in the cosmic template through higher spiritual physics, also at our EXIT from life.

Anyone of us who imagines this is all an arbitrary crap shoot called life has miserably failed to think it through, we have failed to grasp how we are never out of the supervision and Macrocosmic system that harvests the precious I Am of each and every single human spirit and replants all our striving and capacities again back through the portal of birth. Death is our reentry back into the spiritual world and we carry the harvest and fruits of what we achieved in life, what we learned, and these are replanted through the portal of birth with an entirely new Virgin configuration stamped with the stars. Of this, by this, and through this, the Arche Michael, our current ZeitGeist and Time spirit maintains the mighty Scales of Balance between the Microcosm and the Macrocosm.

“Due to the war, there was much concern in Great Britain that there were enemy informers among the many refugees. Thus, all German and Austrian men and some women were rounded up as “enemy aliens” to be interned in detention camps around the British Isles. Anticipating this, Willi packed a small case with his most precious tables for working out star positions and other aids he needed to carry on his research. Thus when the police came for him and some others working at the home, he was fully prepared.

“They were first taken to a kind of clearing house at a military barracks at Worcester, then on to a place near Liverpool. Just as his personal belongings were about to be searched for any papers or books for the burn pile, the first man in their group told the inspectors that they had come from a children’s home in which there had been an outbreak of scarlet fever, which was true. Because of this, their group was taken to an isolation unit, and their belongings were sent with them without being inspected. Thus Willi’s research materials were spared. The group was later transferred to a camp on the Isle of Man, in the Irish Sea. Here several anthroposophists found themselves interned together: Dr. Ernst Lehrs and Dr. Karl Konig, the founder of Camphill, among others. Willi would later describe this time as a most fruitful period of research. For 18 months, these individuals were given time to hold a kind of “super college”, as Willi called it. They had long conversations about their studies and research, and practiced giving talks to each other. Since he was a medical doctor, Dr. Konig was released first, in January 1942, and he secured Willi’s release by inviting him to come to work at his home for children in Aberdeen, Scotland.”

Embryology and World Evolution Author: Dr. Karl König

“Now if we ask ourselves: “Which year was embryology born?” one can say that embryology was born between 1522 and 1524. The historians among you will know that that was the time of Luther, of Charles V, the time of Paracelsus, of Nicolaus Cusanus and many others. I will not go further into that. But three Italian scientists were born one after the other in 1522, 1523 and 1524. 1522 Ulisse Aldrovandi, 1523 Gabriele Fallopio, 1524 Bartolommeo Eustacchi. That is most interesting, for basically these three personalities became the founders of human and animal embryology. Aldrovandi was the first to do something which we now consider pretty obvious, for he took a look by opening the shell of a hen’s egg to see how a chick embryo is actually formed and developed. And he noticed that there is no tiny chick in there, but there are very strange, unknown forms which develop gradually from a germ which appears almost chaotic. That was a tremendous step forward in observation; it was not yet an experiment, but it was an observation.

Fallopio, who was born a year later, investigated the human embryo, and he found out that after birth there is a placenta, that the embryo is enveloped in the membranes, and that somehow or other—he did not quite find out how—the blood vessels of the developing child are connected with the placenta and the membranes. That is the second discovery.

“And Eustacchi was particularly interested in the mouth region and studied animal embryos to see how the teeth develop. And bit by bit he found out. Historically you can therefore see first of all this: Copernicus revolutionizes our picture of the universe and sees the Sun at the center and the planets all round. And the three Italians, Aldrovandi, Eustacchi and Fallopio, they now look into another aspect of the cosmos and begin to experience wonders there. My friends, one should write a book about this some time, for hidden behind this lie other facts which may be mentioned here—since we are all friends coming together so to speak in the name of Rudolf Steiner. Firstly there is this: It happened because just then, in the ‘20s of the sixteenth century, the Archangel Gabriel entered his reign. With that begins the history of embryology.

“It was Gabriel who announced the birth of the Christ child. And in spiritual history we have a link here. But there is also something else behind this, and that is the following. Fallopio is just as well known to anatomists as Eustacchi, because their names have been given to anatomical organs which they discovered. Fallopio discovered the female tube, that passage which leads from the cavity of the uterus to a point near the ovary. And Eustacchi is well known because he discovered another passage—I did already say that he was particularly interested in the mouth—which leads from the throat up to the ear.

“And if you look at the human being, dear friends, and see—here is the throat (Fig. 1) and the ear trumpet, i.e. the Eustachian tube goes up there, then it leads here to the inner ear and to the middle ear, and the throat continues here. If you look down, into the female organization, then you find here the Fallopian tube, here the uterus and the vagina, and here you find the ovary, just as there you find the ear.”

“…something which we should never lose sight of when studying embryology. That to hear and to conceive—speech and development—are basically the same process, for in the beginning there was the word. The word, which creates our human word, and the word which has created our human germ.In the Mysteries at Ephesus they taught this, which I have just said, in another form—much more pictorially and directly, much more spiritually—for there it was said: Speak, man, and through yourself you reveal the coming into being of the world. The coming into being of the world which also is revealed in the coming into being of the embryo, the coming into being of the world which also finds revelation when the human being is speaking.”

The problem with the study of Form, and the Spirits of Form and how to behold the structure of the human being as a Master work of the Spirits of form, are the basic anatomical problems when you wish to reveal certain dual or mirrored set of anatomical features that reveal in their whole placement and split between left side and right side, upper and lower, two ears and two eyes and two halves of the brain and two hands and two legs and two Eustachian tubes that connect to two ears and two sides of the internal unseen Fallopian tubes that in a formative manner match the upper Eustachian tubes, we get a chance to break down and grasp the wholeness in the parts.

As a Waldorf teacher I brought the ideas of reproduction and the structure of forms to my classes when we approached the study of reproduction at the Seventh Grade. Now to grasp the Imagination of the human form I had first encountered Karl konig’s indications and bringing about an experience of how the lower womb and uterus works, required me to grasp the Bell Pepper and just how hollow spaces are created in the etheric and vegetable kingdom via an Astral force that reveals an interior replication of an anatomical womb where, within this hollow space a living human being would begin forming in under the lower female abdomen.

I bring a small sampling of some of the sketches that my Waldorf class made when we put Eustachian tubes and Fallopian tubes together. The magical ingredients to bringing the model of reproduction together in a living way, was the word that connected the Fallopian and Eustachian tubes, and that was CONCEPTION. We studied how thoughts and ideas travel from our Ears into our understanding and we begin to give birth or to conceive light invigorated IDEAS.

“There are certain eye diseases which affect men only, e.g. color blindness, but quite a few other things as well, for this very reason that the eye is specifically male and the ear very much a female organ.”

We made models of each of the class members both Ears, both sides of their heads.Embryology 1 study Ear study These models, when placed together, these Ear models, formed not only a unique study of the Ear, but the Ear as a shell and as both Ears faced outward to capture the concepts of the world, if we brought the right and left ears together, a tiny womb, a tiny embryonic fallopian system was revealed when the two Ear models were brought together.

From the upper region of Conception we could then begin to see how in the closed and hollow system inside the female womb, the Cosmos and Conception and the Idea of the embryo took shape, in the same way a Bell Pepper is hollow on the inside with various umbilical like structures. The class saw how the models of their own Ears formed two sides of their heads out into the world and the little models of their Ears were individualized WORLD WOMBS built for the human spirit to grasp Percepts and see and give birth to Concepts and ideas through a fertilization process of listening with our Ears.

Now the off shoot of some of this brought the class into relation with Just how Athene was given birth, fully formed, the fully formed Warrioress of Thought, Athene, who guides the cunning Odysseus through the trials of the Odyssey, Athene who sprang fully formed as a Michael Concept, as the female Michael Form from Greece, the foundation of Freedom and the basis of the Parthenon of Greece, Athene sprang fully formed out of Zeus’ head in an act of COSMIC CONCEPTION based on the full forming and potent capacities of Zeus, finding the IDEAS realm of the entire cosmos, take shape in the womb of Zeus’ head. Between his two ears, splits forth in an agonizing birth pang, a splitting headache, the full cohesive form of Athene now springs, as the spear of LIVING INTUITION as spiritual fact.

The humble WORD heard by the Disciples and St. John. He that from His lips, He who was in the Beginning THE WORD, The Logos, He from whom all the manifold beings of creation had sprung and appeared in living formative life before our astonished eyes had consummated our contract with our brothers and sisters of the Hierarchies through His deed on Golgotha. He who is the master of the Template of the Constellations and through his incarnation is now the Lord of the physics of human karma, is the same secret and hidden word that through the Fallopian tubes, created THE TEMPLATE of the zodiacal embryo and interior chamber where the secret wonder and Image of the Heavens would be nested. Our I AM re-enters the cycle of Time integration based on the biological unfolding and integration of gestation, and enters the portal of birth and emerges as a Word Bearer, with two ears, already designed to have CONCEPTION and fertilization take place in the Temple of the heart and the secret chamber of the mind’s eye.

Dr. Karl König (pg 26) – “…and I am quoting Rudolf Steiner—had had to take refuge on the surrounding planets because they found no bodies to inhabit on the Earth. Anyone who has looked down a microscope and seen the sperm cells swarm (Laurie Anderson) towards the ovum cannot help seeing in that a picture of what once happened on the spiritual, psychic and physical level when hundreds of thousands of souls streamed back again to the Earth. And now, with fertilization, we have got to the beginning of embryonic development proper. Do you see what I mean? It begins only now. The preformationists are convinced that now, when the two come together and fuse, everything that will be needed is there already. Rudolf Steiner has told us otherwise. Through him we know that at that moment, when the sperm enters the ovum, the whole becomes a chaos, and that this chaos will only gradually give way to a formed cosmos.”

Dr. Karl König concludes his masterful contribution to the Michael School of the Cosmic Symphony of Incarnation

“My friends, everything that happens up to the seventeenth day does so solely and entirely through the interplay between the physical germ provided by the parents and that entity which following the description given by Rudolf Steiner I called the spiritual germ. That spiritual germ is really nothing but the archetype of the human form.This archetype of the human form, if you recall, comes into being in the midnight hour between death and rebirth, when it is woven around the central point of the individuality preparing for incarnation.

“The hierarchies, the human soul linked to that individuality, angels and archangels—these start to weave, reaching right across the whole universe, weaving the destiny of the individual, as into a mighty tapestry, a carpet of life and of karma, weaving the spiritual germ. Coming from the all-embracing vastness of the universe, getting smaller and smaller as it passes through the spheres of the planets, gathering itself through Saturn, Sun, Mercury and Venus, arrayed in astral body and spiritual germ, the Ego, or I, enters into the sphere of the Moon. And there, at the moment of physical fertilization, the spiritual germ drops away from astral body and ego. This creates a vacuum and causes another group of beings, the original Teachers of mankind who dwell on the Moon, to weave an ether-body for this human being, putting it together from light and warmth, sound and life.

“We may now visualize the following: Down there on earth, in the mother’s womb, the spiritual and the physical germs are interacting. The constellation of the spiritual germ is such that it bears within itself the image not of the individual, but of the human form generally. This image is implanted in the physical germ as a spiritually physical form, i.e. not materially, but physically woven from spiritual substance. That occurs within the maternal organization, and the earthly substances together with the heavenly substance of Man now recapitulate the genesis of man’s coming into being on earth. At the same time when this is happening in the uterus, the Moon organ of woman, another process goes on in the Moon sphere of the universe: With the help of the colony of Teachers on the Moon, the ether-body, I and astral body are brought together during those holy seventeen days—for that we may call them—of our existence, those days that are like a grand overture at the beginning of every life that comes into being on earth.

“And at the moment when the sixth day of creation has been reached in that recapitulation and the call is heard: “Let us make man,” at that moment the human being itself, fashioned from the I, the astral body and etheric body, comes down to earth.

“The whole of the embryonic development following upon this stage is nothing less than a recapitulation of the whole of Atlantean development. And when the trumpet blasts of the birth pangs sound, then the child is born as the new Ark, on the waters which flow from the mother. Every newborn child is basically an ark. In it, man may once more take hold of himself in his becoming. That is basically how one should look at it. I have the impression that this establishes a certain span of time for what we call ontogeny and phytogeny. We see the Fall, we see the end of Lemuria, we see all the Atlantean periods with their early races. But actually, what Noah did and what happened with the Flood, that actually happens all over again with every human birth.

“And the astral body, a body of the stars, spread out to begin with over the whole cosmos, then inhaled as it descended, growing smaller, is now beginning to experience, in the rhythms, how it is to have a sense of time; not today and tomorrow, nor year and day, but the basic function that goes through all we know as time: rhythm. As the amniotic fluid comes into being and goes again, as the waters flow all around the embryo, as within, in the brain and spinal cord, the fluid ebbs and flows—it is not the water, but its rhythm through which the astral body enters into the process of time. And then, my friends, reflecting the experience of space from the ether-body and the experience of time from the astral body, the ego, the I, gradually awakens to the lessons in the school of earth that the universe has devised for it.

“For now you can see, in various places in the human form, the Ram, the Bull, the Twins, the Crab, the Lion, the Virgin, the Balance, the Scorpion, the Archer, the He-Goat, the Waterman and the Fishes. The I has to experience more and other things.”

And the Arche Michael, the magnificent Time-Spirit and ZeitGeist of our age along with the Etheric Christ keep the portal of the stars and the work of the Hierarchies grounded in humanity. The Angels above us, the Ninth Hierarchy preserve the great Template of the Stars for us.

All of the Hierarchies wait in cosmic devotion, that humanity will awaken to their true destiny, find in the human spirit the cognition and the will and return with the bountiful fruits of their and our shared highest strivings. Which is to lift creation up together and carry the stone, plant, insect, animal and human family to their next plateau of cosmic evolution. This is the Task for all of us in the struggling complexities of the Tenth Hierarchy.

ADDENDUM 1
3 weeks in begins the Incarnation of the unique human being. See youtube commentary.
ADDENDUM 2 “Every Thing You Wanted To Know About Sex but were Afraid to Ask” Woody Allen
ADDENDUM 3
The full narrative study of BIRTH from our good friend  
Jaap van der Wal, PhD, MD (Click Link) is something one should leap for joy to have at our disposal. We have hardly any idea how courageous and wonderfully concise such insights are. They are no-where to be found in the repertoire of other so called ‘medical professionals’. If you want to know the reason society is a mess, it is because from the very outset we don’t include the spirit of the unborn child. That is the source of humanities full social woes. (Click Link)

The wonderful songs (Click Link) “On the Day that you were born the Angels got together and decided to create a dream come true.

And the song – The Angels must have made you, made you, so loving warm and true. (Click Link)

ADDENDUM 4

Listen to the question, the final question George Harrison of the Beatles raises in his final interview. (CLICK LINK). The question of the incarnation and ex-carnation and the science of reincarnation stands in outline before us. The Midnight Hour and a magnificent timepiece of the science of how we go up to the loftiest regions of the spirit, come to a decision on re-embodiment, and we find ourselves in our 35th year in our human biographies, not at the science of the Midnight Hour but at 6 p.m. Now at 6 p.m. around our 35th year we are walking in the midst of a vast spiritual process that is no longer beyond our comprehension. It is clearly outlined before us.

ADDENDUM 5

The clip I offer is far, far too advanced and complicated for the gentle spirit of motherhood, struggling to fit the birth of their child into the complexity of the universe. The vesica piscis is the geometric spiritual central mystery of the birth canal and the vagina. In female anatomy, left completely out of the majestic geometry that is the central vortex of the female womb is the stunning complexity of the vesica piscis. Embryology 202 Vesica Piscis Garden of Eden the womb and vaginaEvery female should look in the mirror and see the thighs as two overlapping circles and from the thighs, a central cathedral is formed that can be seen as the vagina itself. The vagina and central birth canal and mystery of the womb is the most hidden mystery of the momentous monumental math that is the living workshop of the stars within the female womb.  The intense starry math, supervised by the Angelic Kingdoms in creating a work-space in the female human form, allows the star forces to operate,and their complexity to be unfolded without the prying eyes of human beings. So what would this math look like if it was freed up and brought out in the open, raw? Motherhood, as sweet and warm and nurturing as it is, does not thrive in knowing the incredible parameters of the spiritual mechanics and mathematics of Karma, Reincarnation and the basic construction lab that brings a child into the womb.

(So this clip is far too complicated for the calm nurturing of the Mysteries of Motherhood SEE LINK), yet the vivid secrets of the Dodecahedron (Greek δωδεκάεδρον, from δώδεκα, dōdeka “twelve” + ἕδρα hédra “base”, “seat” or “face”) and the dynamic visual math of the streaming Lord of Karma, all the brilliance of the dynamics of math, cannot hold a candle to the compassion, the tragedy, the intimacy of each human life with all it’s celestial mechanics woven into the unfolding biography of the miracle of the birth of a human spirit.  The celestial mechanics are all woven with Angelic Beings who truly CARE, as Mothers are hardwired to CARE, NURTURE, PROTECT the infancy of the becoming of the seeds of the heavens,HUMAN BEINGS.

ADDENDUM 6

The secret WORKSHOP of the WOMB OF WOMEN. Manifesting a Divine Incarnation of a Spiritual Being back into Destiny and Earth opportunities.  CLICK THIS LINK.

Pineal Neuropsychology and The Christ Event by Bradford Riley

“Our task is to harvest from the mortal world fruits for the immortal.” – Rudolf Steiner

Who with the eye of reverence may discern
How crystals form within the soul of Earth,
Watch in the quickening seed the clear flame burn,
In life see death, and in decay new birth…
He who has found his kin in man and beast
And in that kinship God’s own Brotherhood,
At the high Table of the Grail shall feast,
Sup with the Lord of Love, taste holy food…
He, seeking, finds (God’s promise shall suffice),
The pathway to forgotten Paradise.

Manfred Kyber

“It is inevitable that we must ask the question: How does a God incarnate into the
body of a human being?” Adriana Koulias

“Instead of going to a Davachan, to a spiritual region, as man does after death, the Christ-Being made the sacrifice to seek the earth as his heaven. The human being leaves the earth in order — if we may use a common expression — to change his place of residence to heaven. Christ left heaven in order to change his place of residence to earth.

“I beg you to see this in the right light, and to combine it with the feeling about what happened through the Mystery of Golgotha, in which his actual sacrifice consisted: namely in leaving the spiritual spheres in order to live with the earth and the human beings on the earth and to consolidate the impulse he gave for further human evolution on earth. This means that before the baptism in the Jordan this being did not belong to the earthly sphere. He descended from the over-earthly sphere to the earthly sphere. And what was experienced between the baptism by John and Pentecost had to be lived out in order to transform the heavenly being of Christ into the earthly being of Christ. It is saying infinitely much when this secret is revealed here with the words: Since the Pentecost event the Christ-being is with human souls on the earth; previously he had not been with human souls on the earth. What the Christ-Being underwent between the baptism by John and Pentecost happened in order for the place of residence in the spiritual world could be exchanged for the place of residence in the earthly sphere.

That happened so the divine-spiritual Christ-being could take on the necessary form in order to be able to be in community with human souls.” Rudolf Steiner “The Fifth Gospel”

To understand how each pineal gland and brain force of sympathy, Speech, different tongues, languages and nationalities awoke through the latent spiritual eye and glandular activator of the pineal gland, is to understand how compassion, love and wisdom crystallized like warm fire over the heads of those who had witnessed the completion and accomplishment of the full Christ Event.

Just exactly what remains to come alive and be awakened in the unfolding and developing human community requires us to examine the Christ Event and the pineal gland.

The pineal calcite-brain-sand that is crystallized out from thought and out from the light experienced within the cavern and dark room of our brains, is a secretion that like the Resurrected Butterfly from the Chrysalis, reveals in the calcite crystal secretions, the mineral anchor point of what Steiner describes as Spirit Man. From the gooey sack of the chrysalis emerges a winged deity, with little boxes of dust on its wings that reveal what type of light bearer, what specific colors are fixed by the angle of the dust of the boxes on their wings.

A butterfly has gone from a living fat and gobbling caterpillar, that truly is stem and plant combined, to arise from it’s tomb as an imprinted, light fixed dusted blossom that floats, lives and glides on the wind and senses the specific nectar that wafts in parts per billion over the roiling and rolling currents of the air.

“Nietzsche repeatedly expressed this beautifully by saying that fundamentally the human being is something that has grown out of the worm. As man has grown out of the worm, however, so the superman will grow, out of man. With this obscure feeling he associates himself with something that is the task of our age to bring to clarity, if our age does not wish to grope around in the darkness of a decaying culture, a decaying civilization.”

In Goethean Science we call this polarity and intensification and we visibly see how a plant grows up the stem to suddenly burst forth as a blossom, but the plant cannot free itself, yet the caterpillar is that linear plant come to life and the butterfly an actual living blossom freed from its self-imposed tomb of death.

Where do we find such a Chrysalis point of higher development that writes into the mineral development of matter, the spiritual signature, records, history and future outline for cosmic unfoldment of the blueprints of Higher human development? In the calcite crystal brain-sand that resulted from the advanced light sensing, higher thought detection and imprinting organ of our I AM, via our caterpillar like pineal glands.

Firstly, “…scientists independently launched the hypothesis that the pineal gland is a phylogenic relic, a vestige of a dorsal third eye. A modified form of this theory is still accepted today. Second, scientists began to surmise that the pineal gland is an endocrine organ. This hypothesis was fully established in the twentieth century. The hormone secreted by the pineal gland, melatonin, was first isolated in 1958. Melatonin is secreted in a circadian rhythm, which is interesting in view of the hypothesis that the pineal gland is a vestigial third eye.

“A role for Melatonin in the regulation of energy production and tissue calcification has been proposed: When Melatonin is plentiful, it is easy to incorporate phosphorus into ATP, and cellular energy is plentiful. When Melatonin is in short supply, ATP production is blunted.”

The tuatara is a reptile endemic to New Zealand which, though it resembles most lizards, is actually part of a distinct lineage, order Sphenodontia. The two species of tuatara are the only surviving members of its order, which flourished around 200 million years ago. Their most recent common ancestor with any other extant group is with the squamates (lizards and snakes). For this reason, tuatara are of great interest in the study of the evolution of lizards and snakes, and for the reconstruction of the appearance and habits of the earliest diapsids (the group that also includes birds and crocodiles).

“The tuatara has a third eye on the top of its head called the parietal eye. It has its own lens, cornea, retina with rod-like structures, and degenerated nerve connection to the brain, suggesting it evolved from a real eye. The parietal eye is only visible in hatchlings, which have a translucent patch at the top centre of the skull. After four to six months it becomes covered with opaque scales and pigment. Its purpose is unknown, but it may be useful in absorbing ultraviolet rays to manufacture vitamin D, as well as to determine light/dark cycles, and help with thermoregulation. Of all extant tetrapods, the parietal eye is most pronounced in the tuatara. The parietal eye is part of the pineal complex, another part of which is the pineal gland, which in tuatara secretes melatonin at night. It has been shown that some salamanders use their pineal body to perceive polarised light, and thus determine the position of the sun, even under cloud cover, aiding navigation.”

“The pineal gland or epiphysis synthesizes and secretes melatonin, a structurally simple hormone that communicates information about environmental lighting to various parts of the body. Ultimately, melatonin has the ability to entrain biological rhythms and has important effects on reproductive function of many animals. The light-transducing ability of the pineal gland has led some to call the pineal the “third eye”.

“The pineal gland is a small organ shaped like a pine cone (hence its name). It is located on the midline, attached to the posterior end of the roof of the third ventricle in the brain. The pineal varies in size among species; in humans it is roughly 1 cm in length…”

“The human pineal gland, in the center of the brain, has been found to contain large numbers of calcite micro-crystals that “bear a striking resemblance” to calcite crystals found in the inner ear. The ones found in the inner ear have been shown to exhibit the quality of piezoelectricity. If those found in the pineal gland also have this quality then this would provide a means whereby an external electromagnetic field might directly influence the brain.”

“As with most vertebrates, the eye is the primary site of photoreception. However, the pineal organ also is photosensitive and is especially important in maintaining circadian (day-night, seasonal) rhythms.”

With stem cell research and the hopes of the Ahrimanic medical community to grasp what lies at the bottom of the ancient recessed eye of the pineal gland, that had at one time been an eye that projected out of the body in very early Atlantean times, we find, once more, inadequacy and cowardice prevailing in most university and scientific research. Over a long period of time the pineal gland  has recessed into the interior of the head to support the individual human gift of the I AM in every single member of The Tenth Hierarchy.

Those who in very ancient times still had atavistic clairvoyant sight, were depicted with crowns and lofty extensions that were seen clarivoyantly extending above those heads who still had the old school second sight. These hangers on and over due for Conscious Spiritual development left overs, in all manner of Crowns and Head dresses, Chiefs, Chefs, Pharaohs, Commanders, and the completely useless  Papal Mitre’s and Bishops all were supposed to reflect an inner Initation authority that absolutely no longer exists unless concrete Spiritual Schooling and Initiation Science has become a conscious path for the human soul.

Humble human beings like Jeanne of Arc, Gandhi, whole hosts of various souls who, in some cases, have also achieved the Stigmata, are now part of the powerful Spirit-Self development phase that is no longer showy, glitzy, foolishly ritualistic in pomp and public treachery. Each human being has hidden in them a mighty NINEFOLD spiritual structure that supports the foundation of the I AM in all of us. Each human being now has a crystallizing highly enhanced calcite salt process which was not possible before the pineal had fully been recessed and buried deep in the dark and silent tomb of the skull.

The Church and the Luciferic podium fundamentalist preachers have severed themselves from the higher school of Tenth Hierarchy insights. And no left over church synod or council can any longer declare what is in actual proof, Spirit-Selfhood and the long road to Sainthood.

These clusters of human beings are impotent and incapable of discernment, Lo they have become steeped in traditions that have burdened and drenched the soul in dogmas and political factions, jealousies and diabolical greed. Such channels for faith have long since dried up but the dead corpse, the un-resurrected body of Christ remains stinking with Luciferic paradisaical pedophilia in their priests and self-professed sacrificial servants.

Through this essay we will grasp exactly what sickens in the soul, when false, adoration of the pre-fallen Adam condition impacts with the fallen and sickened condition of humanity. To long for the pre-fallen condition of humanity brings us into consideration with the complexities involved with the Nathan or Luke Jesus child and the Luke Jesus manhood. Priestly innocence is a sham and easily becomes entangled in the devotional adoration and salivating longing for Adam’s pre-fallen condition.  And priests who have been schooled in this false adoration and devotion to the Paradisaical pre-fallen Adam condition have not been educated in Tenth Hierarchy clarity or appropriate etiquette and manors  regarding the sacredness of childhood and the mature comprehensions of the Christ Event.

The fallacies of faith and the investigations into the insights into the human I structure and the incarnation of the human being from pre-birth to life after death has fully outgrown the dogmas of the stuffed shirts who now own the Vatican or spew pompously from their Luciferic podiums claiming miracles and millions on their cable and satellite church congregation networks.

To understand and grasp the new fine tuning of the risen Etheric Christ on our pineal tasting and sensing of the circadian light that arises and falls as the seasons change and what precise spiritual effects they have on the weaving forces of our Etheric bodies and our Astral bodies during the course of year, we can turn directly to the Soul Calendar Verses by Rudolf Steiner.

“It will be found that the Calendar indicates the year 1879 [i.e., 1879 years after the birth of Ego-consciousness at the time of the Mystery of Golgotha. In many other lectures Dr Steiner indicates the year 1879 as the beginning of the Michael Age.]; this is because it is important for people of the present age to regard the year of the Event of Golgotha as the most momentous of all, as the year which determines how time is to be computed. When on a Friday in April in the year 33 A.D. the Mystery of Golgotha took place, Ego-consciousness in the present sense was actually born. It matters not at all on what part of the Earth a man lives, to which nation, race or religion he belongs. Just as the day of Caesar’s death is the same for a Chinese or a European, the fact well known in occult life is that the Mystery of Golgotha took place in the year 33 A.D. The birth of Ego-consciousness is a fact of international significance, having nothing whatever to do with nationality.”

“I can assure you that the results of long, long occult investigations are contained in these 52 verses which will enable the soul to find access to happenings in the great universe and thereby to experience the Spirits working in the onward flow of Time. But if you ponder on the texts of the verses in the Calendar you will discern an element of Timelessness, in rhythmic alternation, an element that is experienced inwardly by the human being, the laws of which run parallel to those of Time in the outer world.”

The Soul Calendar verses are mysterious indeed, but they are a better reading of the sensitive circadian patterns that are part of the pineal glands gifts for sensing etheric light  than any seasonal record ever has been able to achieve so far, is an understatement. Science drags it’s feet, belittles and completely fails while underestimating and mis-diagnosing what the pineal gland is capable of becoming in humanity or what it was in the ancient development of the human being.

There in our hands are The Soul Calendar verses that literally reveal an etheric and astral earth, with its tapestry of moods and its precise polarities of midsummer’s and midwinter’s and does what no one has ever done, stand firmly on the science and etheric reality of the light of the Christ event arising as the immortal gift of the I AM and Spirit Man which Christ brought to Earth. Not one human being before Rudolf Steiner had so concretely understood and absorbed the greatest event that stands in nature and in human evolution so clearly and knew it so thoroughly down to his very bones that he rightly altered how the human spirit looks upon the calendar of the year.

Steiner brought the mystery of the Etheric Christ that had entered the Etheric Earth and allowed us all to rise in celebration to an event that was simply misconstrued and deadened as a detached and useless theory. The Christ Event on Earth and the Etheric Christ is no theory it is a fact shining in the light of the sensitive pineal gland.

No, not in theory, but in precise pineal circadian etheric sight that current science merely fumbles haphazardly with do we learn to see the shimmering reality of the Etheric Christ in the Earth. To recognize, not in theory but in practice, a highly developed human being who is able to use the sensitive pineal gland to consciously map, track, and precisely outline each variation of light by each mood of the mathematical unfolding of the 52 weeks, week by week, that nature reveals through her veils of the changing of the many different foundational etheric conditions of the circadian rhythms, is to finally come to terms with the higher conscious capacities of the pineal gland.

In the Soul Calendar verses of Rudolf Steiner we find that the sensitive effects and the qualities of the changing etheric light mingled with the Etheric Christ, as the central mystery of the Earth are tracked with precise higher pineal circadian and etheric sensitivity that gently reveal the hidden mysteries of the fine tuning of the Earth and her changing moods and Seasons (see link).

The cultural shock and failure to embrace the delicate awakenings and utter magnificence of the science and neurological psychology invested in the organ of the pineal gland has caused a counter revolution against the pineal gland even to the point of the rape of the pineal gland.

The intimate and ultimate failure of education to find how the higher light sensing fields in the human being operate, leaving this shocking blank space of denial, has caused cultural tsunamis to flood the media with all that embraces darkness. Embracing utter shocking and sadistic darkness is an exact response to a humanity that has deliberately underrated  and denied the reality of etheric and astral light.  The leading advocate of such a shocking sadistic rape of the pineal gland was Georges Bataille.

“Georges Bataille loved the 1929 Luis Bunuel-Salvador Dali collaboration, Un Chien Andalou, saying of it:
“Several very explicit facts appear in successive order, without logical connection it is true, but penetrating so far into horror that spectators are caught up as directly as they are in adventure films. Caught up and even precisely caught by the throat, and without artifice; do these spectators know, in fact, where they-the authors of this film, or people like them-will stop? If Bunuel himself, after the filming of the split-open eye, remained sick for a week . . . how then can one not see to what extent horror becomes fascinating, and how it alone is brutal enough to break everything that stifles?”

Instead of having an educational system that embraces the healthy unfolding of the etheric life of the Earth through her wonderful graduated sensorial fields of light and darkness, we have the curse of vampires and anti-light, and sadism, torture, darkness and death. Instead of relishing the objective light that lives in our Grace filled world of experience, humanity has become addicted to feeding like vampires off the experience of others.

SQUID a fictional “…new technology-stolen from the government-is available on the black-market: SQUID (Superconducting Quantum Interference Device). SQUID technology allows the user to experience someone else’s reality, “a piece of somebody’s life . . . straight from the cerebral cortex.” Through a centipede-shaped device strapped to the top of the head, it is possible to feel all the bodily sensations of sex, robbery, anything the user wants. Memories have become information on a disk; experiencing SQUID goes beyond the visual into the visceral. Strapped into the SQUID, you lose yourself in the sensations of another. You can get whatever you want, with no risks involved. Strange Days enters into the world of Bataille’s pineal eye, where “existence no longer resembles a neatly defined itinerary from one practical sign to another, but a sickly incandescence, a durable orgasm”

Puppets, Popes, Presidents, Paparazzi and human parasites are hungering for a light they refuse to take hold of, or grasp, or embrace that would allow them to see into the holy wonder of nature, the seasons and feel the refreshing refinement of the interior discernment of pineal sensitive light. The Light of the Etheric Christ is refused, sublimated, mis-directed, tortured on the rack of education, medicated out of the system and finally left numbed  and suffocated in a dank, dark cell.

Instead of understanding and embracing the very higher frequencies and studies of The Tenth Hierarchy in anatomy and Neuropsychology humanity would rather gorge themselves on merciless torture, “SAW” – “Hostel” – “Dexter” and public and political War crimes of torture and inhumanity against humanity and praise it, vote for it, and call all of it a sunny day in Mr. Rogers Neighborhood. ” After a 33-year span of programming, Mr. Rogers’ Neighborhood came to an end.”

Rudolf Steiner

“In the centre of the human head within the structure of the brain there is an organ shaped like a pyramid, the pineal gland. This pineal gland, situated in the vicinity of the corpus quadrigemina and the optic thalamus

brain sand and pineal gland

secretes out of itself the so-called brain sand, minute lemon-yellow stones which lie in little heaps at one end of the pineal gland, and which are in fact the mineral element in the human head. If they do not lie there, if man does not bear this brain-sand, this mineral element, within him, he becomes an idiot or a cretin. In the case of normal people the pineal gland is comparatively large. In cretins pineal glands have been found which are actually no larger than hemp seeds; these cannot secrete the brain-sand.

It is actually in this mineral deposit that the spirit-man is situated; and this already indicates that what is living cannot harbour the spirit, but that the human spirit needs the nonliving as its centre-point, that this is above all things necessary to it as independent living spirit.”

Spirit Man, this Phantom form of absolute secreted wisdom, meaning that the record in the crystal structures of the secretions of the pineal gland called brain-sand, were saturated with the Christ Being’s higher descending light.  In three phases it was saturated by Zarathustra’s mighty intelligence and Buddha’s infinite compassion.

Spirit Spirit Man
Life Spirit
Spirit Self Consciousness soul
Soul Intellectual soul Ego body
Sentient soul Astral body
Body Etheric body
Physical body

In three magnificent phases proving the amazing unique structure that each individual human being receives at their incarnation, was an extreme ONE TIME crystallization moment that centered in the organ of the higher personality and Higher I AM forces prepared by Zarathustra. These super enhanced microcosmic forces merged with the Heart’s Etheric Fifth Chamber of compassion and love retained by the Buddha.

Through these immense microcosmic human efforts of Buddha and Zarathustra, an event designed by The Tenth Hierarchy from the Earth produced a unique higher resonating imprinting power that created the human foundation for  the super MACROCOSMIC -brain sand-crystal that the Cosmic Christ needed to fully inhabit a human being all the way down to the bones.

The reverberations and results of the events of Golgotha and the Christ Event sent its impulses all the way down to the bones of the Earth herself into the calcite crystal developments in the heart of the Earth herself. This mighty one time event was prepared in order to anchor into Earth evolution the future crystallized blueprints, of thought, vision and Love of the mighty fruit of Earth evolution and the Tenth Hierarchy, SPIRIT MAN.

“Deep and fervent attachment to the Individuality–not the personality–of Zarathrustra prevailed in the mystery schools of Chaldea. They saw in him the ‘Star of Humanity.’ Another of his names, Zoroaster, means Golden Star, or Star of Splendor. They saw in him a reflection of the Sun itself.”

A.) Firstly the destiny and incarnation of Zarathustra as Jesus had to be prepared and resolved by an advanced Tenth Hierarchy graduate student. A long, long line of ancestors going back to Solomon were recorded  that reflected the building of a certain superior instrument in wisdom and understanding that had to be established by the microcosmic Tenth Hierarchy in order to lay The Foundation Stone for the Super Sun Being, The Christ.

B.)There had to be three issues, three stages of higher development connected to the pineal gland in the destiny of Jesus. After hundreds of years of preparation, generations, the Matthew Jesus child was born with these magnificent capacities that were suited to the body of the Matthew child Jesus.

“The men who followed the star to Bethlehem might rightly be called great ‘Magi.’ We would call them great Initiates. They can also be called ‘Kings,’ that is, men versed in the art of establishing social order in the world. In the Mystery Schools of Babylon, Chaldea and Assyria, the name of their great master, Zarathrustra had been honored in the highest degree by generations of pupils. They looked forward with longing to the next appearance of their great teacher and leader for they knew the secret of his reincarnation, that he would come again at the end of 600 years. As the time approached when the blood suitable for this incarnation should be ready, these three messengers, or wise men, went forth from the East. They knew the consciousness that shone through Zarathrustra would guide them, as a star to the place. It was the great teacher himself which like a “star” guided the three Magi to the birthplace of Jesus, as told in the Gospel of St. Matthew.

Deep and fervent attachment to the Individuality–not the personality–of Zarathrustra prevailed in the mystery schools of Chaldea. They saw in him the ‘Star of Humanity.’ Another of his names, Zoroaster, means Golden Star, or Star of Splendor. They saw in him a reflection of the Sun itself. The most precious gift he had bestowed upon men was knowledge of the outer world and of the mysteries of the Cosmos received into the human astral body in thinking, feeling, and willingness. The pupils of Zarathrustra strove to infuse themselves with the wisdom that can be drawn from the deep foundations of the divine-spiritual world. These Wise Men of the East felt intimately connected with their great leader. With their deep atunement to this essence they could not fail to know when their Master was born again in Bethlehem.

Led by their Star, they brought as offerings to him symbols for the knowledge gained from mastering the secrets of the outer world: gold, frankincense and myrrh. Gold was the symbol of enduring wisdom, frankincense the symbol of piety which pervades a person as feeling, and myrrh the symbol of strength of will. By appearing before their master when he was born again in Bethlehem, the Magi expressed their devotion to and their union with him. The writer of the Gospel of St. Matthew relates the literal truth when he describes how the Wise Men who Zarathrustra once worked with, knew that he had reappeared among men. The wise men expressed their connection with Zarathrustra through the three symbolic gifts, acknowledging the precious gifts Zarathrustra had earlier bestowed on them.”

“In Zarathrustra Dr. Steiner is not speaking of the man of that name who lived in the time of Darius but to an individual who was placed, even by the Greeks, about 5,000 years before the Trojan War. He opened out a new path to these people, that they might use the forces of the human spirit upon external culture. He pointed towards the sunlight as the external body of a high spiritual Being. Zarathrustra said: ‘Behold not only the radiance of the physical Sun; behold too, the mighty Being who sends down His spiritual blessings as the physical Sun sends down its light and warmth!’ Zarathrustra proclaimed Ahura Mazdao to the people of Persia as a Being who would descend to Earth and unite with humanity and with the very substance of the Earth–but not yet. Pointing to the Sun, Zarathrustra could only say: ‘There is His habitation; He is gradually drawing near and one day He will live in a body on the Earth!’ Zarathrustra knew this would be an historical event affecting the whole future of humanity. In speaking of Ahura Mazdao, Zarathrustra referred to the Being known later as the Christ. To distinguish the Being in the aura of the Sun from the small human aura, he called it “Great Aura,” Ahura Mazdao. In Zarathrustra we have a mighty priestly nature and it is this Being who came into the Nathan-Jesus.”

Damascus document

Basically in the Matthew and Luke Nativity stories there are different births, different locations for the births, and two separate genealogies. Theologians over the centuries have struggled with these inconsistencies – while both gospels show the descent of Jesus from the House of David there are significant differences like:
MATTHEW GOSPEL- LUKE GOSPEL
Solomon lineage- Nathan lineage
Kingly roots- Priestly roots
42 generations- 77 generations

Joseph’s father is Jacob- Joseph’s father is Heli
The emphasis is on the masculine- and Joseph Emphasis is on the feminine and the MadonnaAngel appears to Joseph -Angel appears to Mary
Parents live in Bethlehem- Parents live in Nazareth
Travel to Bethlehem Birth takes place in a stable- Birth takes place in home of Joseph.
Interestingly 38 years after Steiner’s first spoke of there having been two Jesus children a surprising discovery was made in the birth place of Jesus. In the spring of 1947 in the area around Kirbet Qumran the Dead Sea Scrolls were discovered – portions of a scroll were found that would later come to be known as the Damascus Document which speaks of a central dogma among the Essene community of the prophesy of two Messiahs – one, a Messiah of Aaron; and one, a Messiah of Israel; a priestly Messiah and a kingly Messiah, both coming out of the House of David to rule side by side.

But after all that preparation the Matthew Jesus child, with the skills of Zarathustra, prepared itself to be able to perform a magnificent resurrection in order to gain the higher capacities, of an even more refined independently intelligent higher Light-Form. Goethe and Spiritual Science refer to these dynamic and dramatic interior structural alterations as polarity and intensification forces that we can detect in the developments of the insects, say from caterpillar to butterfly and in the plant world that reveals the concentration and intensification of the blossom and the seed.

In terms of polarity and intensification, the glass half full to brimming over and the glass half empty, we have in the forces accelerating and working through the TWO Jesus children, extreme polarities. One, the Matthew Jesus child, Zarathustra ranks as courageous over achiever in the graduate school of Earth evolution. The science of the Angels and the Stars and plants, medicines and stones, the reincarnation sciences of the spirit, in every detail from embryology, from pre-birth to the portal of death and ascent in the spiritual world is an accomplished fact of Initiation Science in the great Bodhisattva Zarathustra. He will need all of his skills to assist in bringing about the greatest event in Earth Evolution.

While on the complete opposite polarity, an infinitely rich human being in the Luke Gospel who has never, outwardly, save through the holding and sustaining forces of the great Buddha, ever existed in the complexities of human incarnation. The Luke child was a glass half full or full to the brim of every form of compassion and love held on reserve for humanity. This is a make or break event in the higher physics of human spiritual activity. Polarity and Intensification arise when the two worldly and higher worldly forces must merge as ONE to sustain and hold the super magnitude forces of Macrocosmic Christ Being.

In order to achieve this higher light-form and the future Phantom and Resurrection capacities, Zarathustra as the Solomon Jesus child crystallized, summed up and lifted the cohesion of the mighty generations of preparation of the Matthew child. At TWELVE years of age, Zarathustra/Jesus ends that particular line and ends that 12 year old child’s development. But instead of dying with the abandoned, fully functioning 12 year old Jesus,  Zarathustra lifts his potent forces out of the body of the 12 year old boy over to the next prepared spiritual vehicle, the Luke Jesus child.

C.) Thirdly this conscious action on the part of Zarathustra/Jesus of the Matthew child was one of the first dynamic forms of resurrection. The pineal and development of the Luke child, which contained the imprint of the first Adam, the first copy of humanity before the Fall, was carried in protection by the Luke Jesus child.

“The pineal isn’t an actual gland; it’s a neuroendocrine transducer: meaning it converts incoming nerve impulses into outgoing hormones. Most glands are triggered by changes in the body or hormones secreted by other glands. The pineal gland releases hormones in response to bioelectrical messages from the outside environment received through the eyes. The optic nerve sends information to the visual portion of the brain through nerve fibers. The impulses from the brain are carried to the superior cervical ganglia (a cluster of nerve cells) in the upper part of the neck by smaller nerve fibers. From there the autonomic nervous system relays the information to the pineal.”

“A German study focused on pineal calcification in 1044 children found calcification in 3% of children under 1 year, rising gradually to 7% at 10 years of age, and 33% by 18 years of age.”

We can clearly see that as intelligence develops and the pineal gland secretes brain-sand, a kind of a crystallization and  salt process, brain salt or brain sand indicates a crystal formation calcite process that like the great oceans, secreted a salt and calcite process out of the etheric life and system of  nature. The very substance of THE SALT OF THE EARTH. Steiner places, the anchoring design field of the Phantom body and Spirit-Man in this Salt process by saying, ”  the so-called brain sand, minute lemon-yellow stones which lie in little heaps at one end of the pineal gland, and which are in fact the mineral element in the human head. If they do not lie there, if man does not bear this brain-sand, this mineral element, within him, he becomes an idiot or a cretin.”

But with the Nathan Jesus child, it is how this future intelligence will develop and how the organ of the pineal gland will unfold in the crystal forming process, and if this human being can develop in such a way that no false Ahrimanic or false Luciferic motives and deceptions can live in it because of the absolute sincerity, clarity and quality of this  ‘new risen intelligence’ that had no stains of sin or karma on it. Therefore as this Luke Jesus child develops it will neither seek harm, deception, lie or untruth and as the awakened thought forces begin to flow into the Luke Jesus child from the magnificent super Sun-Being, the Christ, the roots of the clarity of thought, and the primal innocence of the first model of humanity, before the fall, will be imprinted, into this crystal salt process and become the foundation for the New Phantom, Spirit-Man model of Resurrected Humanity. The very Salt of the Earth.

The Luke Jesus child of the two Jesus children had  a fully loaded super  pineal organ based on the Pre-Fallen forces latent in the human being. However the Luke Jesus child is meant to develop from this Pre-Fallen pineal organ the most powerful and enhanced crystallized brain-sand ever imprinted into a calcite crystal. His unique cosmic innocence was to be preserved by what appeared to everyone around him as a near dumb and slow witted child but with a capacity for Cosmic Love and Compassion never before seen on Earth. Into this prepared form a higher merging and intensification of the two forces, Wisdom and Compassion prepared for the insertion of the Macrocosmic Christ Sun Being who would arrive, as we now know, at the Baptism. This explains the magical capacities of the Pentecost event that hovered as living emancipated flame over the heads of the disciples opening up their own higher capacities and igniting their own pineal developments. Goetheanum Pineal 1These insights also reveal the strange tales of the Grail events and the new Grail Sciences of the Goetheanum and School of Spiritual Science.

“…it was necessary that higher spiritual beings the great Archangelic Bodhisattvas – whom we spoke about in our last lecture – that exist in the great Mother Lodge of humanity – remove, before the actual event of the fall – a part of the more refined aspects of the Etheric body for safekeeping.”

“In Adam, a certain portion of the forces of the Etheric body were held back before the fall. This innocent part of Adam its sister soul or twin if you like, that had not taken into itself the experience of an Ego, (for this can only be obtained by
incarnating in a human body) had none the less, all the Wisdom that could have been obtained through the previous incarnations of the Earth as old Saturn, old Sun, and old Moon and possessed all the love of which a human soul is capable’. It had an Ego that resembled the Spirit Self – an Ego that resides within the sheaths of a spiritualised
Astral body.

“The nature of the Nathan Soul was revealed to us for the first time through Rudolf Steiner’s scientific research as the living soul who would become the Jesus-child of the line of Nathan in the Luke Gospel. This is what we mean when we speak of the ‘Nathan soul’

The unwritten slate of the pre-fallen Adam model would now be merged with the super-intelligence, the cosmic intelligence branch of the other Jesus stream, the Matthew or Solomon Jesus stream. A new revitalized stage in the resurrection dynamic and process arises for humanity.

The Matthew-Solomon-Jesus child is lost, goes missing, and falls away at twelve years old, meanwhile the other, unformed, very, very challenged, witless, yet with all the full forces of  cosmic love and compassion and containing the preserved model of the Pre-Fallen, before the Fall Adam model Luke/Jesus child, is suddenly super invested with the higher, resurrected and super-charged forces of the cosmic intelligence of Zarathustra.

The utter shock of the elders and parents of the Nathan-Jesus child as from nowhere, from the apparent founts of nowhere, the 12 year old Jesus, now the ONE Jesus, started spouting the deepest wisdom of Moses and the Hebrew people. When the Zarathustra individuality passed into him, inner illumination flooded up in him. Vast hidden remembrances welled up in the Nathan-Jesus boy of TWELVE before the elders. Deep lying treasures of wisdom sprung to vivid life in his soul. It seemed like from his soul, the impressions and insights were suddenly arising and burbling forth from him, but even he, the Nathan-Jesus child was overcome with wonder at the bottomless well spring of divine wisdom that came gushing forth from, apparently from his own soul. All of this language, thought, wisdom rose up to the surface from the exceptional and mature Spirit of the Zarathustra ego.

The radiant sun of Zorastrian wisdom was flashing up on him in the form of intense precise Hebrew learning. After all there had been a time when working at the foundation of the ancient Persian Civilization he had looked up to the great Sun-Spirit and gazing into the vast realms of the cosmic realms of Angels, Stars, Archangel, Archai and beyond, had comprehended it, with his Zarathustrian ego. All of this, through a mere TWELVE year old, who had been silent and considered simple, now was warmly brought into a new heart felt cohesion surprising everyone.

The great Alchemical blending of the cosmic warmth, compassion and Love of aspects of the great Buddha, coupled with the mighty unfallen, ancient innocence of a human being before the Fall brought whole new depths of feeling, endocrine and etheric healing forces to the roots of the crystallizing certainty of the wisdom of Zarathustra. The two streams, Buddhism and the unfallen etheric forces of humanity met the anchored and advanced human wisdom that Zarathustra carried on behalf of humanity. Zarathustra, who had encompassed all that a human being could achieve in richness of concrete wisdom from many incarnations on the Earth, immersed and flowed through the vitality of the infinite compassion and love that lived in the Nathan-Jesus twelve year old.

Death and Resurrection, enhancement and intensification of humanities available wisdom, love and compassion  was now prepared for the final stage.  The full force of the advanced Vulcan level of higher humanity, Spirit-Man, planted and anchored in the roots of the Tenth Hierarchy by none other than the Sun Being Christ.

The Matthew line of Jesus produces the brilliant cohesive, cosmic and human intelligence of Zarathustra. Zarathustra is able to lay down his life and pick it up again several times, once at twelve years of age and again at 29 1/2 because He represents the graduate level school of the I AM and the Tenth Hierarchy.  In the following quote the ground rules for The Tenth Hierarchy are made concrete and clear as to the several dynamic leaps that the Zarathustra Initiate prepared for the entrance of the Super Christ Being at the Baptism.

John 10:11-18 11 “I am the good shepherd. The good shepherd lays down his life for the sheep. 12 The hired hand is not the shepherd who owns the sheep. So when he sees the wolf coming, he abandons the sheep and runs away. Then the wolf attacks the flock and scatters it. 13 The man runs away because he is a hired hand and cares nothing for the sheep. 14 “I am the good shepherd; I know my sheep and my sheep know me— 15 just as the Father knows me and I know the Father—and I lay down my life for the sheep. 16 I have other sheep that are not of this sheep pen. I must bring them also. They too will listen to my voice, and there shall be one flock and one shepherd. 17 The reason my Father loves me is that I lay down my life—only to take it up again. 18 No one takes it from me, but I lay it down of my own accord. I have authority to lay it down and authority to take it up again. This command I received from my Father.”

“Matthew, the genealogy is traced through David’s son Solomon, the warrior king, but in Luke, it is traced through David’s other son Nathan, who represents the priestly type of king.

“Steiner reconciles these contradictions by saying that actually there were two separate Jesus children, one sprung from the line of Solomon, the other from Nathan. And in the case of the Solomon Jesus, we discover that what the Magi were up to was that they were looking for the reincarnation of Zoroaster, whose Ego was reincarnated—by the principle which we have already noted as the principle of spiritual economy—as the Ego of the Solomon Jesus. But in the case of the Nathan Jesus, we have the example of a boy whose Ego had never before appeared upon the earth, and the boy was therefore a warm loving boy who would very possibly have been regarded today as a child requiring special needs. However, the Nathan Jesus’s astral body was actually the reincarnated astral body of the Buddha, whose historical mission according to Steiner had been to develop a sense of compassion and love through a series of incarnations, perfecting his astral and etheric bodies until finally breaking free from the round of reincarnation.

“Now, Steiner says that at about the age of 12, the Ego of the Nathan boy was displaced by the Ego of the Solomon Jesus, which transmigrated from the one child to the other. And the result of this is that we find the Nathan boy at about the age of 12 teaching the Elders of the Temple on very arcane scriptural matters, which takes his parents by complete surprise, since this boy had not hitherto demonstrated any intellectual abilities whatsoever. It was the Solomon child, with his Zoroaster ego, that had been the knowledgeable one, but now the two are combined into one personage, who represents a sort of fusion of Zoroastrianism with Buddhism.”

So now we come to the real intention of looking at the Pineal gland that had reached such a startling development in the Matthew Jesus child, Zarathustra at age Twelve. So intense was the crystallization process, that by TWELVE years of age, he had burned through the capacities of the brilliant Matthew Jesus form.

You probably have noted by now that the foundation of absolute clarity and absolute innocence prior to the change of voice in males, there is a threshold point and this point at the time we are examining in Earth evolution, placed this change from the innocent region where the etheric and physical body and the astral body just begin to make their appearance at puberty or the change of voice. This change of voice and the entrance of the ability to reproduce  another human being is a powerful and significant marker. That is if you were a fully conscious Initiate like Zarathustra.

This change of voice and puberty obviously impacts all souls who have unconsciously entered their woman or manhood and now observe their own Fall into error, sexuality and the impacts of temptation that entangle humanity, males and females with their own shadows or doubles. We cannot avoid the path to maturity and we can look upon the destiny of say, a Michael Jackson and understand the fatal complexities of the issues of innocence.

In Michael Jackson’s case he was given female hormones to keep his high pitched pre-pubescent voice. (This Link gives us an in depth study  of the collapse of Michael Jackson and the moral courage of humanity CLICK LINK) The Neurological complexities that impact the human soul as the astral body brings with it whole hosts of desires and impulses extend to all manner of sexual aberrations and distortions which we are required to face. There are today vast pharmacological motives from both the Luciferic and Ahrimanic sides of the equation that wish to avoid at all costs a mature consideration of how the Christ Event came to pass and how to avoid our inner schooling and maturity on these issues.

So there is indeed a great mystery surrounding the deep foundations of innocence, the astral body and how we wrestle together with the complexities of our own Luciferic and Ahrimanic doubles or shadows. It is now a part of big business, the Center for Disease Control and massive Pharmaceutical profit margins that gamble on our own errors in with regards to the physical, etheric and astral body working and our own lower and higher egos. Deceptions and manipulations laced with greed and deliberate intrusions are aimed at distorting our selfish wishes for immortality against the reality of Initiation Science.

Upon Entering the Nathan-Jesus child, the mighty higher ego capacities of Zarathustra meet the unfallen well-springs of the richest treasure of compassion and love that could be discovered. And between the Soul of Buddha and the Spirit of Zarathustra in one body, with an endocrine system, etheric body, nervous system and astral body and forces that had never tasted, inclined or were ever even tempted by any type of sin, Zarathustra and Buddha the currents of thinking, feeling and will and the forces of the higher etheric heart of the Buddha merge with the intuitive and thinking capacities of the Zarathustra ego, and a whole new human instrument, a whole new set of intimate components are imprinted into the physical, etheric, astral and higher ego systems that answer now to the name of Jesus.

Rudolf Steiner “From Jesus to Christ”:

” So this Jesus-child lived on, increasing in all that was possible for a three-fold organism not touched by the contamination which has affected the three-fold bodies of other men. And this enabled the individuality of Zarathustra, from the twelfth to the thirtieth year of life, to pour into this three-fold human being all that could come from the heights to which he himself had previously attained. Hence we form a correct idea of Jesus of Nazareth, up to the thirtieth year of his life, when we think of him as a lofty human individuality, for whose coming into existence the greatest possible preparations had been made.

“But we must now be clear about one thing if we want to understand how the fruits of a development we go through in our bodies are of benefit to the individuality. Our bodies enable our individuality to absorb the fruits of our life for its future evolution. When in death we forsake our bodies, we do not usually leave in them what we have achieved and gained for ourselves as individuals. Later on we shall see under what special conditions something may remain in the bodies; but it is not the rule that the individuality should leave behind in his bodies whatever he has won for himself. When Zarathustra forsook the threefold bodily being of Jesus of Nazareth in the thirtieth year, he left behind the three bodies, physical, etheric, and astral. But all that he had been able to gain through these instruments went into the individuality of Zarathustra and lived on further with him, to his benefit. Something however, was gained by the three-fold bodily organism of Jesus of Nazareth. His human nature, still free, as it always had been, from Luciferic and Ahrimanic influences, was conjoined for a period with the individuality who had unequaled insight into the spirituality of the cosmos.

“Think what this Zarathustra had experienced! While he was founding the ancient Persian civilisation and looking up to the great Sun Spirit, he was even then gazing out into the cosmic realms of the spiritual. Through successive incarnations his development went on. When the innermost part of human nature, together with the most intensive powers of sympathy and love, had become manifest through the unsullied human substance which had been preserved until the birth of the Nathan Jesus, and when the astral body had permeated itself with the forces of Gautama Buddha, there was present in this child what we may call the most intimate inwardness of man. And then into this bodily nature there entered the individuality who above all others had seen most clearly and deeply into the spirituality of the Macrocosm. By this means the bodily instrument, the entire organism, of the Nathan Jesus was so transformed that it could be the vehicle capable of receiving into itself the Christ-extract of the Macrocosm.

If this bodily nature had not been permeated by the Zarathustra-individuality up to the thirtieth year, the eyes would not have been able to endure the substance of the Christ from the thirtieth year up to the Mystery of Golgotha; the hands would not have been capable of being permeated with the substance of the Christ in the thirtieth year. To be able to receive the Christ, this bodily nature had to be prepared, expanded, through the individuality of Zarathustra.

Thus in Jesus of Nazareth, as he was at the moment when Zarathustra took leave of him and the Christ-Individuality entered into him, we have to do neither with an adept, nor with anything like a higher human being. For an adept is an adept because he has a highly developed individuality, and it was just this that had passed out of the threefold bodily nature of Jesus of Nazareth. We have simply the bodily nature so prepared through the indwelling of Zarathustra that it could take into itself the Christ-Individuality. But now, through the union of the Christ-Individuality with this bodily nature, by necessity the following consequence came about.”

What a cliff hanger! Magnificent new faculties arose in the various bodies of our Nathan-Jesus vessel. He went through puberty innocent, he had no desire nor inclination to participate in any type of sin. This amazing complex relationship of developing capacities merged between Buddha and Zarathustra, meant that any catastrophic earthly presumption that Jesus was having an affair with Mary Magdalene, would simply be ludicrous.

Humans can think what they please about, Oh Jesus was just like one of us. No He wasn’t. If one of us, as we stand with all our faults and lack of comprehension were to be impacted by the super forces of the Christ Being, what then? Utterly incinerated, parts of us would simply be imploded.

Our hearts would be too small, our brains too puny to sustain the super Macrocosmic Sun forces streaming through our unprepared and limited outlooks and insights. Our pineals would have instantly been fried, our brain circuits fried. Our own fallen endocrine systems would have oozed pituitary and pineal juices out every pore so that we would have become a puddle of bubbling unformed compassion and sweat.

The priests who ponder the Paradisaical sinless Jesus, imagine for themselves a Luciferic pre-pubic imagination, where love is all some pre-pubescent fantasy. This profound Nathan Jesus or Luke Jesus human being was incapable of lying,deception, manipulation, fraud, deceit or any motives that had not been directly part of our divine nature from before the Fall.

Womanhood and Manhood without guile, without one speck of obstructing, limiting sin of soul, a human being without guile. We have hardly ever met on Earth any human being who is without guile or without some Luciferic or Ahrimanic trace deceptions that color the character, sensuality, personality, perceptions, conceptions and thought substance  that weave in their double, their doppelganger.

The new Jesus had no cunning and clever mixtures of Lucifer and Ahrimanic shadows firing up his double and then, with feeling  a falsified holiness on the altar while looking with phony-fatherly-priestly eyes on young, oh so holy and sweet altar boys who may just be approaching or prior to approaching their change of voice, that infinite Jesus would never have acted on this trust and priestly authority as their raper or seducer. This is one of the important aspects of Neuropsychology that have been completely missed by our failure to understand the true nature of the Christ Event in the Sentient, Intellectual and Consciousness Soul.

To approach every human soul and spirit with a clear eye of Justice, free from prejudice, means that the Risen Etheric Christ grasps with untold cosmic clarity and humility each human soul who has ever sought comfort from His profound gaze and felt they were embraced by the enormity of His human/cosmic compassion-unmeasurable. The common response from us, is how could anyone love us so much. It feels like such love literally uplifts and saturates us and we suddenly feel calm in the midst of the most terrible events. It is sometimes what we experience, if we have experienced a moment of contact with the Etheric Christ.

Both the Logos and Zarathustra were filled with mature Tenth Hierarchy wisdom. The Human Christ stood and answered the three temptations in the desert as the most refined representative of  The Tenth Hierarchy defending humanity against the inner assaults of Lucifer and Ahriman. The depths and the heights the unfolding potential and the richest calm without guile, free from pressure or motive, absolute UNCONDITIONAL HUMAN/COSMIC LOVE  were planted deeply in the foundation of The Tenth Hierarchy via the events of Golgotha and the Etheric Christ Being.

Our hearts, if we arrogantly presumed to allocate all the virtues without grasping all our vices would suddenly be at high warp drive, not calm, not steady, not clear and able to connect the bursting insights, the extreme floods of radiant love and wisdom that coursed through this Jesus Christ Being. I would hate to see how we would look with all our lower instinctual forces, our sexuality, our super stupid Viagra stiffy all muddled and mixed together with such super cosmic intensity. Currently society craves and is filled with wild unruly currents of superficial sentimentality and a hunger for media distraction or distraction involving any layer of comfortable Ahrimanic or Luciferic safety, under the shadow of our babysitting doppelganger.

But deeply cored into the entire Sister soul of Adam and the amazing Zarathustra, were all of humanities duel male and female XY chromosome systems that flared in perfected innocent love, fired up by power of the Cosmic Christ in our own human form.  Both sides of the human chromsome system and the highest and most innocent forces of the female as well as the male in this JESUS were sustained by an unheard of sinless clarity and radiant open honesty that would never have even considered the betrayal of the divine or betrayal of humanity. This is what was to be bequeathed as a gift from the catastrophic and necessary torture and crucifixion of the most innocent, pre-fallen karma-less human being that ever walked the Earth. This is the Resurrection of the innocent model of precisely what The Tenth Hierarchy was meant to be before it was infected with confusing, contrary forces of the Fall of Mankind into obvious duplicity and sin.

The most precious configuration of the Macrocosmic miracle of The Salt of the Earth was imprinted into the crystallized brain-sand and pineal vision of this new humanity. Clear, penetrating and with unfathamobale honesty, love, compassion, human understanding and most importantly Freedom was restructured and planted through the Christ Event in the realm of The Tenth Hierarchy. Freedom to connect the vast and intimate instances and unique events that can only be ours and had only by us, which all through time and eternity we shall be free to discover the path of living light and living truth and come towards it and know that it is us, it was us before the Fall and it will be us with all the Freedom, Love and Wisdom we will all eventually win. This was the gift Christ experienced through His whole Macrocosmic pulsing and living frame and it was imprinted and it was made so down through the bones and down through the crystallizing process of in the delicate organ of the pineal gland.

Rudolf Steiner

“The remarkable fact is that with the Baptism in Jordan and the entry of the Christ Individuality into the body of the Nathan Jesus, all connection of the Phantom with the ashy constituents was wiped out; only the connection with the salt constituents remained. This is alluded to in the passage where Christ Jesus wishes to explain to his first-chosen disciples: ‘Through the way in which you feel yourselves united with the Christ Being, a certain possibility for the future evolution of humanity will come about. It will be possible for the one body risen from the grave — the spiritual body — to pass over into men’. That is what Christ wished to say when he used the phrase, ‘You are the salt of the earth’. All these words we find in the Gospels, reminding us of the terminology and craft language of the later alchemists, the later occultism, have the deepest imaginable significance.”

“And now think of what happened in ancient times, when, for example, a man ate salt. It was dissolved and re-formed in his etheric body but he was able to perceive the whole process inwardly. He had an inner thought-experience of the formative process undergone by the salt. When he ate salt, the salt was dissolved and the salt-cube was there in his etheric body. From this he knew: salt has the shape of a cube. And so, as man experienced his being inwardly, he also experienced nature within himself. The cosmic thoughts became his thoughts. What he experienced as imaginations, as dreamlike imaginations, were forms which revealed themselves in his etheric body.

“These things indicate the existence of an altogether different wisdom and science in olden times, a wisdom which was experienced through inner perception of the processes taking their course in the etheric body — processes which revealed themselves to man as the ever-recurring cosmic thoughts. The world constructed from the thoughts which are embodied in the crystal-formations of the earth, to which man gives form in his etheric body and consciously experiences – such was the ancient knowledge which disappeared in the course of time.

“If we were able to transfer ourselves into one of the old Mystery-sanctuaries and listen spiritually to the description which an Initiate would give of the universe, it would have been something like the following: All through the universe the cosmic thoughts are weaving; the Logos is working. The crystal-formations of the earth are the embodiments of the single parts of the cosmic Word. Now the sense of taste is only one of the many senses. The processes of hearing and of sight can be dealt with in a similar way though in their case the working of the salts in etheric form must be thought of in a more outward sense. Man receives through his senses that which is embodied in the salts and re-forms it in his etheric body, experiences it within himself. Cosmic thoughts repeat themselves in the thoughts of men. The universe is recognised in man and man in the universe. With concrete and unerring intuition the Initiates of olden times were able to describe this out of their visionary, dream-like knowledge of the universe and of man.”

But something in the crystal formation, the pure crystal formation of the soaring Macrocosmic Logos of the Christ, inhabiting the highest and best we could give it, left the most profound and innocent deposit, crystal deposit ever wrought. And before Christ took leave of the body that had carried Him for three years on the Earth, a record, a crystal imprinted digital, fiber optic, super salt residue from a super powered Thinking-Feeling-Willing Macrocosmic Being, was deposited as the Spirit-Man in the Earth.

The crystallized living Etheric Christ life Substance out of which copies of the Phantom, sinless, Human and re-configured from the Fall, living crystallized memory pictures that were shaped and stored dynamically, because of the far future capacities of the Macrocosmic  and human working of the Etheric Christ, copies of the pliable, digital, 3-D Phantom form could appear.

Just as the way humanity learned to digest salt and seen in the etheric body as wonderful crystal formations, so in the crystal formations of our own pineal glands, a calcite crystal known as brain-sand forms itself.  So now the ability to digest, decode and offer the Spirit-Man our hard earned fruits, have been imprinted from the secretions of  our pineal gland,  with our complete individual human biographies and destinies, the very SALT OF THE EARTH, that we have made and continue to make of ourselves, is duly imprinted and recorded, digested and reproduced in the Etheric Body of the Etheric Christ Being in a similar way bees produce hexagonal waxen cells in a hive colony or comb.

So also in the etheric world the Etheric Christ has begun creating the formative Spirit-Man Colony of the future higher evolution of all of humanity. From our own depth of humanity in the far, far distant future of the final Vulcan evolution, we would speak and create whole new worlds.

When we walk the Earth that we live on and find ourselves within creation, we find ourselves in an apparent dead mineral world filled with various complex orders of living being. But on the ground of this dead mineral world, Steiner placed the future unfolding forces of how humanity, in the distant future will give birth to new worlds.

Other beings designed and made by us, will inhabit these worlds and there will be an organized system like unto our planets and sun, that simply are the portions and pieces of the complex spiritual-material system we now inhabit. Only in that future time, the ground of the crystal world which we shall create, the living world of beings which we shall give birth to, in the distant future, now sit in it’s earliest material manifestation, where the living light of the pineal gland meets the future dead crystal of what we have examined as brain sand. Steiner brought this tiny dead miniature crystal world as the beginning of our own individual early manifestation of the Kingdom of Spirit-Man.

It is here where the Crystal Palace of St. John’s Revelations describes the future transparency of the the mineral foundation of the universe. This New Jerusalem is made up of the living realities of complex spiritual creation from the base of matter, dead matter, that seems to arise at the base of our pineal glands to the super complexity of Archai, Seraphim, Cherubim and Thrones. Here the Spiritual Body of the Christ Logos Being conducts the schooling for our future SPIRIT MAN developments. The Christ entered at the Baptism in the Jordan to live and accelerate and harvest the first SPIRIT-MAN seed from the heart of Earth and the Tenth Hierarchy, US. The Logos, the worlds that we live in, the apparent dead system of orbiting planets and profound suns and galaxies, ARE, when we grow in maturity, the mighty body of the Logos itself.

It is the Etheric Christ Being who is shepherding the vast school of beings within this TWELVEFOLD SUN SEED, us, who are ripening and maturing so that in the far distant future we will truly harvest our immortality from our mortal substance. From the laws inherent in the foundation of the material world, there was no big-bang theory, but rather ordered kingdoms from the vast precious stones and mineral kingdoms, through the plant and etheric kingdoms, upwards to the Group Soul I Am’s of the animal kingdom and the divine seedlings of humanity, the I AM bearers, ALL are intimate, connected and profound systems held in the heart of the mighty Logos body of the Christ Being. Out of this dead world we shall indeed harvest our living immortality and it is by no means a simple Jesus story, it is an ever richer initiation saga that includes each of our important contributions.

And we have witnessed this Phantom style in the encounter that Jodie Foster had with her apparent Dad out beyond Vega in the film,“Contact” LINK A 1ST (view  A first and then B of the phantom and spirit man – LINK B 2ND). We pass right into the eye of Jodie Foster into the sensitivity of her pineal brain where out of the inner dynamic of her soul history and biography arises a pliable image and a plasticity of the etheric body and the Etheric Christ to mold real and precise forms out of the imprinted memory systems. (Back Up for the Phantom and Jodie Foster CLICK LINK) But technical tricks are not the same as having lived, permeated, walked, breathed the air and took in with all its heart, the whole preserved pictures and experiences of humanity that grew from three different dramatic points of reference.

Along with the Luciferic investigations into Neuropsychology, we also must include the Ahrimanic attacks, research and manipulation of pharmaceutical and enhanced drugs meant to deliberately cause suicidal tendencies and depressive results, and create terrorists or unstable people, who the United States claim through deception and lies to be terrorists.

To waterboard, torture and give lethal injections to detainees or for any use, in their pharmacological role, certain Ahrimanic research is hell-bent on having at its disposal invasive methods, coercive and required substances that will guarantee mental break downs and enhancement of terror in any human being.

This research and research into hundreds of different pharmaceuticals are bent on attacking the vital foundations of the etheric and astral body, so that torture, lies and immune system disruption can be quietly sanctioned behind the scenes. These are diabolical and deliberate efforts by human beings to use chemical and pharmaceutical research to find the weak points in the human psyche where Ahriman can gain control of our Neurological processes and thereby via mass innoculations, destroy the healthy condition of the human psyche and claim there is no Etheric Christ and any tendencies toward spiritual reality would be set up to be diagnosed as hallucinations.

Controversial Drug Given to All Guantanamo Detainees Akin to “Pharmacologic Waterboarding

Maj. Remington Nevin, an Army public health physician, who formerly worked at the Armed Forces Health Surveillance Center and has written extensively about mefloquine, said in an interview the use of mefloquine “in this manner … is, at best, an egregious malpractice.”

“The government has exposed detainees “to unacceptably high risks of potentially severe neuropsychiatric side effects, including seizures, intense vertigo, hallucinations, paranoid delusions, aggression, panic, anxiety, severe insomnia, and thoughts of suicide,” said Nevin, who was not speaking in an official capacity, but offering opinions as a board-certified, preventive medicine physician. “These side effects could be as severe as those intended through the application of ‘enhanced interrogation techniques.'”

Mefloquine is also known by its brand name Lariam. It was researched by the US Army in the 1970s and licensed by the Food and Drug Administration in 1989. Since its introduction, it has been directly linked to serious adverse effects, including depression, anxiety, panic attacks, confusion, hallucinations, bizarre dreams, nausea, vomiting, sores and homicidal and suicidal thoughts. It belongs to a class of drugs known as quinolines, which were part of a 1956 human experiment study to investigate “toxic cerebral states,” as part of the CIA’s MKULTRA mind-control program.”

We are returning once again to the reference of ancient Zoraster and his long history and development, his many experiences and his first meeting with Ahura Mazdao, the Aura of the Personality of the Sun-Being Himself from the distant past to the arrival, where Zarathustra made the greatest sacrifice of all, to leave the house swept, clean for a visitor he would not be able to meet. The great human-cosmic guest would live in the house that Zarathustra had prepared for his Macrocosmic guest. Zarathustra would again leave for a second and final time.

In place of Zarathustra the Christ Logos extract would drop it’s pure resonating Macrocosmic I AM in the humble, flowing with Compassion and Love, the highest love and humility offered through humanity, the Buddha’s rich Etheric Fifth Chamber of the Heart, were all made ready for the Sun-Being to reside for those THREE sacred three years on Earth with humanity.

In terms of and from the higher capacities that hovered over the Speech and Broca organ, that tapped the primal forces of the ancient mother-tongue of humanity, where the Pentecost tongues of flame hovered visibly over the heads of the disciples, we note that

Broca’s area is a region of the hominid brain with functions linked to speech production. The production of language has been linked to the Broca’s area since Pierre Paul Broca reported impairments in two patients. They had lost the ability to speak after injury to the posterior inferior frontal gyrus of the brain”

these mighty capacities of the Etheric Christ and the immense capacities of the Lord of Karma, allows the Etheric Christ to prepare rich new formations of Spirit-Man, and allows the Etheric Christ Sun Being to hover over developing humanity and supervise, along with Christian Rosenkreuz, and the great queen Sophia the tiny stirrings of the first delicate beginnings of Spirit-Man. We, through our own struggles through the Consciousness Soul; Spirit-Self; Life-Spirit and Spirit-Man will merge more and more with the dynamic model of the Phantom Form of the Risen Humanity awakening through the unfolding revelation of the Etheric Christ Being.

The living and compassionate experiences of Buddha and his wonderful life times, both great individualities had wonderful lifetimes plus parents as part of the two families where the Jesus boys had lived and grew up. All these living impressions of time and memory crystallized further in experiences for three years on Earth of the Macrocosmic Christ Being. The Christ Being moved, walked, laughed, smiled, talked, broke bread and established warm and living companionship that would continue on with Him and with humanity, ever growing and ever respecting the process of development that each human being is required to experience as their incarnations bring them ever richer compassion, depth, love and  have imprinted into their own higher being, their own ability to leave a deposit, a crystallized deposit, a luminous living, walking mobile mastery of matter, Earth and Time in the Salt and crystal forming forces that surround our own pineal developments.

CLICK TO ENLARGE THE CHART

ADDENDUM 1
How to convey the two Jesus Children, Buddha and Zarathustra with warmth.

ADDENDUM 2

Please click onto this (Link) if you wish to examine further the TWO JESUS BOYS, presented here.

ADDENDUM 3 The early attempts at entering into inner perception and the pineal world of Within You, Without You by the Beatles leaves much to be desired. But it made a deep impression on me long, long, ago when I was 19 in New York. It did, and I don’t say it lightly, it did help me to open up my EYE because it taught me, without any instruction by anyone, to meditate.

ADDENDUM 4 In this story by H.P. Lovecraft at 6:35 minutes into the text we encounter and all through the story we encounter the pineal gland in specific. It is a fascinating account in a typical H.P. Lovecraft style of exploring regions of the sense and in part 2 of the same film clip the zodiac animal forms with astute observations drift into the story’s insights, again, not exactly with Spiritual Science Initiation clarity. Both clips are interesting to say the least given the problems of Neuropsychology and the Pineal gland that have been the subject of this essay. I suggest listening to the tale of both 1 & 2.

ADDENDUM 5   The problems of Priests, and pedophiles are laid out plain and straight HERE AT THIS LINK. The moral degradation of The Tenth Hierarchy is well underway in every domain of life. Our reaction should be exactly THIS.

ADDENDUM 6

Put a **** four star on Neuroscience and Neuropsychology for this. This important experience from an actual Medical Neuroscience physician is a true case of physician heal thyself. The Angelic World and the world where Christ came from, the place He left to make His residence on the Earth, and we all have portals of entry in each of us on a need to know basis. We are all on a need to know basis when it comes to the facts about spirituality. When you next argue against the Spirit and the events of the Christ Being, WATCH THIS VIDEO and get the materialism cleaned out of your mental closet. (CLICK ON THIS LINK).

ADDENDUM 7

A friend of mine Tom Mellett who did such intensive research on the Soul Calendar verses which I referred to in the early part of this essay, Tom also did research into THE TWO JESUS CHILDREN.  (SEE LINK).

ADDENDUM 8

To steep ourselves ever more deeply into the mystery of the TWO JESUS CHILDREN a great deal of misleading beliefs must be adjusted because, as is the case, trained ministers, priests, authorities, elders all stand on watered down, diluted misinformation concerning the TWO JESUS CHILDREN CLICK LINK. Every day, and in every walk of life we will constantly encounter a firm ignorant self absorption in pet dogmas that have nothing to do with the actual complex details of making the effort to understand the intentions and the deeds of the Divine Incarnation of the Christ Being. By walking around blindly, blandly or passionately clinging to “The Christ came as a little baby to Bethlehem” and that is how we got Jesus/Christ,- is a crass simplification and deliberate obstruction to the depths and the inspiration of the Logos. Wisdom and the challenge that Divine places in our unfolding powers cognition in our human spirit gives humanity enormous potential into the ongoing revelation of the human experience of Christ. WE CAN HANDLE THE TRUTH.

“In the thirtieth year of Jesus of Nazareth, that Being whom we have called the Christ took possession of his physical, etheric, and astral bodies. This Christ Being could not incarnate in an ordinary child’s body, but only in one which had first been prepared by a highly developed ego, for this Christ-Being had never before been incarnated in a physical body. Therefore from the thirtieth year on, we are dealing with the Christ in Jesus of Nazareth.” (SEE LINK)

ADDENDUM 9

One of my dearest friends Bobby Matherne did something which few have done. Bobby Matherne created a site with millions of readers who found their first interest and meeting with Rudolf Steiner. I met Bobby in Louisiana, New Orleans where he resides. He was my justice of the peace and minister for my wedding. I took him to the Goetheanum for his first visit in 2013. Much to everyone’s amazement, no one had ever met the illustrious scientist and Emersonian, outspoken and humble fellow. But yet millions in the U.S. and around the world have first encountered Rudolf Steiner for the first time in the reviews that Bobby has produced for several decades from his web site out of New Orleans. So here is one of his reviews on THE TWO JESUS CHILDREN.

“Norse Mythology and Spiritual Science” (early draft) by Bradford Riley

“The ancient Norse mythology beheld this path of evolution. It saw the human god hang crucified for nine days long on the cosmic ash-tree, whose ninefold branches are indeed the nine spheres of the cosmos, Yggrasilland it gives the tree its true name: `YGGDRASILL’ – ego-bearer.”

FREYJA

And

THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS

Freyja reveals a very potent mystery for us in the story of THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS. The Nordic seers foreshadowed the transformation of the endocrine system and Freyja’s new position within our biology. How were the reproductive forces latent in Speech to be sketched? What were the problems involved with her transformation? Why was it necessary to cultivate a school of Bards or Skalds?

A training of nearly twenty years as a Bard was needed before one could be initiated as a Druid. We can easily discern that the word seer and the other word sear are related. In this way, the fire involved with perception links itself to the higher faculties of the human spirit. To see and to know is like being branded with a hot iron, a deep impression is made into the etheric body.

Shakespeare was our English language equivalent to a well-trained Bard. Bardic training was the long road that could eventually lead to Bodhisattva and Buddhahood. This was not expected to be a single lifetime achievement but the work we were expected to do to earn our membership in the divine. The Nordic seers would agree with everything I have brought thus far including, and above all, the reality of Ariel and the higher magnetic field of light and love that brings the I.D. code of our ego and word together.

All of Nordic mythology confirms the connection made between Ariel, Freyja and the warmth ethers. Representing the head and thinking faculty, guarding the great tree of Yggdrasill, the Tree of Life, was an eagle. The guardian of the entire esoteric map of MAN was “an eagle who sits in the topmost branches, with a hawk perched between its eyes. The tree, moreover, drips dew so sweet that bees use it for the making of honey.”

Eagle atop Yggdrasill

“The snake Nicfhbggr lies below, by Hvergelmir, gnawing at the root.
The squirrel Ratatoskr 1 runs up and down, trying to sow discord
between the snake and the eagle who is perched aloft. The
eagle’s name is not given, he is a bird of great knowledge and
sagacity; betwixt his eyes sits a HAWK Ve&rfolnir?”

Why in heaven’s name would a hawk be sitting right between the eyes of a giant eagle? For the same reason Prospero had Ariel and for the same reason I outlined the difference between the relation of the dog to that of the loyal astral servant who begins assisting our upward quests. Under the fig tree is where Buddha received his enlightenment and that is the same spot where our own Ariel lives `under the blossom that hangs on the bough’. What information the hawk brings back must still be deciphered by the great wisdom of the eagle. What information Ariel retrieves must be comprehended and ordered by the higher spiritual faculty of the I.

Freyja, who lives in the endocrine system of our hormones and the secretions of prolactin from our pituitary glands, also has at her disposal “a falcon skin ( ) which enabled her spirit to take the form of a bird, travel to the underworld, and come back with prophecies and knowledge of destinies.” To us this simply means that Ariel is able to travel in the world of light and astral planes that are hidden from our clumsy human forms and certainly impossible for an earthly dog to navigate.

The secret of Cerberus, the three-headed dog who guards the gates of hell gives us three more reasons why we should lift our development upwards instead of letting it crash downwards below the dog. Devachanic regions of light are truer than E-mail and satellite long distance interchanges. The falcon/hawk tells us that the character of Freyja was linked to these higher mysteries when she wasn’t using her forces to get laid. Which brings us to the complications of the warmth-ethers, when raised to a vertical direction, and the story of:

THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS

“The Gods already believe she embodies at least half the heart of a whore. But for all that she needs to transform herself anatomically, biologically and strategically into the future uterus, the reproductive center for the new Human Word.”

uterous and Eustaschio and Fallopio“Freyja found the string-thin path that led in and down. Her eyes streamed from the cold and her tears fell as a small shower of gold in front of her.”

THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS was part of the schooling of the Skalds and Bards. In this story, the Nordic Initiates revealed that Freyja, our endocrine system, would not be satisfied just serving our hormonal system. The endocrine system is placed in our anatomy with a desire to possess a greater treasure. Freyja has heard of this greater treasure, knows of it, it is hidden in our biology and she has a desire to attain it. These unquenchable desires that feed our love life have a supreme goal, which is why they appear unquenchable.

When the warmth ethers ascend from below they become the gold of compassion and are transformed to golden dew. A change is made from very understandable climates of sentimentality, warmth and earthly sympathies to cooler regions of thought and spirit. A polarity of climate and comfort are always briefly experienced by the developing soul. This condenses as rain or mist and falls into the region of the heart. Higher altitudes differ from low-lying swamps on the equator. A different passion, a different fire is felt on the wings of immortality. Freyja’s eyes stream from the cold and her tears fall as gold.

“The goddess sidled through the dismal cave. The sound of the tapping, insistent yet fitful, grew stronger and stronger. Freyja stopped, listened again, moved on; at last she stopped, eased her way down a narrow groin, and stepped into the sweltering smithy of the four dwarfs, Alfrigg and Dvalin, Berling and Grerr.”

The use of the word groin, narrow ledge and the relation of sexuality, puberty and the change of voice places Freyja at the scene of the four parathyroid glands, above the pounding forge of the heart. Brilliantly the seers of Nordic mythology outline a road map to the place where Speech and the mighty warmth-ethers meet.Norse Myths Parathyroid Speech and the FOUR ETHERS A place where four roads meet. A crossroads and an anatomical intersection. Here something is to happen to Freyja that will shape the future of the human WORD. The Nordic initiates knew this, which makes works like these so startling. Here anatomy meets the gods. What brings Freyja here, trickling through a narrow bottleneck at the forge of the throat, the forge of the living WORD?

“For a moment Freyja was dazzled by the brilliance of the furnace. She rubbed her eyes, and then she gasped as she saw the breathtaking work of the dwarfs – a necklace, a choker of gold incised with wondrous patterns, a marvel of fluid metal twisting and weaving and writhing. She had never seen anything so beautiful nor so desired anything before.”

It takes your breath away. Something that would fit round the throat. A choker. The transformation of the entire Nordic image of Yggdrasill can be overlaid with the seventh seal of Steiner’s Occult Signs & Symbols. The four dwarfs are hammering out the strange `twisting and weaving and writhing’ form of the lower endocrine system and kundalini that will finally become the great reproductive forces of speech that lifts the sign of Scorpio back up to the eagle and finally to the dove.

Freyja might just become the gateway that leads to the dove, to Sophia. Earth love and earth girls might be easy, but cosmic love and Sophia require the entire transformation of our endocrine system and what we hold most dear. In their workshop at the parathyroid base of the throat, the blueprints and designs have already been reshaped for the WORD’S future metamorphosis and Freyja has never seen anything so incredibly marvelous. The larynx is to become the new uterus and Freyja knows full well that she deserves to be apart of that mystery. She is that mystery and she recognizes her own transformation in the work that the dwarfs are doing.

Freyja understands when she looks at this necklace that the entire reproductive forces have been changed and the new center of sexuality and love will be centered in the Speech possibilities latent in the development of the larynx. She is just the girl to wear this piece of mystery art as part of her intimate apparel. This necklace must adorn her; it was made for her. She wants it at any price.Endocrine Freya Norse Speech Seal transformation by Arild Rosenkrantz It must be a part of her destiny to be wherever the transition from hormonal sexual energy moves upwards to the magnificent swirling forces round the new cosmic reproductive center based now in the throat and the heart.

What does she have to do to get it from these gnarly Vulcan dwarfs who are always technologically crafting magnificently beautiful and profound trinkets that foreshadow the future forces of humanity? How is it that nerds like these are always attached to beauty? How is it that over developed brains are always tied to lush physical beauty?

“The four dwarfs, meanwhile, stared at the goddess – she shimmered in the warm light of the forge. Where her cloak had fallen apart, the gold brooches and jewels on her dress gleamed and winked. They had never seen anyone so beautiful nor so desired anyone before.

Freyja smiled at Alfrigg and Dvalin and Berling and Grerr. `I will buy that necklace from you,’ she said.

The four dwarfs looked at each other. Three shook their heads and the fourth said, `It’s not for sale.’

`I want it,’ said Freyja.

The dwarfs grimaced.

`I want it. I’ll pay you with silver and gold – a fair price and more than a fair price,’ said Freyja, her voice rising. She moved closer to the bench where the necklace was lying. `I’ll bring you other rewards.’

`We have enough silver,’ said one dwarf.

`And we have enough gold,’ said another.”

The entire mystery of incarnation, the Devachan and the atomic table of number and weights are known by the dwarf or gnome community. They are the number crunchers of the cosmos. Genetics, in order to incarnate living human individualities must first of all, through computer chip technology and liquid crystal technology harness the silicon world of the gnomes into our computer systems.

The four dwarfs that Freyja encounters in the structure of the parathyroid know exactly how much they need, and how much they have in quantities of gold, silver and all the elements of the atomic table. Their type of nerdy accuracy depends on being exactly right in the mirroring of the material composition of matter against the blueprints of the spirit. It is especially their job and becoming our job as well to concern ourselves with a form of robbery and abduction being engineered by the human community against the higher devachan that stands behind the mystery of magnetism, electricity, vibratory physics, genetics and reproductive technology all under the guise of silicon technologies. Technological human cunning is beginning to lean dangerously close to the sacred music of the spheres. The gnome community is in serious danger.

In the music of the spheres, the planets and stars, assist the human soul in the ordering and collecting of the blueprints of the atomic table of elements around their soul spiritual being. Each individual body has a unique atomic weight and distribution of substance that cannot yet be standardized. Bodily organs are designed solely for the intended user. Electricity, intensified by computer graphics and laser technology, has surrounded our culture with stolen and intellectualized light, fragmented it; divorced it and parceled it down into commodities, from its lofty cosmic basis as wisdom. To enable humanity to do this, the dwarfs and gnomes had to be forced into human technological slavery.

The gnomes formerly used this higher spiritualized light in a legitimate distribution of cosmic effects and nourishment through the crystal strata of the earth, the plant roots etc. Humans have sucked this divine technology downward or deeper into profound dimensions of light and Devachan activity for the service of shameless egotistic and technological ends. Could we collapse the system, the finished work of the gods, into sub-natural virtual worlds? Are the gnomes being forced into this form of silicon chip slavery? If the functioning of the heavens and our incarnations are based on the harmony of the music of the spheres, could we interrupt the tonal system of nature and super nature with our disharmonies?

If just the tiniest amount of iodine in the thyroid gland is lacking or, in over abundance, an enormous change in temperament and force can impact the human being. “Make Goethe poor in iodine, and the eternally creative Olympian becomes a lazy Sybarite. If Napoleon had carried in his body two milligrams less of iodine, he would not have stormed in the ceaseless drive of deeds from battle to battle; he would not have crossed the Alps in demonic appetite for conquest, conquered the Pyramids and passed the icy steppes of Russia. He might, perhaps, have become the city commandant of Ajaccio, and the whole history of Europe would have been different. The whole history of Europe – a granule of iodine!” The gnomes and dwarfs responsible for the first teeth of the newly incarnated soul are at work with the higher blue prints that the individual has brought with them. In payment, in gratitude, we offer them the first tooth as a token of our thankfulness for assisting in the complex organization of our individual atomic, chemical and material forces.

” -Whether we draw from such phenomena the conclusion that the history of Napoleon and of the world is the result of the presence or the absence of one gram of iodine in the thyroid gland of Napoleon, of Goethe, etc., or, while admitting the significance of the presence of one gram of iodine, can say on the basis of a research into the rest of the phenomena that the presence of one gram of iodine in the thyroid gland of Goethe or Napoleon is the result of the individual history of Goethe, Napoleon, etc. This same thing is true, of course, for every single human being. The spirit of Goethe is not the product of the action of one gram of iodine, but the action of one gram of iodine results from the total spiritual-psychic evolution and the individual inner dynamics, structural forces and substances in this individual being, Goethe, determined by that spiritual-psychic evolution. The spiritual human being seeks and develops for himself the appropriate corporeality, not vice versa. …When a typical materialist observes the phenomenon `Goethe’, he ought not to forget by the side of the gram of iodine that this same Goethe came to the knowledge: `The perseverance of the individual, and the fact that a person shakes off what is not suitable to him, is a proof for me that some such thing as the entelechy exists.'”

This is the key argument involved with reproductive technology. Freyja, Speech and our cultural development are directly in the middle of these fermenting issues. The immortal individuality is not looked upon as real. Health and consensus issues of perfection with narrow egotistic motives believe fully that they can standardize and develop healthier `types’ of human beings. With liquid crystal technology and laser computer accuracy humanity expects to side step the issue of individual spiritual development of conscience and identity. This is why the dwarfs know exactly what the precious weights and metals are and more matter is not what they need. They need something else from Freyja. Analytical science needs something else to de-mystify matter and individuality.

“`We have enough silver,’ said one dwarf.

`And we have enough gold,’ said another.”

“Freyja gazed at the necklace. She felt a great longing for it, a painful hunger.

“Alfrigg and Dvalin and Berling and Grerr huddled in one corner of the forge. They whispered and murmured and nodded.

“`What is your price?’ asked the goddess.

” `It belongs to us all,’ said one dwarf. `So what each has must be had by the others,’ said the second, leering. `There is only one price, ‘ said the third, `that will satisfy us.’ The fourth dwarf looked at Freyja. `YOU,’ he said.

“The goddess flushed, and her breasts began to rise and fall.

“`Only if you will lie one night with each of us will this necklace ever lie round your throat,’ said the dwarfs.

“Freyja’s distaste for the dwarfs – their ugly faces, their pale noses, their misshapen bodies and their small greedy eyes – was great,”

What’s a girl to do? This is a very peculiar situation to be in. Should she sleep with all four Beatles or just one? Will her reputation be ruined if this ever gets out? Will she be considered for eternity a dwarf groupie? Norse mythology freya and endocrine systemThe Gods already believe she embodies at least half the heart of a whore. But for all that she needs to transform herself anatomically, biologically and strategically into the future uterus, the reproductive center for the new human word.

How is it that something as powerful and as beautiful as Aphrodite gets hitched to Hephaestus in Greek mythology? Hephaestus was the blacksmith of the gods. In the evolution of the earth, Venus and Vulcan as well as Jupiter, Earth; Moon; Sun and Saturn play significant roles. Vulcan is just another name for Hephaestus the limping, clever nerd of the gods. Gnomes and dwarfs declare their lineage from old Hephaestus. In my MESSAGE OF THE WHITE BUFFALO the relation of prolactin and milk to the Egyptian culture was made under the linkage between Apis and Ptah. Ptah was for the Egyptians the same as Vulcan or Hephaestus. But those myths centered around one dwarf, one ugly little soot caked forge ferret. Now we are dealing with four.

I have always suspected that the whole patterning of four could be traced to the Ark of the Covenant. Why isn’t it possible that the four chambers of the human heart; the four stomachs of the cow; the four seasons; the four directions in space, and the mighty cube are all interfaced with the parathyroid glands?

Here is a mystery that Empedocles and Aristotle were very hot about. E.C. Merry, when writing about King Arthur, described how Empedocles, “was the first philosopher – in the fifth century B.C. – who spoke of the four elements fire, water, earth and air, and taught that everything that takes place in matter is caused by the mingling and commingling of these four elements in accordance with the principles of love and hatred ruling in them.” Not only Aristotle but the poet Holderlin also drew attention to the mystery of Empedocles. In 1994/95 a great stage revival of Holderlin’s work on Empedocles took place on the german stage.

E.C. Merry says, that Steiner drew attention to Empedocles by saying that, “it is he who by his wisdom specially worked to bring about important conditions of the state of Sicily, and who went about trying to lead people into a spiritual life. It is an adventurous as well as a deeply spiritual life, which we look back upon in Empedocles. Perhaps the truth of what is to be related may be doubted by some, but Spiritual Science knows that Empedocles moved in Sicily as a statesman, while at the same time he was both a magician and an Initiate, just as Hector in Troy was depicted by Homer. And in order to characterize the remarkable attitude of Empedocles to the world, we have the fact, which is true and no invention, that in order, as it were, to unite himself with all existence around him, he ended by throwing himself into Etna, and was consumed by its fire.”

To throw himself into the mighty forge of nature, to offer his bodily forces of fire, air, water and earth in the immense throat altar of a volcano is a deed that has carried a clear impact through-out history[SEE CLIP]. He proved his point and in the long run the point he was trying to prove inspired Goethe to write his Faust and Holderlin to research Empedocles. Both poets were looking into the same spiritual question of how wisdom could merge with all the elements of nature in an ethical alchemy. Both poets were laying the foundations for the Romantics and their science of humanity before spiritual science came on the scene. Empedocles was certainly a guiding star for the Romantics that spread its wings to America, inspiring Nathaniel Hawthorne in his story of ETHAN BRAND.

It would not have been difficult for Empedocles to comprehend the four dwarfs that Freyja meets. He would know instantly the meaning of their four-foldness. Empedocles and Aristotle would also completely understand the medical factors of four in biology. Anatomy and biology indicate the place where four roads meet, four forces. These forces can be understood from the powerful contribution Empedocles indicated.

“The reptilian heart has four chambers, but they are not fully separated. Whereas a mammal has a single aorta, reptiles have two aortas, which are supplied with mostly arterial, oxygen-rich blood. The pulmonary artery receives mostly venous, oxygen-poor blood, but there is some mixing in all vessels. In only one group of reptiles, the crocodiles, is the division of the heart into four separate chambers almost complete.”

The study of the four temperaments is also a division of and combination of etheric forces that make up the quality of personality we encounter in an earthly incarnation. Dominating qualities clearly allow us to observe the invisible field of etheric forces. Medical science cannot disprove that these temperaments exist; instead they have stolen the knowledge Empedocles introduced and by use of very cleverly disguised testing questions, determine how corporate human resource personnel managers can graph and chart these four etheric, temperamental forces.

By side-stepping the issue of powerful etheric forces resonating as music, as imprinted cosmic tones, into the atomic table of the individual being, current physics and medical sciences have buried the knowledge of the four etheric fields that sustain the material world. It was the Norns, the Skalds, the Bards and the Druids who heard and saw, like Empedocles, the music that sustained matter. Scientists like Keely, Tesla, Walter Russell, Dale Pond and Richard Knutson have cracked the code of this music that orders the sub-atomic structure of matter.

Freyja’s meeting with the four dwarfs, inwardly, within the anatomical hieroglyph of the human endocrine system, at the ring knot of the throat, keys four streams that meet outwardly on a line of east, west, north, and south. four seasons zodiac

“Galahad, with Bors, Percivale and Percivale’s sister, was riding through a waste forest when `they saw afore them a white hart which four lions led.’ These they followed to a chapel, where a hermit sang mass.

“`And at the secrets of the mass they saw the hart become a man and set him upon the altar in a rich siege; and saw, the four lions were changed, the one to the form of a man, the other to the form of a lion, the third to an eagle and the fourth to an ox.

“` Then took they their siege where the hart sat and went out through a glass window, and there was nothing perished or broken… When they `were come to theirself again,’ the hermit explained to them that by the four lions were to be understood the four Evangelists, and that `ofttimes or this Our Lord showed Him unto good men in likeness of an hart;…”

Bull lion eagle and angelLight ether, Chemical ether, Life ether and Warmth ether are the building forces of the cosmos. The four streams of history, which assist the cultural goals that bring about the transformation of Frejya, are needed to set the future development of Earth evolution on the right road. Parsifal or Percivale unites two of these streams into himself. Parsifal unites the Arthurian and the Grail streams, meaning that two of the powerfully streaming ether forces find in him the fuel to begin to glow. But long before there was a Grail or Arthurian stream, Freyja was already leading the human endocrine system to its new home.

Four Parathyroid seeds of the cosmic ethers rooted in the Word as the new Uterus

four-parathyroid-glands-and-the-reproductive-center-of-speechThese four little mustard seeds around the throat are the key to transforming the sexual reproduction process into the speech reproduction forces. The second half of Earth evolution, the future Jupiter evolution, Venus evolution and Vulcan evolution are needed to integrate the ethers of tone, light, warmth and chemical life back into the Tree of Life. Instead of being kicked out of Paradise, we earn our reinstatement and membership and bring the fallen body of nature, renewed and raised, with us, as a present to the Gods. Since the Angels, Archangels, and Archai have had their human phase, to become a member of the tenth hierarchy means coming through the filter process that this human phase entails.

Freyja is asked to sleep, to merge her forces fully, intimately and completely, with all four dwarfs, in order to conceive the future of her own metamorphosis. Humans will have to unfold in stages, through immense cosmic periods of time, in order to fully absorb each of the higher cosmic ethers back into their newly minted spiritual systems. The mastering of these higher forces is latent in the future of Speech development. That is the reason why Aphrodite had an affair with Mars in the first place.

Strong Mars-Speech forces are linked with hormonal forces. Vulcan, the husband of Aphrodite, catches a glimpse of how the endocrine system of Freyja/Aphrodite (Click Link), is in secret, having an affair with iron Mars. Vulcan sets up a trap and lifts up this affair to the gods, they have a good laugh. Why? Because the future of the WORD is linked both to Mars and Eros (cupid/mercury/hermes) and Vulcan. The Initiates knew that Vulcan was the place of the forge, where dwarfs crafted cunning secrets for the future, from the handsomely wrought work of the jewelled micrologos, man. To the gods, a human being is a finely crafted anatomical, biological and spiritual marvel. The gods laugh, because mysterious and humorous cosmic forces unite and combine to steer humanity towards the divine. They laugh because it is a Menage a trois in which Freyja is the key player between Mars and Vulcan.

Dan Mateescu

‎”Thor is the son of Odin. Whilst the power of Odin is present in respiration and language, Thor works in the blood, in the rhythmic pulse-beat. Blood is the physical expression of the ego in the metabolic system. Thor is portrayed in the sagas as a choleric with red blood, quick to anger, ever ready to wield his hammer Mjolnir and endowed with a powerful will. Odin’s sphere of activity is the astral body, that of Thor the etheric body.”The alliterative verse of Old Norse (the poetic Edda), Old English (Beowulf), Old Saxon (Heliand) and Old High German (Hildebrandslied) is based on two rhythmic laws — the rhythm of respiration and the rhythm of blood. A single breath corresponds to four pulse beats (eighteen and seventy-two to the minute respectively). This ratio of 1:4 is found in the long line which consisted of two half verses separated by a caesura. Each hemistich had two strongly accented syllables. Thus in the form and law of alliterative verse is reflected the relationship of Odin and Thor. The Voluspa was written in this metre known as Fornyrthislag.”

Appendix in Mission/Folk-Souls by Rudolf Steiner.

Puberty and the change of voice are biologically and psychically integrated. But at this point in Freyja’s development we begin to see how Freyja felt trapped without further possibility of future evolution. Matter was frozen in the first half of earth development with the Mars and iron forces and Freyja Aphrodite could not get past this hardened material world, even though she is married to the far distant future of the Venus and Vulcan evolution of the Earth. It is the mercurial; second half of earth development that could produce a transformation of Eros. Sexual degeneration and the end of the endocrine system stood staring Freyja in the face. Hideously it stares us in the face and we feel all the desperation that is hidden in the atrophying endocrine system. Matter could prove to be the greatest prison ever devised by Heaven. You know it, I know it, and our endocrine system knows it. Freyja’s dislike for dwarfs was great indeed:

“…but her desire for the necklace was greater. Four nights were but four nights; the glorious necklace would adorn her for all time. The walls of the forge were red and flickering; the dwarf’s eyes were motionless. `As you wish,’ murmured Freyja shamelessly. `As you wish. I am in your hands.’

“Four days passed; four nights passed. Freyja kept her part of the bargain. Then the dwarfs, too, kept their word. They presented the necklace to Freyja and jostled her and fastened it around her throat.”

These were some happy dwarfs I wager. Not seven mind you, but four. The Nordic seers have a very important message to relate. The forge of the glow of the human heart is right below the throat. Four anatomical chambers of the forge connected to the workshop of the four parathyroid glands. woman with thyroid glandLike hammers, the thunder from the Speech organs pounds away at consonants and vowels, reshaping the metals into stronger and stronger, more refined, zodiacal elements. The refinement of the ethers must be done with Eurythmy and Speech. With the bellows of our lungs blaring and the Word pounded on the anvil of our Larynx we shape and wield the new necklace for our own endocrine system. Braced around this forge are the four parathyroid glands, the dwarfs that Freyja sleeps with to gain the necklace.

Sleeping, of course, are giant acts of time. In a rhythm of four phases, by sleeping with each dwarf, Freyja manages to become the owner of the new reproductive system situated in the larynx. She manages to escape the prison of matter, which is why the gods laughed in the first place. Freyja would find a way out of the iron necessity of dense birth and death that earth has locked her into. Sex is a pure hearted and clever mistress of the divine. Love must be born upwards or die.

Pralaya is the rhythm of rest or sleep between the acts of creation. Out of each Pralaya a new phased in integration and a higher development of divine creation occurs. In our times we have use of the Warmth Ether of conscience and sympathy or empathy to investigate and comprehend. This is the importance of the Matthew gospel for our times. In this relation, during the second half of earth evolution, we are bound up with Freyja in sleeping with the first dwarf. We are rounding the bend, where the Mars hammerlock on matter is beginning to dissolve and Freyja begins turning toward her true husband.

In this development we study, with privilege, the mineral, silicon basis of word production and the force blueprints and factors involved with sounds, CONSONANTS and VOWELS. Exploring as we would the ecology of a woods, a bioregion of shapes and sounds that have the architecture and tonal history of the ancient Genius of Speech already wrought in their structures.

Acronyms and computer language severs our study of these things. Eurythmy and Speech allows us to become familiar with the amazing contours and potentials that have made LANGUAGE a living reality. That is one night with one dwarf for Frejya. The age of silicon technology and the first dwarf, or mineral kingdom, is now being slept with. That is the importance of reproductive technologies and pharmaceuticals; versus Speech, Word, and Logos integrated bio-psychic systems through the end of this century. This is the battle for the preparation of Bodhisattva comprehension. Can we imprint new etheric codes into our systems of thinking and speech development alongside our passive preoccupation with silicon technology and the Pentium processors?

When Freyja and we come out of the first Pralaya we begin our next study. From the mineral we move to how plants are prepared to be spoken in the Jupiter evolution. Animals will be spoken in the Venus evolution and Humans will be spoken in the Vulcan evolution. Freyja sleeps with the four forces and unites her warmth with their dormant creative potential. This is not something that is going to happen without our intimate artistic and hormonal participation. The Romantics were living proof of this. As humans we attempt to move upwards to Angels in the Jupiter evolution; Archangels in the Venus evolution; and Archai in the Vulcan evolution and this brings us back to square one; when we were first spoken, in Saturn evolution. Four days passed and Four nights passed in the destiny of the evolution of a goddess moving from the sexual forces of procreation to the spiritual COSMIC LOGOS forces of procreation. Our bawdy Freyja might yet become, our mid-wife to the divine Sophia.

“And what was the necklace of the Brisings (brisingamen)? These are unsettled questions. It is uncertain whether Brising is the name of some tribe or family or whether the word derives from the Old Norse BRISINGR, meaning fire… but a passing reference to the `Brosingamene’ in the Anglo-Saxon BEOWULF quite clearly refers to a necklace.”

Phosphate works directly with the parathyroid glands as a fire element. Precise chemical distributions of calcium are activated by the regular secretions of parathormone from the parathyroid. When the construction of Consonants and Vowels and speech warmth forces are generated strongly, a refined reaction of matter and mineral content occurs. The stimulation of parathormone or PTH is directly related to estrogen, prolactin and growth hormones. The building forces of the skeleton, the white milk of the breast, the white dove forces, are directly tied into chemical release signals that come from pregnancy, lactation and growth. The future stuff from which the world is built can either create stones in the kidneys or speech forms that carry the signature of our efforts as WORD-CRAFTERS.

Sunlight on the surface of the skin and the absorption of Vitamin D into the body are some of the outer aspects of the way our organism digests light and warmth in conjunction with the parathyroid and the parathormone it secretes. Inwardly however, something has begun to occur in the interior of the psyche, a sun-based light that our own Ariel is fed from, is now dawning for the consciousness of the human spirit. A new nourishment of refined etheric sunlight has intersected with the new position that Freyja has taken.

Our cardiac muscle, our brain and our nerves benefit from the calcium regulation of the parathyroid glands. In other words, nerves, bones, muscles, these four seemingly useless little glands all structurally condition the heart. Without their help our body goes into jerky uncontrollable spasms. A decrease of exterior sunlight must be counterbalanced by an increase of interior light. Idealism, warmth and ethics must feed into the great cosmic developments of Freyja. There is only one outer Sun and there is only one interior light that carries the entire nourishment of the human spirit upwards and inwards with the strength of the sun.

“At Whitsuntide King Arthur, holding his court at Cardoil, `looketh at the windows of the hall to right and left, and seeth two sunbeams are shining within that fill the whole hall with light. Thereof he marvelleth much and sendeth without the hall to see what it might be. The messenger cometh back and saith thereof that two suns appear to be shining, the one in the East and the other in the West. He marvelleth much thereat”

norse myth and sp sciience Parzival Graal WolpertWhat of the theory that only one of the glands, one of the Dwarfs are operative for us today, culturally, from the roots of our conscience and the empathy of our warmth? How does this theory play in the Nordic seers tradition of anatomy and physiology? “…Davlin may have enjoyed Freyja but he was destined to come to a nasty end. As we learn indirectly, Dvalin was arrested by the rising sun and turned into stone. The other three dwarfs are not heard of again.” Therefore Dvalin is the warmth-ether dwarf of the parathyroid gland that concerns us for the present. As we become infatuated with crystallized silicon technology we might harden ourselves too quickly. We already sense the desperation of the atrophy of the endocrine system. Love allows our warmth and spiritualized conscience to keep pace with our greed for speed. The Grail means, gradual development.

“Dvalin was a ruler of the dwarves and one of the most powerful dwarves, known primarily for having invented runes.”

Dvalin’s name reveals to us something of the direction we must take in our creative development with this ether field. `D’ gives us the flat planes of earth and the gravity and direction of earth DEEDS. ` V ‘ gives the powerful creative wave forces of sympathetic vibratory physics followed by the `AH’ of Venus, Freyja and green growing nature and the full love and content of our souls lifted to the ` L ‘ where the life ethers swirl upwards or swirl in behind the V and the AH. With the `IN’ sound at the end of the word we have tonal resonation lifted into higher consciousness and light and a descending power that enters into the depths of matter.

In Eurythmy the Da of leo, the V of aries, the AH of venus, the L of capricorn, the half- `i’ of mercury and the cosmic force of Pisces lifts the destiny from earth to heaven and binds the two, so that what is sown on earth is also sown in heaven, the warmth in our hearts becomes our future destinies. Two fires, cosmic love as water, earth, mercury (gemini and virgo) and Pisces a water sign and the final quarter of our age. The human breast as the lion, moves to the head in aries. Bathed in Freyja forces of love, the force of the knees indicate worship and devotion raised upwards and downwards to mother earth and father sky. This carried into the E and woven into the gigantic forces of cosmic wisdom and destiny and the selflessness we need to lift the lower kingdoms of betrayed nature upwards with us as the final act of the age of Pisces. This powerful decision must be apparent to humanity before we head for the cosmic north and the reproductive and incarnational mysteries of Aquarius.

Within the mouth we have two teeth placements that DV aimed as earth and fire and thought forces at the teeth line, the dramatic and astral moved forward and bathed in wonder or the warmed epoch AH, breathing wonder into the dramatic action of our lives and the creative activity we do. L is water and teeth placement and so is N filled with the light of I am.

In this coded nordic name of Dvalin we have indications that the action we take in relation to the world must be filled with the wonder of creation and carry the imprint of our deeds and words through the living light of our immortal I AM. This word looks and sounds like JAVELIN. So in conclusion we must practice SPEECH and WORD mysteries and incorporate the spear or the DVALIN in our training or else learn to play the violin. The Dv or DW always has something to do with the creative mineralogy of the gnome and dwarf kingdom and our silicon technologies. Earth/Fire projected forwards and the AH sound stretched in space, outward horizontally, and finally vertically through the L and I and N sounds we have a tri-partitioned world.

Is Freyja’s role in this story correctly interpreted?

“In the GODS AND MYTHS OF NORTHERN EUROPE, H.R. Ellis Davidson writes, `A necklace is something which is associated with the mother goddess from very early times. Figurines wearing necklaces found in the Mediterranean area date back as far as 3000 BC, and small female figures wearing them have survived from the Bronze Age in Denmark and are thought to represent a fertility deity.’ And, in a footnote, she adds, `Students of Freud will recognize the significance of a necklace for a fertility goddess. It illustrates the familiar tendency to represent the sexual parts of the body by others higher up, and by ornaments worn on these.’ Perhaps we can reasonably postulate, then, that Sorla Thattr describes Freyja’s acquisition – her sexual acquisition – of the most salient symbol of her fertility. She is the goddess of love; and she is the goddess of lust.”

In viewing history that goes back beyond 5OOO B.C. we must view the mysteries of matriarchy that are still active out of the Finnish tales of the Kalevala. A matriarchal society, only vaguely reflected through history, existed once. The mysteries of this ancient matriarchal society had everything to do with the later Nordic, Arthurian and Grail mysteries. The Finnish language was made up of twelve consonants. At the Forge of the larynx the Finnish consonants echoed the great zodiacal powers. Much of the new mysteries of the Word, the Freyja mysteries, have to do with the shift from reproductive mysteries, fertility, so named, to Speech mysteries. My first Speech Teacher at the Goetheanum, Erna Grund, introduced the English Speaking Drama group to the Kalevala.

“A primal language once bound all people together. Differentiation came with the Fall. Language became the dividing factor through which people no longer understood each other. The loss of the unifying bond led to enmity amongst nations, now divided into linguistic groups. But the unifying element continued to live in the sounds. As soon as one goes back to their ground and origin they are the same in all languages – seven planetary vowel forces and, corresponding to the twelve signs of the zodiac, twelve consonantal powers. In some older languages we still find strict adherence to this arrangement, for instance in Finnish, which knows no modification of the vowels and does not divide the consonants into hard and soft ones.”

We shall explore in the course of these essays, an ancient knowledge that traces its roots to Genesis. Since we have lost the wisdom of the matriarchy, we lost in the process, the missing factor in biology and anatomy that clearly comprehends the dual role of the sexes. The matriarchal society was once the key to space, to understanding the mammal forms strewn in space. The connection between organic life and lifeless space was part of the mystery of the egg. Patriarchy has had the task of rediscovering the path from soulless space to ensouled space and that path is through the Freyja mysteries and the mystery of the uterus. Here, as we shall see, biology, physics, space and anti-space are the mystical treasures left over from the division of the sexes.

KVASIR

and

SKALDSKAPARMAL(Poetic Diction)

The Mead of Poetry

“In the course of earthly evolution, this blood passed through a process of `ETHERIZATION.’ Just as our blood streams upward from the heart as ether, so, since the Mystery of Golgotha, the etherized blood of Christ Jesus has lived in the ether of the earth. etherized blood of christThe etheric body of the earth is permeated by what the blood that flowed on Golgotha became.”

Kvasir is an extraordinary portrait out of the lore of Nordic Initiation. The problem for me is that the description reminds me of someone we all know. If I had never heard of or met someone like him in my lifetime his portrait would appear highly mythological, unlikely and fantastic. But because I have been touched in my lifetime by someone very much like him, Kvasir seems familiar. Someone we should all remember if we ever happen to meet again.

“When the AESIR and the VANIR had made a truce, and settled terms for a lasting peace, every single god and goddess spat into a great jar. This put the seal on their friendship, and because the Aesir were anxious that no one should forget it, even for one moment, they carried off the jar and out of the spittle they fashioned a man.

“His name was KVASIR. He was so steeped in all matters and mysteries of the nine worlds since fire and ice first met in Ginnungagap that no god nor man or giant nor dwarf ever regretted putting him a question or asking his opinion.”

To pursue a knowledge that outlines the history of human immortality back through the history of worlds, back through ancient Moon and the drama of the Angels in their human phase; back through the evolution of the Sun with the Archangels in their human phase; back through the evolution of Saturn with the Archai in their human phase; back to the origin of our present humans on ancient Saturn, is to think large thoughts. To discover us living like computers in the flowing courage of immortality, in the silent mechanics of living mineral architecture, where we were played upon by the gods back than, as we play upon our own little computers today, is certainly thinking thoughts that span worlds. That is what the Nordic Kvasir did, he spanned worlds with his thoughts. If asked about ancient Saturn, Kvasir might pause for a moment and say:

“The physical human eye is similar to a camera, for, as with the camera, there appears within it a picture of the surrounding world. Only when one abstracts from the physical eye everything that is not to be found in the camera, does one discover what is the specific nature of the physical eye. So too one must abstract from the entire physical body everything that is not purely physical: only then does one have what in occultism is called the physical body. In itself it can neither live, think nor feel. There then remains a very wisely ordered, extremely complicated automaton, a purely physical apparatus. This, alone, was all there was of human existence at the Old Saturn stage. At that time the eyes were present only as little cameras. What was produced as picture of the surrounding world came to the consciousness of a Deva being. In the middle of the Saturn evolution the so-called Asuras (the Archai) were sufficiently advanced to make use of the apparatus. At that time they were at the human stage. They made use of the automata and the pictures as we make use of photographic apparatus in order to take pictures of a landscape. Thus the physical body of man was at that time an architectural structure of a physical apparatus operated from outside. This is the first stage of human existence.”

Kvasir might intimate how certain unfriendly Asuras have access to the interior of our unused rotting human conscience. If anything is not used from our warmth-ethers the Asuras have dibs on it. It would be their Saturnine food, the unused forces of our immortality.( ) If they have hung behind in evolution we had better move forward. But if we listened to a person like Kvasir, we would begin to understand the very strange phenomena of why we humans sit in front of our computers and order these passive creatures around. We flood their screens with pictures of laser generated light. In other words we are repeating something here that recalls an immense memory in us. We are starting something now which in future will look to us for the wisdom we fed it and the wisdom of the universe that flashed passively before its soulless eyes. We are staring into our own ancient Saturn condition.

If Kvasir related these things to me, these cosmic and ecological pictures would disturb me. Juxtapositions of how the Angels felt in their plant condition; how the Angels felt in their animal phase; how the Angels felt in their human phase; and how the present eco-system of the earth feels as it stands before our gaze; would cause me to make some humble comparisons.

How will the animal feel towards us when they are men? What will the plants feel about us when they are animals? What will the silicon minerals understand of us, when they are men? Is this the crystal ball we are looking into now with our computers? Have we had enough of the games and the stalling and diversions from our responsibilities, to grasp our cosmic position? Are we on the trail to heaven or hell?

You see Kvasir knew the answer to all these things. The Aesir had a CUSPIDOR or SPITTOON. Cusp is a sharp tooth or edge and the CUSPIDOR is where the ashes from the fire were deposited or the cuspidor is like the spittoon or great metal urn where wild west saloon keepers asked cattle rustlers and gunslingers alike, to spit their wad of chaw and saliva. Here is a Rod Serling story waiting to be developed. The Nordic initiates shaped the foundations of where the term spitting image comes from. IMAGO. Perhaps, we might be so bold as to say we are all made in the spitting image of Kvasir. We might say that all the gods got together and fashioned a microcosmic 12 fold structure that accorded in every detail with the macrocosmic mysteries using scale, variance and calibration. Would Kvasir call these fashioners the Elohim or Spirits of Form?

The spittle or saliva had been warmed in the mouth of the gods. They did not have dry mouths but an abundance of life circulated around their tongues. Their words created worlds or caused the entire drama that Milton shapes in his PARADISE LOST and is reflected in the debris of the floating astroid belt, which represents a former boasting brother planet now in ruins. The forces of each CONSONANT and VOWEL were set in motion as the anatomy and intelligence in Kvasir. The entire contract of creation was now a living breathing microcosmic poet and walked with the gods and with men, at home in all worlds. Have we known anybody like that?

Dead center in our own historical Earth evolution stands a moment that has been carried from the mighty ancient Sun evolution down to the flesh embodiment of a living breathing man. Kvasir would tell you that this was no ordinary man who walked amongst us. If asked, Kvasir would say that this was one of the gods who spat in the council and it was actually HIS warm hands that shaped the embryo of Kvasir into shape, as if from bees wax, from the peace spittle of the gods.

“4 I must work the works of him that sent me, while it is day: the night cometh, when no man can work.

5 As long as I am in the world, I am the light of the world.

6 When he had thus spoken, he spat on the ground, and made clay of the spittle, and he anointed the eyes of the blind man with the clay…”

John 9:4-6

Kvasir could tell you who this man was. He could tell you about the light of the world vs the light emanating from our t.v.’s and computer screens. Emanating already has the word MAN in it. He could tell the whole history of how one of our human brothers began a relationship with Ahura Mazdao, the central core and crowning glory of the ancient Sun evolution, the LOGOS; and as the historical Zarathustra, Kvasir would remark that he also had the spittle of the gods, the twelve foldness of a Bodhisattva force in his veins. Kvasir could tell the difference between one man and another, between John the Baptist and St. John the Divine, between the creator and the created.

“What was his secret? It was as much in his manner as in his mine of understanding. Questions of fact he answered with simple facts. But to ask Kvasir for his opinion – What shall I say? What do you think? What shall I do? – did not always mean getting a direct answer. Sitting back in his ill-fitting clothes, as often as not with his eyes closed, he would listen to recitals of problems and sorrows with a kind, grave, blank face. He took in and set everything in a wider frame. He never intruded or insisted; rather, he suggested. Often enough he answered a question with another question. He made gods and men, giants and dwarfs feel that they had been helped to answer their own questions.”

It is hard to know what to think of a man such as Kvasir. Grateful I am for the range of history and biographies dealing with the gods and the Angels; or the number crunching gnomes that search for herds of cows, so that they might listen once more to the twelvefold symphonies of the spiritual music and chemistry of their lost homelands hidden in the cows great digestion ( ) ; or the mighty air sylphs who bathe with the Eagles in the light ether;or the singing birds who transform the astral music of nature like a tea kettle, skimming the cream off the wisdom and light spoken by humanity and sending this wisdom as song upwards to nourish heaven; Loki and Lucifer; Ahriman and the Fenrir Wolf, I am grateful for these treasures. What can we say when a man like Kvasir is real and not a myth? What can we think of such a one as Kvasir?

I should think we might try to understand why his blood was so valuable to the gods. I should think we should try to understand what is meant by the etherization of the blood. Because that is what the Nordic Initiates proclaimed in their MEAD OF POETRY. I think we should try to understand the two dwarfs, Fjalar and Galar, who cause Kvasir’s death and then drain him of his life’s blood.

“They poured honey into the jars and cauldron filled with Kvasir’s blood, and with ladles stirred the mixture. The blood and honey formed a sublime mead: whoever drank it became a poet or a wise man.”

Those damned dwarfs. Why do they want to grab something so amazing, as a human being who speaks the LOGOS and opens for all the world a universe of real names and Beings that none can gainsay?

“The stories of Kvasir’s wisdom soon reached the ears of a most unpleasant pair of brothers, the dwarfs Fjalar and Galar. Their interest soon turned to envy and their envy ( ) to energy, for they could not admire anything without wanting it for themselves.Norse Myth Spiritual Science Fjalar and Galar Slaying Kvasir They asked Kvasir to feast with them and a large gathering of dwarfs in their cave under the earth and, as was his custom, Kvasir accepted. The table was a long slab of uneven rock, the floor was grit and the wall-hangings were dripping stalactites; the talk was chiefly of profit and loss and petty revenge; the food, however, and the tableware, all made of hammered gold, were rather more pleasing.”

All people are not made the same. All individual human spirits are not equal, therefore all men are not spiritually created equal. We have shown that the smallest amount of iodine or an unstable level in blood sugar or perhaps a disposition to cancer illuminates or foreshadows the very content of the person we are dealing with. This is to say that, with most of our lives we deal with a mere tip of the iceberg of who or what a person might really be. Astonishing or shattering it becomes, when with Angelic eyes, we truly realize that before us is a human being who has been intimate in our destiny for many, many lifetimes. Kvasir was a unique, one of a kind, divine cosmic fluke of manhood. Some of the earth-spirits are intensely wise, quick, impatient and clever when confronted with such insights. Earth elemental spirits are part of the silicon conspiracy of intellectual information and data, against which, wisdom and cosmic intelligence are caught in our present information age.

Kvasir was that rare blend of poet/seer that stood for the ideal of humankind. Humanity was meant to know the secrets of heaven and earth. Humanity, in its ideal condition, was meant to understand the riddles posed by Dwarfs, gnomes or Angels. We were meant to be conversant in the mysteries of the nine worlds and actually be able to honestly answer and outline the apparent contradictions between physics and metaphysics. It is within our grand design to be the go-between, between worlds.

Earth dwarfs and gnomes have had an attitude problem since time began. It comes with the territory of being a gnome or dwarf that they enter in close contact with hazardous materials. Gold and the poison in human intelligence are distinctly hazardous to the health of certain communities of earth spirits. In order to facilitate their job of distribution, profit and loss they have had to be strict accountants of material factors. Humans have begun merging with their kingdom through silicon technology. Speed and efficiency in running technological processes, upgrades, liquid crystal and chip development have brought us right onto the borderland of these feisty hoarders.

Their treatment of Kvasir reveals a selfish greediness involved with the earth planet that is latent in the mineral technology of the very tight fisted kingdom of creators who are associated with gold, silver, lead, quartz, mercury, tin, copper, and numerous man-made alloys. Ours is the evolution of merging and mixing divine wisdom with the mineral kingdom.

Our first stop in the Necklace of the Brisings was to sleep with the first Dwarf. This is, presently, the hormonal and psychic merging with the mineral kingdom. The details involved with that merger reveals our passage from human/cosmic intelligence into the wisdom matrix of the earth. “Into thy hands I commend my spirit”. The exchange rate has much to do with Kvasir and Freyja. While cosmic intelligence has been woven into human intelligence with Kvasir, Freyja represents a much higher metamorphosis, upwards to an entire new human and hormonal reproductive model where the power of the WORD carries cosmic reproductive repercussions.

The honey sweet sap of the cosmic LOGOS runs down the cross into the Grail and drips its sun-gold onto the parched mineral plain of the solid earth.

“If these should hold their peace, the stones would immediately cry out.”

Fjalar and Galar, as representatives of the stone and mineral kingdom, were envious of something in Kvasir that stirred them down to their greedy little cores. Human history testifies as well to an incident in which the specific blood of a human mortal went way beyond the usual blend of chemical combinations. History reveals that a three-year breach allowed the most stupendous crack of light and love to enter down into the very deepest crevices of matter. If each human being does their job and sustains cosmic intelligence into the core of the earth, it can change the entire intelligence of the mineral kingdom into something very rich and strange indeed. This, we witness, is already happening in our frantic addiction to silicon technology.

Our current cultural directive allows our clever, greedy and narrow-minded I.Q. rate to merge into a kingdom vastly wiser and cleverer than our own puny self-proclaimed Darwinian monkey skulls. Kvasir’s wisdom (different from intellect) was respected through-out all the kingdoms, on every plateau of consciousness where humans, gods and demons held political opinions or hidden agendas. It was expected, predicted, and is now being fulfilled that humanity would bring this great cosmic mix, that Kvasir represented, as its bargaining chip, to the table, in our present negotiations with the mineral world. Kvasir would probably describe our silicon neighbors in glowing words. He might say:

“Now it is true that when we find silicon present in a form like quartz, it seems – from a material standpoint – of little importance for the soil and its associated plant growth. Quartz is not soluble in water – water just trickles around it. Thus, at first glance, it seems to have little to do with the ordinary, obvious prerequisites for life. But then take the horsetail plant – Equisetum; you will find that it contains up to ninety percent silicic acid. It has the same thing that is in quartz, but in the plant it is very finely distributed.

“From such things you can begin to see what great significance silicon must have. Indeed, almost half of everything we meet on Earth consists of silica. Strangely enough, so little notice is taken of silica today that it is still virtually excluded even from those areas where it could have an extremely beneficial effect… Silica is a significant ingredient in many medications, and a whole class of illnesses is treated by giving silicic acid either internally or externally as baths. These illnesses are characterized by disturbances that show up in the senses – although they do not actually originate in them – including also the inner senses, which convey pain from the organs. The senses are influenced in a remarkable way by silicon. And silicon plays the greatest imaginable part not only in the body, but also in the whole household of nature, if I may use this traditional expression. Silicon is present not only in quartz or other rocks, it is also present in extremely fine dilution in the atmosphere. It is actually everywhere.

“Half, that is, 48%, of the Earth available for our use consists of silica. What then does this silica actually do? Let’s put this question in a hypothetical form. If there were only half as much silica in our earthly environment…”

Kvasir would say that the dwarfs Fjalar and Galar wanted the earth to become saturated with silica so that it surpassed a mere 48% and surged up to 60% or 70%. Their intention was to have silicon chip personal computers in every household. They envisioned that the human community could be dominated by silica forces up at heart and head levels. They hoped to induce contact with humanity in such a way that the intelligence of human beings could be bridged and siphoned off so that cosmic intelligence might be enslaved to the tendency already infused within the gnome and dwarf community. Misdirected greed might easily translate into avarice within the human community and divert the goal of cosmic brotherhood from happening but make it darn comfortable for the aggressiveness latent in the mineral world. Kvasir might openly spell out such matter of fact activities and dangers inherent in tendencies where human and silicon kingdoms begin to make contact, merge and overlap.

“…Fjalar and Galar asked Kvasir for a word in private. Kvasir followed them into a gloomy chamber, and that was a mistake. The two dwarfs had knives hidden in their sleeves, and at once they buried them in the wise man’s chest. His blood spurted out of his body and Fjalar and Galar caught it all in two large jars and a cauldron. Kvasir’s heart stopped pumping and his drained white body lay still on the ground.

“When, after a while, the Aesir (Angel kingdom) sent a messenger to ask after Kvasir, the two dwarfs sent back word that he had unfortunately choked on his own learning, because there was no one in the nine worlds well informed enough to compare and compete with him.”

The Mead of Poetry and THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH have much to do with how we navigate the shoals of the mineral, silica kingdom, with our newly won poetic intelligence. Living hexagonal crystal formed in darkest lightThe quartz crystal realm of silica is an hexagonal mystery. It is truly a cube when looked at in the right way. We see it when cameras catch the light in the lens at a certain angle. We see it in movies with virtual mode themes like LAWNMOWER MAN II. An hexagonal image suddenly appears formed from light.

The Bees-honeycomb is a revelation of intelligent activity raised up from the solid mineral kingdom to the waxy aspect of the plant world. The Bee creates wombs of hexagonal structure in order to form the sun-spirit bee Queen, worker and drone. The lenses on the eyes of bees and dragons flies are hexagonal and our DNA are made of specific hexagonal structures fitted puzzle wise onto the double helix. “But Fjalar and Galar were delighted with what they had done. They poured honey into the jars and cauldron (THREE CONTAINERS) filled with Kvasir’s blood, and with ladles stirred the mixture. The blood and honey formed a sublime mead: whoever drank it became a poet or a wise man. The dwarfs kept this mead to themselves. No one else tasted it; no one even heard about it.” The silicon structure is light bearing, therefore intelligence and light flow through our silicon highways.

Silica runs secretly into the plant kingdom when the bee transforms the hexagonal crystal force into the honeycomb and this crystalline system finally terminates in our bone marrow and immune system white and red blood cells. “The blood cells, especially the red and white blood cells, contain more quartz-like properties, and the nervous system contains more an electromagnetic current. The life-force and consciousness use these properties to enter and stimulate the physical body. There are various quartz-like structures in the physical and subtle bodies that augment the impact of vibrational remedies. In the physical body, these areas include: cell salts, fatty tissue, lymphs, red and white cells, and the pineal gland. These crystalline structures are a complete system in the body but not yet properly isolated and understood by modern medicine… These properties in the body magnify the life-force of vibrational remedies to a recognizable level to be assimilated. Indeed, these crystalline properties are relay points for most ethereal energies to penetrate the physical body. This allows for a balanced distribution of various energies in correct frequencies, which stimulates the discharge of toxicity to create health. In a similar fashion, vibrations of radio-wave frequencies strike a crystal in a radio.”

“Some of the effects quartz crystals are able to have upon humans relate to a particular resonance effect that occurs with our own crystalline structures… Science has recently begun to recognize a new class of crystals known as liquid crystals. They have a structure which is partially crystalline and partially fluid. Biology is beginning to understand that many substances and membranes within the human body appear to function as liquid crystals. From a subtle-energy perspective, a number of solid and liquid crystalline structures at the physical level are involved in the attunement of subtle energies within the nervous system and the flow of the life-force through the body… Certain aspects of the human energy system have the same transformational properties as natural quartz crystals.”

The infused cosmic intelligence and light in Kvasir’s blood is something that is going to work through the natural realms of biology and nature all the way up through our nine stages of being and development.

Rudolf Steiner (See Link)

“The manner in which Odin himself worked upon his peoples in order to make speech possible to them has been preserved in a wonderful way It was described as a divine initiation. The way in which Odin gained the power to endow the souls of the Germanic and Northern peoples with languages is thus described Odin, before he had acquired this capacity, had gone through what is represented to us as the initiation by means of the Potion of the Gods [MEAD OF POETRY], that divine Potion which once upon a time in the primeval past belonged to the giants. This Potion contained not merely abstract wisdom, but it represents to us the wisdom which expresses itself directly in sound. Odin at his initiation obtained power over the wisdom which expresses itself in sound, he learned how to use it when he went through a long initiation which lasted nine days, from which he was then released by Mimir, the ancient bearer of Wisdom. Thus Odin became Lord of the power of Speech. It was for this reason that the later sagas trace the language of the poets, the language of the skalds [SKALDSKAPARMAL(Poetic Diction], back to Odin. The art of reading runes, which in olden times was thought of as being much more closely related to speech than the later kind of writing, was also traced back to Odin. Hence the way in which the soul — indirectly, through the etheric body, whilst making itself at home in the physical body — acquired speech through the corresponding Archangel, is expressed in the wonderful stories related about Odin.”

Odin the all Father is going to have to penetrate into the mystery of The MEAD OF POETRY. The Etherization of the blood becomes a concern of cosmic proportions. If it falls into the wrong hands, the entire treasure of cosmic intelligence can be wasted or frittered away by the selfish agenda of greedy dwarfs and misguided men. Intelligence that is wasted or frittered away by human beings is also part of an agenda driven power game in our battle with the giants, the multi-national titans of our so named information age. With cuddly dwarf names like Micro-soft one has to wonder if Gates is not some sort of a gate-keeper.

In bargaining for their little malignant lives, the dwarf community barters away Kvasir’s blood to the giants. Up till now I have had a problem understanding what and who these giants were until I tripped over some cryptic passages in the Ragnarök saga. In the Ragnarök saga the finished work of the gods, our eco-system and placement within the divine order of things, reaches a deadly confrontation. The giants play an important part, along with chip technology, that astonished me as I comprehended the detailed picture that the Nordic initiates were sending down to our own time.

Defining the giants role in our lives today would certainly be very helpful for all departments of knowledge concerned with silicon technology. The bigness of the giants and the smallness of the dwarfs must be something we can get a handle on. It was after all the reason why Fjalar and Galar forfeited the greatest treasure of human richness ever aged and heated in a cauldron. We can be confident that, while the Initiates were combing the horizon of their vision to see the far parameters and implications of unknown events in their future and our present, we might be able to find clues hidden in their far-reaching communications that tune us into the missing factors involved with our own present confrontation with the silicon world. I don’t think that is too much to ask for do you?

If Kvasir were asked about the impending events of Ragnarök he would be very calm and confident about the future. I on the other hand find our present social speed and density, of mixed cleverness and unethical development, a source of wild anxiety. But Kvasir knew more than dwarfs and more than mortal men like me. In fact, from the documents at our disposal it is clear that the greediest of the dwarfs and gnomes, the number crunchers of the cosmic mineral world, couldn’t really benefit themselves by becoming poets and seers. It was necessary that they give up the Mead of Poetry, but why to the giants?

Tolkien, it is said, had a conversation with the immortal shade of Kvasir the same way Dante did with Virgil and from it came the dreaded saga of THE LORD OF THE RINGS. Tolkien did not present a confident and calm vision of the realm of mortal man, the dwarfs, elves and various higher and lower spirits working in the warehouse of nature and spirit. If Empedocles could have reported his findings in the elemental world after he dove into the volcano (See link to Volcanic inner Earth Mysteries), he might have handed in a report similar to Tolkien’s. His was a noteworthy report on a life and death struggle, within the neighboring elemental communities, and the psychic and demonic world that was wresting itself away from the very fabric of decency that was the finished work of the gods. But Kvasir certainly wasn’t as nervous about the divine powers that sustained him and created him from their combined peace-spittle as Tolkien was about the present hidden drama in the underbelly of spiritual history.

Kvasir would more calmly take the subject of Ragnarök and the giants in his stride and with thoughtful brow and eyes slightly closed he would recall the pertinent Initiate information handed down by Gods, Angels and Skalds. He would then compare these vast meditations with our present world and link them in a most marvelous and undreamt of manner.

First he might say that the red cock FJALAR plays a significant role in the Ragnarök saga, when it is time to wake the giants. Indeed the Earth awakens when the cock feels the Sun forces tremble through its blood. The name of the dwarf who steals the blood of Kvasir and the early warning cock who begins the break-up of the finished work of the gods is none other than FJALAR. This cocky FJALAR signals to the giants that the time is come. The roosters red comb or the Romans crest with their kin Romulus and Remus nursed by the She-Wolf, daughter of Fenrir, has awakened in the human kingdom and begins to crow. Fjalar who fancies himself cock of the roost in the dwarf kingdom would feel this mighty pulse of anti-sun-wisdom when it awakens in the Earth caverns first.

“This night before the cock crow, thou shalt deny me thrice.”

Matthew 26:34

“Thy SPEECH betrayeth thee. Then began he to curse and swear, saying, I know not the man. And immediately the cock crew.”

Matthew 26:73

When the final signal was given for the ecological destruction of the finished work of the Gods, Kvasir would call attention to the fact that the giants would be crammed into a great boat with many ports. The odd thing about this boat, loaded with giants to assault the citadel of the Gods and begin Ragnarök, was that the giant boat was made exclusively of chips from dead men’s finger nails. Kvasir would say very calmly that these chips continue to grow from the finger nails of dead men and women when they are laid in their graves. Finger nails and hair are silica based and continue to grow even though the body is deceased. Naturally the Skalds could see that tiny chips of silica, grown from dead mineral forces, could make the hull and body of the ship that carried the giants to Valhalla, into a most sinister weapon indeed.

If silicon chip technology could be imprinted than the dead who have had themselves wedded through and through with silica would carry specific data that could be I.D.ed and fuse the world of the dead with the living. Dead news and dead information and things still warm vs things dead that were moments ago alive would be part of the ratings war. In point of fact an entire common culture with complete educational systems could be developed on the basis of dead information. Faith in the living research skill of human spirits who merge with higher initiation would be constantly contradicted by the reports from the world of dead information. The Skalds, the nordic seers and poets pointed to a time when these signs would be apparent to all. Cosmic intelligence would be drained and siphoned off using the magic of the fallen Devachan kingdom of magnetism and electricity to oppose the source where thought and light imprints itself from the free activity of the human spirit.

In education we can clearly observe the end of the century movement that has:

a.) forced people away from the land into urban centers;

b.) created total reliance on produce and control of products that have fallen below organic and honest standards of dietary intelligence, i.e. nature was severed from its potential upward development, and, is now proceeding in a downward second FALL;

c.) Corporate GIANTS or multi-national corporations built the 9 to 5 mode of work but family life and the human spirit were betrayed for the cultural paradigm of the consumer animal;

d.) Schools declined and human spirits who could represent to the children a living, breathing example of cosmopolitan and universal values were sucked into the `web’,`net’ or deceived by the cultural consumer animal paradigm.

e.) Home schooling allowed the virtual office and work at home ideas of modem and fax to be severed from actual classroom social spirit that might have shaped the individual with a renewed dynamic psychological structure;

The Result: `X’ Generations dilemma at entering a complex established world of political, spiritual and psychological giants but society offering them only immature, video game responses with anemic if not atrophied forces of intuition.

Poetic intuition can only be nursed by meeting the community of humanity with our karma. Instead of this, a non-flesh and blood, computer generated, karmic copy has been substituted for real communities. Education and universities fell into political and sexual splinter groups, each writing and rewriting intellectual cynicism. Nature and the environment fell and jails became the new boarding houses for our failed human experiments.

Perhaps you consider that your lawn, garden and home are your isolated sanctuaries against a violent world. But pollution, crime, crud, robbery and mayhem are our leftovers either as radioactive fall-out or as social fall-out. Abnegating our power to restore nature, restore humanity and honor the least of these, our children, giving them back a world where humanity works for the recovery of the human spirit, abnegating this responsibility is a supreme act of cowardice and betrayal. What we have bequeathed merely creates a complex video theme park of a former divine world, while we, snail-like, retreat into our own consumer generated, virtual real cyberspace carapaces.

Kvasir would say that there is an odd thing about giants, they have no sense of humor, lack the eye of courage, the wit and the wisdom that spans the nine worlds. Kvasir would say humanity is an on-line spiritual bridge to the nine worlds and all their visible and invisible inhabitants. He would say, Earth is the blend of these nine worlds and humanity is the goer between. “Monstrous as the giants may be, there is a reassuring sameness about them;… But Fenrir, Jormungand and Hel are a different matter: they are Loki’s offspring, extensions of the enemy within, the only enemy that can affect and corrupt and finally destroy the spirit of the gods.” Here Kvasir might mumble something about a text written in modern words by Robert Kennedy, something about the ENEMY WITHIN.

Seeing the confused look in my eye Kvasir would adjust himself and stare upwards for a few seconds and sigh. Where would you hide those giants? Big dumb giants? Kvasir knew, all I knew was that Kvasir was a human being with intuition and wisdom pulsing in his blood. Like a bee he could search out the nectar in any question and alight on it.

Giants aren’t good for much, he might say. But they are equipped with vast dumb memories that carry all the information but none of the spirit of the universe. Vast and slow, they can retrieve things and run simple errands and follow simple commands but they can not pierce into the vast framework of the nine worlds of heaven and earth and act with freedom. They are not equipped to carry the light torch of the mighty astral thought light-beacon that can seek and focus in on, and assimilate, the history and intentions of the spirit. Face to face and eye to eye the giants have not developed conscience but are slaves to their enormous memories. Men might think that giant memories are better then their own true spirit eyes and spirit knowing, this would be a fatal error if men were to rely on the giants bounded and contained by the chips from dead men’s nails. Kvasir might say.

The data from dead men’s finger nails, silicon chips from the corpses of dead information and meaningless dislocated facts, wisps of biographies from ghosts haunted by shame and dread are not the same as the light beacon that lives in the blood of the living, wholesome human heart. The heart of the spirit that lives and breaths as a healthy revelation of humankind, speaks and carries a different imprint/ a different slant on wisdom and idealism. If men long dead can be reignited, by programs and systems they have left behind, hidden in the chips of their nails as they sailed into the regions of after-life, then truly the giants can build an empire from the dead facts of the universe. “A third cock ( ), rust red, will raise the dead in Hel.” These dead facts will truly kill the spirit of the gods.

“Our sufficiency is of God: Who also has made us able ministers of the new testament; not of the letter, but of the spirit: for the letter killeth, but the spirit giveth life.”

2 Corinthians 3:5

To use the giants to attack the gods is to marshall memory against the spirit of man. Living memory is linked to the identity of the single reincarnating human spirit who carries in each of his steps, in each of his breaths, in each of his heart beats, in each of his deeds and in each of his words, the ongoing courage of immortality. Dead memories are doomed minds who have fed themselves on dead theories and have cemented these theories into a global tomb. Memory is a wonderful personal history of heart breaking reality. Information showered in rains of giant piss is research pouring down on empty heads without a bucket. Kvasir might say.

Hammering data and crunching numbers however, is part of the gnome and dwarf’s life blood. They have a dishonorable relationship with giants because one is tiny and clever and the other is vast and dumb. The alliance humanity desires is neither with tiny and clever nor vast and dumb. But that is the exact definition and contract that has been struck. The tiny clever silicon chip of the gnome and the vast dumb memory system of the giant are what we have united with. It is also how the Nordic Initiates perceived the sell out of Kvasir’s blood by dwarfs to the giants.

The giant Suttung wades out into the deep ocean and drops the two dwarfs who stole the blood of Kvasir on a skull of rock called a skerry. Gol as in Golgotha and skull come from the same linguistic roots. Out at sea is no place for Dwarfs. The giant Suttung literally threatens the gnome community with becoming slaves to the human skull. The worst nightmare of a gnome is the possibility that if they fall asleep they might easily enjoy the water. To perhaps fall asleep surrounded by water, or ether, chained to the skull of human thinking might make these creatures become what they dread. Frogs! Frogs and toads are the gnomes worst nightmare. If they fall asleep in their incessant number crunching they literally croak, which is where the term croak came from. When a gnome or dwarf croaks he falls into the moony rhythms of the frog and becomes what Fjalar and Galar feared most they might become.

“…Suttung dumped Fjalar and Galar on a skerry, a sopping rock standing just clear of the water.

…`Since it has come to this’, said Galar, `we’re willing to offer you our greatest treasure.’

Then Fjalar described their mead, both its origin and power, with a wealth of words.

…He took the precious liquid straight to the mountain Hnitbjorg where he lived. Suttung hewed a new chamber out of the rock at the heart of the mountain and put his the three crocks in it. And he told his daughter Gunnlod that she had one duty: `Guard this mead by day and guard it by night.”

The alliance humanity truly requires is with cosmic intelligence and human blood not illicit enslavement to giants and dwarfs. Giants may contain cosmic memory but they cannot use cosmic intelligence. Humanity can use and contain within their intuitive, poetic and spiritual development both cosmic memory and cosmic intelligence. Humans, like Kvasir, are warmed through to the heart and have access through all realms of spirit and matter. Underestimating the value of the human spirit is done both by the giants and the dwarfs. As a society we have entered into a compact with Beings that haven’t the depth or level of development that is our own cosmic right. The mockery, scorn and increased greed and avariceness coupled with violence and sadism is coming from below not above.

Through the transformation of conscience and drama, Speech and the WORD, which comes from the heart, the wisdom of the world can be downloaded to the earth through the human. “Into Thy hands I commend my spirit” means into the hands of human ethical, living spirits who carry the reality of the Father in their actions, words and thoughts and are capable of divine metamorphosis, and carry in their hearts the cosmic power of love linked with divine intelligence.

One of our hands has already been linked with the Fenrir wolf, in fact bitten off by him. Our hands, presently, are used to tap typed computer glyphs. Carpal tunnel syndrome of bone aching hands and wrists fettered to the jaws of the Fenrir wolf also tell of our over played hand. Our blood must become THE MEAD OF POETRY. Through it the milk of the human throat, our WORD, becomes fertilized by cosmic intelligence. (Helen Keller & Anne Sullivan) This brings an upward evolutionary curve to all of creation. This allows the pollination of the Word.

Technology is inevitable. It is part of our evolution from ancient Saturn, Kvasir might say. It is not something the ancient Skalds felt they could run away from. The cosmic forces of Fenrir were mighty and dangerous, yet they were part of the great powers invested in the scope of the immortal gods. For humans to master the mineral plain and make contracts with the neighboring silicon kingdom of the gnomes and dwarfs requires wariness towards the unleashing of these mighty forces.

Contracts between giants and dwarfs must be viewed clearly for what they are. Chip technology is married to giant memory systems. The third factor is the user. Worshiping dwarfs or giants will not get humanity linked back to its upward evolution. Suttung giant Memory and dwarf chip technologyWhat such unholy unions can promote is the virtual fall of humanity into the snares of sub-nature and dark technology. Virtual worlds outside the precincts of the eco-system and built solely on psychological addictions to sub-worlds just might be where the entire population of humanity is giddily headed. Our priorities must be invested in the noble rank and cosmic blend of blood that Kvasir and the Nordic seers represented in THE MEAD OF POETRY.

The Nordic seers knew that it was a bad day for naive and trusting Kvasir when he `did lunch’ with Fjalar and Galar. Contracts, negotiations, profit and loss, all these are consumer dreams deposited as corrupt moral impulses into the lower mineral kingdom. With the advent of faster computers the stock markets moved from their sluggish hundreds and thousand during the 1920’s to their five, six or 10 thousand average daily trading levels. Our ethical or unethical qualities are imprinted directly into the silicon world. The sudden conspiracy against human intelligence that carries cosmic intelligence is reenacted every day on Wall Street.( ) Sincerity was part of the psychological make-up of Kvasir. It was in his blood.

“Be ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless as doves.”

St Matthew 10:16

Since it is clear we must merge with the first level of the four ethers, the first of the four dwarfs that Freyja agrees to unite with, our first stop is the silicon world, along with all the other qualities of the metals and hidden forces that chips of matter or fingernail chips can convey to us. What more concrete picture could the Nordic seers have left us, but the whole context connected with chips from dead mens fingernails. We truly have embarked on a great adventure. The Nordic seers knew this and understood that the Mead of the blood in the human being was a unique and sacred blend that needed to be cherished and preserved.

Odin realizes that this great MEAD OF POETRY, this rich blend of blood and honey has become more than it was when Kvasir lived, it has aged and ripened. That is also a secret. This blood, carried in the veins of humanity, holds the rich and eternal dreams of the old Gods for their future. Fermenting out of the old recipes for making mead requires a fermentation process to make it truly grand.( ) Dwarfs acting selfishly, have in fact, once more, served the intentions of the Gods. This etherized brew of cosmic and human intelligence has fallen into the hands of a Giant and its three great jars are now guarded by Suttung and his giant daughter Gunnlod. (The giant goddess we worship today is the giantess DOWNLOAD) The three great jars of brewed Mead sit in a chamber hewed “out of the rock at the heart of the mountain”

“In MYTH AND RELIGION OF THE NORTH, E.O.G. Turville-Petre says that there is an Indian parallel to the creation of the mead of poetry from Kvasir’s blood in which the four parts of a slain monster represent four kinds of drunkenness; and in another Indian myth, soma, an intoxicating drink that stimulates the voice and gives immortality, is stolen by an eagle from an iron fortress.”

Freyja brings us into relationship with the four ether seeds of the parathyroid with her encounter with the four dwarfs over THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS. Four Parathyroid glands and the reproductive center of Speech Four different kinds of drunkenness or inspiration are operative at the foundations of the world in the structure of north, south, east and west, but also out of the Ark of the Covenant which focused the field of the earth plain and initiation science against the background of the Bull, the Lion, the Eagle and the Angel. Those became in the course of time our four gospels, capturing the biographical revelations of the incarnated LOGOS in the records of Matthew, Mark, Luke and John. On these primal foundations lay the four parathyroid glands that raise the hormonal development of the human reproductive and Speaking Being to a new cosmic prototype. We were meant to ascend from sexual reproduction to Word, Ego-imprinted, divine speech.

In order to retrieve the kidnaped MEAD OF POETRY, the blood of Kvasir, Odin must place himself as the tenth in the nine worlds. A great work of harvesting the wisdom of the nine worlds is going on now. Nine mercenary harvesters were hired to work for the brother of the giant who holds Kvasir’s sacred blood. Odin is the tenth and enters as the tenth worker, better than all the nine put together. Odin places himself in proximity to the hidden containers of Mead by offering his services to the greedy brother of the very giant who guards the sacred THREE.

The fact that nine worlds and nine psychological and biological phases of human and spiritual development are broken into three groups of three; and that there are three containers of the sacred Blood of Kvasir, are very important to the spiritual scientific researcher. One of the containers was described as a cauldron and this cauldron must be the heart region because cauldrons were used for cooking. One of the containers is named Son.

Kvasir’s blood, the fermented Mead, has now been placed in the cosmic containers of the divine triad. The blood of Kvasir reflects this triad, and can be found in three compartments. We can easily recognize the FOUNDATION STONE MEDITATION drawing us toward our own transformation of blood. In our Thinking, Feeling and Willing; or in our relation to Truth, Beauty and Goodness; or as we apply these three elements culturally, in our society as Science, Art and Religion; we dip our ladles, our tongues, into the MEAD OF POETRY. In Speech Training we recognize these three portions as those of Lyric, Dramatic and Epic placements and focus.

“Nine thralls were working in a sloping field, men from Midgard with a taste for adventure and handsome reward. They were scything the succulent grass with long, slow sweeps, and seemed very weary.”

Earth is certainly interpenetrated by nine worlds. ninefold spiritual psychological system munchA harvest is underway. A gathering of collected data into upgraded and programmed systems is very much underway at present. A virtual world walk-in museum of scattered laser generated computer graphic enhanced scraps of knowledge is being offered as psychic harvest for the starving masses. A world-wide web of semi-dead knowledge is now in the process of being harvested for the world-wide dead.

Odin as the tenth of the nine represents the sharpened faculty of thinking, the eagle of our psychic development. The Native Americans and the St. John gospel would have been in complete agreement if it wasn’t for the greed and the formalized betrayals of the United States against the ecological wisdom of the Native Americans. The Native Americans had raised the fallen Scorpio forces of nature up to the Initiate vision of the Eagle. It could have been an easy step to honor that great deed and inaugurate an education of the human race that aimed for the next stage, the dove. Odin, the tenth, “drew a whetstone from his belt and began to put a new edge on the scythe, the other thralls crowded round in the hope he would hone their scythes too.”

Humanity is the tenth amid the nine worlds and the Nordic, Aztec, South American, Mexican, Mayan, Inca, Dante, Spiritual Science and the Catholic church all honored the nine worlds. This is an enormous comparative study yet to be attempted. What was the incarnating field or active differences between Nordic and South American research by initiates into the nine worlds?

Nine layers of the inner earth bring the human being into the deepest matters of life, death and evil that can be reckoned with. The tenor of moral difference between how the Aztec initiate dealt with the nine layers of the inner earth and how the Nordic seers and Initiates dealt with it makes one wonder if there wasn’t a psychic intersection where the two opposing fields struggled over the moral axis of earth evolution. Dante There is ample evidence to prove that such penetrating initiations on both sides of the equator held different stand points on what honor and fairness were to the human spirit or to the demons locked in the center of the earth’s magnetic and gravitational workings.

“In India the wisdom of the Brahmins lay at the foundation of human life. In Europe this was indeed withdrawn into the background, but it existed in the Norse Mysteries where the European Brahmins had to make good again that which had been spoiled through the betrayal in the old Atlantean epoch.”

The sinking of Atlantis and the trail of linguistic evolution that leads us to the Inca, Aztec and Mayan cultures has to do with the abuse of the oracles of Atlantis. The initiation into the gold mysteries, the aura of gold in its present form, is a catalyst for psychic greed. A stage lower on the scale and greed becomes AVARICE, which has its own animal and serpent like rewards.

Below the black school of avariceness is sadism etc., the dwarf and gnome kingdom of silica have a moral downside which the Norse Initiates warned and defended us against. Southern hemisphere Aztec avariceness is interwoven and part of the present basis of Darwinian social engineering geared to the preservation of our psychologically adapted economic consumer-animal society. On the other hand gold is the representative of the wisdom of the Sun in the material of earth.

To sit in a virtual classroom and be taught virtual lessons by a mirage or computer generated icon of the honest teacher, geared to whatever racial or preferential image sentimentality dictates, is to re-enter, once again, the ancient Atlantean conflict. The upward development of thinking that veered away from genetic and nature manipulation by use of etheric and magical forces, was the cause of the split in Atlantean culture and the basis of a common global catastrophe that linked itself to the Sphinx of Egypt. We see the mighty Pharaohs headdress and those of Bali and Thailand and we can see the virtual world of clairvoyance that was operative as an outside eye-ball or umbilical cord, visionary plug, carried from old Atlantis through the blood as divine leadership, all the way to the GOLD crown of Kings. Now down to the last death throe of the blood, we see the so-called Royal couple, Diane and Prince Charles, dry up the last dregs of that blood-line mystery. (Obvious dramatic historical and tragic events have happened since I wrote this.)

The struggle and sinking of Atlantis came from the social rift in the upward and downward development, the abuse and misuse of clairvoyant, etheric and magical forces woven in the numbers and patterns of real nature and biology. One group developed toward the Gobi desert and escaped the sinking of Atlantis in the fabled Ark. Another group went west and developed in South America.

But the main internal social conflict of old Atlantis was between those who were considered racial retards because they were developing forebrains and strong earth spines, which were the first germs of materialistic or rational thinking, and those who built blood/genetic fusions with clairvoyant manipulations of nature. In old Atlantis, conscience and the use of human freedom in the realm of lawful, divine nature, was inaugurated by reject, retards. These `retards’ were cast off from the main stream of normal black magic clairvoyant schooling that was part of the consensus consumer development and public education of declining Atlantean culture.

The main body of dark initiates wanted to manipulate the genetic and animal-human kingdoms and dislodge the laws of nature and insert their own arbitrary clairvoyant choices for the pleasure and commerce of the Atlanteans. This plan was thwarted by the sinking of Atlantis. The laws of the stars and the biological laws in nature were to be preserved as divine factors instead of manipulated and distorted out of recognition. Today we are witnessing the reverse effects of the Atlantean fall in our own time. We are once more faced with a reverse Atlantis, a sinking of all nature’s complex species and a fall into virtual worlds and genetic arbitrariness.

Virtual reality is a growing form of materialistically induced clairvoyance that is opposed to the upward development of the Word. Using Melatonin and pituitary and pineal endocrine boot enhancers, humanity is about to unplug divine creation and plug in man-made software packages of virtual detached and disconnected consumerized giddy clairvoyant deceptions. The Logos and the laws of creation were given in the lawful model of the human form which a GOD has re-programmed upwards and a away from the fall by using the bodies higher potentials and designing a new prototype based strictly on the triadic human structure and the nine-fold human and cosmic pattern. The secret of Kvasirs divine blood, infused with Solar power, ignited the upper triadic levels of higher spiritual seeds. The higher metamorphosis of Atma, Budi, and Manna from the human psychic structure.

The new Atlanteans are splintering, again, into two groups. Those who want, arbitrarily, to create manipulated nature species under the research banners of genetics and biological warfare experimentation, while mixing hormonal psychotropic drugs, and giving semblance and clairvoyant actuality to virtual reality by diverting sound human insight and morality away from the real Fall of nature and the human spirit. While the other group seeks the upward lawful contract with creation forged by the incarnated Logos who brought the etherization of the blood and the Human WORD into its divine potential. The DNA of man the higher Angelic being; and the DNA of man the virus laden fallen god; once more stand at an Atlantean threshold, only with new stakes.

As in old Atlantis, our present majority sees nothing but harmony, idealism and joy in this path to the hallucinatory solution to our upward moral and spiritual goals. On the Christ/Buddha path nature is reunited in a non-arbitrary manner to its upward cosmic destiny and begins reinforcing the health and maturity of the human spirit based on the model of the Logos. We are the image of that Logos, which was only complete enough by 30 A.D. to allow us to receive a new upward revelation of the human prototype.

The Aztecs, as well as Philip the Fair, who tortured the Knights Templar and stole the brotherhood out of international banking, used gold initiation as a method to enter the dark circles of the nine layers of the inner earth. A corrupted version of genetic manipulation and betrayal of the Sun Mysteries was the reason behind the sinking of Atlantis. Gold, greed, sadism and avarice are clearly the global banking motto to live by today. The Nordic seers apparently were forced into spiritual pay-back to help adjust the malignant mysteries which remained active through human sacrifices and the schools of dark initiates clustered around Aztec altars dedicated to Venus and gold that remained as feeble remembrances of the conflict that sank Atlantis. The psychological toll today, in those who experienced the Templar purge and torture, remain as psychic stumbling blocks to those who face the cross roads of the this 98/99 century crossing.

Odin enters the story of THE MEAD OF POETRY as the tenth worker among nine mercenaries. We humans are the TENTH HIERARCHY, the Angels belong to the ninth. Odin has a whetstone that can sharpen the dull blade of thinking. Odin sharpens the blades of the other nine mercenary harvesters and offers his prized whetstone to them, he throws it into the air for one of them to grab and in the hustle, “the thralls jostled, they stepped backwards, they suddenly swung round; and in the end, in their confusion, they all slit one another’s throats. The nine of them lay in the long grass they had just cut.”

As members of the TENTH HIERARCHY human beings have the option of freedom, love and thinking that allows us to do deeds of freedom and enables us to keep our wits sharp because of the blending of the nine worlds, specifically arranged for our observation and thinking. That is A PHILOSOPHY OF FREEDOM. The world arranged around us acts as a whetstone to our thinking and wits. The harvesting of the nine worlds means that human beings must play a significant role in the harvest process. To say that consumer cut-throat actions and mercenary ethics have only dull blades in their thinking system and cannot compete with an Initiate who works with the divine wisdom of cosmic intelligence is an understatement.( ) Cosmic intelligence comes to the service of Initiate wisdom and this increases the ratio of divine assistance in proportion to our integration of human intelligence with cosmic intelligence. The human being who works with the divine has the strength of ten.

We have in Kvasir and THE MEAD OF POETRY a covert rescue mission, initiated by a disguised Odin. Two giant brothers with two different dull agendas must be outwitted by Odin. One giant using the nine worlds to harvest wisdom and increase its store for the autumn and winter and his brother who seems better equipped, the giant Suttung, are at unfriendly odds with each other. The harvest will totally fail unless the earth intelligence, represented by Suttung’s brother BAUGI finds more helpers. His other harvesters of the nine worlds have just killed themselves off leaving the one divine/human spirit, with one-eye,( ) Odin of cosmic intelligence, to harvest the remainder of earth’s wisdom.

Odin does not scoot around the work of harvesting earth wisdom, rather he takes on the entire harvest by himself.( ) A ratio is established here of nine to one. One free spirit against nine unfree spirits can accomplish more through SPIRITUAL ECONOMY simply by working with reality instead of against it. Odin represents the tenth or initiated humanity.

Locking down the MEAD OF POETRY that carries the imprint of the peace agreement of all worlds, the spittle of the gods and the answer to the riddles of both gods, demons, giants and dwarfs, held in three different containers by the giant Suttung, literally means that the poetic and intuitive education and initiation of humanity is to be blocked and made immensely difficult to attain by normal means. Earth society and Earth intelligence will stand like giants against the individual human intuition.

If the two giants have their way, the etherized blood of Kvasir will be exchanged on the market slowly by supply and demand. Scientists would be hired by Suttung to evaluate the substances in this strange mead and create drugs that imitate its magical power. The actual Mead is meant to nourish humanity, for our use as mediators of cosmic intelligence. Yet it is also something we are capable of creating in ourselves, through our own spiritual efforts. It is to serve as inspiration, love and wisdom for the rest of the nine worlds. To find the source of it, salvage it and honor it, as the highest essence of earth evolution, is to comprehend the mystery of the Grail and comprehend the actions of Odin to save the Mead of Poetry.

The triad of forces that come from the Father, the Son and the Holy Spirit as the triad of containers that contain the elixir that raises thought, raises feeling and raises will up to the highest level of inspiration, stand for the mystery of THE MEAD OF POETRY. Kvasir understood how to answer and pose the questions; what to look for and how to respond to difficult riddles of human existence or divine affairs. Luckily for us such men do exist and luckier still are those who know where to find the MEAD OF POETRY. The FOUNDATION STONE MEDITATION leads one to this elixir or ichor of blood, the recipe for awakening in each of us the MEAD OF POETRY.

“Anthroposophy is the preparation for everything that will come in the future. Those who take the process of man’s evolution seriously resolve not to allow the soul’s development to come to a standstill but to ensure that its development will eventually enable the spiritual part of the earth to become free, leaving the grosser part to fall away like a corpse – for human beings could frustrate the whole process. Those who desire evolution to succeed must acquire understanding of the spiritual life through what we today call Anthroposophy. The cultivation of Anthroposophy thus becomes a duty; knowledge becomes something that we actually experience, something toward which we have responsibility. When we are inwardly aware of this responsibility and have this resolve, when we experience the mysteries of the world so as to arouse in us the wish to become Anthroposophists, then our experience is right.”

True, Kvasir is no myth. Such human beings are on the rise. We must not wait for leaders and gurus. We must take up what a living representative of THE MEAD OF POETRY has answered of the riddles of human existence. If we have understood these riddles we must continue to search for the MEAD ourselves and search for those brothers and sisters who have tasted it. It is a heady mixture of light and wisdom and not everybody is capable of sipping this magnificent brew but we of the TENTH HIERARCHY are designed, not to become drunkards but, to quietly and patiently stand as mediators in the turbulent or peaceful coordination of the nine worlds.

Honeyed words dipped in the blood of wisdom are balm for men, giants, Angels and dwarfs. The real myth is the myth we believe we live as isolated consumer-animals enjoying ourselves in a toyland of technology. By severing the community of conversation and brotherhood and replacing it with subservient silicon dwarfs and clumsy memory giants we have placed something between our hearts and our words. This also is part of THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH.

In conclusion to our study of THE MEAD OF POETRY and our much needed work towards the attainment of the etherization of our own blood, we finally enter, through the snake, the serpent, double helix, DNA or Kundalini, the stone fortress of the great Giant Suttung.

Odin disguises his true name, while working as a harvester and travels under the pseudonym of Bolverk. Bolverk means bulwerk or as the dictionary defines it, “any person or thing giving strong support or encouragement in time of need, danger, or doubt.” Saying “During the crisis, religion was his bulwark” sets the example. So Odin uses this as his code name and we might associate the twentieth century as a time when we needed Spiritual Science as a bulwark against the attacks from materialistic science.

Penetrating the mountain fortress of materialistic science, Odin uses an auger. auger He is able to drill into the skull like mountain fortress of Suttung, with his auger, but he requires the dumb brother of Suttung, Baugi, to help him drill. Odin needs a little crack, a tiny lever, just a bead that he can use to crack the code of materialism itself and unlock the hidden Mead of Poetry that has been hidden away and distilled from the blood of Kvasir. In the dictionary the word auger descends from the word adder or viper. A hole driller that can enter like a snake into the mysteries of earth.

“Be ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless as doves.”

St Matthew 10:16

Odin turns himself into a serpent and using the hole made by the auger, finds himself in the inner complex of the labyrinth of the mountain rock built by the giant Suttung, who is not user friendly to Spiritual Science. Suttung merely stores and selfishly hoards Kvasir’s blood for purely utilitarian interests. But his daughter, poor thing, is shut into the inner sanctuary. Very much like the core of Mother Earth herself, Gunnlod sits in the recesses of the mountain fortress on her stool of gold merely guarding the etheric treasure that could renew the planet and nature herself. She represents the pituitary gland prior to the transformation of the heart that is achieved by listening and discovering the romance between the human soul and truth.

“Gunnlod was sitting on a stool of solid gold. And at the sight of Bolverk (Odin), Suttung’s stern warning that she should guard the mead flew right out of her head. She was not sorry to have company. She sat and listened to Bolverk’s beguiling words and songs; she wrapped her arms around him; Odin and Gunnlodfor three days they talked and laughed and for three nights they slept together. In the silent cave under Hnitbjorg, the heartless father of the gods made love to the spellbound daughter of Suttung. Then Gunnlod was drunk with passion and ready to give Bolverk whatever he desired. He asked for three draughts of Kvasir’s blood and Gunnlod took his hand and led him to the mead. With his first draught Bolverk emptied Odrorir, with his second draught Bodn, with his third draught Son. The Father of the gods held all the divine mead in his mouth.

“Then Odin turned himself into an eagle, flapped down the passage out of Hnitbjorg, and headed for Asgard.”

Everybody seems to have to sleep with somebody if they want to get something from anybody. Freyja needs to have sex with the four dwarfs to gain THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS and Odin/disguised as Bolverk needs to charm, enchant, stimulate, seduce and arouse Gunnlod the daughter of Suttung. The songs he sings are songs he learned while he hung on the Tree of Life or Yggdrasill. These songs are the archetype of the nine regions for which Christ hangs on the Tree of the Cross. Nine songs for the nine worlds were learned and these great poems, were part of the seduction Odin needed to charm Gunnlod off her golden pedestal. The etheric currents come into the hidden fortress through Odin and cosmic intelligence. These refined forces stimulate the development of the pituitary in order to release the secret of the mead. These same songs were charmed by the cunning dwarfs into the making of the nine rings that Tolkien describes in his great work, THE LORD OF THE RINGS.

These same songs are included in what Christ speaks of in the Beatitudes[SEE LINK] from The Sermon on the Mount. Grand mysterious formulas that weave, enchant and charm the nine worlds and the nine fold structure of the human being. The nine layers of the inner earth are seemingly equal to the human blueprints that make the basis for our physical, etheric, astral, sentient soul, intellectual soul, consciousness soul, spirit-self, life-spirit and spirit-man. The human being is meant to find the words and the meanings to all worlds. He is the soother, the comforter, the mediator and the voice by which the divine recognizes itself and understands.

These same, strange rings that Tolkien, Wagner and astronomy speaks of, are apparently of the same type as the rings Saturn has. Only the reversed image and polarity, of that which the earth has as her layered interior core. But with Saturn they appear to us as its exterior rings.

To be a Lord of the Rings means being able to penetrate the inner earth mysteries while incarnated and after death to reach the outer Saturn reincarnation mysteries. A wave-like cosmic reverberation carries the human soul from incarnation into space toward the inner earth mysteries and outwards after death to the far-point where Saturn and the gods intone their karmic response to our individual destinies.

The waters of the etheric worlds, like the water and ripples on a pond, reveal a tightly connected system that runs from earth core to Saturn’s outer rings. The borrowing and transforming of these mighty ether fields is hidden in speech and the parathyroid glands.

A Bodhisattva can make use of these ether fields, to some degree, but the Sun-Spirit-Christus is able to step up, miracle, by miracle, from water to wine; to the raising of Lazarus; to the Resurrection, the entire nine fold integration and beyond, of that which comprises the material and spiritual both as atomic table and etheric cohesion.

Here the intoning field of matter and spirit, formerly outside of the earth, has moved its resonation field to the inside of the Earth. To build a complete dove like Resurrection body requires enormous agreements or mastery within the planetary community. A Being of immense order entered the earthly matrix. Coordination between Saturn and the intimate subtle bodies and karmic structure that each individual carries will now be under the active leadership of the Lord of Karma, the new Lord of the Rings. The Sun centered field of immortality, in progress, has shifted to an Earth centered field, in progress. The new CEO is here amongst even as we speak.

All of these delicate and shattering mysteries are clearly within the seduction of Gunnlod by Odin. The sound waves that allow us to hear reveals how Odin bored into the skull, to where the solidified gold in listening, is slightly warmed by Gunnlod sitting on it. Through our ears we hear, but ear is also in the word heart and in the word earth. Gunnlod is so entranced by Odin that she warms up on her stool of gold and begins to heat up the hidden gold that connects both heart and earth to the ear.

What is so wonderful about this seduction and this heating up is that the Fallopian tube that transports the ova from the ovary to the uterus is designed in the same way as the Eustachian tube of the ear. In listening, as Gunnlod is doing with Odin, her heart and her reproductive center not only wants to hear more of Odin’s fascinating words but while listening she becomes in the mood for the entire reproductive stimulation that mating and egg production entails for the female. How is this so? How can this be true? Because Bartolommeo Eustachio (1524-1574) connected in his research both the Eustachian tube and the uterus.(CLICK LINK FOR DEEPER RESEARCH) You can look it up in the dictionary. His colleague, Gabriel Fallopius, (1523-1562 both men living in Italy) connect the uterus with the inner ear. Fallopius looked into the chorda tympani, sphenoid and ethmoid bones.

eustachionThis means that the new uterus of Freyja uses the listening ear and the warmth that penetrates the heart as a way to produce the new spoken forces. The spoken word and the listening ability, not attention span deficit, begin the actual production of new cosmic forces. Gunnlod may not yet be saying much, but she is doing a lot of listening to the rich romantic occult tales of the master storyteller Odin. For her, eggs and ova are forming and the mood to mate with the heavens, to establish and consummate a vertical relationship with the core of gold and truth that comes from Odin’s lips, are like kisses, that stimulate the passion and hormones of the endocrine system which eventually lead to either very good sex or cosmic intuition as conception. The Nordic initiates wove all these minute details into the wonderful seduction of Gunnlod guarding the portal to the chamber of the etherization of the blood. First, the initiates said, you must listen to the sound of truth till it fills your heart, later you will learn to distribute potent etheric forces that are the Mead of Poetry distilled from Kvasir’s blood.

Rudolf Steiner and the structure of the Ear

“Passing now from within outward, that which adjoins the inward portion of the inner ear, and which science calls the stapes or stirrup, appears in the light of spiritual science as a metamorphosis of a human thigh-bone with its attachment to the hip. And the little bone which science calls the incus or anvil, appears as a transformed knee-cap. Finally, that which passes from the incus to the tympanum or drum appears as a metamorphosis of the lower part of the leg including the foot. But the ‘foot’ in this case rests not on the earthly ground but on the drum of the ear. Within your ear you actually have a human member — a transformed metamorphosed limb. You might also describe it thus: First, the upper arm (only that in the arm the ‘knee-cap’ is undeveloped, that is to say there is no anvil), and then the lower arm — the other ossicle which rests upon the drum. Just as you touch and feel the ground with your feet, so do you touch and feel the drum of the ear with the foot of this little ossicle. Only the foot with which you walk about is coarsely formed. Coarsely you feel the ground with the sole of your foot, while with this hand or foot which is there within your ear you constantly touch and feel the delicate vibration of the drum.

“Let us now go farther back, within the ear. We come to the so-called cochlea or ‘snail-shell’. It is filled with a watery fluid, which is necessary for the act of hearing. What the ‘foot’ touches and feels upon the drum has to be transmitted back to this spiral cochlea, situated within the cavity of the ear. And now once more: Above the thigh we have the inner organs, the abdominal organs. The cochlea within the ear is none other than a beautiful, elaborate metamorphosis of these inner organs. And so you can imagine, there inside the ear there lies a human being, whose head is immersed in your own brain. Indeed, we bear within us a whole number of ‘human beings’, more or less metamorphosed or transformed, and this is one of them.

“What does all this signify? If you study the origin and growth of man not only with the crude science of the senses; if you are aware that this human embryo as it develops in the mother’s womb is the image of what went before it in the pre-earthly life; then you will also realise the following. In the first stages of development in embryonic life, it is above all the head that is planned and formed. The other organs are comparatively small appendages. Now — if it only depended on the inner potentialities inherent in the germ, within the mother’s womb — these appendages, these little stumps which afterwards become the legs and feet, could equally become a kind of ear. They actually have the inner tendency, the potentiality to become an ear. That is to say, man might grow in such a way as to have an ear not only here, and here, but an ear downward too. I admit, this is a strange saying. Nevertheless, it is the truth. Man might become an ear downward too. Why does he not? Because at a certain stage of embryonic development he already comes into the domain of the earthly force of gravity. Gravity which causes the stone to fall to Earth — gravity, implying weight — weighs upon that which tends to become the ear, transforms it and re-shapes it. And so it becomes the lower man in his entirety. Under the influence of earthly gravity, the ‘ear’ which tends to grow downward is changed into the lower man. Why then does not the ear itself change in this way? Why do not its ossicles change into fine small legs right and left? For the simple reason that through the whole position of the human embryo in the mother body, the ear is protected from entering into the domain of gravity, as happens with the little embryonic stumps that afterwards become the legs. The embryonic ear does not enter the domain of gravity. Hence it preserves the plan and tendency which it received in the spiritual world in the pre-earthly life. It is in fact a pure image of the spiritual worlds.

“Now we understand how the earthly world of sound is the physical reflection of the heavenly harmony of the Spheres, and how man is a product not of these earthly forces but of heavenly forces, who places himself into the midst of the earthly. Moreover, we see how he places himself into the midst of the earthly. He would become an ear downward; and if he remained in this state he certainly would not walk, but would assume another kind of movement; for he would have to move on the waves of cosmic Harmonies, even as the tiny image, the little bone in the ear, moves on the waves of the drum. With the ear we learn to hear; with the larynx and other organs that lie towards and within the mouth itself, we learn to speak and sing. You hear some word, for instance Baum or Tree. You yourself can speak the word Tree. In your ear, in organs formed and modelled after heavenly activities, as I described just now, there lives what you express in the simple word Tree. Again, you yourself can say the word. What does it signify that you can say the word Tree? By the larynx, by the organs of the mouth, etc., the earthly air is brought into such formations that the word Tree is expressed. There in reality you have a second ear, over against your hearing. And there is yet a third, which is only insufficiently perceived. When you hear the word Tree, you yourself with your etheric body — not with your physical but with your etheric body — speak the word Tree very quietly to yourself; and through the so-called Eustachian tube, which passes from the mouth into the ear, the word Tree sounds forth ethereally, going out to meet the word that comes to you from without; and the two meet, and thus you understand the word. Otherwise you would only hear it and it would be nothing in particular. You understand it by saying back through the Eustachian tube what comes towards you from outside. In that the vibrations from outside meet the vibrations from within, and interpenetrate, the inner man understands what comes to him from without.”

Wise Odin escapes the skull like fortress of the giant Suttung as an eagle and scales the halls of heaven. A shadow eagle, the giant Suttung himself, follows him. St. John is our resident eagle who sits on the high branches of the Tree of Life. In hot pursuit of the mighty mystery of the etherization of the blood comes the shadow of the sun-spirit. “Soul conflicts and trials of conscience proclaim the new Christ-nearness; for, like a shadow, the conscience accompanies the paths of Christ” while on earth we deposit our spiritual activity into the heart of the earth. The Mead of poetry was given as a solution to the conflicts of the cosmos. The human being working on the etherization of her blood understands how the blood caught by Joseph of Arimathea leads to the strange mystery of the Grail.

“…in England the Grail wanders from place to place. On this level, therefore, it fulfills the descriptive title given to Rudolf Steiner for it by the Norwegian Folk-Spirit – `GANGAND GREIDA,’ The Wandering Viaticum. In the Valthrudismal, Odin refers to himself by the name Gangradr, the Wanderer.”

This ties together the very deep connection that exists between THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS and THE MEAD OF POETRY. It is on Good Friday that the consummation of the mystery of Parsifal occurs. The wearied knight at long last returns to the holy precincts of the Grail Castle. It is in this moment when Gurnemanz, who keeps a holy hut on the edge of the Grail forest, answers the sorrowing Parsifal as to why Friday is Good. Why should humanity keep sacred a day when we slew a God? Certainly it should be considered one of the blackest days in human history.

Gurnemanz explains to Parsifal that the potent ichor or elixir of highly etherized blood fell to the earth, soaking it. This blood had become a solar power of the highest magnitude. The blood that spattered the ground from His wounds, that gushed from His side when the spear pierced Him, the same blood caught in the cup of the Grail, was received into the parched pores of the dying Earth. Nature herself, wounded by the Fall, with all her reserves from the lower kingdoms of mineral, plant, animal and humanity stood, completely depleted.

PARSIFAL- How fair the fields and meadows seem today! Many a magic flower I’ve seen, which sought to clasp me in its baneful twinings; But none so sweet as here, these tendrils bursting with blossoms whose scent recalls my childhood’s days and speaks of loving trust to me.

GURNEMANZ- That is Good Friday’s spell, my Lord!

PARSIFAL- Alas, that day of agony! Now surely everything that thrives that breathes and lives and lives again should mourn and sorrow?

GURNEMANZ- Thou see’st that is not so. The repentant tears of sinners have here with holy rain besprinkled field and plain, and made them glow with beauty. All earthly creatures in delight at the Redeemer’s TRACE so bright uplift their pray’rs of duty. To see Him on the Cross they have no power; And so they smile upon redeemed man, who, feeling freed, with dread no more doth cower, through God’s love-sacrifice made clean and pure: And now perceives each blade and meadow flower that mortal foot today it need not dread; For, as the Lord in pity man did spare, and in His mercy for him died, all men will keep, with pious care, today a tender tread. Then thanks the whole creation makes, with all that flow’rs and fast goes hence, that trespassed-pardoned Nature wakes now to her day of Innocence.

The cycle of the invisible rays of light that fed the Earth and made for us the solid mineral metal light called Gold and the liquid sunlight called honey, had finally so permeated a Human Being, Jesus of Nazareth, that His blood became the very Sunlight from which it all began in the first place. The complete cycle that runs from crystal, through metal, up the stem of the plants to the hyperglycemic sugar in the sweet honeysuckle, to the bee, to the sugars that supply the energy in the human blood, had finally arrived where the microcosmic human word met the macrocosmic human Logos.

The Plant blood of chlorophyll that uses its leaves () as hands for photosynthesis in order to transform light into plant tissue now had the same nourishing sunlight on earth with them, only now incarnated as a human being. The blood and breath from this Being, breathed the very light of the sun with every exhaled breath and beat of His heart. His blood was potent, dynamic, infused solar energy. In very fact the Sun itself was breathing through a mortal frame. The clothed CONSONANTS and VOWELS were in effect newly born elemental beings of light and love, christened by the etherized blood beating in the chest of a Human Being. (In this light it is not so odd to comprehend a being like Ariel standing guard over the work of Shakespeare or absorb a powerful new language force like Eurythmy) As the Sun-Being Christ lived, breathed, spoke, fallen nature, could at last, breath a sigh of relief. The leaf sap or blood that flowed from the Cross was literally a super-sun injection of powerful rejuvenation that tsunami wise, travelled like light to every parched quarter of nature’s weary heart.

“We understand this when we turn our eyes to the Mystery of Golgotha, to the moment when the blood flowed from the wounds of Jesus Christ. This blood must not be regarded simply as chemical substance, but by reason of all that has been described as the nature of Jesus of Nazareth, it must be recognized as something altogether unique. When it flowed from His wounds and into the earth, a substance was imparted to our earth, which, in uniting with it, constituted an event of the greatest possible significance for all future ages of the earth, and it could take place only once. What happened with this blood in the ages that followed? Nothing different from what otherwise takes place in the heart of man. In the course of earthly evolution, this blood passed through a process of `ETHERIZATION.’ Just as our blood streams upward from the heart as ether, so, since the Mystery of Golgotha, the etherized blood of Christ Jesus has lived in the ether of the earth. The etheric body of the earth is permeated by what the blood that flowed on Golgotha became.”

Here THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH had arrived at its highest goal. Ahura Mazdao, as the living divine factor of the sun, had made a contract within the heart/pineal cognition of Zarathustra. The agreement targeted a ray into the core of Zarathustra, like a living laser Holograph, this sun seed would find its way with greater efficiency than Nasa could ever imagine, into the core of Jesus of Nazareth. Both Shepherds and Kings would track it to a single geographic pin-point landing, linked to the incarnation and heart of one Human Being. If we ever wished to understand precision, tracking, targeting, voice identification or thought imprinting we must understand this event. We have sophisticated ways of determining the identification of people, through credit cards, voice and retina scans, thought patterns and the greatest is the immortal tracking of the incarnating ego spirit. We all walk like needles in a haystack, but we have an identity, we have a history, we have left a karmic trace pattern that can be researched like we pull up files on a subject.

In creating a bridge to understanding how the Initiate Zarathustra could experience the Sun-Spirit as an inner contracted fact that leads him to his incarnation as Jesus of Nazareth, we must compare St. Paul. The light of the Sun that shaped the eyes and tells us, were not the eye sunlike it couldn’t receive the sun, also can receive laser generated, man-made, virtual light. Thereby man-made hallucinations and computer programs can be generated from these degenerated forms of light. With St. Paul we can observe that this Sun-Being, who now acts in the etheric aura of the earth, blinds Saul, and knocks him off his high horse. His former sight is ripped clean out of him or is totally overwhelmed by the true light of the sun, so that he sees, like Zarathustra had foreseen, the arrival of the Sun-Spirit. The inner connection between Paul and Zarathustra must give us something to think about to be sure. Paul has no choice but to understand that his former identity has been completely erased, and he has acquired new eyes. His job into the future will be to build the concepts of the Christ that fit the new eyes that are developing in human beings.

Love, compassion and wisdom were so mixed and chemically potentized in Jesus of Nazareth that the miracles promised could be achieved. This fulfillment applied not only to how the Initiates had shaped the Nordic mysteries; why Odin hung on a cross; why we acknowledge nine hierarchies in christianity etc, but also Christ’s fulfillment applied to every form of written or spoken TRUTH from old testament prophets. Just as the Sun shines on everyone equally, give or take equatorial and seasonal axis shift, Skalds, Prophets, Seers, Bodhisattva’s, Buddha, brought the Destiny of Human Speech in line with the great Logos Sun-Mystery. When that Sun lived fully in Jesus of Nazareth, he uttered, walked, talked and performed the exact mythic text that was seen, read, and spoken of since the beginning.

Bio-creation made an enormous leap from the very base level of nature’s life and death power, to the achievement of nature’s highest physics reversal. The Human larynx, illuminated by the dove, using the dove blueprints, had so infused the blood of Jesus of Nazareth with its nurturing forces that the uterus could shift upwards and a man do what no man has ever done, give birth to himself. It is a highly complex question of divine bio-mechanics when we juxtapose the centripetal and centrifugal fields that constitute the external construct of the sexes. Can a male develop a uterus from the Larynx? Is this the strange key factor in why Jesus of Nazareth was a male, because of the possibility of reverse bio-physics and the procreative field in the deepened male voice?

The answer to this question is an amazing piece of medical insight. “Chromosomes,carrying genes, pair up like twin meeting twin. The chromosomes from the mother link with an equal number from the father, each pair determined by the type of information the genes carry. The two genes determining eye color lie at identical places on either side of the chromosome pair. This arrangement is true for all twenty-three pairs, save one. The differing pair determines the sex of the child. Females have two X chromosomes; males have an X and a Y. The mother passes on an X chromosome, and the father, either an X or a Y. Two X chromosomes produce a female, and the combination of an X and a Y make a male.” This powerful, shattering insight reveals to us that the male brings the potential for the Dove mystery of bi-sexuality in his chromosomes.

Basing our assessment on the accomplished dove mystery, my answer would be, women and men are able to approach this central mystery of the WORD equally. The WORD is an unbiased, nondiscriminatory, user friendly field that places the new procreative science of the WORD at the disposal of micro-logos and macro-LOGOS. It is an equal opportunity mystery for women and men alike. Apply within!

This tells us clearly that instead of sex divided on the horizontal plane of existence, the new sex is a vertical issue. The unified field of female and male crafters of the WORD can now approach an entirely new definition of discrimination. Those who are stuck in the politics of horizontal sexual differences, gay rights, male chauvinism, militant feminism, as well as transvestites and parents who seek earthly determined sexual bias; stand against those who have begun a-sexual relations in the vertical, between the Macrocosm and the Microcosm. Those invited to the CHYMICAL WEDDING are Grail/Sophia human beings who have been called to a new path in THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH. It is a lyrical poetic marriage of higher intuition and freedom between the Macrocosm and the microcosm. To this, each individuals heart and mind must discover the path for themselves. But the meeting ground is decidedly the HUMAN WORD.

“How can a person be born when he is already old? Can he return to his mother’s womb to be born again? Jesus answered, `Yes, I tell you this: Whoever does not come to a new birth through the formative power of the water and the breath of the Spirit cannot gain entrance into the Kingdom of God. That which is born of the element of earth is itself earthly in nature; but that which is born of the breath of the Spirit is itself wafting Spirit.”

Vertical relationships draw us upwards. The sensations and moods that inspire our admiration, respect and love, come from signs, signals and joys, as we discover tips, winks and nods, even kisses of a sort. Nature and Spirit becomes our vertical affair. Divine Beings make up the essence of our contacts, but they do not require us to baby-sit their dysfunctions. On the contrary, they play in the exhalted feelings of joy and courage which awaken in us.

We discover truth as we would discover the secrets of a lover. Our interests are invigorated, and we feel as if we had been personally understood and responded to. Everyday leads us to deeper insights into the wise wonder and evident Beingness of responses that go right to the heart of our highest aspirations. We have to learn to cherish the fond higher friendships of the Spirit that are intimately loyal and fair no matter how badly we fall short of ourselves. Slowly from within our own intimate interests, Beings in nature, and Beings who love light and intelligence and love, come joyfully towards our childlike and astonished vertical investigations.

The nourishment of our own Ariel and the entire Grail mystery hinges on the etherized food that comes from our transformed blood. Our new eyes and new ears are fashioned from Kvasir’s blood or the Mead of Poetry, which takes place in the Grail or cup of our skulls. That is why the entire vintage Mead of Kvasir’s blood is stored in an impenetrable mountain fortress. That is why the Grail Castle was in such an obscure and impossible location.

The snake hole that Odin drills with his auger is the same anatomical construct as the human ear. Our ability to listen stands against the nervous disorder of attention span deficit. Can we hear and understand our formidable social issues, which loom giant like, before we are able to see? “Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed: blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed.” The etherization of our blood depends very much on a new form of hearing and a new form of seeing. This new form of seeing and hearing evolves from our gradual, Grail-like, transformation in our hearts and our hearts blood.

“The next step is connected with warmth. Man’s activity is to be sought in what streams out form him as inner warmth. Out of what proceeds from warmth: passions, impulses, instincts, desires, wishes and so on, Karma arises. Just as the parallel organ to the ear is the organ of speech, so the parallel organ to the warmth of the heart is the pituitary gland, the Hypophysis. The heart takes up the warmth from outside, as the ear does sound. Thereby it perceives world warmth. The corresponding organ, which we must have, in order to be able to produce warmth consciously, is the pituitary gland in the head, which at the present time is only at the beginning of its development. Just as one perceives with the ear and produces with the larynx, so one takes up the warmth of the world in the heart and lets it stream forth again through the pituitary gland in the brain. Once this capacity has been achieved, the heart will have become the organ it was intended to be. There is a reference to this in words from `LIGHT ON THE PATH’: `Before the soul can stand in the presence of the Masters, its feet must be washed in the blood of the heart.’ Then our heart’s blood streams out as today our words stream out into the world. In the future warmth of soul will flood over mankind.

“Somewhat deeper in evolution than the warmth organ stands the organ of sight. In the course of evolution the organs of hearing, warmth and sight, follow in sequence; the organ of sight is only at the stage of receiving, but the ear already perceives, for instance in the sound of a bell, its innermost being {Each etheric tone of the Bell is understood in Poe’s Poem of THE BELLS-(listen now)}.() Warmth must flow from the being itself, the eye has only an image, the ear has the perception of innermost reality. The perception of warmth is the receiving of something that rays outwards. There is an organ, which will also become the active organ of vision. This is today germinally present in the pineal gland, the Epiphysis, the organ that will give reality to the images that today are produced by the eye. These two organs, the pineal gland and the pituitary gland as active organs, must develop into the organ of vision (eye) and the organ of warmth (heart). Today fantasy is the preliminary stage leading to a later power of creation. Now man has at most imagination. Later he will have magical power. This is the KRIYASHAKTI power. It develops in proportion to the physical development of the pineal gland.

“In the reciprocal relationship between ear and larynx we have a prophetic model (vorbild). Thinking will later be interpenetrated with warmth, and still later man himself will learn to create. First he learns to create a picture; then to create and send forth radiations; then to create beings. Freemasonry calls these three forces wisdom, semblance (beauty) and power. (See Goethe’s Fairy Tale.)”

The new words to be spoken by the future Bodhisattva tell us that he/she must drink of Kvasir’s blood. But the work needed before we can feel and become supercharged by these future Bodhisattva’s words, so that we are pollinated, impregnated with the new procreative forces of the Dove must come from our approach to the mystery of the etherization of the blood. In our work we must have developed the sympathetic faculty of hearing the new nature forces that the Christ Spirit is activating through the WORD.

Normally the religious leaders of humanity, and the great intellects, who either have refused or merely do lip service to the TRANSUBSTANTIATION, have not taken these words seriously or scientifically enough.

“26 And as they were eating, Jesus took bread, and blessed it, and brake it, and gave it to the disciples, and said, take, eat; this is my body.

27 And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all of it;

28 For this is my blood of the new testament, which is shed for many for the remission of sins.”

Matthew 26:26-28

Body and Blood were ratios that would open an entire mystery into the powerful field of scale and variance in nature. Dr. Steiner took this ratio, established by the Christ, very seriously. Part of the research of the Science of the spirit came up with ratios that establish definite frequencies in nature’s warehouse. Four ratios, that I know of, have been given. The dog’s ratio of 10 parts body weight to 1 part blood was researched in the first part of the Destiny of Human Speech. The ratio of the bovine’s twelve parts body weight to one part blood, I examined in The Message of the White Buffalo. The ratio of the human being’s body weight to blood is thirteen to one. In this ratio, we have startling pictures that move the twelve of the last supper and the twelve of the round table and the twelve zodiacal forces upwards to thirteen, with the Lamb, with Christ and with Arthur at the round table. In the ratio of the Ass, a 23:1 ratio was established that gave us the concrete picture of why the Ass was considered, symbolically, the stubborn physical form, subject to death. This ratio of blood to body weight, was a key number that revealed the chromosome correspondences of the physical cell and DNA structure. This is my Body and this is my Blood is a powerful revelation to be reckoned scientifically and spiritually.

The pictures in nature that Christ reveals, are not merely symbolic systems, nor do they have to be taken in a passive, merely religiously dogmatic manner. The imaginations that appear before our senses as animals have been bargained with by the Logos, against Ahriman. A hell of a poker game, I might add. The forms we see are contracted pictures that preserve in their ratios great secrets of the stars and heavens. Christ did not want us to merely sit down passively with his powerful indications, his incredible Words and stare dumbfounded. It is His greatest pleasure along with Michael Intelligence, when humanity lifts the Sun-Being’s, Cosmic Logos utterances, diligently captured by eye-witness accounts, upwards to the Science of Mankind.

Odin presented these fabulous tales to dumbfounded Gunnlod as she sat on her golden pedestal made of solidified world warmth. Songs and Tales, so sensible and transparent that Gunnlod melted her solidified pedestal of gold. She felt the heat of Odin’s words tingle all the way down to her curled toes. The future Bodhisattva will speak directly out of the inspired world warmth contained in the Mead of Poetry. The CONSONANTS and VOWELS used by this person will have KRIYASHAKTI power able to imbue etherized life to WORD PICTURES. These will pollinate out from the human heart and conscience, and begin to fire up those dormant parathyroid glands into secretions. The solidified gold will begin to melt, because we are amazed, astonished and inspired by what we hear. We will begin to pronounce new elemental beings that will begin to mend the damaged fractures in our psychology and our ecology.

Etherized WORD PICTURES are constructed with CONSONANTS and VOWELS and breathing that dips into the lungs and receives warmth from the proximity of our hearts. In the working zone of the lung are the alveoli. “These areas consist of minute rounded air spaces surrounded by capillaries of the blood system of the lungs.” Out of the warmth of the heart, our words will become magnificent, the way Prospero commands a constellation of elemental beings through his thought-word speech.

The Bodhisattva’s words will be a tripled Prospero and enter into our conscience as we listen with our hearts. Preparation must be made for that type of quickening. If we have not learned to ignite our selves by then, he or she will fire us up like the forge where the Necklace of the Brisings was hammered to life by the four parathyroid seed dwarfs. The Bodhisattva’s words will heat us up like the cauldron where the container called Son held the Mead of Poetry, made from Kvasir’s blood. With active spiritual interest our hearts begin to simmer tenderly with every breath of compassion we breathe and every sun-lit inspiration that is brought to our minds eye by our personal light messenger, ariel. Marie Steiner, like Odin, loved to sing the songs of cosmic lyric. It is lyric poetry that raises the heart to the lips. It is cosmic lyric and cosmic thought that weaves and swims in the currents of Christ’s etherized blood.

Egyptian medical papyri dated from 2750 to 2625 B.C. revealed, “that the Egyptians regarded air itself as having a spiritual quality. Breathing, in their view, took air and spirit in through the nostrils and then via the heart and lungs. From these primal organs, it was thought that the vital spirit was distributed throughout the remainder of the body. The Egyptians knew about the air-filled Eustachian tube passing from ear to pharynx and surmised that the breath of death, counterpart of the breath of life, could enter the human body through the left ear.”

“Empedocles, a Greek physician and philosopher who lived from about 495 to 435 B.C., put this concept, with three other elements, into a formal framework. The four, which he regarded as the basis of all matter, were earth, fire, water and air, or pneuma;…he thought that breathing in and out served to cool the heart and blood. Blood itself was felt to carry `innate heat’ from the heart to all the other regions of the body.”

The forces of the parathyroid glands, P-thyroidthe four seed glands that start to release their potent energies will be activated by the fact that the Macrocosmic Logos and the ever present etheric Christ will have nursed our ears and eyes to comprehend and receive the fire from the AGNISHVATTAS, the fire fathers or Saturn forces, for the new blueprints of divine creation. It is we, ourselves, that must imagine it, with Christ or with the great Initiates who work with the Science of Mankind. The nature that we see disappearing today is not the new nature that the Etheric Christ is visualizing for his children in the animal and plant kingdoms. The words that we speak today are only beginning the new schooling to become what our WORDS will eventually become.

`Where the bee sucks there suck I’ brings us to another powerful insight into the forces surrounding the pineal gland. A light like revelation that is carried by Zarathustra(), St. Paul, Goethe, Emerson, Tesla and certainly lived as Shakespeare’s Ariel, can be awakened and schooled by us now.

“These rays of light stream from the heart to the head and flow around the pineal gland. These streamings arise because human blood, which is a physical substance, is continually dissolving itself into etheric substance. In the region of the heart there is a continual transformation of the blood into this delicate etheric substance that streams upward toward the head and flows glimmeringly around the pineal gland. This process, the etherization of the blood, can be shown in the human being throughout his waking life.

“…At the moment of waking or of going to sleep, these two currents meet, and in the man of low morality a violent struggle [insomnia which is the first indicator of cancer] between the two streams takes place in the region of the pineal gland. In the man of high morality and outstreaming intellectuality, a peaceful expansion of glimmering light appears in the region of the pineal gland. This gland is almost surrounded by a small sea of light in the moment between waking and sleeping. Moral nobility is revealed when a calm glow surrounds the pineal gland at these moments. In this way a man’s moral character is reflected in him, and this calm glow of light often extends as far as the region of the heart. Two streams can therefore be perceived in man – one from the macrocosm, the other from the microcosm.”

The etherization of the blood through the warmth ether, generated by conscience, nourishes ariel. Odin felt that this most valuable elixir should be part of the Harvest of Earth evolution and preserved for the future. If Kvasir were alive he might tell us, very calmly of course, that the reason this Mead must be preserved and cultivated carefully is because “…in our present age it is important that man should learn to understand that the knowledge contained in spiritual science must be received and gradually be able so to fire the streams flowing from heart to brain that anthroposophy can be understood. If this comes to pass, individuals will be able to comprehend the event that has its beginning in the twentieth century: the appearance of the etheric Christ in contradistinction to the physical Christ of Palestine.”

“And anon there came in a dove at a window, and in her bill there seemed a little censer of gold, and therewith there was such a savour as though all the spicery of the world had been there. And forthwith there was upon the table all manner of meats and drinks that they could think upon.

“So there came a damsel passing fair and young, and she bore a vessel of gold between her hands, and thereto the King Kneeled devoutly, and said his prayers, and so did all that were there.

“`Oh Jesu, ‘ said Sir Launcelot, `what may this mean?’

“This is, said King Pelleas, `the richest thing that any man hath living. and when this thing goeth about, the Round Table shall be broken. And wit ye well that this is the Holy Sancgreal ye have here seen.”

Before the Grail enters, a dove, the lost dove of Noah, returns once more from the Ark. The dove carries a censer of gold, a light, incense. Like the olive leaf brought back by the dove Noah sent out, the elevating scent of a thousand herbs preliminarily raises the psychic atmosphere before the Grail appears.

“According to Dr. Steiner, it was St. Paul, who wandered in his ministry, within the amazing epi-center field of the olive tree. The mediterranean forces, round which, St. Paul carried the light of the new Adam, genetic revelation, was the perimeter of the same etheric field that the Christ had penetrated, at that time. His cosmic love/light epi-center was rooted as the olive tree was rooted to the deep etheric forces of the earth”>According to Dr. Steiner, it was St. Paul, who wandered in his ministry, within the amazing epi-center field of the olive tree. The mediterranean forces, round which, St. Paul carried the light of the new Adam, genetic revelation, was the perimeter of the same etheric field that the Christ had penetrated, at that time. His cosmic love/light epi-center was rooted as the olive tree was rooted to the deep etheric forces of the earth. The cavities of air where nose, ears and throat are receptive to the pituitary field of warmth, sense all of nature’s greatest herbs and seasonings that automatically engages the salivary glands which produce the `MMM” sound. Right away, the dove and Freyja, get the juices flowing in the upper senses. This is what is reported when the Grail is encountered.

Between the transformed endocrine system and the warmed human blood stand the tale of Freyja and Kvasir. The dove and the Grail indicate, reveal and substantiate various genetic and anatomical mysteries that we must comprehend in order to restore the picture of our human forms and their immensely extensive potentials. Something incredible happened on earth and continues to unfold as each of us live and breath. Who would want to be the last one to know, the last one to stand wide-eyed, opposed to the upward tug of nature, our childrens future and the greatest quest of the human spirit since the Round Table broke up?

THE DEWS OF GOLGOTHA

by Isabel Wyatt

“From the dead cross the living waters flow,

Sweeping stark boughs to bud and blossom-thrust.

Into the soil is spilled the Sun; and lo,

The Earth begins to glow;

A living Grail is fashioned of its dust.

Out of Earth’s frosted flask its saps divine

Into this fruit’s globed goblet drip afresh.

Therefrom I drink a consecrated wine;

Make Earth’s elixir mine.

And thus a cup for Christ becomes my flesh.

This hallowed ichor in my being stored

Into a healing cordial is distilled-

A holy love-potion, to be outpoured

To Earth’s sick beggar-horde,

Till all Creation’s thirsty vials are filled;

Till brimming are the moon’s parched silver bowl,

The stars’ gold flagons, with the heart’s red dew-

A draught of health which streams from soul to soul

Till all that ails is whole,

The Earth redeemed, and all dead things made new.”

Odin, representing our own etheric body, regains the wonderful Mead of Poetry and for us the formula for approaching the etherization of the blood remains a crafted mystery locked in the poetry of THE FOUNDATION STONE MEDITATION. The cosmic etheric forces and the Nine worlds above the tenth, our human world, begin to be clarified through this fragment of cosmic poetry that begins to restore the deeds of Odin in our own etheric structure.

Each one of us are harvesters for the tenth hierarchy. Each one of us acts as his own Odin in the castle of the skull. Each one of us transforms, through our spiritual scientific maturity, a fermentation process that creates the MEAD OF POETRY in our thinking, feeling and willing. Each one of us begins to nurse a cosmic ariel, from our earthly intuition and intelligence. Each one of us begins our journey to Bodhisattva listening. Each one of us has the potential through the Jupiter and Venus evolutions of freeing our Angel and becoming a Buddha. Each one of us, through our understanding, gradually gains the ground of heart strung empathy and compassion to lift us to the new prototype of the Dove Mystery (CLICK LINK FOR DEEPER INSIGHTS).

It is the active Resurrected Etheric Christ who lives like the tide in all human hearts, as they flux and flow between waking and sleeping. He has won for us all the MEAD OF POETRY from the blood of Jesus of Nazareth; on the skull of Golgotha; from the Tree, on which He hung. An etheric breath that wafts and lists mysteriously as the Holy Ghost for “the wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the Spirit.”

For the Nordic Initiates, who else but the All-Father could assemble the destiny pieces to the giant puzzle of how to distill the elixir of love from the destiny, nature and anatomy of mortal man? threefold meadSince the Mead from Kvasir’s blood was produced in our earthly world, the etheric-body of every human being who seeks the Grail has access to something that is a product both of the gods and the human genetic prototype. In naming the three cauldrons that stored the blood of Kvasir, the seers of the north named one of the cauldrons THE SON. The entire nine-worlds were woven together from this great poem of THE FOUNDATION STONE MEDITATION and with this formula we re-gained access to Asgard, the Grail castle, Hnitbjorg, the Goetheanum and the ever present Representative of Humanity, our legal guardian.

“And the gods? They had lost wise Kvasir, witness to the friendship between the Aesir and Vanir. But because of the cunning of the All-Father, they had won back his blood. Once more Odin drank some of the precious mead. And from time to time he offered a draught to one of the Aesir or to a man or two in Midgard; he offered them the gift of poetry.”

The collapse of the Finished Work of the Gods

RAGNAROK

` There are within man organs of two different kinds, those which are on the way to becoming imperfect and will gradually fall away and those which are still in the process of formation. All lower organs, the sexual organs, will fall away. The heart and the larynx, on the other hand, are organs which will be perfected and find their full development only in the future.’

“The peoples advancing from the North-East in the great migrations, encroaching on the Roman Empire, took hold of the Intellectual or Mind-Soul more in the inner life of feeling. Meanwhile, imbedded in this element of feeling, the Spiritual-Soul (Consciousness Soul) was evolving within their souls. The inner life of these peoples was waiting for the present time, when the re-union of the soul with the world of the Spirit is fully possible once more.”

Anthroposophical Leading Thoughts:

pg. 215

“The old fairy tales, which are expressions of the ancient spiritual secrets of the world, have arisen because those who formed them for the world listened to those who could narrate to them the spiritual secrets. Therefore their construction and composition are in accordance with these secrets. Hence we can say that within them dwells the spirit of the whole of humanity, of the microcosm and of the macrocosm.”

Rudolf Steiner

No matter how you slice it, the rhythm of warnings comes in three phases. Ragnarok approaches in three rhythms. These rhythms and their effects were well illustrated by the Nordic initiates in order to counter act the onward rush of a deliberate, clear, reemergence of an Atlantean crisis.

Ragnarök constantly reminds me of Steiner’s last letters. It has always been eerie for me when Steiner describes how the Gods have finished placing the Beings, numbers, nature and systems of our senses, our stars, our minerals, plants, animals and the various fixtures and cosmic Beings that are operative within our FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, and left. Some translators use Accomplished Work of the Gods, I first encountered it as Finished work of the Gods and somehow that has taken hold in my mind.

Steiner relates in his Leading Thoughts how the Gods have gone on to other tasks. The making of the human being was their crowning work and with that completed they naturally went on to other tasks. They felt confident that with all the divine indicators left blinking and the city lights on, we would certainly find our way home. I think the Egyptian pyramids and tombs reflected that exact picture with all the fixtures and treasures left for eternity, the lights were on, but they had all gone, only the sarcophagus’ and the taxidermist knew where the ghosts had gone. The haunted house of our world appears empty now, except for us and the mice. In this vein it is hard for Americans to see that Elvis has definitely left the building. They cannot comprehend Graceland as a land permeated with grace, and the revelation that we live in, as the Finished Work of the Gods.

“During his physical life between birth and death man has a world around him in which even the WORKING of the Divine-Spiritual no longer appears directly, but only something which has remained over as its result; we may describe it by saying it is only the ACCOMPLISHED WORK of the Divine-Spiritual. This ACCOMPLISHED WORK, in all its forms, is essentially of a Divine and Spiritual kind. To human vision the Divine is manifested in the forms and in the processes of Nature; but it is no longer indwelling as a living principle. Nature is this divinely ACCOMPLISHED WORK of God; Nature every where around us is an image of the Divine Working.

“…Into this world that has become empty of God, man will carry what is in him – what his being has become in this present age.”

Georg Kuhlewind in his THE LOGOS STRUCTURE OF THE WORLD, enters directly into this Finished Work and what the Gods completed when they completed the bio-structure of humanity. What was this Accomplished act, this symphony, this concerto in minor/microcosm and major/macrocosm? THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH appears as the pinnacle, the highest goal of this Accomplished Work of the Gods. Kuhlewind says, “If nature still speaks to human beings, its speaking must come from beings who are themselves I-beings or who represent I-beings – if the latter have already withdrawn from their work.” Nobody else is going to be responsible for answering the riddle of the Finished Work of the Gods other than its highest representatives. Kulewind says, “…in the world the gods have created, the human is the only being through whom ideality, word, and concept as such can emerge and flourish. The Logos-world attains its first reality in the only Logos-being of this world.”

Now we live in this vast system. The gods and seers that had placed the signposts and roadmaps to get us to the Christ Being have now withdrawn. Humans faced with this colossal creation have decided to create a miniature in a bottle. Through Cyberspace humanity appears ready to institute what Steiner found highly dangerous and distasteful, sub-nature. It appears that contemporary culture, living in the vast mystery of this finished work, are lost. They cannot see behind the veneer of things, nor do they seem able to contact the operative fields and Beings who depend on us and hope to god we grow new senses to see them with.

To know the Fenrir wolf and the intentions and dangers we are breeding in a silicon universe is to understand how technical data has gained supremacy in human culture by invading the region of our intelligence.

“The Ahrimanic Powers try to prevent evolution from taking the course here described. It is not their will that the original Divine-Spiritual Powers should illumine the Universe in its further course. They want the cosmic intellectuality which they themselves have absorbed to radiate through the whole of the new Cosmos, and in this intellectualized and Ahrimanised Cosmos they want man to live on.”

When the Dwarfs kill Kvasir and the Nordic Initiates relate to us their intentions, including Wagner’s and Tolkien’s warnings, we should pay heed. Steiner and the Nordic Initiates warn us that our merging responsibility for tainted intelligence, down loaded to the silicon world, can easily become a one-sided trap. Immortal intelligence, Michael Intelligence, individual human intelligence is part of the vertical reproductive and immortal relations that the Dove and the Grail mysteries grant us.

It is truly a Pauline experience. Light rays back at us from our computers, t.v.’s, autos, and cinemas. But this is not the inner light we see in our dreams. The sparkle of enthusiasm that ariel brings into the mind and the warmth infused in the heart carry something amazing and immortal to the intelligence of the loving human spirit. “The Divine-Spiritual of primeval times no longer shines. The primeval Light appears again in the Light brought by Christ to the human ego. In the life in union with Christ this blissful thought may shine like a sun through the whole soul: `The glorious primal Divine Light is here again; it shines, although its light comes not from Nature.’ And man unites himself, while in the present, with the spiritual, cosmic forces of light belonging to that past when he was not yet a free individual. And in this Light he can find the paths which lead him aright as a human being, when his soul he unites, with understanding, with the Michael Mission.”

Zarathustra, St. Paul, John the Baptist, Jesus of Nazareth, Buddha, Goethe, Emerson, Tesla, Shakespeare and Martin Luther King Jr., have tracked this inner light and have guided their incarnations by its beacon. Hitler, J. Edgar Hoover, Francis Bacon, poor, sad, Nietzsche, and countless others have guided intelligence down hill so that humanity might fail to awaken to the experience described by St. Paul. Ahriman/Fenrir is hardly concerned with whether or not we adjust our intelligence towards this beacon or we steer for a new world order based on the themes presented in THE TERMINATOR movies.

Ragnarök and the destruction of the finished or ACCOMPLISHED ecological, biological and psychological work of the gods seems inevitable. The warnings, which I shall deal with, come in threes. But the Nordic seers, St. John and his Apocalypse, the Aztecs, everybody who has had anything to say, said that in a three count we face a great decision for the human race. Whether we have countless mini-moments is certainly important, but humanity has a three-fold rhythm to contend with before calamity or collapse. We can map at least two of those rhythms and the third seems already here or at least it is right around the corner. And what decision? And in what manner of deciding? By vote, by consensus, as individuals inwardly? But what is the issue exactly?

The Nordic seers saw the twilight of the gods with all the noble literary nostalgia and heroism that a mighty fading vision can lend to the eyes, tongue and heart of a people. Steiner’s last letters reveal the summation of a fight to the finish as well. How could he sum up, in so short a time, the monumental wisdom, the tools, that he placed in humanities hands?

There was every indication that in the interval before his next visit to us again, things could unfold that would severely test mankind. We say that the Nordic Initiates looked ahead and gave their pictorial interpretation for the future guidance of the human race. We say that St. John, commissioned by Christ Himself, outlined the cosmic destiny of the Human community with Christ in it. Steiner fought a practical and desperate battle against the time allotted in one incarnation to establish a complete medical, psychological, agricultural and educational revamping of the way we perceive, reality with the Christ in it. Nothing in the world competes with the social healing forces in Waldorf education, Bio-Dynamic agriculture and the medical work of spiritual science.

But to tell you the truth, I don’t want the monumental finished work of the gods to fall into the wrong hand of misinterpretation. I’m certainly not alone there, who doesn’t want the same thing? I am mature enough to realize that something is coming, something is here, something wonderful and, on the other hand, something mean-spirited. I labored under the very false notion, once, that if human beings knew the right thing to do, or the right interpretation, they would of course do the right thing. This, of course, painfully for me, was really a matter of position and maturity. Therefore doing the right thing is generally not possible.

Well that hurts! Some of us were left looking into the complex working of this precious world and totally having to re-structure our entire destinies? It is very awkward in the American folk-soul to deal with your own interpretation of the schizophrenia of normality and attempt to deal normally in the process. The effort is of course good, but I went into this marvelous world kicking and screaming for the longest time.

It is a standard position to take that if you have discovered something astonishing and comprehensible to you, that you want to share it. From this arose countless aborted and failed efforts to communicate my enthusiasm to family, friends, the film community and anyone else who would listen. I don’t know what got into me, but I felt it was something great and wonderful. And it is. But it changes you and brings a sense of immense gratitude to all those who spoke, wrote, struggled and all those who today teach, garden, heal and work with the most astonishing revelation of the twentieth century.

So over all this hovers a new age kind of cloud. Every one must describe, film, produce and write about the personal and cosmic dooms we are all headed for. Think of our elders who endured the clear thunder of the World Wars. To them, the beasts were out, the journey had begun and the serious side of human history was at their doorsteps.

Someone actually developed assembly line, mechanistic genocide and felt fairly confident that all they needed was Nietzsche in one hand and a gun in the other. While that was going on, in America, parallel with Hitler’s development was J. Edgar Hoover. Hoover brought G-Men, F.B.I. and C.I.A. into the fingerprinting, voice identification, heat signatures, eye ball identification, D.N.A., genetic tagging and numbering business, of every human being. Statistical assessment, demographics and intelligence testing began finding new ways to survey, slice and dice the humanistic spirit. Personal and private lives were infringed upon and Ahrimanic Intelligence of the Fenrir wolf adopted the umbrella of, THE CENTRAL INTELLIGENCE AGENCY. Against these apparent big guns Michael Intelligence seemed paltry and puny.

The ramifications of the SUPERMAN became a cartoon comic in the United States but was a deadly nightmare come to life in europe. Christopher Reeves and anyone connected with the superman ideal was playing with cosmic nitroglycerin, but they didn’t know that. The three destiny sisters, the Norns, sneak right up behind you and you hardly know where to trace the whack. All they know is that they have been whacked. All we knew and the press knew, is that some freak accident whacked somebody.

(written before Reeves death) Christopher Reeves is a changed man, a wonderful man. His early predecessor, in the superman saga, committed suicide. Reeves himself, a wonderful man, hurled from a horse, broke his neck and his co-star, Kidder also fell into a deep suicidal depression. Behind the superman ideal stands the psychic implosion of Frederich Nietzsche; the apocalyptic collapse of the German race; the Holocaust and more than six million ghosts who hover and haunt anyone who glibly tangles with this superman idea, but omits the Christ. Facts are facts, but people aren’t listening to facts.

Entertainment has replaced Truth and along with this realization also, I have gone kicking and screaming. Great films from international artists and directors have revealed and continue to reveal high spiritual truths,(Stephen King’s THE STAND for instance) but the general American mind wants entertainment. The apocalypse is an individual as well as a cultural decision. Ragnarök and the fight with the Fenrir wolf that eats Odin and releases Jormungand, the Midgard Serpent, are staring us in the face but these are entertaining stories for children.Fenrir eats Odin Steiner translated Ragnarök as the potential collapse of the finished work of the gods due to human misinterpretation and underestimation of what Initiation Science is capable of.

The ability to begin tracking the inner sun and inner light and turn our sexuality into higher warmth and comprehend how this great ecological mystery of our Earth is the seed of an entirely new Divine Cosmos, with all the immortal trimmings, is what the Tempest, the Grail, the Norse myths, the Goetheanum, democracy and Anthroposophy are all about. On the other hand, a certain awful suffocation and doom awaits us if the Fenrir wolf succeeds in devouring not only Odin and the finished work of the gods, but also the Logos I-beings, meaning us! This was certainly not a pretty way to end the Norse myths or a nice way for Steiner to finish up his life’s work. It is like saying that the Native Americans had to be exterminated. It is like saying, the African-Americans must be exterminated. Steiner was saying, in his last Leading Thoughts, buckle up bukeroos it’s going to be a bumpy ride. He certainly didn’t leave `em laughing, as the old show business proverb advises.

So, with uneasiness and sometimes anger I felt that no matter how we tried our doom was sealed. That is until I understood that new contracts were drawn up by the Initiates and placed in the contents of THE CHYMICAL WEDDING OF CHRISTIAN ROSENKREUZ. In this text the finality of the Ragnarok saga had taken a different turn. The CHYMMICAL WEDDING and RAGNAROK reveal a clause, a catch 22. Vidar, Michael Intelligence and the Michael Mission, salvage two germinal human seeds that, Noah like, are carried through the catastrophe.

To antidote and counterbalance so much of the diagnosis of doom and gloom, the mysterious unearthly events of the CHYMICAL WEDDING play a significant part. But even here, the Nordic seers were dead on the money in their epilogue to the Ragnarök saga. How did they know that? How could the Nordic Initiates outline their epilogue in the Ragnorok story and tie it in so closely with a text that had not even been written yet? Unless of course, true myths and Initiates are born from a much higher text.

Because there is a CHYMICAL WEDDING text, it does not automatically remove for us the warnings Dr. Steiner gave and the advice at the eleventh hour that he urged us to remember and stand watch against. However in the CHYMICAL WEDDING, an Initiate commitment can be construed that marks a new trail upwards. At the dawn of the final act, where Ahriman becomes a real threat, beginning in the fifteenth century, the CHYMICAL WEDDING makes its very mysterious appearance. All else, I have determined in my case, is fear and egotism. As Steiner so aptly said, `what must come, must come’ and we are the caretakers, nay, we are more than caretakers, we are the active miracle of what the gods intended as the fulfillment of THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH.

Three warnings were given in the Ragnarök saga and they certainly bear mentioning.

“Nothing escapes the red cock Fjalar; he will crow to the giants from his bird-wood. At the same time the cock who wakes the warriors every day in Valhalla, golden combed Gullinkambi, will crow to the gods. A third cock, rust red, will raise the dead in Hel.”

Loki, or our entire Luciferic Nature loki6appears as the primary cause for the collapse of the finished work of the gods. Steiner depicts Lucifer’s eurythmy costume in a reddish glow. Entertainment, movies, People magazine poster guys and dolls, Los Angeles or lost Angels has become, for the American folk-soul, our far western Luciferic Kingdom where Loki lives precariously on the fault lines. It was the children of Loki who inaugurated and brought the situation of Ragnarök to a head. Immortality is an issue for everyone. Powerful tabloid personalities who think nothing of surgical immortality enter with great sarcasm and cynicism into the forces of the etheric. Today immortality in the flesh is the life-style of the rich and famous. We are all asked to copy their egotistical example.

In a film called DEATH BECOMES HER, ancient Egyptian forces of immortality, which are really part of the new Grail mysteries, were laid bare. The priests or actors and directors knew that they were mocking the ideologies of their own Los Angeles crowd. In Hollywood a designated formula for the structure of plot, catharsis and conscience has been turned into a science that Loki would be proud of. Aristotle’s’ theory of poetics based on the ancient mysteries has been freeze-dried and reduced to a bakers formula. This formula produces great works, with box office bang for the buck. This formula allows the new mysteries to gleam through them, but since economy is tied to technology and tabloid personalities, we have a magnificent formula for Lucifer/Loki and Ahriman, the Fenrir wolf to come eat our lunch.

The consequence of Lucifer is Ahriman. Star power that moves the present world rides on the engine of cinematic technology and special effects, computer and digitalized graphics. The economy is run by the same scribes and pharisees who nailed Christ to the cross. It is not a threefold social order, it is a one horse dog and pony show pulled by the singularly selfish concept of economy and immortality in the flesh. Rarely if ever, although many writers attempt to form their stories around the miracle of vision and insight the Christ Being has brought, can a story survive a formula that relies so heavily on sentimentality and the contract between Lucifer and Ahriman. This is what people want, because the concepts of entertainment and ratings are synonymous with success and immortality. Michael and Christ do not agree with this sentiment but Loki and Fenrir thrive on it.

It doesn’t take a rocket scientist to see that if a culture continues to square Lucifer to Ahriman; Lucifer to Ahriman; Lucifer to Ahriman; society is going to squeeze the Michael and Christ revelation to a mere insignificant footnote on the entertainment spectrum. Social physics is involved here and it is not just violence and its effect on society. It is raw social physics but nobody is capable of conceiving that this raw social physics emanating from Hollywood and bombarding society, is squeezing the life right out of humanity. It is a mathematical problem but not a box office problem. The box office numbers reflect the J. Edgar Hoover mind-set equation of statistics. The more people caught in the cross mixing of Lucifer and Ahriman the less they will see the Christ and Michael spirit operative in the social reality of their lives. This is reflected by the escalating numbers in box office statistics.

Three warnings similar to what Christ tells Peter before the crucifixion, occurs before Ragnarök and the Finished or Accomplished work of the gods is brought to ruin by Ahriman’s contract with the Giants and the dwarfs. Somebody had to preserve the etherization of the blood. Michael Intelligence has everything to do with the etherization of our blood, the Kvasir mystery and the Grail mystery of warmth and light. In this current battle, what will survive the titanic struggle with Fenrir and Jormungand that we are unwittingly releasing now? What are these three warnings? How do they appear in real history, real time?

If we divide 1332 by half we get the number 666, if we take St. John’s advice in the Apocalypse seriously and follow the rhythm of 666 X 3 we arrive at the year, 1998. The three warnings have powerful implications and we need to substantiate what the Nordic seers and St. John alerted us to.

“…the number 6-6-6 has historical significance and refers to the sequence of impacts, which, intensifying, take place in the seventh, fourteenth, and twentieth century. The first Soratic impulse in the seventh century proceeded from the Gondishapur academy, the center of Arabistic-Islamic culture. A wave of brilliant intellectuality reached Europe. Independent research through observation of nature and systematic applications of experiments were stimulated; Arabistic spirituality laid the groundwork for modern, empirical science, when European humanity still lived in religious ties of faith. A premature intellectual development came into being; its final consequences become evident in the atrophying of spiritual faculties, for the prematurely intellectualized human being is cheated of his higher development. The second attack took a different direction. Its instrument was Philip IV of France, who, out of greed for gold, instigated the arrest and trial of the rich order of the Knight Templars and had the knights condemned to burning on the stake. Through diabolical methods of torture, confessions of `guilt’ were extorted in which the absolved trials of the disciples of the spirit were mirrored… The cosmic due-date for the third attack is the end of this century, the impending turn of the millennium…”

The growth of Ahrimanic culture was depicted in Nordic mythology by showing how the Gods attempted to put a leash on the growing Ahrimanic menace. The Fenrir wolf, as part of the family of the gods, grew in proportion to the degree the gods withdrew from their finished work. As their creative work finished, the wolf grew stronger. Fenrir grows stronger in three decisive stages.

In the last stage, the Fenrir wolf is tethered by a mere fiber optic cable designed by another set of dark dwarfs hired to assist the gods and humanity with the growing problem of Ahriman. But in the three stages of tethering the Ahrimanic forces it becomes clear that we are observing the advance of humanities technological skills, that move from the fifteenth century of Shakespeare and Bacon, through our Industrial Revolution to our present technological age. In the Nordic Initiates vision of the threefold growth of Fenrir, we can track the emancipation of more and more technological skill until for a moment, for a period of time, the last magical satellite, fiber optic line is locked onto this growing menace.

“Odin thought it would be best if the gods themselves kept an eye on Fenrir. He seemed no different to any other wolf, and all the gods agreed that there would be no harm in letting him roam around the green and golden fields of Asgard. Even so, of all the gods only Tyr, son of Odin, was brave enough to face Fenrir alone, and give him great joints – flesh and gristle and bone – to keep him quiet.

“The gods were not slow to change their minds about Fenrir when they saw him growing larger day by day. And when Urd, Skuld and Verandi renewed their warnings, and said that the wolf would cause Odin’s death, their alarm became far greater. drooling fenrir

“The wolf inspected Laeding. `It’s certainly strong, but I’m certainly stronger,’ was all he had to say as he let the gods wind the chain around his neck and body and legs, until there was only a small length left for them to hold on to.

“Finished?’ snarled the wolf. He planted his massive paws well apart, filled his lungs with air, then flexed every muscle in his body. Laeding’s links at once sprang apart, and the gods sprang back alarmed.

“The gods lost no time in making another chain. This was called DROMI, and it was twice as strong as Laeding. The links were larger than those of the largest anchor chain; no men could have even moved them. `If you can break this chain,’ the gods told Fenrir, `you will be known for your strength throughout the nine worlds.’

“Fenrir looked at DROMI. He thought it looked immensely strong, but then he thought that he too had grown even stronger since he had snapped Laeding. `No one wins fame without taking a risk,” was all he had to say as the gods wound the vast chain round his neck and body and legs.

“`Finished?’ snarled the wolf. He shook so that there was a terrible clinking and clanking and grating; he rolled over and arched his back and banged the chain against the ground; he tightened his muscles until they were as hard as the iron links of DROMI; he stood up again and dug his paws into the earth and strained and strained – and all at once, shrapnel flew in every direction. After this, the gods were frightened; they thought they might fail to fetter Fenrir.

“`But if anyone can make a fetter that will not break,’ Odin said, `the dwarfs can.’ And he sent off bright Skirnir, Freyr’s messenger, to the world of the dark elves, Svartalfheim. Skirnir went down under Midgard through gloomy, dank, twilit grottoes. There he found Nar and Nain and Niping and Dain and Bifur and Bafur and Bombor and Nori and hundreds of others, each one as horrible as the next, and promised them gold and more gold if they could make a fetter for Fenrir. In the gloom the dwarfs’ eyes gleamed like glow-worms; they whispered and schemed and set to work. They made a fetter as smooth and supple as a silk ribbon, and they called it GLEIPNIR.

“When he returned to Asgard, Skirnir was thanked by all the gods for going on this mission. `But what is it made of?’ asked Odin, fingering the fetter.

“‘Six things,’ said Skirnir.`The sound a cat makes when it moves; a woman’s beard; the roots of a mountain; the sinews of a bear; the breath of a fish; and a bird’s spittle.’

“The gods were both astonished and skeptical of GLEIPNIR’S power. `If you doubt it, as I doubted it,’ said Skirnir, `remember the cunning of the dwarfs. After all, have you ever thought why a cat makes no noise when it moves, and why a woman has no beard? You can never prove that a mountain has no roots, but many things that seem not to exist are simply in the dwarfs’ safekeeping.’

“Then a large group of gods approached Fenrir for the third time. They invited him to go with them to the island of Lyngvi in the middle of Lake Amsvartnir.

fenrir grows

“There the gods produced the silken ribbon of GLEIPNIR. They showed it to Fenrir and Challenged him to test his strength against it.

“`It’s a little stronger than it seems,’ said one.

“` It’s as well-hoven as the words of a good poem, ‘said another. `But you, Fenrir, you’ll be able to break it.’

Through the magic of satellite, fiber optics, laser and electricity, Gleipnir is holding the Ahrimanic on its final magic tether. Crushed crystal or silicon make up the fiber optic lines and totally invisible fields beam the satellite transmissions and transactions we make through the world. The Nordic seers had to comprehend what we see today and, take for granted. They saw how we borrowed the technology to tether Ahriman, and from whom we borrowed it. The problem is that, we, in the twentieth century, do not know who we borrowed our ideas from to invest our culture with silicon chip technology. For us the mineral kingdom is not a real kingdom, and that is a fatal error the Nordic seers did not make. The withdrawal of the gods by steady degrees has brought humanity to its third threshold. It coincides with a 1998 three-fold rhythm.

So in fact the gods have assisted in creating the inventions and steady stream of technological advancement, to the point of this final tentative tethering. After this and even now, bio-engineering is entering into the region of nature and organic life and Ahriman is beginning to break free of the final bond the gods and men placed on him. Odin knows that this same Fenrir wolf, will directly do battle with him and Odin will lose. Reverence for the All-Father has already been replaced by reverence for the hard-drive.

“…The Ahrimanic spirituality had no great power in the regions in which the Beings of the higher Hierarchies retained man as in their own sphere – when as in primitive ages the higher Beings themselves acted directly in man, or when, as in later times, they worked in him through their ensouled or living reflection. As long as this working of supersensible Beings within the doings of man continued – that is until about the fifteenth century – the Ahrimanic powers had, within the evolution of mankind, only a faintly echoing power, if one may express it so.”

The tethering of this titanic wolf is reflected also in the story of Schionatulander, the Grail Knight. We find the destiny and karma of one of the great Initiates of our times locked into a story that has much the same ring to it as The Binding of the Fenrir Wolf. Because it appears as a threshold experience that Parzival must cross, before he can reach the Grail, before anyone can reach the Grail, a comparison between The Binding of the Fenrir Wolf and the story of THE HOUND’S LEASH can be made. While the Nordic Initiates knew that the Binding of Fenrir was important, the study of the actual leash used by the dark dwarfs who secure him, was important to anyone approaching the Grail mysteries

“…Schionatulander became the regent of the countries which belonged to Herzleide. In all the countries of the world he had to endure adventures and knightly battles, fulfilling the ideal of a knight of the Round Table. One day he was brought the most precious gifts, sent to him from Bagdad by the Caliph. Schionatulander travelled once more, for the third time, plunging again into the world of Arabism.

“After his return something happened which has a legendary character; the story of the HOUND’S LEASH. Sigune and Schionatulander were in a wood when a hound, which was on one side cinnabar red and on the other black, with a white breast and white legs, broke out of the undergrowth following game. They caught the hound, which had a long and precious leash wound round its neck on which there was writing formed in jewels. When they caught him and were beginning to read the writing on the leash, the hound pulled itself free and dashed away. Sigune had then the one longing, to read the hound’s leash to its end. This knowledge became more important for her than anything else. For her sake Schionatulander had to set out on adventure, until he could bring back to her the hound’s leash. In these pictures we can recognize that it is a question of occult knowledge which concerns Schionatulander and Sigune. Then the angry Orilus came and killed Schionatulander.”

Orilus was a giant of a man. Parzival, in his adolescence, had just angered Orilus by accidentally stumbling upon Jeschute, the wife of Orilus. They flirted, Parzival did not know what he was doing but Lady Jeschute did. This was long before Parzival achieved the Grail, that was later in life. Orilus was in hot pursuit of young Parzival when he stumbled on Schionatulander and killed him instead of Parzival.

If Schionatulander had not been involved with the deciphering of the riddle of the Binding of the Fenrir Wolf or the curiously wrought jewels and writing on the Hound’s Leash, Parzival would surely have been killed and no Grail would have been won. This strange trail of the hound, the scent of the dog, the lost dog of the giant Orilus would lead to the solving of one of Ahriman’s most testy questions. Schionatulander eventually deciphers the riddle that binds Ahriman and as an Initiate he brought this secret to bear on Ahriman in order to establish Spiritual Science in the twentieth century.

It is not far to go now, before it is just us, Ragnarök and the Fenrir Wolf. The threefold rhythm of history shadows for us one form of confrontation. The three-fold meeting humanity has been having with Christ, is set in blood and stone at the mid-line of Earth evolution. Lucifer, who incarnated in B.C. in the chinese and oriental culture of the east is to be joined now by a third more than mortal Being wearing sheep’s clothing. The ultimate wolf in sheep’s clothing is about to walk onto the stage of history that he has so carefully prepared for himself. The third rhythm where even the Fenrir wolf, walks the earth as a man, just as Christ did, is very near at hand.

“A hundred years after the daring `interpretation of the signs of the time’ by Novalis, a book appeared that develops the moral aspect of history and finishes what is missing in the Europe essay. It is the `Three Discussions about War, Progress and the End of World History with the Inclusion of a Brief Story about the Anti-Christ’ by Vladimir Soloviev. In February of 1900, the renowned religious philosopher had publicly read the `Story of the Anti-Christ’ in the hall of St. Peterburg Duma. In July of the same year he died. The preface of his last work, dated on Easter Sunday 1900, states that it is the author’s foremost intention to call attention to the deceptive mask underneath which the abyss of the Evil One is concealed. Despite obvious shortcomings of the text, the proximity of his death – so he stated – made it mandatory for him not to delay to an indefinite and uncertain period of time the publishing of this work.

“In this work too, the confluence of three different streams is evident: the tradition that knows of the appearance of the Anti-Christ, involvement in the events of the day, and the spiritual experiences of which the autobiographical poem, `THREE ENCOUNTERS’, speaks. Three times, Soloviev experiences a confrontation with heavenly wisdom, with Sophia, in visionary consciousness. From this grew his Christian power of knowledge that addresses itself to the two greatest facts of history: the God-Manhood of Christ and the bodily reality of the Anti-Christ.”

Just at the very dawn of the twentieth century we have three reports from individuals who die in the year 1900. Nietzsche outlines the intentions of Ahriman. His intentions are put into practical work during the rise of Nazism. Oscar Wilde dies, giving us the tale of Dorian Grey, the double and the twentieth century dilemma of homosexuality. Soloviev outlines the signs and events that lead to the incarnation and subsequent power play on the plane of earthly history of the mythic Fenrir wolf, he names the Anti-Christ. Nietzsche also writes his work called the Anti-Christ. All three, Nietzsche, Oscar Wilde and Soloviev die in 1900 at the dawn of the twentieth century. In fact by all reports this twentieth century has shaped up to be a confrontation between these two Beings with humanity acting as the voting body.

Steiner says pointedly; “…these Beings have sent Christ from the Sun to the Earth. For the welfare of humanity Christ has united His being with the dead part of divine-spiritual existence in Ahriman’s kingdom. Thus two things are possible for man, and through this possibility his freedom is guaranteed: – to turn to Christ consciously in the spiritual frame of mind which he possessed subconsciously during the descent from the vision of supersensible spirit-existence to the use of intellect; or to wish to feel his severance from spirit-existence and thus fall in the direction taken by the Ahrimanic powers.” But the point Nietzsche, Soloviev, and Steiner agree on is that “…Christ will be there; through His great sacrifice He will live in the same sphere in which Ahriman also lives. Man will be able to choose between Christ and Ahriman.” That is why Nietzsche is considered such a great martyr to knowledge, because he literally had the two forces on the knife edge in his immortal ego and Ahriman won against his incarnation as Nietzsche; this time.

Steiner, like St. John of the Apocalypse, drew this sword edge on which we are precariously balanced now, with Ragnarök and the FINISHED WORK of the Gods, in his Anthroposophical Leading Thoughts. To witness, as Steiner did, a powerful thinker like Nietzsche go down on the wrong edge of his sword reveals to us the immense struggle that now haunts us all. Steiner said, “I can truly say that in my soul I bled, when for the first time I read Nietzsche’s writing on the WILL TO POWER…”

Imagine, if you can, how St. Paul must have felt when he realized that his own vote on the high council of the Sanhedrin had condemned the Christ to crucifixion and that his certainty, his arrogance had missed the intersection and fiddled, like Nero, as the Sun-Messiah bled out his life on the cross. The pride of Saul and the damage he had caused and the upstream battle to correct the cosmic error, he had had a hand in, might very well have made Paul’s soul bleed. This powerful spiritual moment, so insignificant to the majority of humanity, so overlooked, is the source of every great transformation, catharsis and dramatic rehabilitation.

How are we to understand our times, our twentieth century, when the fatal decisions we make can act so catastrophically? How can we truly assess what Steiner went through or comprehend what Nietzsche went through as he wrestled with issues that were truly Apocalyptic in scope? Nietzsche had no Anthroposophy to fall back on like we do. Standing next to him, was this young man and next to us in life are many young people, who are they and can we ever again underestimate the significance of one human being?

Nietzsche had Ahriman cooking inside of him. Nietzsche’s sister wanted someone to edit Nietzsche’s works. On her sick superficial soul hangs the deeds of the Holocaust. Another editor, Steiner for instance, would have antidoted Ahrimans effects on the twentieth century. But the surviving sister of Nietzsche wanted the tabloid fame and glory that she felt she was due. She suffered as so many of us do, from the fatal disease of quick fix, instant gratification. It was her subjective anti-semitism that set the stage for Ahriman’s lethal activity with the lives of six million Jews and shattered the complacency of the world. My parents never completely awoke but their generation certainly was roused from their stupor. But most of them were not capable of comprehending the catastrophe, so they quickly fell back asleep in the fifties.

Nietzsche’s sister wanted Steiner to do for Nietzsche what Steiner had completed for Goethe. Steiner had edited Goethe’s works and midwifed the reputation of the great Goethe into the Folk-spirit of the german race. But the sister did not want to steer humanity away from the current german attitudes swirling around Darwinian and Aryan racial prejudice, she wanted to capitalize on the current trends. She desired instant fame, maximum publicity, by stirring up the issues fermenting in Nietzsche’s work. She was running a public relations campaign for Ahriman using her dead brothers work. Steiner could not cooperate or even live with her dangerous people magazine style sick search for instant fame. He was caught between sucking up to this sick woman and ruining his reputation in the process or going ahead with his work. Her attitude made it impossible for truth to glimmer through. Today we have a million yuppies with the very same attitude.

Ahriman did immense harm to the twentieth century. Steiner brought immense good to the twentieth century. Two human beings, side by side and the superficial intellect of the sister of Nietzsche, that had no discernment, felt no need to weigh up how opening salvos of Ahriman could shatter humanity. If we are the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, and we lose someone like Nietzsche in the battle, would our souls be capable of weeping? Is this weeping the way Christ sweated blood before He laid down his life? Did His soul bleed?

Thinking dramatically, we have look at what Steiner saw. Ahriman looked right back at Steiner as he raised his inner vision into the core of Nietzsche’s soul and spirit. There staring Ahriman in the face was the vulnerable young man with the Michael Spirit looking directly down the double-barrel load of Ahriman’s icy mockery. Ahriman might have said to Steiner, `I can do this to the best of them, what can you bring me, in thinking or feeling in human beings that I cannot crush!’ And Nietzsche was the best of the thinkers of his time! `Young man’, Ahriman might have said, `worlds are colliding and if I were you, unless you want to end up like him and have all your sick fan club, end up like him, you had better back off while your hair is still black. I could breathe fear so deeply into your soul that your soul would turn white like frost!’ As Hamlet had warned Rosencrantz and Guildenstern, it was unhealthy to place themselves between the deadly tension of two fell points. To this powerful event Steiner was not only a witness but was spotted by Ahriman and had to withstand a cosmic Being, an Archangelic force, an impact, a shock of cold, knee-knocking terror that would rip through the twentieth century. Here Steiner was Hamlet between the fell points of Ahriman and Michael.

Picture the well-respected Saul/Paul offering his voice and attitude to the rumors and misunderstandings billowing around Jesus of Nazareth. How flippant and obnoxious they all were, the high jewish council that Paul was on. As formerly trained and educated initiates they thought they were protecting the true dignity of the Hebrew Race. But with that accusation, `Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me?’ he is knocked off his high Sanhedrin horse. Because of his powerful and trusted influence on the council, the horrible impacts of history have been magnified ten-fold. Now, instead of humanity turning their attention, education and authority to the greatest expected mystery of planet earth, they have turned their backs on it. Paul must take the blame for what in the future arises when the greatest minds are stymied by and refuse the staggering revelation of the Incarnate Word.

Steiner knew the meaning of such a denial, he pointed to the legend of Ahasuerus. “It leads to a man who sits at the wayside when a great Leader of humanity passes by. He however rejects the ideas of the Leader of mankind. He repulses him and thinks: `I will know nothing of thee, who wouldst guide the kernel of my being into future incarnations where mankind will be outwardly more perfect. I wish to be united with my present form.’ A man who thrusts from him such a Leader of mankind will appear again in the same form. And if this attitude hardens, then he will also thrust from him the Leader in the next incarnation.” And so on and so on until this spirit is thrust into the Jupiter evolution as an elemental being, similar to what we have now in the gnome and dwarf community. Many of these were left over from the evolution of the Old Moon and are given over to wisdom, which was the meaning of the entire Old Moon evolution.

If Speech is the sword; the tongue where in the word is wielded, studied and immersed in the etheric forces, we must see what this sword is in its microcosmic picture and in its macrocosmic picture. How does the sword of denial and the sword of truth appear from on the tongue of a WORD-CRAFTER. The macrocosm, where from, the Logos wields the sword of the Word, knocks the hot air right out of the petty conversations, prized by polite human society.

“His head and his hairs were white like wool, as white as snow; and his eyes were as a flame of fire: And his feet like unto fine brass, as if they burned in a furnace; and his voice as the sound of many waters. And he had in his right hand seven stars: and out of his mouth went a sharp two-edged sword: and his countenance was as the sun shineth in his strength. and when I saw him, I fell at his feet as dead.”

REVELATION 1:14

This powerful impact of the two-edged sword gives the tongue and speech extraordinary relationships that whip up the fires of the Macrocosm into our microcosmic vessel. If we wish to gradually tame this powerful speech and Logos system, we must learn to balance ourselves between the forces of good and evil. This is like walking on a tightrope or the edge of a sword. How does Excalibur play into this training that must be undergone by the student of the word?

“A legend shows us the direction in which we should go to discover its meaning: On one occasion Merlin placed the sword in its white stone in the lake, and left the scabbard on the mainland. Then he built a perilous bridge of iron and steel only six inches wide, which had to be crossed between scabbard and sword. This is nothing else than the drawing forth of the fire of the Word of Inspiration and Intuition. The Word is uttered through the occult media of `Fire’ and `Water’ – the spirit and the soul. To attain the power of the Word the bridge of blood and nerves – likened to iron and steel – has to be crossed; in other words, the forces in the body which are subject to death, in the physical and moral sense, must be overcome. The Father-force – out of which man is born – bears also that opposite pole of man’s being which is destructive; but this same force in its aspect of `LIFE,’ is able to exist apart from the scabbard of the body, and can be drawn from the transmuted forces of death, the `white stone,’ as the creative wisdom of the spirit.

“The White Stone is the `philosopher’s stone’ of alchemy. Its whiteness, seen in the spirit, is the translucent light of the etheric world where the drawn sword of wisdom `flashes like the light of thirty torches.’

“Rudolf Steiner has said that the Knights of King Arthur could be called `Knights of the Sword,’ but the Kinights of the Holy Grail `Knights of the WORD.'”

With what Spiritual Science offers in Eurythmy and Speech training, KNIGHT OF THE WORD once more becomes a meaningful life question. The path to our immortality and salvaging this grand finished work of the gods and developing from it, a new seed of a cosmic system, becomes the real Ragnarök battle for each of us. The battle lines were drawn way back of course, to the misinterpretations of the Logos in the Atlantean times. Steiner says clearly that, “In India the wisdom of the Brahmins lay at the foundation of human life. In Europe this was indeed withdrawn into the background, but it existed in the Norse Mysteries where the European Brahmins had to make good again that which had been spoiled through the betrayal in the old Atlantean epoch.”

The great flood, as evidenced by the countless Noah like sagas that exist world-wide, indicates an early catastrophe that ties itself to an Omega or ending catastrophe. A catastrophe happened back in the Atlantean times due to our misuse of divine creative forces. The same intersection at a new level looms up before us now in the choice we make between two different forms of cultural seership. We are balanced precariously on the two-edge sword that swings between Christ and Ahriman. In other words, what vision and working relation will we cultivate in society to the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS? Will it be the faulty Ahrimanic version that caused the Atlantean catastrophe and faces us now, once more, in our relation to the Fenrir wolf in the Ragnarök saga?

To find out what the Atlanteans faced that was similar to what we are facing now we must look at the hands on the big cosmic clock that we live in. If we can find the hour that struck over Atlantis and find the hour that is striking now we might have a match. Here is what Newsweek Magazine says about the clock and the time and the hour of our intersection with our Atlantean ancestors. Newsweek, April 1, 1996:

Hyakutake came from the Oort Cloud, too – originally. But it’s brightness indicates that it has passed this way before. A comet `cooked’ by a previous trip emits the dust and gases that create its luminous coma, or atmosphere, later, explains Brian Marsden of the Smithsonian Astrophysical Observatory. Hyakutake last came through 18,000 years ago, calculates JPL astronomer Donald Yeomans, whose 1991 book `COMET’ presents the lore and science of these celestial streakers.”

I happened to be in the exact position to view with my naked eye this incredible first hand experience of the wide flowing green tail of this comet as I visited my dear friend Brian Lynch in the north Georgia mountains. I was to arrive much earlier from Atlanta in order to load a refrigerator, washing machine and stove onto a pick-up truck I borrowed from my computer jockey and helicopter pilot Robert Mckorkle. Everything got delayed and delayed and finally I was able to arrive at 1:30 a.m. outside the house of my friend, Mr. Lynch. These delays caused Mr. Lynch and I to be in a position on his porch to see the Hyakutake comet pass right across the face of the North Star, earth axis, that is set with the conical angle of 46 degrees.

The Earth axis ego field holds its spinning twenty-four hour clock around Polaris and Vega. The axis’ spinning cone of 46 degrees, neatly divides itself into 23 degrees, and in this number we find a great mystery connected to our Chromosome structure and what the Nordic Initiates described as due North. It is no accident of course, that the Nordic peoples were in the land of the midnight sun, contemplating the amazing magnetic light that swirls around the fontanel of the earth. The aurora borealis. This position allowed them the opportunity to develop the vision needed to overcome the damaging effects of the Atlantean catastrophe.

“Every great period of civilization is connected with the currents of magnetism of the Earth. In Atlantis these currents flowed in a North-South direction. Speaking in the sense of occultism, this North-South influence is connected with the forces that built the human body… `North’ was the birth-place of Time (or Saturn) and was the source of Light, so the human head is the `North’ of the body; it is born first into the physical world and into time out of the womb; it is the place of Intelligence, or `Light.’ From this `North’ streams the spiritual substance of the bodily nature, which is then filled with the activity of the earthly forces. On the other hand the South (and this was so also in certain states of historical evolution in wars and conflicts), played its part in the slow upbuilding of man, but as the source of all darkness and oppositions.”

Steiner indicates that the ratio of blood to body weight in the Ass is 1:23. But the powerful thing is, that Christ, on palm Sunday, rides an Ass and pulls behind him the colt of the Ass as the crowd cheers him. It is here he says that if he should tell the crowd to be quiet, the stones would shout. But the meditative picture becomes clearer when we realize that the Ass always represents the foundational physical body structure. St. Francis refers to his body as Brother Ass.physical etheric astral ego The Bremen Town musicians refer to the Ass, the dog, the cat and the cock, which in their appropriate order reveal the fourfoldness of the physical, etheric, astral and ego structure. The cock’s blood-red comb and biological setting is keyed to the twenty-four hour axis of the earth/sun relationship. It must crow with the movement of the earth. The cock represents the ego structure of man that lives in unison with the twenty-four hour spin of the earth on her axis.

When the Logos road to His death on the old Ass and drew behind him the young colt of the ass, it was a literal enactment in the physical world of the new seed of the new cosmos, the one we are building now. Such a picture indicated to the men of that time a clear relation of 1:23 and the stubborn ass of the old physical form. The chromosome structure of the old human being would be remodelled and a new cosmos and a new model of the spirit-form put on the assembly line.

Luckily for us, the genetic ideal He was creating from the Dove mystery was not going to be some weird combination never before seen, it was to be built from the already existing structure, refined upwards, more innocent, before the Fall form, as the colt was more limber before the finished work of the mature ass. In His final last week on earth and with his final breath Christ would personally Initiate and impregnate a new central sun seed and cosmos from the plane of the Earth.

The FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, means for me the last words from the cross. IT IS FINISHED. The last sun-breath was infused into the new cosmic uterus, the seed was planted and the Divine I AM of Love was impregnated. This immortal Sun-Spirit, with His WORD broke the old genetic codes that had locked the old chromosome ass of the physical body. His new pregnancy shook the foundations of the world to its roots. I stood gazing at 1:30 in the morning, with my dear friend Brian Lynch, on an event that clocked in right over the northern axis of the earth. I stood observing with my own eyes the hour when the misinterpretation of the UNFINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, exacted the catastrophe that brought about the condition of the flood and created the opportunity for the lost dove that Noah released nearly 18,000 years ago.

“Christ died and was laid in a rocky tomb, and Joseph of Arimathea gathered up his blood in the crystal cup. Ancient clairvoyance and inspiration were extinguished. The spirit penetrated through and through the skeleton. The world lay dumb and blind, bereft of vision. The sun was darkened and the earth trembled. The power of the light, the power of spiritual vision, penetrated into the very depths of the mineral kingdom.”

The Atlantean era was not like our seasonal synchronicity with time and our line up with the star Polaris. Atlanteans lived in mists and waters and rarely if ever saw the stars. Nifelheim was a land of mists. The sinking of Atlantis brought the contract of the rainbow and the clearing of the sky. Twenty-Three became a highly important number to reckon with for several reasons. The “…diameter, the axis of the world, passes through the local sphere at two fixed points, the poles. One of these, the North Pole, is located in the vicinity of a star in the constellation of the Little Bear which is called, for this reason, the Pole Star (Polaris). There is no remarkable star in the vicinity of the South Pole, diametrically opposite the North Pole on the celestial sphere. Around the axis of the world, which runs from the South Pole to the North Pole, the diurnal motion occurs in retrograde direction in a sidereal day, divided into twenty-four sidereal hours. When we say that the rotation of the sphere of the fixed stars is uniform, we are implicitly assuming that we have at our disposal a uniform scale of time in relation to which we can record the rotation of the sphere and verify that it is uniform, i.e. that the sphere turns an equal number of degrees in an equal amount of time.”

The mystery of the Emerald Tablet, that gives us the sense of unity between that which is above and that which is below, makes for an interesting link with Merlin and the round table, as the tiny circle is inscribed by the earth in her northern tilt. Our little watches tick out the twenty-four hours but what we once knew, before nano-seconds and digital time, was a twelvefoldness in a circle. Human time, spun round on a miniature round table. In Fiona Macleod’s Beyond the Blue Septentrions, we gather through the vision what Arthur beholds;

“Arthur, closing his eyes, felt himself `ascend the invisible stairways of the sky’ until he stood on the verge of Arth-Uthyr, the Great Bear. There he saw with spiritual sight – the `Light of the North’- a company of majestic figures seated at a circular abyss of darkness… And then a voice that `rose and fell through the eternal silences,’ like a mighty ocean, proclaimed: `Comrades in God, the time has come when that which is great shall become small.’

E.C. Merry, in the same essay on Arthur, draws our attention to how, “Persian mythology shows the Peri Morgiana, or Morgana, who is identical with the Fairy Sister of King Arthur, Morgan le Fay, to have been rescued from the Mountains of Kaph and taken to the `new Europe’ – i.e. after the destruction of Atlantis – by Tahmurath. The Mountains of Kaph were, to the Persians, the mythical boundary of the world in the farthest North of arctic regions.” Since the Atlantean mysteries were matriarchal, embryo, and water mysteries, where biology and the rear brain, were connected to the work the Gods were doing in the biology and reproductive structures of nature, Morgan le Fay’s role makes some sense.

“The Fairy Morgan (in Welsh tales `Mary Morgan’) can be either good or bad. She is to be found under various aspects all over the world and wherever she is she creates a beautiful and glamours fairyland. Some legends represent her living in lakes or streams and luring people into the water.”

In Steiner’s COSMIC MEMORY, he says of the Atlantean, “…that the physical nature of an Atlantean was quite different from that of contemporary man. The Atlantean took into himself water which could be used by the life force inherent in his own body in a manner quite different from that possible in today’s physical body. It was due to this that the Atlantean could consciously employ his physical powers in an entirely different way from man today… An Atlantean settlement – as must be evident from everything we have described – had a character which in no way resembled that of a modern city. In such a settlement everything was, on the contrary, still in alliance with nature.” The ability to merge with nature and shape the watery forces would give us more the impression of Kudzu growth, only shaped, formed and organized consciously.

The watery mist, the rear brain activity and the nature ability, (green thumb) revealed, “…that then the cover of air which envelops the earth was much denser than at present. Whether in face of current scientific beliefs one can easily imagine such greater density of air, must not occupy us here. Because of their very nature, science and logical thinking can never decide what is possible or impossible. Their only function is to explain what has been ascertained by experience and observation. The above mentioned density of air is as certain for occult experience as any fact of today given by the senses can be.” No ancient civilization or monuments from the Atlanteans will easily be discovered. Water, the moon, the mist, made for extravagant powers of growth. Stages in the embryo can reveal far more accurately the early Atlantean than our wishful thinking on the subject. Of course, when the mist cleared, there was allot more dense water to be accounted for and allot more flooding and thickening of the waters, from the matriarchal soup.

“Equally certain however is the fact, perhaps even more inexplicable for contemporary physics and chemistry, that at that time the water on the whole earth was much thinner than today. Because of this thinness the water could be directed by the germinal energy used by the Atlanteans into technical services which today are impossible. As a result of the increased density of the water, it has become impossible to move and to direct it in such ingenious ways as once were possible. From this it must be sufficiently clear that the civilization of the Atlantean period was radically different from ours.”

We have continued to make assumptions about the biological condition of human life forms and civilization based on what we observe today, whether geologically or archaeologically. “In the early Atlantean age, man was composed of a substance no more dense than that of certain jellyfish now living in the sea and scarcely distinguishable from the surrounding water.” When we imagine culture, intelligence, life and atmosphere, more than 25,000 years ago, we get a bit of a shock. Certainly, at various points around the globe dense solidification of the human form was beginning but those Neanderthal skeletons we find are not the soft unfinished transparent forms and delicate beings that most of humanity consisted of. Hardening was faulty and haphazard but Neanderthal’s were not the basis of the advanced spiritual culture of Egypt or ancient India. Those did not arise from Neanderthal’s but from the slow densification and incarnation of highly refined, unfinished, human prototypes.

When the skies finally cleared, time, numbers, scale, variance and calibration became a religious revelation for those who had escaped the Atlantean catastrophe. The Aztec, Mayan, and even the illustrious Persian star gazers that culminated in the three Kings were obsessed with the numbers and the revelations that came from the stars. The number twenty-three revealed also the degrees that separated the summer solstice from the equator and the winter solstice from the equator. Seasonal time and the North Pole were nailed with a twenty-three degree variable.

“Similarly, the line connecting the poles, or the earth’s axis, which is perpendicular to the equator, is not fixed either, but describes in 26,000 years a cone whose axis is a line perpendicular to the plane of the ecliptic ( ) leading toward the center of the sphere of the fixed stars and intersecting this sphere at two points, the north and south poles of the elliptic. The half-angle at the summit of the cone equals 23 degrees 30 minutes, and thus the North Pole of the earth’s axis is not fixed in relation to the stars, but moves along a small circle.”

Prior to the sinking of Atlantis, the majority of souls were employed, educated and obsessed with the inner biological clairvoyant revelation of nature which they saw through their highly developed rear brains. “In the morning when the astral body and ego draw again into the other members they make use of the physical organs and consciousness lights up. This condition of daily waking in consciousness, nightly sleeping in unconsciousness, did not exist formerly.” The hour by hour degree turns that make up our patriarchal twenty-four hour day did not exist then. A bio-psychic school of Atlantean matriarchy held the inner construct, a DNA construct, as its own mythic core.

“At that time man was still aware of the spiritual processes and spiritual beings around him, not clearly and exactly as in true clairvoyance, but with a last relic of ancient clairvoyant sight. Man lived by day in a world of hazy, nebulous outlines, in the night he lived among spiritual beings who were around him as we have the various objects around us today. There was thus no sharp division between day and night, and what is contained in saga and myths is not some fold-fantasy but memories of the experiences which early man had in the supersensible world in his then state of consciousness. Wotan or Zeus or other supersensible spiritual divinities who were known to various peoples are not fabrications of fantasy as is asserted at the council-board of erudition. Such assertions can only be made by someone who knows nothing of the nature of folk-fantasy. It does not in the least occur to early peoples to personify in that way. Those were experiences in ancient times. Wotan and Thor were beings with whom man went about as today he goes about with his fellow-men, and myths and sagas are memories of the ages of ancient clairvoyance.”

The Nordic Tree, with its twining serpent forces that loop from Asgard to Hel was the model used by the Atlanteans in their biological, matriarchal culture. The simplified version, meant to throw humanity off track and protect us from premature intrusion into the bio-ecological mysteries, was handed down to us as the serpent wrapped around the Tree, tempting Eve. Eve obviously had a strong role to play in how paradise would develop. Her role and complicity in the double helix, DNA nature mysteries, precedes the patriarchal Adamic culture of males. This serpent, in all its various forms was the double Helix.

Later, as the spine and forebrain developed, the capacity to understand the Tree of Yggdrasil, “whose ninefold branches are indeed the nine spheres of the cosmos,” became the nervous system that twines around the spine or tree. The patriarchal Tree of Knowledge, tied to the rhythm of twenty-four hours was needed to allow humanity to achieve freedom, culminating in the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, as an external revelation of full mathematical wisdom in every arena of life. When the sky opened up, after the terrific volcanic catastrophes, the clear stars, the seasons and the ordered sequence of numbers became the religious obsession of those colonies of souls who had survived the Flood.

The Atlantean culture and ancient Initiates had a powerful working relation with the Unfinished Work of the Gods. The Nordic sagas are the positive reflection of that working map that the good Atlantean Initiates used. The deeds of the Nordic heroes were part of the anatomical biological work going on down in the depths of nature with the Tree of Life. Asgard, Midgard and Jotunheim contained the double Helix map of the entire spectrum of rear-brain Atlantean biology. But the Atlanteans had started playing god themselves.

After the flood the earthly ego and earthly egotism was to be managed by real-time, not mythic bio-psychic time, but by the suns rule of twenty-four hours. In this rhythm, still today, you can find how your inner clock regulates its life forces to your exits and entrances on the map of sleeping and waking. If I stay up till four in the morning, twelve hours later at four in the afternoon, I’ll start to feel my second wind. I can feel my ego dawn in me, as if I owned a personal relation to the twenty-four hour rhythm. And we do own it. After the sinking of Atlantis we became religiously serious about the festivals and seasons and saw now outwardly, in pristine space, what the Atlanteans formerly viewed only inwardly, in the realm of clairvoyant biology.

When then, we consider the Ass or the position of the Pole star and the circle cut by the earth’s rotation, it should be little wonder that our physical incarnation and reproduction is based on the peculiar number relationship of 23. Our seasons, at least in the northern hemisphere, stand as a revelation of how the 23 degree variable gives us our four rhythm count in four seasons, four chambers of the heart and four parathyroid glands.

“In the formation of sperm and egg cells the usual 46 chromosomes per cell are reduced to 23. When the egg and sperm cells fuse at fertilization they form one cell that again contains 46 chromosomes.”

The cell structure that forms the beginning to the male and female sex, regroups as a cell, with the same number of chromosomes as there are degrees that form the basis of the cone that the earth inscribes around the North Pole. The male supplies twenty-three and the female supplies twenty-three making up the forty-six of the cell. When you look at the cell under a microscope or you look at what the earth inscribes in space you see, like the cell, a wide circle and a little circle within it. Twenty-three is the Cabalistic word CHOKMAH or CHAIAH.

“The power of the Cabalistic `Father’ is the power of the second aspect of the Life Power, the Sephirah named CHOKMAH (Wisdom). CHOKMAH is named AB, by Qabalists, and the special power of CHOKMAH, the secret force of Wisdom, is named ChIH, CHAIAH, the Life-Force. This that same CHAIAH that, when multiplied by Ehben, is 23 X 53, or 1219, which in Greek Gematria is Ichhys (the Fish)-NVN, NUN, the letter corresponding to Scorpio.”

The Emerald tablet is based on the idea that there is a match between the numbers above and the numbers below. “He created His Universe by the three forms of expression: Numbers, Letters and Words.” Fifty-two weeks of the year (X) the cellular chromosome structure of a woman or a man; or the 23 degree variable that sets our seasons; or the northern circle of the cone, locks in our estimation of time and biological growth to the sacred word for the etheric body, CHAIAH. Scorpio/the Eagle Initiate John, the guardian of the Tree of Life is the result of 53 (X) 23. Numbers linked to the word appear to be the new basis for all physics issues. Hardly new, but the ancient, newly rediscovered basis. However it is here, that the Atlanteans made a fatal mistake that cost them dearly 18,000 years ago. It is here where the Noah myth takes on the dimension it was meant to have since it was first inaugurated.

“…scientists knew that each animal or plant cell contained a nucleus and that within the nucleus were a number of minute thread like structures called chromosomes. But it was not until 1903 that two scientists, the American Walter S. Sutton and the German Theodor Boveri, independently suggested that the chromosomes were the carriers of the information which offspring inherited from their parents. They said that chromosomes exist in homologous pairs, one from the father and one from the mother in each pair.”

With these pairs, two by two, Noah could escape the Atlantean catastrophe with the appropriate biological structures that would ensure the completion of THE FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS and THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH. For it is not only with numbers, but with letters and words, consonants and vowels that relink the Tree of Life to the Tree of Knowledge. Like Noah, we are faced today with a boat load of endangered species. But unlike Noah, no one is going to step in and tell us not to meddle with the divine genetic numbers or not to collapse the environmental sustaining principles that support all the species, animals and plants of the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. Because the divine work was finished with Christ, it is now up to clarified and dignified human intelligence to create the ark of integrity and spiritual insight needed to complete the work of Christ and nature.

“Thus, in terms of European mythology, the head of the human being contains, above, as it were, Asgard, the castle of the gods; in its middle part, Midgard, man’s earthly home; and, below, what also belongs to the earth, Jotunheim, home of the giants.”

The entire Nordic mythology was based on the Tree of Life model used by the Atlanteans. The Nordic seers knew how the Finished Work of the Gods, the entire realm of life, culminated in the Human form. The Gods were active inwardly and the Atlanteans could see them and name them with inward clairvoyant accuracy. But the Atlanteans started restructuring the inner codes of the numbers and distorting their relationships with the gods. The Atlantean society, unable to orient outwardly in space, unable to see the star frequencies, became rather loose in their relations to the twin serpents, the double helix that we now know as the Tree of Yggdrasill or our DNA. The Nordic seers revealed in their myths the relations to the gods that were once held by the Atlanteans. The Finished Work of the gods, was very unfinished at the time of Atlantis, when it was suddenly disturbed by a powerful Ahrimanic presence.

“…a single central power whom all followed and obeyed, a kind of spectral spirit, a descendant of the `Great Spirit’ of Atlantis, was revered. This spirit had gradually assumed an ahrimanic character because he still worked with forces that had been right in Atlantis or were already ahrimanic there.

“When the Atlantean spoke of his `Great Spirit,’ he expressed it, as we have seen, in a word that sounded something like the word `TAO,’ which is still preserved in China. An ahrimanic, caricatured counterpart appeared in the West as opponent of the `Great Spirit TAO’ but he was still connected with him. He worked in such a way the he could only be made visible through atavistic, visionary perception but whenever they desired his presence, he always showed himself to those persons connected with the wide spread mysteries of this cult so they could receive his instructions and commands. This spirit was called by a name that sounded something like TAOTL. TAOTL was thus an ahrimanic distortion of the `Great Spirit’ – a mighty being and one who did not descend to physical incarnation. A great many men were initiated into the mysteries of TAOTL but the initiation was of a completely ahrimanic character. It had a quite definite purpose and goal, which was to rigidify and mechanize all earthly life, including that of humans, to such a degree that a special luciferic planet,…could be founded above earthly life. The souls of men could then be drawn out to it, by force and pressure.”

It would be crass and silly to say that this would be PLANET HOLLYWOOD( ) but certainly such a silly idea has for its background something much greater. The aim and the intersection that we are faced with today brings us once more to the goal that was understood as Ragnarok or TAOTL by the Nordic seers and some of the Atlantean Initiates. The goal of the Ahrimanic forces that began bending Atlantean culture back then, are now in the same way, bending our culture toward it’s twisted mission, which is not the Michael or Grail mystery at all.

“The goal they aimed to achieve was to make the whole earth a realm of death, in which everything possible would be done to kill out independence and every inner impulse of the soul. In the mysteries of TAOTL the forces were to be acquired that would enable men to set up a completely mechanized earthly realm. To this end, one had, above all, to know the great cosmic secrets that relate to what works and lives in the universe and reveals its activities in earthly existence. You see, this wisdom of the cosmos is fundamentally in its wording, always the same, because truth is always the same.”

Now let us return to the actual Ragnarök text and penetrate some of the initiate’s observations. Their observations were made with the intention of piercing ahead, scouting ahead with their vision. They were scoping out for us, and for themselves as well, the coming confrontations, the ramifications of what had started with the Unfinished Work of the Gods back in Atlantis. After the Atlantean catastrophe, the Christ Being in 33 A.D., took a position opposite the Ahrimanic standpoint presenting humanity with the beginning dawn of the Sun-Revelation from within our own I Am logos structure.

If we imagine a slithering Darwinian beginning as the outward sun heated the swamps, the Christ brought the full essence of the sun into the grasp of each individual. With Ahriman, nature, ecology, biology, technology, and humanity are set on the auction block of consumer marketing. In the Ahrimanic world, conscience has been bled out of the multi-national marketing of earth’s precious resources. Humanity is caving in to a cyberspace world and letting the whole of nature become an on-line museum which we can all fondly remember.

“Then the brothers Fenrir and Jormungand will move side by side. Fenrir’s slavering mouth will gape wide open, so wide that his lower jaw scrapes against the ground and his upper jaw presses against the sky; it would gape still wider if there were more room. Flames will dance in Fenrir’s eyes and leap from his nostrils. With each breath, meanwhile, Jormungand will spew venom; all the earth and the sky will be splashed and stained with his poison.”

We have established the identity of Fenrir and he handles the surface, the corporate consuming of the entire earth and all her resources from mining to air traffic, from satellite traffic to planetary exploration. Jormungand reveals the biological and viral forces that are locked, serpent like, helix like, into the matrix and intertwining of all ecological interrelationships. As we tamper and distort the environment; as we biologically experiment and loosen the linkages of connected species and manipulate these into new and strange genetic combinations, Jormungand becomes a free agent ready to attack the human immune system.

The concept of as above so below has far reaching consequences. By unleashing, unfastening, and recombining different genetic codes below, in nature, we set off a reverberating scale and variance disturbance that begins to go upwards. The serpent power worshipped in every ancient culture as the dragon forces, the flying dragon, were clearly what the Atlantean saw in its spirit when it looked with its rear brain eye into the warehouse of nature and the gods. That was the unfinished work. Because it was unfinished and the Atlanteans started to unravel the scale and variance in the codes, the flood came crashing down on their heads.

Adam had been naming the Logos keys of the animal world from Paradise, from the roots of the Tree of Life. But Adam was tossed out of the warehouse of biology, along with Eve, tossed out because of that double helix DNA meddler, the snake. It all fell apart, when apparently Eve got blamed for saying, `lets try something different this time.’ But the Book of Adam and Enoch’s record reveals that naming, visualizing and naming, stamping the etheric impression onto new species emerging from the assembly line of the unfinished work of the gods, was part of Adams Logos structure. To achieve the perfected Micro-Word Being of mankind, nature forms had to be tossed out and off the Tree. The Tree of life, leading to the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, had numerous branches, all of them sacrificed for the ultimate finished product.

Species and nature forces were not divorced or separate from the I AM of Adam, they actually came out of him and he named them. The scale and variance of the etheric body was being reduced and maximized as the gigantic and the fragile compendium of nature was systematically removed from the Adamic body to become the body of nature. Adam was meant to represent us. Nature was spun off from us. Adam could give the names and inner identity of the things around him because they were part of him. His training, in the warehouse of biology and nature was that of the percept/concept Logos maker in training. Christ brought the difference between the Logos maker in training and the Logos I AM capable of representing the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. This is key to our understanding THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH.

We are living in the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, it can now be manipulated to the detriment of earth’s ecological basis. Plant, animal and mineral forms and forces can be set into shattering number frequencies that can alter all the coding on up to the highest level of the planets and stars. It is so, because of the resonance in morphogenetic fields that are interrelated, as the numbers reveal. Stars will fall out of the sky if we oscillate the infrastructure of species and genetic codes off their foundations. If we rock the foundations the house will collapse. The Atlanteans were cut short in their efforts to do just that, but we must actually choose not to do what they did, as tempting as it appears to us. Contrary to popular slang and language, let’s not rock!

A tremendous immortal suction must occur if we do begin rocking the Noahtic boat. Meaning that human attention must be shifted to a cyberspace world vacuum where nothing really exists. Our focus is beginning to shift and beginning to create the vacuum that sucks the foundations of nature right out from underneath us. Species begin to go extinct and their animal folk-spirits, invisible behind them, become operative forces in our new virtual vacuum in cyberspace. A further betrayal of Noah, of Adam, of the Native Americans and a further crucifixion of Christ is now in the hands of our scientific community. As we alter and manipulate group-souls of animals and species of plants, all of which have futures ahead of them, that are not arbitrary, we begin a cosmic undermining of our own Finished world.

Before Christ, Zarathustra and the Nathan Jesus child completed the FINISHED WORK of the Logos Being, humanity was an Unfinished Work. The Atlantean errors would have prevented the finishing of the great work. Constantly in the course of human development, humanity tossed between Luciferic and Ahrimanic forces, needed intervention from the Sun-Spirit to keep the goal of the Finished Work on track. The Atlanteans had to be prevented from screwing up the entire ecological and genetic system that was in the process of completion. Nature would have veered way off course and our immortality would have been distorted beyond recognition.

Now we have the Sun, the light of Ariel, the light of St. Paul and a light brighter than our digital laser graphics locked into the living forces of the planet. Instead of computer access we have thought and spirit access. But this means that humanity can now go into the foundations of nature, with Ahriman’s assistance and screw up the entire ecological world. This part of the saga is just beginning. Reproductive Technology has begun to interfere with the incarnation of human spirits. A one-sided technical clairvoyance is being prepared through virtual reality and psychotropic drugs, that interferes with the pituitary and pineal glands by introducing serotonin and melatonin imbalances, giving confused people, apparent euphoric and opiated states. Remain calm folks, take some more Ridlin the worst is yet to come, no need to be nervous!

Now that the work of the gods is FINISHED, Ahriman and Jormungand can be let loose on humanity. Instead of running with open arms to the point where the new inner sun illuminates and lights an ever clearer pathway to the mystery of the Dove; the new-found freedom from the gods, has let humanity run straight for the old Atlantean dilemma. One of the greatest secrets of the Atlantean power of mass hypnosis is carried over to us in the epidemic of the yawn. One yawn can unleash a hundred yawns, unless one is conscious of ones bodily and psychic organism. Lulling us to sleep as couch potatoes truly brings on a vegetative state of soul. We can be passively shaped, by the emerging post Atlantean coma-like clairvoyance, into a virtual world, cyberspace trance condition.

“…In those days of dim clairvoyance mutual understanding was based upon a subconscious influence passing from one to the other. Especially was there still present to a high degree something we know today only in it s last misinterpreted and misunderstood surviving form, namely, a kind of suggestion, a subconscious influence from man to man, appealing but little to the active cooperation of the other’s soul. Looking back to early Atlantean times we see that a powerful effect was exercised on the other’s soul the moment any image, any sensation, arose in a man’s soul, and he directed his will upon the other person. All influences were powerful, as was also the will to receive them. Only traces of all this still exist today.

“Picture to yourself a man of that time passing another while executing certain gestures. If the observer were even slightly weaker of the two, he would have felt impelled to imitate and mimic all the gestures. The only surviving remnant of this sort of thing is our inclination to yawn when we see another person yawning.”

18,000 years ago, the comet Hyakutake did a fly by over the culture of Atlantis. A comet is one of the members of the solar community who have refused to be part of the ongoing plan of the gods. A comet has a cyanide core and cyanide is the shattering poison that can actually chip immortal pieces off our immortal prototype. The comets behave in such a way, that they remain aloof from the ordered symmetry and numerical scale and variance which has given us the solar community, the twenty-four hour ego rhythm and the reproductive forces connected biologically with our moon.

“On ancient Moon the substances which are today poisonous played the same role as do the plant juices on Earth, those juices which agree with man. But why are the poisons still present today? For the same reason that Ahriman is present. They are what has remained behind, something that has remained behind in physical forms. So we now have what agrees with man, that is, whatever has progressed in the normal way, and certain other substances which have remained behind at the Moon stage, which is now the stage of poisons.”

The comet Hyakutake has given us a wake-up call. It is a subtle cultural parallel to something that occurred when humanity was Unfinished and like the Nordic Balder, the gods were very proud when he was finally finished. In the Nordic Balder tale, it was mistletoe, a plant that made no agreements to be part of earth life, that killed Balder.

Like the comet, the mistletoe lives like a twining parasite on the tops of trees. Mistletoe is not a part of this earth evolution and because of this, the beautiful finished work, called Balder could be killed. He is killed by something outside the interrelationships established by the Sun-imbued Logos. Nestled in the branches of the stars are these cyanide cousins to earth development, the comets, who have refused to go easy on poor Balder ( ). Loki, like our entertainment world, has given a lot of good ideas to the bad guys. The adrenalin pumping as destruction, mayhem and murder, are strictly outlined in cinematic clarity. We thrive on this, but not what Loki cannot tell us.

Since we are living in the Finished work of the gods, our meddling, which had caused the Atlantean catastrophe, is now just going to harm us and the various kingdoms depending on us that go through the animal, plant and mineral worlds. Loosening the genetic codes of the Midgard Serpent now begins to unsettle the weather, the patterns of migrations and stability that the unfinished work kept us from having to face.

“The sea will rear up and the waves will pummel the shore because Jormungand, the Midgard Serpent, is twisting and writhing in fury, working his way on to dry land. And in those high seas Haglfar will break loose – the ship made from dead men’s nails. The bows and the waist and the stern and the hold will be packed with giants…”

Here we see the result as fierce waves of resonation and oscillation, are set off, from the re-setting and fixing of new genetic frequencies in nature. On top of that, the world we have created from the chips of dead men’s fingernails or silica, will be jostled free. The film STRANGE DAYS is beginning to outline what the Nordic Initiates already knew would happen. Meaning that the cyberspace vacuum we have created by shifting our compassion and loving interest away from nature to sub-nature is going to loosen the moorings on planet earth. As we lose the experience of nature we become entertainment vampires, seeking ever more sociopathic avenues of gratification.

Our planet could remain tethered to a fixed axis and be linked concretely with current chromosome and genetic fields, but once we start unscrewing the Finished work, the whole thing can collapse and we as humanity would need to prepare to download our souls into cyberspace. With the tantalizing possibility of game worlds inside of cyberspace we are being fattened to go to the planet prepared for by the Ahrimanic and Luciferic forces. Do you want this to happen? It is on its way whether we like it or not?

Think of this, “The bows and the waist and the stern and the hold will be packed with giants.” In the last letters, Steiner describes Midgard, where men live. “Man is a being who unfolds his life in the midst, between two regions of the world. With his bodily development he is a member of a `lower world’; with his soul-nature he himself constitutes a `middle world’; and with his faculties of Spirit he is ever striving towards an `upper world.'” Not only was the Nordic world threefold, but it represented the three-fold structure of the human being. Asgard, Midgard and Hel. It stood as the chromosome DNA map of the physical and spiritual structure of the human being. If the bow, the waist and the stern are fused into high technology, reproductive technology and viral technology, all locked into the giants memory that runs our silicon world, what has become of the threefold human society? Thinking is splintered into nerd tech; Rhythm or breathing is severed and attacked through viral tech; and the will forces are shattered in repro-tech.

“The original divine humanity first descended upon the earth at the Pole, and the polar and neighboring regions formed the first habitation of mankind. The Greeks, too, describe this land as that of the Hyperboreans, a land whither Apollo, god of the spiritual power of the sun, returned again and again. Gradually, and through long ages, the human race spread from thence over the face of the earth. The other and opposite pole only later entered into the story of evolution. This occurred when the development of humanity of the earth reached the equatorial region. All this is found in the conceptions of the primeval East. When humanity had developed so far that it had attained an existence which, according to our scientific investigations, we designate that of the warm-blooded organisms, then the other side of the world began to play its part. The Germanic peoples called this other side of the world the southern `Muspelheim.’ It is the polar antithesis of the northern `Nifelheim.’ The Persians said that the Ahuras – who were gods of light like Apollo – inhabited the north, and the Devas – gods of darkness – streamed against them from the south. The beings whom the Persians called Ahuras and the Indians Asuras, were addressed by the Germanic people as Asen, and the Indian word `Deva’ (in the Persian Daeva) we find in the Germainic as Wanen (pronounced V). In the name `Wanen’ we have the human soul in dream and in presentiment or dim feeling; while the Asen of light were met with in waking life.”

Between the Aztec world of the south and the Nordic world of the north, we begin to see a mighty inner battle field between those who worshipped the Light and those who were drawn into the center of the earth with darkness. This war is the Ahrimanic war we face now. Gold and Cyanide, Zyklon B, Hydrogen Cyanide was used to decimate and gas the immortality from nearly six million jews. Here an Aztec mystery drifted far north, as the north forgot that they worshipped the light instead of the darkness. On this subject I will have more to bring later.

We have already dealt with the fact that the Nordic Initiates could only describe our current chip technology as part of a great ship. An independent ship, cut off from the great ship earth, a separate vessel that was constructed from the clippings, the chips, of dead mens fingernails. Having a fingernail torn off is not fun in the least. The Aztec’s thought it the height of cultural courage to flail and wear the face of a defeated enemy. Do we not wish to wear other men’s faces instead of our own? A planet where busy fingers and busy fingernails tap, tap, and the chips from the fingernails of dead men, with their silica imprints are used in conjunction with giant memories to run information and data against the picture of the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, was the warship described by the Nordic seers.

“…Haglfar will break loose – the ship made from dead men’s nails. The bows and the waist and the stern and the hold will be packed with giants…”

With cyberspace we feel we can embrace safely a severed field of wisdom and light that has been filtered through the labor of dead mens nails. This ship, described by the seers, is crammed to capacity with giants. Gigantic memory is crammed into this ship and linked as it were, to a whole network armed for full tilt attack mode. Our fatal error in underestimating nature is that nature is a picture, spread out in space, of our own Immortal I-Am. Like Steiner, I have distaste for the trendiness which views our wonderful and mysterious world as some sort of video game where we train our children in the fine art of mockery, cynicism and betrayal of natures profound secrets. Loki or entertainment has led the way to a world divorced from the Gods. It is not the awesome FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS but the sick and puny cyberspace world of men that has begun sucking intelligence down into a yawning cosmic sink hole.

“Loki too, free from his fetters, will take to the water; he will set sail towards Vigrid from the north and his deadweight will be all that ghastly crew in Hel.”

If deadweight can throw the axis of the earth off, it would be because of all the errors we have made and errors planned by Lucifer and Ahriman to bring the captured booty of humanity, to their new world. Our North pole axis is needed because our chromosome incarnation and immune system forms must not be tampered with. Yet who is to say that we cannot play with all this stuff in nature anyway we want to? The gods are gone, mom and dad are away, lets party! But the variable, oscillating wobble in the roots of creation is that viral spewing rascal Jormungand. Dare we take these warnings given by the Initiates lightly?

“Orpheus brought forth Eurydice from the netherworld, from which man had to take his leave when he turned his soul’s attention to the heavens, to the stars. The Orphic songs, preserved, for example, by Apollonius of Rhodes, are a description of geological events, which in their turn were a terrestrial echo of the changing constellations, the varying positions of the axis of the Earth in its relation to the fixed stars.

“Stage by stage, the universe was bereft of living soul. The first to fade away were the great pictures of the heavens and of the constellations, which at long last became dead symbols – `signs of the zodiac’ as we now know them. But in an intermediate period the planetary gods still spoke to man, until they too at length grew dumb, one after another. The realm of Chronos of Saturn fell away when Zeus or Jupiter began his reign. Thereafter came the epoch of Mars or the Titans. Comparative study of all religions will prove that the dream-picture-world of mankind drew nearer and nearer to the earth, while stage by stage the farther reaches of the cosmos faded away – their Word is reduced to silence.

“It was as though the gods descended to the earth to unite with men. And at last, the Logos himself became flesh. The cosmic distances were now unpeopled of the gods, and the time came when John the Baptist had to prophesy: `Change the way of your thinking, for the distant realms of the heavens have now come near at hand.”

THE CARAPACE

or

THE MAKING OF A NEW HEAVEN AND A NEW HELL

“I have reason to believe that on the dissolution at death of a human being, its forces may still persist and continue to act in a blind, unconscious fashion. As a rule they speedily dissipate themselves, but in the case of a very powerful personality they may last a long time… And, in some cases…these forces may coalesce with certain non-human entities who thus continue their life indefinitely and increase their strength to an unbelievable degree.”

In this mystery fragment from Ragnarök, where Loki brings the ghosts and demons of Hel into the game, Charles Bukowski portraitwe really have another powerful image to meditate on. The archives of all the old film ghosts that have haunted the screens and hearts of several generations, have been chained to Lucifer. When Walt Disney had his body frozen so that he could be reawakened after they found a cure or could implant his soul/spirit structure into another younger model I knew there was trouble ahead. When primitive people were afraid to have their pictures taken because it apparently stole their souls, something spooky awoke in me.

When we execute a sinister and psychologically deranged criminal as portrayed in Silence of the Lambs, (of which more and more are coming) something far worse can be generated, because the psychic and intellectual cohesion of the personality does not dissolve with mere execution.

In the case of John Wayne Gacy, a mass murderer from Chicago who killed nearly 34 people
, a strange and foolish blunder was made in the timing of his execution. In May of 1994 at midnight John Wayne Gacy was sent through the gate of death by lethal injection. The actual passage and expulsion of his soul from a confined body in a Chicago prison cell to the release and expansion of the subconscious contents of his criminal psychology was timed to a total Eclipse of the Sun. It would be interesting to note the trajectory and path of the effective eclipse across north America at that time.

By examining such details and measuring our statistics on criminal surges over the next 21 years something could be observed. In any case, observing it or not, the dumping of the toxic waste of John Wayne Gacy into the cosmic field of a Solar eclipse merely sends the toxic waste back, into the psychic structure of seething seeds of potential, already latent in the subconscious of living personalities here on earth.

Unhatched intentions and incubating psychic diseases are far less lethal when the life force, life sentence, has not terminated the criminal. If the life forces, biographically and biologically are left over, if the criminal or psychopath has not died of old age, in solitary confinement, but is killed with life force still unused, the remainder goes to feed incubating psychic disease fields in others. If the life forces are still there, then the psychically charged, disturbed field seeks another or other hosts. Loki is gathering all these dynamic forces that make a new heaven and a new hell, as well as the meaning implied on the opposite spectrum of a new heaven and a new earth. We have to decide what new heaven and what new hell we would rather have. These are some of the decisions worth thinking about, when we are faced with Christ or Ahriman.

Rudolf Steiner (See Link)

“…we proceed to the influence of Loki on the physical body, in which he brings about sickness and death. His third off-spring is, therefore, that which produces sickness and death. That is Hela. Thus you have, in fact, expressed in a wonderful way — in the figures: Hela, the Fenris Wolf, and the Midgard Serpent — the influence of Loki or Lucifer, in the form in which the old clairvoyance, which we may describe as a dreamy clairvoyance, perceived it. If we were to go through the whole history of Loki, we should everywhere find that these things throw light upon the matter, down to the smallest details. But we must clearly understand therein that what the clairvoyant sees is not merely an allegorical symbolical description, but he sees real entities, Beings.

Diagram 5
Diagram 5
Click image for large view

Now the Germanic Scandinavian did not know merely of Loki, of the Luciferic influence; he was also aware of the influence of Ahriman which came from another direction; and he knew more, he knew that the exposure to the Ahrimanic influence is the consequence of the Loki influence. You must now transpose yourselves back to the time when man did not look at the world with external physical vision, but contemplated it with the old clairvoyance, and you will then find that this myth is formed for that clairvoyance. What does the myth say? Loki’s influence has come upon man, and this is expressed in the action of the Midgard Serpent, the Fenris Wolf and Hela.”

Click on Picture for Bradford Riley’s Fourth Grade Norse Play

“Gullveig’s Gold”

Norse YggdrasillBy using the spring-board of a Solar eclipse, the moon re-ignites these unused immoral astral intentions and re-injects them back into souls on earth who carry an attraction to similar deeds in their already disturbed psychological structures. Parasitical astral forces quantum leap up to legion in no time at all. The ugly and diseased psychology does not disperse when life force is still running, rather, it rains down into already infested psychological pockets that are latent in living people. A multiplication of psychic criminal inspiration is projected and diffused over a wide territorial field. The math and physics of the soul here is called Legion, in biblical terms, the swine used by Christ to absorb the deadly psychic toxins were pigs.

If we expel and dislodge the demonic forces, as in the example of Christ and the madmen, the force and dynamic does not angle out away from the earth, on the contrary, it fuses and leaps back into the most receptive field. Using the moon to project it back into the psyche is horribly dangerous form of enhancement. When Christ used the swine, they buffered the damage of evil and could assist in absorption of the negative psychic forces. These demonic infestations appear as viral fields in human epidemiology as well as tendencies toward dark pathologies. Here lies an amazing clue that could be used medically.

In a TIME magazine cover story of September 12, 1994, titled REVENGE OF THE KILLER MICROBES, swine were depicted as an integral part of human diseases. “Perhaps the most ominous prospect of all is a virulent strain of influenza. Even garden-variety flu can be deadly to the very old, the very young and those with weak immune systems. But every so often, a highly lethal strain emerges-usually from domesticated swine in Asia.”

We have not progressed far enough to allow us to vacuum clean the incubating psychic illnesses in individual criminals and guide them into a heavy and neutral medium like that of the swine in the biblical story. It is wiser for us to consider not killing the psychotic infestations that have leached themselves onto the bodily/psychic structure of our various killers. It is better that they serve life sentences and have their life force dry up, so that what they carry may not prematurely find new hosts that are readily available in our already sickened society. It might even be suggested by means of sympathetic transfer, to inject the blood of these criminals into selected herds of swine. These of course would not be used for human consummation.

What I am saying now, about the nature of Hel, that is part of Loki’s booty from all the maladjusted disturbances from the murders, wars, ethnic cleansing and unacknowledged spiritual agony that has left its fatal mark in our psychic atmosphere, has a precedent. The initiate Algernon Blackwood has something to add to this picture.

“You do not quite gather what I am driving at; and it is not to be expected that you should, for you, I suppose, are the nominal Christian with the nominal Christian’s lofty standard of ethics, and his utter ignorance of spiritual possibilities. Beyond a somewhat childish understanding of `spiritual wickedness in high places,’ you probably have no conception of what is possible once you break down the slender gulf that is mercifully fixed between you and that Outer World. But my studies and training have taken me far outside these orthodox trips, and I have made experiments that I could scarcely speak to you about in language that would be intelligible to you… I cannot explain to you in a few minutes the nature of such things, for you have not made the studies that would enable you to follow me; but I have reason to believe that on the dissolution at death of a human being, its forces may still persist and continue to act in a blind, unconscious fashion. As a rule they speedily dissipate themselves, but in the case of a very powerful personality they may last a long time… And, in some cases…these forces may coalesce with certain non-human entities who thus continue their life indefinitely and increase their strength to an unbelievable degree. If the original personality was evil, the beings attracted to the left-over forces will also be evil... thought is dynamic, and that it may call into existence forms and pictures that may well exist for hundreds of years. For, not far removed from the region of our human life, is another region where floats the waste and drift of all the centuries, the limbo of the shells of the dead; a densely populated region crammed with horror and abomination of all descriptions, and sometimes galvanized into active life again by the will of a trained manipulator…”

This quality of Hel, can be galvanized and infested, down, into the world of cyberspace. It comes through magnetism, electricity and light. Our programs and computers all run on magnetic field and light and the astral world, not only is attracted by the disturbed emotional illnesses we produce in our psychic structure, but now they can find islands. Islands of digital discs and graphic laser illuminated violent video games and virtual reality mind benders, can all be populated on the head of a pin down into the sub-nature world of cyberspace. Loki can bring all this and more from his commitment with Ahriman to lift us out and away from this miraculous Finished Work of the Gods. They want us elsewhere and not to be reminded or bothered about all the creatures and stranded beings who are calling out to us not to betray their futures.

Medicine and the Justice system have failed to understand the eclipse factor in the moon, nor the full neutral alignment of swine biology with human biology. Medicine may view swine as incubators of viral factors but they do not link viral factors to borderland entities that might gain force from a polluted psyche like that of John Wayne Gacy.

Humanity seems not yet mature enough to consider the escalating viral fields and their relation to swine as gateways, doorways or neutralizers. Swine are themselves poison absorbers that closely resemble the structure of human beings. Blood plasma is still made from swine because of the human affinity. The Hebrews abhorred eating swine because they knew that they absorbed these intense parasitical and viral forces into their systems. There certainly is a way through injection, not lethal injection of the psychopath, but injection into animals like swine that would re-direct the parasitical astral beings into something we can control. Contained by something that demons cannot feed off of, that is, an active human psyche with immortal potential for damage.

“When he came to the other side of the sea, to the country of the Gadarenes, two men who were possessed by demons came out of the tombs and stood in his way. They were exceedingly dangerous, so that no one could pass along that road. And see, they called out loudly: `What is this power between us and you, Son of God? Have you come here to discipline us before the time is fulfilled?’ Far from them a large herd of pigs was feeding. And the demons begged him `If you cast us out, send us into the herd of pigs.’ And he said to them: `Depart.’ And they fled and went into the pigs. And see, the whole herd rushed down the steep incline into the sea and perished in the waters.”

St. Matthew 8: 28-33

What has been imprinted into the psychological structure of the personality dissolves after death or is condensed. To execute a concentrated psychological killer is to spawn forces into the subconscious of ten thousand potential serial killers, who, because of their affinity of disposition, attract and feed off the diseased remains in the psychic field. Adolf Hitler was gassed in world war I and suffered near fatal illness from the trenches and their unsanitary conditions. What incubated in Hitler later went unobserved and hidden for years. His example was a viral, biological warfare hazard. We have ten thousand of them coming up on us every day, including the Gulf War Syndrome victims.

When we speak of execution and the death penalty, we must be very clear what this means. Executing and thereby releasing, through their deaths, super-charged viral forces that go rushing towards the putrid immune systems and weak psychic structures of individuals, amounts to sinister sub-entity invasive virology. This is the reason why the death penalty has inherent and ghastly dangers in it. Loki and Ahriman thrive off this disturbing population and with our laser disc technology we have managed to provide mass-produced island homes for them. Devachan forces are eroding while we slowly suck down the light which belongs to a much greater mystery. Hell can truly be sucked down onto Earth and earth can be sucked clean out from under humanity.

Is death and the silica from dead men’s nails really the end of our social problems? In light of these facts we must question the sudden and premature deaths of Jeffery Dahmer, murdered by an inmate and the death of the British mass murderer, West (and his House of Horror, with his backyard strewn with buried bodies of women including his own daughter and wife). West apparently hung himself in his prison cell in England. All of these events occurred in the year 1994.

If humanity refuses to watch and stay alert, other beings will step in while the astral fizz is still crackling and popping, and crack open the shell of a person and release the toxins. For certain beings of the universe, we are beginning to look like lunch. We need to know that we are part of the dynamic Finished Work and we carry the Immortal Logos, and as such, if we refuse our mission, we become part of somebody elses food chain. We must not be too blind to see, amid the ruins of the Finished Work of the Gods, where these dynamic systems of Hel can reemerge.

This is why Christ came, to give us a fighting chance within a potent spiritual environment. This is why Steiner spoke up. Down to the details, science and present education have very much underestimated and left unprepared a society living on Elm Street. The endangered Elm tree is what the golden statue of the Representative of Man is carved from CLICK ON PICTURE BELOW. Because we are ignorant of these things, we are beginning to live in a Nightmare on Elm Street. This is what the Nordic seers saw as Loki’s Hel.

Copies and duplicates of disturbed psychopaths and their psychic structures are now available for demonic multiplication through the premature deaths of their bearers. Such copies reveal that dark forces are using cosmic techniques, on the demonic field, for incubation and hatching via the human psychic plane. That which can be used in a healing manner by the highest essence of Christ development can also be used by dark agents of Ahriman.

But even in children, so unprotected, violent forces are wandering close to their innocent cribs and for them astral beings were playfellows before they incarnated here. Now their innocent imitation can suddenly take completely unexpected turns. If what Loki can do, with the beings of Hel, and what was meant by a new heaven and a new hell frightens you a bit, we might better pony up to the present compassionate version of the Finished Work of the Gods, and cease enlisting the mighty conspirators who stand against us.

With the Finished Work of the Gods, and humanity just beginning its intercourse with the mineral kingdom, we see how these Ragnarök potentials can come up all the way to the shores of a new heaven and a new hell. The Necklace of the Brisings taught us that the pwoman with thyroid glandarathyroid glands, centered around the larynx, have a seed capability to release warmth ether, light ether, chemical or tone ether and life ether. As we are about to embark on the expedition to develop a new heaven and a new earth, who and what do you think would like to steal these ethers from us? In the future a Jupiter, Venus and Vulcan evolution stretch out before humanity. This makes the achievement of the Necklaace of the Brisings possible for Freyja. But she must begin intercourse with the primal etheric stages, whose keys are the parathyroid glands or four dwarfs she sleeps with.

At this intersection, humanity is in the silica mineral world and our position to this world, as we crack it open, sets us up to fulfill the dreams of Ahriman and Lucifer by creating an anti-logos world, through our betrayal of the four ethers. Meaning that we allow Ahriman and Lucifer to divert these forces to create an Anti-Jupiter development and an Anti-Venus development and an Anti-Vulcan development. It would be better, in my opinion, to lift the entire Finished Work of the Gods, with Christ, upwards and lift ourselves with it.

Humanity, with the Logos christened from the plane of earth, can lift themselves and nature upwards. Humanity can lift the group souls of the animals to human; the plant spirits and insects to their rightful animal development and even move the stones upwards. By midwife assistance in the help and completion of the Finished Work of the Gods, humanity can attain the equivalent level of development of the Angels; the equivalent level of development of the Archangels and the equivalent level of development of the Archai. This can all be achieved from within the I-Am structure because the Sun will grow ever brighter from within our spiritual cores.

“Odin and Fenrir were the first to engage and their fight will be fearsome. In the end, though, the wolf will seize AllFather between his jaws and swallow him. That will be the death of Odin.

“At once his son Vidar will stride forward and press one foot on Fenrir’s bottom jaw – and the shoe he will wear than has been a long time in the making; it consists of all the strips and bits of leather pared off the heels and toes of new shoes since time began, all the leftovers thrown away as gifts for the god. Then Vidar will take hold of Fenrir’s other jaw and tear the wolf apart, so avenging his fatheVidar and Michael Fenrir Ahriman fightr.”

Here the foreshadowed image of St. George or St. Michael and the dragon is clearly illuminated from behind the veil and mists of the message of the Nordic seers. And the shoe he wears, what of that? We see how wonderfully they captured the image of Michael long before ST. George and the dragon became common. What of the shoes that he wears? Shoes are worn by souls. Feet travel to their destinies. Scraps are taken, not from the middle part of the arch, but the toes and heels. Thinking and Willing forces that have been salvaged from unused destiny, makes one wonder about the true nature of spiritual economy. Steiner gave whole lectures on Spiritual Economy and they are fine, fine works. Nothing is lost, not one jot or tittle is lost, all efforts and apparent failures assist Michael in holding the closing jaws, the closing gates of the Finished Work of the Gods, opened just enough for humanity to scrape past.Norse mythology Vidar Fenrir

As I have portrayed, is there a potential for a new heaven and a new hell created by the forces that stand against humanity? Yes indeed and we are beginning to entertain the techno-feasibility of such an anti-place. What did the Nordic seers think it might be like?

“But there will be another hall on Nastrond, the shore of corpses. That place in the underworld will be as vile as it is vast; all its doors will face north. Its walls and roof will be made of wattled snakes, their heads facing inward, blowing so much poison that it runs in rivers through the hall. Oath breakers and murderers and philanderers will wade through those rivers. Nidhogg, too, will outlive the fire and the flood and under Yggdrasill he will suck blood from the bodies of the dead.”

Magnetic north, as with magnetism, electricity and stolen computer generated laser light, gives cyberspace a look like NASTROND, a no-place on a strand of nowhere that must always face a magnetic north or it will be doomed. In cyberspace the magnetic field must be in place in order to suck the psychic forces off this, our real world. In other words a gigantic vampire field of suction is created from the existing magnetic forces. It is legitimate Devachan light that is skimmed off today to feed the illegitimate bastard son of light called cyberspace.

Nature tells us clearly that there is a learning disability for light in moths and a cosmic ability of digestion of light in butterflies. Further, nature tells us the difference between the night radar of bats and the navigating, migrating frequency of day loving birds. Even the homing pigeon can navigate intelligently, through its specialized locator frequency of day mapping, warmth, love and light.

The cyberspace junkie should study the suicidal stupidity of the moth and the dingy robes it wears, compared to the garment of light that the butterfly is dressed in. The butterfly does not fry its senses in useless computer generated glow. The butterfly is the freest, most incalculable creature in nature’s warehouse. Love and light will be the essence of the Jupiter evolution and the butterfly already lives that future.

“When in the future the Earth planet appears as Jupiter, the Jupiter dwellers will direct their gaze upon love as men on Earth do upon wisdom. …And just as we wonder at the wisdom in all that surrounds us, so he who will one day inhabit Jupiter will feel wafting towards him the love that will lie in all things. This love will stream forth from all beings and speak to us, as the wisdom speaks to us which is secreted into the Earth through the old Moon existence.”

We do not want to condemn ourselves to a world where we have been magnetically addicted to a false world of light. We want to develop in all its wonder, the ability to absorb what all the universe emits as sort of sweet and wonderful sap, sugar, which is condensed light for the butterfly. We want eyes and hearts that can digest compassion and love as if it were light, from all the surrounding universe.

One of the trademarks of the film, THE SILENCE OF THE LAMBS, was a night moth slipped inside the mouths of its victims. But why be obscure about the deadly disposition we are encouraging today with our addiction to stolen light? Why force our children away from the incredible model of nature by forfeiting the nature that exists now for the polluted, crime infested world of night, that is invading every segment of society? We live in a MOMO ( ), nightmare and we still want to play with symbols and art and movies as if we don’t get it. If we got it, we would be more than a tad concerned, our hair would stand on end.

Do we have the capability of utterly destroying the Finished Work of the Gods? The Nordic seers fully saw that such releasing of egoism, astral poisons and manufacturing sub-standard illusionary worlds below this one, plus tampering with the scale and variance of creation would clearly be too tempting for our human brothers and sisters to pass up. In Hel the fixed position of the twenty-three chromosomes locked into the 46 degree cone of the north pole axis, without the dove, becomes the nightmare of the human race. Cell demonology replaces dove-like morphology of the human prototype. Since the ethers around the larynx are to be whored, by Freyja, than they could be marketed by the shadow of Freyja, the Whore of Babylon. The Nordic seers, standing at the summit of their Atlantean insights saw into our present and heroically said;

“The nine worlds will burn and the gods will die. The Einherjar will die, men and women and children in Midgard will die, elves and dwarfs will die, giants will die. The sun will be dark and there will be no stars in the sky. The earth will sink into the sea.”Waldorf Norse Runes and alphabet

Walter Johannes Stein in his THE DEATH OF MERLIN, adds, “The ancient Norse mythology beheld this path of evolution. It saw the human god hang crucified for nine days long on the cosmic ash-tree, whose ninefold branches are indeed the nine spheres of the cosmos, and it gives the tree its true name: `YGGDRASILL‘ – ego-bearer. Humanity is crucified upon the tree that bears the ego, and indeed, only by this means attains the turning-point of individualization. But at this turning-point, the ancient gods of nature die. It is the twilight of the gods. One god alone outlives the world wide downfall, namely the god who himself took human form. By the power of the divine-spiritual WORD, which in him underwent humanity, evolution will be guided back to its divine origin, albeit this time in full consciousness and egohood.”

OFFSPRING OF THE DOVE

But there is a beautiful catch 22 in this vision of Ragnarök before the human race steps into cyberspace. Our catch 22 is a vision that is updated by the Chymical Wedding of Christian Rosenkreuz and brought completely into practical life by the healing insights of Rudolf Steiner. There is certainly hope. Earth and the Finished Work of the Gods is certainly worth fighting for, or they would never have sent their best Initiates into the twentieth century to assist us.

The Ragnarök saga is in full agreement with the Chymical Wedding of Christian Rosenkreuz. Out of the unique procreative forces of the Holy Ghost, the Dove mysteries, those same upgraded chromosome structures that we have followed from Paradise, through the Flood to the Resurrection are locked inside the very sap of the Tree of Yggdrasill as the entire Finished Work goes down. The Blueprints of the Tree of life, down to the realm of Earth, have been saved by the Christ Being.

“The two humans who hid themselves deep within Yggdrasill – some say Hoddmimir’s Wood – will be called Lif and Lifthrasir. Surt’s fire will not scorch them; it will not even touch them, and their food will be the morning dew. Through the branches, through the leaves, they will see light come back, for before the sun is caught and eaten by the wolf Skoll, she will give birth to a daughter no less fair than herself, who will follow the same sky-path and light the world.”

In the commentary on the Ragnarök story made by Kevin Crossley-Holland, he says that he, “pointed to parallels with Iranian mythology and these occur again here. An Iranian myth describes a terrible winter which will put an end to life on earth, with the exception of a few men, women and animals who will escape by hiding in a shelter built by the bisexual Yama.” We have dealt now historically with the moment at 33 A.D.where the bisexual forces of the DOVE entered and conquered the Wolf Lupa who had nursed the children Romulus and Remus.

But there is hardly anything more powerful than the link that goes back to Sophia and Soloviev, or forwards to present day Astrosophy and Anthroposophy. The last lines of the Ragnarök saga reveal something incredible. The Sun gives birth to a daughter no less fair than herself, who will follow the same sky-path and light the world. The amazing untapped inverse physics that we cannot see from our exterior perspective is clearly linked to female reproduction and the female womb. If we could see from inside the womb, the world where souls, spirits and the very truth and light that weaves behind sense reality ushers a child in, we would be in the world of the wise Sophia. To develop the new eyes, ears and thinking forces needed to gain access to this new sunlit revelation has been the reason for exploring the work of the Nordic Initiates.

In this fragment, one has to ask the question, if the Christ Spirit came from the sun, is there an androgynous sun? The Logos on one side of the visible and Sophia on the other side of the invisible, seem to represent the laws of the manifest and as yet unmanifest world. The creations of the Logos appear as percepts in the visible world, the spiritual Beings and identities, or qualities appear to us as concepts. The Philosophy of Freedom, Steiner’s master work, draws the inwardly lit world together with the sunlit world in his concept and percept alignments. The outer sunlit world is now transiting to the inwardly lit world where Ariel and the Sophia sun are awaiting the homeward journey of their children.

Could it be possible, that this journey, with the lost Osiris fragmented in the wide universe, torn to pieces as percepts must be gathered by the mourning Isis as the conceptual spirit of the inner sun? The mystery of the sexes is a mystery of Daughter, inner Sun Sophia and the outer Sun, Christ. Brother and sisters Freyja and Frey or Apollo and Artemis reflect the curious relations of light and reflected light or the relationships held between inner beauty and the outer glory of the sun.

“Long, long ago Persephone, the power of clairvoyance, had disappeared in the dark realm of Pluto. Isis, the human soul, wandered a widow through the world, filled with longing for the realm of Light and Imagination – for Osiris, her husband. The time had come when this universal realm of Light and spiritual Imagination was dismembered into so many isolated symbols. Sadness and grief spread out among the seekers of the spirit. The fair world of their dreams receded ever more, and the plain, matter-of-fact everyday world alone remained.”

The legitimate journey to an inward world of light, that allowed Shakespeare to speak of Ariel and St. Paul to speak of Christ, apparently is laid down in the foundations of the world. We must supply the concepts. Light must be drawn from an inner world, a Sophia imbued world, and a bridge built to the outer world of the Finished Logos to the inner world of Sophia. In Wolfram von Eschenbach’s PARZIVAL, the Nordic Initiates and the Grail come together with Shakespeare, Ariel and St. Paul over the bridge of light.

“These glad tidings tell of the True Lover. He is a light that shines through all things, unwavering in His love. Those to whom He shows His love find contentment in it. His wares are of two sorts: He offers the world love and anger. Now ask yourself which helps more. The unrepentant sinner flees God’s love: but he that atones for his sins serves Him for His noble favour.

“He that passes through men’s thoughts bears such Grace. Thoughts keep out the rays of the sun, thoughts are shut away without a lock, are secure from all creatures. Thoughts are darkness unlit by any beam. But of its nature, the Godhead is translucent, it shines through the wall of darkness and rides with an unseen leap unaccompanied by thud or jingle. And when a thought springs from one’s heart, none is so swift but that it is scanned ere it pass the skin – and only if it be pure does God accept it. Since God scans thoughts so well, alas, how our frail deeds must pain him!”

In the CHYMICAL WEDDING and THE GREEN SNAKE AND THE BEAUTIFUL LILY, such a cultural bridge is built out of mere fairy tales. From the Finished Logos a new birth, a higher second birth of the dove, brings the human logos being into a renewed world where Sophia lives. We emerge from our Freyja developed uterus, saturated with potent mead, drawn from our own etherized Grail blood, enriched by the Being of Light Himself. We are enriched because we lit the inner torch of our thinking. Instead of breaking the water and coming from the womb outside in, we emerge from the new uterus inside, out. Instead of traveling from Beingness into space our space has digested I AM ness and we are born into Beingness. An inversion of cosmic physics brings us into the sunlit world of Beingness.etheric christ CR

SOPHIA

Slumbering in the darkness is nothing- She, wounded by human nothing is veil upon veil of everything. One speck of her nothing delivers worlds from agony. One speck of her nothing and the earth is made new. One nod from her, one touch from her, one moment in her embrace – And brittle-feeble human nothingness becomes a new world of infinite loving light. Now darkened we sense nothing.

Under the Bodhi Tree is where Buddha had his enlightenment. Through the leaves of the tree he traces the experiences and wisdom that brings him the gift of becoming a Bodhisattva. He is on the verge of re-entering the lost world of Sophia/Isis. He is a human being who is following the right genetic, biological and spiritual maps that bring him through the new uterus to the sunlit, inner world of Sophia, St. Paul, Zarathustra, and our own uncultivated little Ariel.

“This is most aptly expressed in the Buddha legend. It says in the legend that Buddha remained seated under the Bodhi tree until he attained illumination in order to rise to higher stages, to Nirvana. For this Buddha had to place himself under the brain, under the organ of consciousness. That means the paths he had previously traversed unconsciously he had to traverse again consciously. Under the large brain there lies, more toward the back of the head, the small, tree-shaped brain ( the cerebellum). Under this brain Buddha placed himself. The cerebellum is the Bodhi tree., This shows how what is said in such profound legends is actually taken from human evolution.”

“Under the blossom that hangs on the bough”

In the last fragment of the text, a new world, where the Sophia Sun dawns, and a new inner kingdom of the Logos is revealed, is exactly where little Gunnlod, the daughter of Suttung sat. Gunnlod sat on a pedestal of solid gold, or solidified world warmth condensed from the heart. This region of the pituitary is where Buddha received his initiation into the Sophia world. It is where the eagle sits in the Tree of Yggdrasill.

In the text, the new children of this new world, that have emerged from the collapse of the Finished Work of the Gods, see the birth of a new sun through the branches of a tree. The text says; “Through the branches, through the leaves, they will see light come back,…” By then, many of you who have read or heard of Anthroposophy will have become as Buddha became, a magnificent human Angel. Earth allows us the privilege to graduate from the school of the outer Sun, the Logos. Buddha had won through suffering and reincarnation, the degree of Human Angelic Being. He serves the Mars forces now in THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH.

Like Ragnarok, the goal of the Chymical Wedding is to achieve the birth of a new humanity able to exist in a new world. Christian Rosenkreuz and various initiates assist the Virgin Sophia in giving birth, through various sophisticated phases, to the higher prototype of humanity established by the Christ Being.

In the Chymical Wedding it is clear that this birth is a community effort. Certainly the rudiments of laboratory technology and higher mathematics is used in each of the phases. While our present scientists dig deeper down into matter with stronger and stronger microscopes, Christian Rosenkreuz tells us that in building the new human prototype and perfecting the design module that Christ developed, the researchers ascend.

Most esoteric comprehension agrees that deeper is higher, but this only applies if you know what higher is. But deeper can just as well mean digging our own graves ever deeper. Pisces plays an important role in the fifth epoch. One fish is positioned deep the other high, like the reversed astral mirror that presents itself as . Robert Powell says in his CHRONICLE OF THE LIVING CHRIST, “…at its present stage of evolution, is just over one-quarter of the way through the fifth cultural epoch, which is related to the zodiacal sign of Pisces. As I have indicated…the fifth cultural epoch began in A.D. 1414.” The CHYMICAL WEDDING, Shakespeare and Bacon began the contrasting counterpoints of high and low riding research beacons.

“…the possibility of finding a true relationship to the Ahrimanic civilization has escaped man. He must find the strength, the inner force of knowledge, in order not to be overcome by Ahriman in this technical civilization. He must understand Sub-Nature for what it really is. This he can only do if he rises, in spiritual knowledge, at least as far into extra-earthly Super-Nature as he has descended, in technical Sciences, in Sub-Nature. The age requires a knowledge transcending Nature, because in its inner life it must come to grips with a life-content which has sunk far beneath Nature – a life-content whose influence is perilous.”

The Virgin, the supervisor in the CHYMICAL WEDDING, is a fairly strict task master, who seems to know what she is doing and how to produce it and who to assign tasks to. Virgo and Pisces act as the healing virtues of sunrise and sunset, again two polarities, but healthy in their mutual relationships. We don’t know who this mid-wife female Initiate is except that through the constellation of Virgo is an ancient secret passage to god. We know that this individual acts as the cosmic Virgin in some mysterious manner, midwifing the new prototype Dove children. Pfeiffer, in his commentary on the Chymical Wedding, says, “It is the mission of Christian Rosenkreuz in particular to combine the Spiritual World and the outer practical and technical world.” Pfeiffer describes the Chymical Marriage as,

“…a document written by Valentin Andrea on the direct inspiration of Christian Rosenkreuz. It describes the initiation of Christian Rosenkreuz in the year 1457. This initiation took place in seven steps or seven days. On the sixth day Christian Rosenkreuz and his eight companions in the process of the initiation brought it about that the higher spirit could enter the physical body of the new or resurrected King and Queen. The King and Queen are representative of the higher ego of the human being. In their work the goal was attained that the spirit could enter the higher ego after the lower had first died.”

Historically, souls that were seeking for a central point to keep up their spiritual work, focused their incarnations on Tübingen, where this updated Atlantean document, written by Valentin Andreae first made its appearance in 1603. We learn that Andrea,

“…in 1601, when he was fifteen, his widowed mother took him to Tübingen so that he might pursue his studies at that famous university of Wurtemberg. Whilst a student at Tübingen, so he tells us, he made his first juvenile efforts as an author, on the themes of `Esther’ and `Hyacinth’, which he states that he wrote `in emulation of the English actors’, and a work called CHEMICAL WEDDING, which he describes deprecatingly as a ludibrium, or fiction, or a jest, of little worth.”

Souls of the stature of Goethe, Novalis, Fichte, and three room mates and students, who bunked together at the university of Tübingen, Hegel, Schelling and Holderlin, all sought out this new Atlantean news flash about 200 years later. The Romantics were launched from this Wurtemberg location by Schiller, Goethe and Novalis.

Andreae eventually hooked up with Comenius and Bacon, the founders of the present deductive, non-intuitive public and university based educational system. From this strange work of THE CHYMICAL WEDDING an enormous intersecting knot of karma and destiny, education, science and Art exploded. Shakespeare lay on one side and Bacon on the other. Clear lines were drawn, clear streams of individual karma and destiny sorted themselves out and inaugurated the very shattering powers that have collided in this, our own twentieth century. This seemingly insignificant work of Johann Valentin Andreae had clocked in just as the Wolf was getting really hungry, nearing the fifteenth century.

We know the wolf is hungry for light, spiritual light. Its counterfeit version, stolen and diverted off the main source in the Devachan, has come through our world as magnetism, electricity, laser and computer generated light. Humans are a rich source of this light, and it would grow stronger and stronger in the thinking and upright spiritual human being if it weren’t for the atrophy clause. Ahriman can suck the light out of us by creating an outer dependency on media driven light.

The real food is based on Gunnlod’s solid gold pedestal under the Bodhi Tree or Cerebellum where the pituitary is located. The real light, the real vampire blood, is rich mead, the etherized transformed Grail Blood of Kvasir. It is this light and this love that the Fenrir wolf is bent on devouring. In this booty lies the entire future states of human evolution and the ichor of immortality needed by such a divine menace as Ahriman/Fenrir. If humanity does not use its own higher spiritual food, Ahriman is forced to make use of it by default. Not one jot or tittle will be wasted.

Walter Johannes Stein revealed the order of contraction of the divine mysteries, “But in an intermediate period the planetary gods still spoke to man, until they too at length grew dumb, one after another. The realm of Chronos of Saturn fell away when Zeus or Jupiter began his reign. Thereafter came the epoch of Mars or the Titans.” Buddha begins the transformation of the planetary community on the same path of ascent that was described by Stein as the shrinking from the mighty active vision of the stars to the mere symbols of the zodiac to Saturn, Jupiter, Mars and at Ephesus, Diana, until the Earth received the veritable Sun. Thus began the work of outwardly civilizing and humanizing, in a Kavasir and diplomatic manner, the planetary rings, so that each member of the human race, like Christ and Buddha might become a Lord of the Rings.

CHYMICAL MARRIAGE OR ALCHYMICAL DIVORCE

In THE CHYMICAL WEDDING OF CHRISTIAN ROSENKREUZ, Ragnarök is changed to a well-ordered burial liturgy and Christian Rosenkreuz plays a significant role because, “Christian Rosenkreuz was initiated into the Jupiter Mysteries in the Atlantean Period.” In the CHYMICAL WEDDING, the old gods are solemnly beheaded and the Finished Work of the Gods and our future, within the Freyja/Aphrodite/Magdalene/Venus, Dove mysteries, proceeds in a dignified, orderly manner. The CHYMICAL WEDDING was the long awaited update to the Grail mysteries. The sub-text in human evolution, that was being carefully monitored by the Initiates, resurfaced again in the CHYMICAL WEDDING.

Christian Rosenkreuz was to remain on the job, during the second half of earth evolution, to assist humanity and the work of Christ in penetrating and preparing earth for the Jupiter evolution. Somewhere back in time, Anchises, Aeneas and Rome certainly met the Aphrodite mysteries head on. Human beings were definitely implicated, tied in to the Venus mysteries that poor Christian Rosenkreuz stumbles upon in one of the most sacred and hidden chambers described in the Chymical Wedding tale. But this hidden chamber is a mystery designated for our times. We must study it with great care to understand its significance and counter-significance.

“It is a peculiarity of Christian Rosenkreuz that he is very curious. He wants to see everything. We recall that once before he almost got into trouble through going into a room the entry of which was not permitted. Now they find a staircase to the basement. They come to a subterranean room and stand before an iron door, which has an inscription which I cannot decipher. They enter another room through this door, a room which has a very beautiful vault. The guide tells him that he is particularly blessed by fate to see what no human eye has seen but only immortal eyes, those of the Kings and Queens. There is in this vault a kind of altar. On it is a triangle and within this is a large bowl of copper. Standing in this bowl is an Angel holding in his hands a tree on which there are constantly growing fruits. These fruits drop into the cauldron and dissolve to liquid. The cauldron has three openings under which are three smaller bowls of gold. It is the Tree of Life, the fruits of which dissolve into the etheric. The Altar is supported by a statue with the forms of a lion, eagle, bull and man. This refers to the four fundamental forces out of which the cosmos was created…I referred to the Sun State where four Cherubim hold the four corners of the world. This is found in all mythologies and also in the Book of Daniel. In the Rosicrucian Teaching it is taken a step farther. On the basis of the Four Beasts there is the triangle symbolizing the Trinity of God. Within it is the forbidden Mystery of Paradise. We have in us the Tree of Knowledge, not this Tree. The Angel of Paradise holds the Tree of Life. The three golden cups are part of our human nature, they represent our thought system, our will system and our feeling system. We can say that we carry these cups in our thought system, our heart system and part of our metabolic system. This experience of Christian Rosenkreuz takes place on the Fifth Day which means early in the Fifth Cultural Period. It is a knowledge that can only be perceived by means of a study of Nature. This is why in the beginning of the Fifth Period natural science developed so greatly even though it completely misunderstood its task. We can see this by the Book of Nature. The Chymical Marriage means that later we can bring about a similar process in our own selves, as we will learn on the Sixth Day. After this Christian Rosenkreuz looks around and sees that the cauldron and Tree are perpetually heated by lights that look like stones. As a result of their fire the tree is constantly melting and in melting renews its fruits. When the Tree is completely liquid, Venus will awaken and become the mother of a new King. This will be the end of the earth state, pralaya and the beginning of a new phase.

“On the other side of the vault is a copper door to which the youth guides him. He opens it, and there is Venus in her bed, sleeping. Rosenkreuz is stunned, seeing Venus in her nude beauty, for the curious youth also lifts the cover of the bed. It is explained to him that this is a vision which no mortal eyes can have. It is something that appears to his supersensible perceptions. There is an inscription, which I believe refers to an initiation in the realm of nature…

“As Christian Rosenkreuz withdraws from the deepest secret of Nature, Cupid appears…Cupid is suspicious, because he does not want any human to see the deepest secret of Nature. Rosenkreuz tells an emergency lie. He says, ` We did not see anything at all.’ Cupid, still suspicious, takes an arrow, dips it into one of the lights to heat it, and shoots it at Christian Rosenkreuz, wounding him in the hand, so that a little blood drips out. It is interesting regarding Christian Rosenkreuz that although he is a high initiate he still has a little vulnerable spot. The day he was drawn from the tower with a rope he hurt his head, and now that he is wounded by the arrow, he tells us this old wound opened and began to hurt again.”

We understand that it is in our own age of science that Rosenkreuz penetrates to the Tree of life, Yggdrasill. We see as well that it is the crystal world of the stones that supply the continuous heat from the roots of creation. That is why the dwarf and gnome layers of reference were included in the Nordic vision of the stratum of active spiritual forces humanity needs to contend with in our alliance with silicon technology. We have no moral or ethical guidelines, if we consider the silicon-mineral realm unattended by any divine agencies. They are fully attended by the type of being Wagner, Tolkien and the Nordic Initiates warned us about and as well as those included in Steiner’s Mystery Dramas and his numerous comments. Every other culture, including the Native Americans, pay homage or respect to the stratum of forces and beings operative from this mineral kingdom.

When Rosenkreuz tells the typical Fifth Epoch lie, that every politician uses to avoid the responsibility for his actions, Cupid dips the tip of his arrow into the hot stone of the silicon world and nicks the palm of Rosenkreuz with it. Aphrodite we know was pierced in the palm in the fifth book of the Iliad and her immortal ichor of blood flowed because of a mortal. Once more a mortal is messing with Aphrodite/Venus only this time it is a mortal that is wounded, not the goddess. In the same spot where Christ was nailed to the cross, where the palm of His hand was wounded on Good Freyja’s day, Christian Rosenkreuz is also nicked.

We have seen how one of our hands was comprised when the Fenrir wolf ate the hand of Odin’s son, when he left it in the mouth of Fenrir for a guarantee. The guarantee was that the gods would release ravaging ahriman if he couldn’t break the bonds. It was a lie, because the gods wanted a way to bind the forces of ahriman/fenrir and therefore when the dark dwarfs made their fiber optic leash that held fenrir, they refused to release him and fenrir snapped off one of the hands Tyr, the son of Odin.

In the Atlantean epoch Christian Rosenkreuz was initiated into the Jupiter Mysteries. We know that Noah escaped the Atlantean catastrophe with a two by two endangered species passenger list that resembles, by description and fact, our chromosome and DNA model. We can establish fairly clearly that the double Helix is our biological map, but also the Tree of Life, Yggdrasill, as represented by the Nordic Initiates. The Jupiter mysteries have much to do with the consolidated vessel of life carried over from one evolution of the earth to its next phase, or condition, that of Jupiter Evolution. The lock, stock and barrel from animal species, plant species and mineral worlds all the way to the human kingdom, was salvaged, almost like the stolen secret plans from a clandestine initiation school, operated from its hidden base in the Atlantean culture. These secrets were carried to safety by Noah out of the dangerous political and ahrimanic intrigues that toppled ancient Atlantis.

These viral, genetic and divine nature blueprints are now the potent weapons of the Fifth Cultural Epoch. These are the very core of the Noah mystery. Christian Rosenkreuz,Christian Rosenkreuz having seen the mysteries of Jupiter evolution and the transformation of Venus, under her bed coverings of nature, must now become the guardian of the threshold for the Fifth epoch, where science begins to dig its claws into the mysteries of nature’s genetic structure.

As early as April 5th of 33 A.D. Magdalene/Freyja, in the initial hours before dawn, witnesses the etheric distillation of the entire super-structure of nature. In order to carry the scale, variance and physics field-systems, of the human form, fully over into the Jupiter, Venus and Vulcan evolutions, a pivotal event must occur. This event must connect from Noah, to Christ and it does, with the mystery of the dove. From the dove-milk, distilled from the quintessence of natures forces, emerges everything that Earth Evolution and the Atlantean catastrophe was about. It was all about completing the finished, calibrated, refined, prototype. This phantom prototype hovered visibly around the Christ Being in his last twenty-four hours as a man on earth.

When Christian Rosenkreuz lifted the veil of Venus, a veil that no man dared lift, natures secrets were uncovered. It was an Isis veil, Novalis deals with this in his Disciples of Sais. The `Veil of Isis’ which no mortal could dare lift without pathological damage was captured in a story written by Novalis called `The Disciple of Sais’.

“The statue of the goddess at Sais in Egypt:- `I am she who was, who am, and who shall be; my veil no mortal has lifted.’

Novalis, Paralypomena: – `To one it chanced; he raised the veil of the goddess at Sais. But what did he see? He saw – wonder of wonders – himself!’

Novalis, The disciples at Sais : – `And if no mortal, according to that inscription there, lifts the veil, then we must seek to become immortal; whoever does not will to lift it is no true disciple of Sais.'”

“Other allusions to the myth occur in Novalis’ earlier prose parable THE DISCIPLES AT SAIS: `is it not true,’ one of the disciples asks, `that stones and forests obey music and, tamed by it, submit to every will like domestic animals?’ And the enigmatic Teacher is described in these words:

`…He watched the stars and imitated their course and positions in the sand. Into the ocean of the air he gazed incessantly; and never tired of observing its clearness, its movements, its clouds, its illumination. He collected stones, flowers, beetles of every kind and arranged them in various patterns in front of him. To men and animals he gave his attention, on the shores of the sea he sat and looked for shells. To his own heart and thoughts he listened intently. He did not know where his longing would lead him. When he had grown up, he wandered about, viewed other countries, other seas, other atmospheres, stones that were strange to him, unknown plants, animals, men; descended into caves, saw how the earth has been built up in shelves and many-colored layers, and pressed clay into curious rock formations. Now he discovered familiar patterns everywhere, only weirdly mingled and combined, and in this way often the strangest objects fell into order in his mind. Soon he looked for analogies in all things, conjunctures, correspondences; till he could no longer see anything in isolation. – All the perceptions of his sense crowded into great variegated images; he heard, saw, touched and thought at the same moment. He loved to bring strangers together. Now stars were men to him, now men were stars, stones were animals, clouds were plants; he played with the powers and phenomena, he knew just where and how to find this shape and the other, to make them appear; and thus he himself drew tones and passages from the strings.'”

The simple gesture of lifting this covering, the veil, and seeing what no one has ever seen is a stinging indictment laid on Christian Rosenkreuz. But his relation to the Jupiter Mysteries of Atlantis makes him a prime candidate for assisting the Virgin through the difficult stages that require the focus of humanity to move forward, working together, on the design model and prototype that the Christ Being executed in His thermal-solar incarnation as the Cosmic Logos.

What warmth flowed from the Breath and Life of the Living Word is captured most clearly in the CHRONICLE OF THE LIVING CHRIST, by Robert Powell. On Saturn’s day, July 26, A.D. 32 Lazarus is brought out of the tomb by Christ. With his warmed cosmic breath and solar spiritual forces, “The apostles formed a circle around Jesus and Lazarus. Lazarus kneeled before Jesus who blessed him, laying his right hand on Lazarus’ head and breathing upon him seven times. Thus, he consecrated lazarus to his service, purifying him of all earthly connections and infusing him with the seven gifts of the Holy Spirit…” In His warmed breath, as indicated through out this document, not only Consonants and Vowels issued forth from his breath and were shaped into life to become new elemental forces and beings, but also a genetic THERMOGENESIS occurred laying the ground plan for the future metamorphosis of nature. Lazarus is the first embryo in the new THERMOGENETIC Christo-biology.

We have prided ourselves on our thermonuclear reactions through out the middle of the twentieth century. We wanted to prove that we could produce the most destructive weapon in the universe. We had for our basis the theory that energy and matter were really locked up light. By cracking the seed of matter, like a walnut is cracked with a nutcracker at christmas, we PROVED something. Materialism always wants proof that spirit exits. Somethings are better left unproved but acted upon in the deepest reverence of the heart. This theory didn’t fly with the materialists who wanted insanity to prevail and wanted proof that energy and spirit, without moral content, without love, is the foundation of matter. With the destructive power of the atomic bomb, every little yuppie heart and materialist had a proof. It proved that by wounding matter by force we can soil, poison and annihilate nature and mankind from the planet. But what can be done with love?

THERMOGENESIS, the living Solar power of Light and Love walked the Earth. What massive effects could we expect from such a Being? We were lucky enough to have had, for so short a time on Earth, a Being who acted creatively, as the Cosmic Logos, within all the gentle and lawful frameworks of earth.

He did not come to detonate the planet and force it to submission, but rather, seeded it, in the three years of his life on Earth, with the quintessence of all nature, the completed distilled miracle of the new chromosome metamorphosed model of the future Tenth Hierarchy. The cradled new embryo of Lazarus, lay close, under the breath of Christ in the picture of the Last Supper.twelve lazarus John Schongauer The Last Supper lived alone by the sustained warmth and love of the Christ Being who gently, with the nurturing power of a Cosmic Mother, cradled Lazarus near his heart. Lazarus lay his head directly on the pulsing heart of the Living Sun-Word and with each breath the Christ Word sustained him.

With each breath, with each day, with each word, with each touch of human, animal, plant or mineral; rocks, waters, plant saps, elemental forces, gold, silver, copper, refined elements that make up nature and the human form, were alchemized and changed. The Cosmic Alchemist, the synthesizer and weaver of all natures numbers, calibration, scale and variance walked the hills, tasted the waters, blessed the food, the bread, the fishes. What detailed array of forces were consecrated and transformed through the power of His THERMOGENESIS? This is what science should ask itself everyday when it wakes. What other numbers, what other miracles, what minute details can we discover today that will reveal how brilliantly, how compassionately and how lovingly the creative Logos rewove and rebuilt our dilapidated system?

The laboratory work done by Christian Rosenkreuz and the community who rise, level by level, stage by stage, through the matrix of forces that were mapped by the Christ in building the new cosmic prototype, is based on the ingredients of Freedom and intuition. It is the joy of the Cosmic Logos to allow the intelligence of its creation to discover for themselves the logical and stunning truth behind the transformations given in the CHYMICAL WEDDING. Do these truths link to the Dove-Milk mystery of the human skeleton?

“We need more purification so that we may differentiate the true from the false, the real from the imagined, the good from the bad. This process takes all afternoon. Then on the fifth floor there is the final process of purification, so that the possibility of judgement may be implanted. This means that a purely spiritual state is reached, no longer subject to astral illusion. On this floor the bird is placed in a big bathtub with a small fire under it, a white powder is placed in the water so that it becomes like milk. This white powder is purely spiritual thought which changes the way of thinking so that it becomes modest and objective and not colored by emotion.”

“Twelve nuns came in to them, bringing Galahad. They said: `Sir, we bring here this child, the which we have nourished. And we pray you for to make him a knight.’ `Sir Lancelot beheld that young squire, and saw he was seemly and demure as a dove;”

“The new soul is not at all complete when it is born, so it is nourished with the sum of past experience and our present-day knowledge. As a result of this nourishment it loses its feathers and obtains new white ones. This is to say, the false and illusionary thought from the past is replaced by free thought.”

The intricate working together of the nine, under the supervision of the Virgin, is far more complex, detailed and wonderful than I am able to comprehend at this time. We can say, as Sergei Prokofieff has indicated in his book, ETERNAL INDIVIDUALITY that, “the zodiacal region of the Virgin is the source of all the forces of virginal purity in our cosmos.” It is indicated by Willi Sucher as either the navel or central key to the location of God. But it might just as well be the source where the blueprints that the Virgin is following, like a recipe, are located. In that case, as a Virgo, I am doubly honored to have descended to earth with some of her virtues. It would take me many, many more years to comprehend how the future forces, the upper stages of the Chymical Wedding, finally achieve the cultural ability to produce what Christ ultimately produced on April 5th, 33 A.D. Part of the answer may lie in the constellation of Virgo.

The further course of earth evolution is not just a gift, it is an adventure in knowledge that will steer the entire course of nature to a new reality. Each individual piece of the puzzle, from each individual contribution, from each mineral, plant, animal and human are needed to bring to fulfillment this staggering cultural gift. This is no free ride, mainly because it stands with humanity to choose between the two courses. This is the moth and the butterfly mysteries. Each of us must put in the time and effort to give our thinking a new white garment. Dove-White objective thinking, Logos thinking, that can stand, without all the emotional baggage we bring, before the face of nature and the mystery of humanity.

“13 And one of the elder answered saying unto me, What are these which are arrayed in white robes? and whence came they?

14 And I said unto him, Sir, thou knowest. And he said to me, These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the lamb.”

Revelations 7:13-14

The tribulation is all about who is qualified to unseal the book of nature? Will it be Ahrimanic science or Spiritual Science with its beginnings in Anthroposophy? The catastrophe that changed the landscape of the earth and nature in Atlantis was mainly due to the question of who would bring to conclusion the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS? The Finished Work or Accomplished work was brought to fulfillment on April 5th 33 A.D. It is shrouded in mystery and unapproachable unless we have the tools to decipher the moral, ethical and cosmic forces that have brought about the transformation. These tools can only be comprehended when spiritual science comes to the aid of material science. Material science alone is the doomed vessel of a severed cosmic system that must drift like a corpse away from the main body of Earth evolution.

Who is capable of unsealing the book of Nature, is certainly not Ahriman, but he is presenting a fascinating and addictive technological picture of spit and polish against the image of the divine. What is lacking is the essence, the warmth, the true human and compassionate sympathy that Christ walked the Earth with. It is friends, not profits; it is brotherhood, not military capability; it is empathy and curiosity about every detail of species and nature forces, from the stars to the depths of the earth, from the Sun and Solar System; to the variable and scaled up numbers of the Milky Way that the Mayan and Aztecs tracked. Inhumanity, deceit, disrespect to the environment, water, plants and animals and the enslavement of the silicon world, without any ethical application of technology, is Ahrimanic.

To follow the recipe and produce what is finally propagated in the Chymical Wedding of Christian Rosenkreuz is to gather up the entire Earth evolution and carry it to the Jupiter evolution. This is the job of humanity, Christianity and science. Transformations and changes in the material structure must follow what Goethe understood as `exact sensorial fantasy’ and we understand in Goethean Science as metamorphosis.

Each liberating match we make in the Emerald Tablet of nature allows us to complete one more step in the recipe that Christ has left for us to discover. The morphogenetic field that links things together will undergo, through our compassion and love, a THERMOGENETIC change. We must dump the concept thermonuclear and replace it with THERMOGENESIS. The new eggs of conception must roll from our listening ears to our speaking larynx.

“Approximately by the fifth millennium (that is, by the beginning of the second half of the sixth epoch), the capacity will again develop – albeit on a completely different plane – of exerting a magical influence upon the world through the word, a capacity which in the early stages of Atlantean times, and to a lesser degree even until the beginning of the third post-Atlantean epoch, had – in a completely different form – once been possessed by mankind in full measure. By this time the human larynx will have become so spiritualized that the spirit-permeated word will again be able, to some extent, to influence the processes and beings of the surrounding world, awakening in human souls now no longer abstract thoughts, as is the case today, but wholly new, moral impulses. Thus the human word will gradually become a force that can serve as a new creative element in earthly evolution. It will then, in its effect, become truly akin to the influence of the Macrologos in our cosmos, it will become a micrologos.”

But in our Fifth Epoch, we must decide which cosmic being is capable of opening or unsealing the genetic and chromosome book of nature and commence meddling with the Finished Work and fouling it up for the Beings who seek their development from humanity. Ahriman, up till now, has been the faithful xerox copy and cloner who has woven together the numbers and blueprints of the Divine Logos with the matter and material of earth. We gaze in nature, with our eyes, upon the testy agreements made between Christ and Ahriman. The array of nature beings are all imaginations wearing Ahrimans cloths, but with fairly accurate cosmic physics and numbers in their make-up.

Christ’s deed on Earth jarred the former system of nature and put Christ and a Christ-like blueprint over Ahrimans. It must never be forgotten that the foundations of earth and the solar system were actually initiated from the blueprints of the Divine Logos and Ahriman was only hired as a material bean counter. Humanity must decide either to go with the dead and faulty version that Ahriman has faithfully upheld since the beginning of earth evolution or unite with the ideal and spiritual blueprints that were always intended for us and the beings of nature. It is time for Ahriman/Fenrir to play its trump card. What does the Fifth book of Revelations, reflecting our Fifth post-Atlantean epoch, have to say about our meddling with the unsealed book of nature?

“1 And I saw in the right hand of him that sat on the throne a book written within and on the backside, sealed with seven seals.

2 And I saw a strong angel proclaiming with a loud voice, Who is worthy to open the book, and to loose the seals thereof?

3 And no man in heaven, nor in earth, neither under the earth, was able to open the book, neither to look thereon.

4 And I wept much, because no man was found worthy to open and to read the book, neither to look thereon.

5 And one of the elders saith unto me, Weep not: behold, the Lion of the tribe of Juda, the Root of David, hath prevailed to open the book, and to loose the seven seals thereof.

6 And I beheld, and, lo in the midst of the throne and of the four beasts, and in the midst of the elders, stood a Lamb as it had been slain, having seven horns and seven eyes, which are the seven Spirits of God sent forth into all the earth.

7 And he came and took the book out of the right hand of him that sat upon the throne.

8 And when he had taken the book, the four beasts and four and twenty elders fell down before the Lamb, having every one of them harps, and golden vials full of odours, which are the prayers of saints.

9 And they sung a new song, saying, Thou art worthy to take the book, and to open the seals thereof: for thou wast slain, and has redeemed us to God by thy blood out of every kindred, and tongue, and people, and nation.

…13 And every creature which is in heaven, and on the earth, and under the earth, and such as are in the sea, and all that are in them, heard I saying, Blessing, and honour, and glory, and power, be unto him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb for ever and ever.”

Revelations Chapter 5:1-13

Just as in the myth of Balder, all of creation had voiced agreement with the Cosmic I AM. This is heard by the writer of Revelations. The mystery that was enacted and created from out of our human environment, using the forces that exist from our own nature bank account, was completed here on earth. The shattering event that was so long-awaited, when Ahriman’s grip on nature would be loosened, and the Christ would assume the direction of these brand new nature forces, is agreed upon through out all worlds. It is a true Grail Mystery. It is a true dove mystery. It is an environmental mandate. It sets humanity up in our Fifth Epoch to make some shattering decisions.

If these decisions are wrong, the Finished Work of the Gods begins to collapse around our heads. Nature goes through an agonizing period of cosmic suffering and delay. Jormungand and Fenrir rip into the environment, dislodging the numbers in the foundations by creating arbitrary genetic connections.

Jormungand, further unleashes viral poisons that serve ever more awful forces that shatter the DNA and Chromosome model and attempt to freeze the human genetic model and perfect it into a simple biological machine. Forces moving through Cyberspace, by harnessing the hidden group-souls of extinct and endangered animals, plants and minerals and using pharmaceuticals to supplement human spiritual well-being, begin the kidnapping of earth.

“It is a world which emancipates itself from Nature – emancipates itself in a downward direction.”

Steiner Leading thoughts

A great portion of hell on earth, subtle psychic fields and choices that include brothers and sisters torn from one another will begin to drift apart. A writer in an Atlanta newspaper hit the nail on the head as he captured the cosmic drift away from the centered field of human spiritual activity into sub-nature.

“to swim with dolphins in a cyber sea, to imagine a future of perfect technological order, to put the imagination in the control of inauthentic images (the Virtual Cliche).. is to abdicate a genuine vision of the future. It’s like programmed dreaming or being given a coloring book that someone else has completed… I sputtered incoherently about Faustian agendas and technological theft of the soul. Mostly, though, I was aware that Mind Wave only accelerates a process that is pervasive in our society – the psyche’s abdication of control to an environment of false images. Whether through the mind-numbing assault of television or hours spent in cyberspace (my own addiction) or roaming malls for decoration, the imagination is at risk of losing self-consciousness and self-generacy… Of course, it’s totally uncool to think such things in the world of WIRED magazine readers and `Brady Bunch’ rerun watchers (who regard their hip, ironic self-commentary as an antidote to pixil-lobotomy).”

Earth and the karmic field that binds innocent ecology to the forces of the human (alchemical) atomic and psychic structures will slowly be ripped from the healthy ongoing cosmic development in Christ. Weeping and gnashing of teeth is an understatement to the world tragedy we are setting in motion during this fifth epoch of the information age.

Safe fun in Cyberspace with Cyberpunks and `puter geeks is a loaded deck and Steiner rightfully uses the word perilous to describe the addiction. All of the bundled sickness of cultural vampirism and nihilism was collected in the film ADDICTION, because there is hardly anyway to describe the philosophic death trap that will pull, rip and tear the body of creation away from its central and supreme mystery. The outer Sun flowed inwards through the reversed physics of the inner Finished Work of the Gods. From within now, the new blueprints can lift humanity and nature upwards to an ever more profound spiritual metamorphosis. This is one of the staggering revelations in THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH.

“And so in the distant future, when a more spiritual condition of the Earth has become a reality, and the final goal of both these mysteries is attained, the human being will, through the working together of the transformed larynx and heart, be able to give birth, out of himself, to beings of like nature to himself.”

Christ as Alchemist and Architect, as is His custom, has left a method and a path to the attainment of His higher spiritual Prototype. A wide Goethean path, full of mysterious connections and hidden insights, that when pulled together, the wide design of the upper worlds becomes clear under the scrutiny of our microscopes. As humanity penetrated deeper and deeper during the fifth epoch into the map of Asgard, Midgard and Hel, higher and higher patterns of the design work were revealed. Floor by floor, period by period the assistants to the Virgin in the Chymical Wedding mount higher and higher as humanity digs deeper and deeper.

“The nine enter the seventh floor. The four who came by way of the staircase are asked to work with the ashes of the bird. The ashes were moistened with the Water of Life, heated on the fire until they melted and then poured into two moulds to be cooled. The others who had to climb from the sixth floor were meanwhile stoking the furnace, blowing air into it, etc., all the time considering themselves to be the preferred ones. These were still in the material realm. When the forms were opened they were seen to contain two beautiful images of the male and female state of man. Those performing the process now looked at the primeval image, out of which man was created. That is, if we reach a purified state our own image will be shown to us, namely we will see the ideal of the human state. These images were only four inches high but perfect. Now the blood of the bird in the golden bowl was given drop by drop to the images. This is the life blood of knowledge. They grew rapidly and visibly. Now white velvet was wrapped round them. White velvet is the new etheric substance.”

The blood of Kvasir, the Grail blood, the etherized blood is the substance that feeds these miniatures from our X and Y Chromosome structure. The Dove-Milk that we have cultivated from our transformation of the Freyja forces of our endocrine system are ignited on the four ether burners of our parathyroid glands. We gain reproductive, magical forces, as a preamble to the growing forces that are lifting themselves free of our atrophied sexual organs.

As we purify, socialize and stabilize the forces of nature, the beings already developed from the imprinted Christ Words spoken daily, and thought by Him as light messengers on earth, find new nesting places in our hearts. What warmth and knowledge, such as biodynamic agriculture achieves, is felt throughout the body of nature as warm infused, collecting and harmonizing qualities, inviting the elemental elves, Tree Spirits, stone wizards, water undines and air-sylphs to rejoin our etheric feelings, our light transformed objective thoughts and our fiery-salamander wills into a reunited, magnificent and Christ directed scientific harmony focused in the WORD.

Nourishment, plant and vegetarian refinement suitable for true human consumption; an elevation of sensitivity to the reception of inner light; the sound and form of words that carry truth to the inner ear, will all be strengthened and reawakened from their slumber and atrophy. Instead of brute force and power as the ruling patriarchal qualities we cultivate, forces of synchronicity and coincidence that reverberate throughout the fiber of nature, will respond to our needs.

Medicine would change, Agriculture would change, Astrology to Astrosophy would begin pulling in the wayward physics marauders and tie the higher worlds back together in number and word to the middle Kingdom of humanity. We can find the secret companion to each bug and flower, each favored sister plant to each brother plant. We will know the reproductive numbers that reveal the hidden codes of where to search for the Animal-Group souls.

PLANET SYNODIC PERIOD ANIMAL GESTATION PERIOD

Earth 365 days horse 360 days

Moon 28 days rabbit, 28 days

hare, rat

Venus 584 days two cows 292 X 2 days

Mars 780 days Elephant 780 days

I want to know about the Milkweed plant. Who sends the Monarch to the Pine tree as a messenger to ask the immortal Pine, who is ruled by ancient father Saturn, to convey to the Monarch the dream that sustains the plant world? What does the Monarch say to the mother MilkWeed, be patient humans still sleep? How is the airborne pod of the Milkweed seed related to the flight strength of the Monarch, allowing it to travel over 2000 miles? What are these mysteries? Is the Milkweed the mother cow of the plant world? Is the Monarch the living visible bio-heart and intuitive organ of the plants? Why was the Indian, Hindu version of Venus, pulled in her chariot by two cows? I want to know these things.

Since Buddha has entered the solar system as a Mars savior is it not odd, that The Indian god Indra, feared as a god of war, is said to ride an elephant. The two moons of Mars are named after the mythical horses of the god Mars. What is the truth behind the idea that the ear is the form of the human being as he was curled up as an embryo in the womb? Are thick long ear lobes the sign of stored spiritual light from past incarnations? Is the focus on Buddha’s ears due to the transformation of Speech that makes the Eustachian tubes and the pituitary the new source for the eggs of light that were once the work of the Fallopian tubes, source of the eggs of the human spirit form? Is Buddha revered for his long ear lobes because of the Elephant or does the identification go much, much deeper into the Indian culture and its relation to the transformation of Mars forces.( )

GRAIL QUESTIONS

The Earth weighs in at 6 sextillion tons and it takes 333,000 earths to fill the Sun. This number of 333,000 is the same variable that brings the 33 1/3 or 3 1/3 years that Jesus and Christ entered the karma strewn field of Earth evolution. Since His incarnation on the Earth the 33 1/3 years that runs through history and the intensification periods of 3 1/3 years, when the Christ walked the earth and imprinted His own rhythm, have served ever since then, to signal humanity of the Etheric intensification and the presence of the Christ Being in the culture and Karma of humanity.

“Rudolf Steiner spoke of the resurrection as the `birth’ of Christ Jesus as the Risen One, and referred to the importance of the 33 1/3-year rhythm of the life of Christ Jesus leading up to this `birth.’ The time interval of 12,173 1/4 days is 33.329 years and is therefore almost exactly 33 1/3 years. The exact period of 33 1/3 years equals 33.333 and thus the life of Christ Jesus differed from this by only 0.004 years, which amounts to 1 1/2 days – that is, the exact length of the life of Christ Jesus from birth to the resurrection was 33 1/3 years less 1 1/2 days. Rudolf Steiner pointed out that, in addition to the various cosmic rhythms (the one-year rhythm of the Sun, the 29 1/2-year rhythm of Saturn, and so on), since the beginning of the Christian era a new rhythm – the 33 1/3 year rhythm of the life of Christ Jesus – has become one of the most important rhythms in the unfolding history of humanity and the Earth.”

The volume and weight of the earth is placed as a ratio, with the Being and Destiny of the Christ Being, against the weight of the Sun. Remarkable as it appears, Christ was on the clock, by the book, running on schedule and passing through the human events of the Trial and Crucifixion with deliberate cosmic steps. This was no accident. Even more remarkably, this body, this person, this living and walking Sun Spirit, in the flesh, now acts with the power of a planet. In effect it is an alchemical equation that has set a new standard rhythm above Saturn’s.

Based on the raising of Lazarus, we would expect that Lazarus would be maintained as a kind of anchor point on earth as a new cosmic being solely sustained by this new rhythm. Lazarus was raised so that the base point within the system could be anchored. In the CHYMICAL WEDDING, Christian Rosenkreuz is weighed and we find out that he weighs in heavily and surprises everyone. In Egypt the soul was weighed by the feather of Mut.

“Two hundred Knights come into the hall and erect a scaffold with a large pair of scales and seven weights. Only the person who was heavy enough to balance the seven weights passed the trial. One after the other they got on the scales. Some of the clever people who had told of their experiences did not pass at all, but were lifted up with very light weights on the other side. Very few really passed this examination. It is humorously described, the people there had a lot of fun out of it… There is quite a symbolism of numbers involved in this scene. The seven weights correspond to seven properties of the soul which are a hindrance to spiritual development…There are 126 combinations of weights and 126 people who are tried for admittance. There are seven who do not pass the first weight, twenty-one who do not pass the two weights, thirty-five the three, thirty-five the four, twenty-one the five, seven the six, and one who did not pass the seven weights. The companion of Christian Rosenkreuz passed in the fifth group to be weighed, Christian Rosenkreuz passed in the eighth group…”

The seven mighty planetary forces and a frequency of numbers is indicated in the weighing in. Saturn weighs heaviest in the personal destinies of each human being, but now a new Lord has broken the Omega gate of the Saturn vice grip. The Native Americans were the Saturn race and now another race above the Saturn race is being formed. A monumental new, cosmic pattern that places its formal frequency just above Saturn’s is the foundation for the new Lord of Karma. The Christ Spirit is literally the new Lord of the Rings. Formerly Saturn rang heavily on the karmic slate reflecting the weight of tragedy that existed in the old cosmos. This formal rhythm of Saturn is still intact, but now a new rhythm, above and beyond the eye for an eye, tooth for a tooth, evil terrorist style justice of Saturn, is now being managed and regulated by the Super-Human Christ Spirit.

As history and destiny have moved forward in time, the seemingly insignificant, the fairy tale, the myth, THE GREEN SNAKE AND THE BEAUTIFUL LILY kept an attentive humanity abreast of the passage and incarnation of the transforming community of the Grail family. We must know where our friends and relatives are. A new race founded on the 33 1/3 year cycle is developing slowly. All of humanity is invited, but not everyone is ready. The Grail community has always formed itself out of both the historical factors around Arthur and the Round Table, the twelve individualities connected with the Last Supper and their widening karmic circle, as well as the mythic interconnections with the Grail Castle and communities centered around England, France and Spain.

Everything described in this section of THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH has been merely catching glimpses of the updated vision of the Grail mystery. The CHYMICAL WEDDING embodies an enormous update to this mystery. The entire body of Anthroposophy and Spiritual Science is a realignment of our earth sciences, through Aristotle, over to the blueprints of a new humanity and nature inaugurated by the Christ Sun Logos as he lived and spoke as a human being from the core of planet Earth.

“Today a Message alights upon the Gral governing its highest virtue, for today is Good Friday, when one can infallibly see a Dove wing its way down from Heaven. It brings a small white Wafer to the Stone and leaves it there. The Dove, all dazzling white, then flies up to Heaven again. Every Good Friday, as I say, the Dove brings it to the Stone, from which the Stone receives all that is good on earth of food and drink, of paradisal excellence – I mean whatever the earth yields. The Stone, furthermore, has to give them the flesh of all the wild things that live below the aether, whether they fly, run or swim- such prebend does the Gral, thanks to its indwelling powers, bestow on the chivalric Brotherhood.”

The reach, that sets up a constant rhythmical center, in inner proximity with the etheric forces of the Earth, off sets a terrible alchemical process that the Nazis and the present field of repro-technology have introduced. The robbery and abduction of the psychic forces of the human community and the group-spirit-soul development of plants and animals is underway. This activity is made less feasible with the Christ-Spirit on internal, inner etheric duty. Saturn, as the bearer of lead, weight and karmic error, like the pitiful state of the Native Americans from their former grandeur, could be slowly transformed to gold through an alchemical spiritual change brought about by the Christ Being.

In the Ahrimanic picture of the universe, without Christ, the gold of immortality, compassion and substances in the atomic table of the human being, controlled by the gnome and dwarf community at the incarnation of an individual, would become of supreme importance. Like Gunnlod, we sit on powerful solar forces. In a manner of speaking they lie frozen, unused, within our inner anatomical and psychic field. If the Ahrimanic forces keep us centered on the external trappings, the supplemented and exteriorized media, cyberspace and virtual worlds, than the gold can be psychically mined from the human shell.

If on the other hand, humanity begins to listen, to learn, to see, to generate the compassion and brotherhood that stirs these inner transformations around the larynx, pituitary and pineal organs and actually begins to feel and see the working relation with the etheric Christ Being, this gold will flow back into creation. A great new inner circulation would be enlivened that would penetrate every corner of creation and rebuild, through the active Solar forces of the Sun-Word of Christ in the etheric, the karmic damage, weight and lead that is accumulating and poisoning the destiny of humanity and the solar family. The Ahrimanic forces and actual Anti-Sun forces see gold as something externally representing the Sun.

The Aztec’s knew how to use the avariceness and sadism that is stirred into life by external gold, as a counter-point to the compassion and active listening and learning that leads to the inner-sun gold of Paul. Greed, avariceness and sadism have done terrible alchemical damage to the earth. By hoarding and creating solid gold bars and by generating forces with one-sided economic mandates, deep into the body of society, by creating a false and selfish struggle for survival instead of a generous sharing of spiritual and social wealth, we have tarnished our inner gold.

In all this cyanide plays a major role. The ability of hungry cyanide to dissolve everything but gold or distill gold, reveals a powerful poison, an Ahrimanic force, that wills to devour, hoard, conserve and lock out the true gold from which the Sun is only the outer symbol. The true gold, is the wisdom and love that walked the Earth for 3 and 1/3 years.

A science, that when unleashed, was capable of production line, socially engineered, genocide, using the chemicals of hydrogen cyanide to actually distill the cosmic and immortal gold out of mortal human beings, came with a global, sticker-shock, price tag of millions dead from World War I and II. This was the nature of Zyklon B, used to gas the race that produced the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. The same type of cyanide based gas was used in the subway bombing in Japan. Since comets have a cyanide core, we must be clear, why humanity would be suffocated in just this manner. By using ahrimanic cyanide against the sun-gold in the human being, the Nazis began to play with the Sun, Saturn and Earth as an alchemical mystery. This was not an Alchemical Wedding but rather an Alchemical nightmare.

While writing this section of the book from Atlanta, during the Olympics, a commentator compared the pipe bomb made of lead piping, used in the Centennial Square bomb blast and the quest for the Gold. He contrasted lead and gold and the striving of humanity for the gold and all that that concept means to the human spirit. Gold represents the sun and lead represents Saturn. Bullets and newspaper print were made of lead. Saturn is also the graveyard of distilled and dead substance, in that, uranium, actinium and thorium, as the three families of decayed light and matter, finally terminate in non-radioactive isotopes of lead.

Saturn was used as a shield against radioactivity. Without the new rhythm of 33 1/3 being inserted, our apparently dead solar system, could be played like a roulette wheel. If humanity remains sealed within the dead system and image of the solar family, with only the outer fields of the sun-earth-saturn and the planets, Ahriman will distill our denial into his own golden brew.

Before Christ introduced His new cosmic pattern into the system we were trapped within a dying cosmic body. Saturn was the spiritual place where humanity terminated its expansion into the spiritual hierarchies, where all its inner spiritual elements were completely and finally absorbed. Out of this, a distilled karmic future was decreed by the powerful metaphysics of the reincarnation of matter. Recycling has always been part of the inherent alchemy of this material/spiritual mystery within the planetary family. Now the same vast system remains functionally intact but a new cosmic outlet, a valve, a system loop in the helix, takes humanity upwards, like the the story of the CHYMICAL WEDDING, moving ever upwards, to higher levels.

Steiner had described how the ancient Egyptians knew about a point where the Earth crossed into and through, where the Sun had once been. There was a spiral dance, a helix like spiral lift point, where the earth, passed through the same space that was once occupied by the sun. In Walter Russell’s work such a helix like spiral not only exists in the elements of the atomic table but acts like a an incredible fountain that spills, dish, by dish into the lower fields of matter. The rhythm of 33 1/3 years now allows us to pass through the wake of the etheric sun.

The Grail knights had a great problem with the dark forces of Sicily. Wagner brought this up in his opera on Parzival. All the GODFATHER series deals with the Sicilian forces of anti-brotherhood and anti-sun. One of the greatest opponents to the Knights Templar was none other than the anti-sun spirit, who runs his own rhythm every six hundred and sixty-six years. This same spirit leaped with glee into Philip the fourth or `The Fair’ as he is known in history. Torture and Sadism were the key to his reign of terror, which lead to the hostage of the Catholic Church and the voyages of gold glut that headed into South America. As the invasion commenced the entire poisons of a viral infested europe were unleashed on the unsuspecting Incas and served as the first model of biological warfare. These anti-sun forces powered up around 1332, they are now powering up again for the year 1998.

It was the terrible weight of earthly karma that flowed directly out of Saturn that crippled Anfortas, the Grail King. It was a wound in the groin or scrotum that agonized the Fisher King. On the other side of the spectrum, the Sicilian, Klingsor had an equally traumatizing experience that made him as sinister and dark a magician as Empedocles was an Initiate of the white forces. Klingsor and the Grail knights were Shadow and Light to the constant forces that centered around the endocrine system and the reproductive forces shrouding the Grail in myth and mystery.

Of Anfortas we can understand how the mystery of love and Freyja played out against the background of the Grail story in no uncertain terms.

“When my father Frimutel lost his life, his eldest son was summoned to the Gral as King and Lord Protector both of the Gral and its Company. This was my brother Anfortas, who was worthy of the Crown and its dominion. At that time we were still quite small. But when my brother approached the age at which the first bristles begin to show, Love assailed him, as is her way with striplings – she presses her friends so hard that one may call it dishonorable of her. But any Lord of the Gral who seeks love other than that allowed him by the Writing will inevitably have to pay for it with pain and suffering fraught with sighs.

“As the object of his attentions my lord and brother chose a lady whom he judge of excellent conduct – as to who she was, let it rest. He served her with unflinching courage, and many shields were riddled by his fair hand. As knight-errant the charming, comely youth won fame so exalted that he ran to risk of its being surpassed by any in all the lads of chivalry. His battle-cry was `AMOR!’, yet that show is not quite right for humility.

“One day- his nearest and dearest did not at all approve – the King rode out alone to seek adventure under Love’s compulsion and joying in her encouragement. Jousting, he was wounded by a poisoned lance so seriously that he never recovered, your dear uncle- through the scrotum.”

The youthful forces of courage and sexuality are not meant to be squandered or wallowed in past their appointed time. Responsibility for Grail or Dove insights, today in men and women, requires an ability to see the seriousness of reality. We who attempt to follow the new revelations of the Grail must see the seriousness of the world as well as its beauty.

Beauty and love must not come as blunted dogmas into the power of imagination and joy with which the new virginal forces begin to awaken the inner light and compassion in us, when we begin working as Prospero did. We must joy and command in ourselves the fugitive forces that Love lets loose in order to direct them and recognize the new transformation of Freyja and the first inklings of the dove. In Christian Rosenkreuz’s enthusiasm and intensely kindled interest in Venus, his eyes had intercourse and his knowledge awoke, and for his karmic relation to the Jupiter Mysteries of Atlantis, Cupid, justifiably, snaps an arrow at him.

With the shadow side of our nature we are subject to the forces that befell Klingsor, the sworn enemy of the Grail. This Shadow of us is our own magnetic double. In the story of the Grail, we have the reproductive center of two males that are wounded, each embroiled in a real mid-life crisis of the blood. The conflict between the atrophy of the endocrine system and its transformation to the Necklace of the Brisings and the seed, the male chromosome factor, that bears all of Saturn’s human karma and error in it, opposes the normal instincts of man, family, brotherhood and bonding.

Both Anfortas and Klingsor have these urges. But in our male bonding, echoed in the activity of the mafia, we have a continuation of blood and instincts that have refused to take up a new position and a new revelation to our blood that only the Grail can satisfy. Therefore the selling of drugs, and drug trafficking, trading destructive weaponry, biological warfare and technologically sinister arms deals, are now the publics, open mystery of Klingsor.

“His kinsman Clinschor did as follows. His capitol was Capua. The paths he trod in pursuit of honour were so lofty that honour did not elude him. The name of Duke Clinschor was on the lips of men and women till disaster overtook him – in this way. There was a King of Sicily called Ibert, and the name of his wife was Iblis. She was the loveliest person ever weaned. Clinschor became her Servitor till she rewarded him with her love. It was for this that the King put him to shame. If I am to tell you Clinschor’s secret it must be you good leave, since it is improper for me to name the circumstances in which he turned sorcerer. – With a cut he was made a capon.

“…Clinschor suffered this supreme humiliation…up in Kalot enbolot, famed fort its strength. The king found Clingschor with his wife, he was asleep in her embrace. If his was a warm bed, he had to leave a deposit for it – he was levelled off between his legs by royal hands, the sovereign deemed it his due. The king trimmed him in his body to such effect that he is unserviceable to any woman today for her sport.

“…-it was in a place called Persida that magic was first contrived. Clinschor repaired there and procured the means of bringing to pass by enchantment whatever he fancies. Because of the dishonour to his body he no longer bears good will to man or woman, I mean those of worthy disposition, for it gratifies his heart to deny them any happiness he can.”

One unanswered question that haunts me in this study is the spear that pierced the side of Christ, the lance, that allowed a gush of blood to pour out of him. This lance appears connected to the wound that Anfortas suffers from. My question pertains to the issue of blood that marks the menstrual cycle of women.

In Anfortas a cycle that has to do with Saturn brings him into something that is much more than cramps, more than agony, as if all of creation rested on the agony of Saturn and the groin of Anfortas. Indeed, the closed system of Saturn’s former cosmic rulership has been breached. Instead of the 29 1/2 year rhythm of Saturn the new 33 1/3 year rhythm of Christ, begins once more to pull creation back towards the matriarchy. Anfortas is stuck with an open wound that cannot be healed, while Klingsor, on the opposite side has locked down, and cut off any exit to the new divine rhythm through castration. It is as if Anfortas caught between the transition from patriarchy to matriarchy while serving the Grail, suffers intensely as if he had acquired a portion of the matriarchal cosmic mystery while in his male body.

“Now tell me, did you see the Lance at Castle Munsalvaesche? We knew from the wound and the summer snow that the planet Saturn had returned to its mark… The advent of certain planets which stand so high one above the other and which return at different speeds, gives the denizens here great sorrow; and the change of the moon, too, is bad for the wound.”

“…never before or since has the King been in such pain as when the planet Saturn thus announced its advent, for it is its nature to bring great frost. Laying the Lance on the wound as had been done before failed to help us, so this time it was thrust into the wound. Saturn mounts so high that the wound sensed it before the other frost that followed;”

Pain was excruciating for Anfortas because he could not die, even though he begged the knights of the Grail to kill him and end his misery, each sight of the Grail sustained both his agony and his life. The shields and armor of the Grail community are marked with TURTLE DOVES as their sacred emblem. The bleeding lance and the suffering Anfortas was the key to the great question. The great question has to do with the ability of a person to awaken in themselves the sense for the suffering that is felt in creation. Each person is now in a position to ask why the situation here on Earth is so desperate. You would have to recognize that as a fact and not be in a state of denial before the question would come from your heart to your lips. You would have to have some hope in your heart that there might be an answer to that question.

Today we would have to be blind not to see the condition of our earth, as the Finished Work of the Gods, no longer as a haven of woodlands and forests filled with nature’s many marvels, but as an eroding nightmare with nothing in society getting better, except the band aids and excuses we make. The earth should be loaded with millions of Parzivals all asking the unasked question. But you see from this work, that the pieces of the puzzle have to be put together and made sense of and even then the staggering reality of Solar physics in each human soul as well as in nature is hard to believe. It is easier to simply not ask, not seek, and whine complacently to authorities who have not asked and who seek not nor believe that they can become effective.

Writing appears on the Grail cup. Words, concepts, riddles, names, appear on the Grail. This makes me tend to believe that it is an internal, interpretive, intuitive and emotional field that lights up within the mind’s eye. A question we carry intensely becomes answered through the interior medium of light and gold that we consciously carry in our development. In the Grail community, unconsciousness, un-thought, unasked doesn’t count. It is what you weigh up inwardly and how much you weigh up inwardly that determines your association with the Grail community and the rhythm of 33 1/3 that has established itself as a new reality through the Christ.

Poets, like myself, have a new mission. Both science and art must compliment our intuitions in order to catch the Christ Spirit. It is not a world of vague feelings, left over from the middle ages, that can satisfy me anymore. Only my colleagues or my own conscious and growing discoveries in this new world can bring me closer to the rhythm that now exists and is establishing itself as a new race. Bit by bit and not always byte by byte we are gathering new knowledge to take with us over to this new creation. It is we who must gather the mysteries and the clues to load on board for the Jupiter evolution.

Christ, and His most loyal divine defender, Michael, an Archai, made so, through the ascension of Buddha from human to Angel, raises the most noble feelings and lets one know in so many different ways, what Frank Capra described in It’s a Wonderful Life. A mood, like a bell or an inner light and warmth, that sounds like what ZuZu said at the end of the movie when the christmas tree bells tingled. ZuZu’s petals, were the ROSE petals that saved Jimmy Stewart’s or George Baily’s life. It is the task of Christian Rosenkreuz rose cross meditationto do just that, pull individuals back from the brink. It is a Rosecrucian mystery and it is the continuous job of the guardian of the threshold to dramatically throw the opportunity out to join the Grail Community.

“The Fountain of Life was placed in the center, and all were standing around in proper order. The Virgin opens the box. It contains a globe wrapped in green cloth. This is the earth in springtime when the plants start to grow. It is also a symbol of the Holy Grail at springtime. The Holy Grail was a half-globe of green color. Only when it was filled with spiritual substance, did it become transparent, red. The cup shown at Valencia, Spain, which was used for the celebration of mass by the Knights of the Grail in their castle in the Pyrenees in the sixth and seventh centuries, was considered traditionally to be the cup used by Joseph of Arimathea. It is of green, semiprecious stone.”

In the CHYMICAL WEDDING the mysteries of the Grail continue to surface. This is not the sixth and seventh centuries but the fifteenth century. The CHYMICAL WEDDING continues to work powerfully into the undercurrents of the growing industrial age and scientific age that came rushing upwards in human evolution. Spiritual Science clocks in as the twentieth century dawns. Anthroposophy carries all of the ancient mythologies and the seeds of the new sciences and the new creation that contains the Christ blueprints in them. Humanity, now in the twentieth century, is mature enough and must comprehend a scientific world that has in it incredible new biological miracles, because of the Christ event. How do those miracles sound in the DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH? They sound the way Sergei Prokofieff outlined them in his work, ETERNAL INDIVIDUALITY.

“This high ideal of a future, purely spiritual means of reproduction, that is, in the highest sense, of `immaculate conception’, was from the early Middle Ages always represented in the mysteries of esoteric Christianity through the image of the Holy Grail. In later times, the knowledge of this occult mystery, which has so fundamental a significance for the entire future evolution of mankind, passed over to the Rosicrucians. In their mystery schools the goal of human evolution, referred to above, was spoken of in the following words: `See how the plant inclines its calyx innocently towards the Sun, how the sunbeam kisses its blossom. This was called the chaste kiss of the sunbeam, the holy lance of love. In the chaste kiss of the sunbeam, the holy lance of love, to which the calyx of the plant opens, there was seen to be an indication of the ideal of a future age, when man will again lead the evolution of his organs towards the chastity of the plant. In our time, man is evolved to the stage where he is permeated with desires. His evolution will continue to unfold to the point where he has transformed his desires, where he is once again kissed by the spiritual sunbeam, where he brings forth his own kind at a higher level, where the power of reproduction is spiritualized; in the mystery school this was called the Holy Grail. The true ideal of the Holy Grail is an organ that man will have when his reproductive power is spiritualized.

“This new organ of reproduction, called her the Holy Grail, will, however, as we have seen, be made up of the activity of two transformed organs: the heart and the larynx. Rudolf Steiner speaks about this as follows: ` There are within man organs of two different kinds, those which are on the way to becoming imperfect and will gradually fall away and those which are still in the process of formation. All lower organs, the sexual organs, will fall away. The heart and the larynx, on the other hand, are organs which will be perfected and find their full development only in the future.’ In another lecture he speaks about this with full clarity: `Above all there will be a transformation of the larynx and the heart. In future, they will be the organs of reproduction.’ The heart and the larynx are the new spiritual organs of reproduction whose interaction, in the far future, `will bring forth beings similar to man.’ It is they that are engraved, as symbols of the future evolution of a humanity which has overcome earthly birth and death, in the imagination of the Sun Chalice and the lance of love, the transformed heart and larynx.”

We can take our evolution in the Gradual sense, as Walter Johannes Stein indicated. “The word `GRAIL’ is derived from the Latin word gradalis, signifying a gradual or step-by-step descent.” We can pursue, slowly and carefully, what is indicated by Freyja. She must sleep with four mega-phases of evolution, each releasing a potent key in order to perfect something very profound that has to do with sex, reproduction and Speech. We now know something of this mystery, but we should enjoy the possibility of learning everything we can about these “ascending seven steps to a `source of wisdom’, the `highest architect of the world.'” The CHYMICAL WEDDING forces us to look into this ascending potential that has for its end the production of a new human race and a new nature.

We can go the other route, which is not wrong, the Tantra route, but not exactly on track either. That is we can focus all our attention on sex and conclude, with our new-found twentieth century faculty of “Instant Gratification” that keys itself off sex, that all we need do is to cultivate that cultural prerogative. After the sixties, when it became too dangerous to enjoy sexual gratification without guilt or fear, consumer gratification came into society as metamorphosed lust. You can have it all! Now. This is really a form of sublimated sexual drives, refocused and aimed directly into our consumer driven society.

Sex twists around in many forms, but for Ahriman, it is well positioned in the market place and at the mall. We can gloat, we can charge it, we can play in world that feels full of gold, and loaded with material desires. These political and cultural impulses were all prepared ahead to divert the culture of the nineties and the sixties from continuing the true course that love and brotherhood leads to.

“This could be interpreted as meaning that the rose of perfection can only be plucked when mastery of the sexual force has been attained.

“Whether any Europeans practiced anything akin to Taoist alchemy is difficult to establish, but it seems unlikely that the tradition of sexual alchemy was completely unknown in the West. If anything of the kind did exist in Europe it would account for the extreme care with which alchemical secrets were guarded from the profane – for the use of sex in this way would have been regarded with almost universal abhorrence in Europe until recent times.

“Very often we find a sexual dimension to Rosicrucianism The Comte de Gabalais speaks of `marriage’ with elemental spirits. Elias Ashmole and Thomas Vaughan appear to have used sex in a magical way, and later Paschal Beverly Randolph was to do the same. All this leads to the conclusion that there was a sexual strain in Rosicrucianism which was stumbled upon by some, though not all, of its practitioners.”

The problem of course is that way back with the Nordic Initiates, the pitfalls and pratfalls of Freyja were known. They shared, with Freyja and with humanity a vision that the sexual organs would atrophy and that Freyja must do something different and perhaps unpleasant to her normal sense of erotica.

Freyja desires a piece of jewelry, THE NECKLACE OF THE BRISINGS, isn’t that quaint. Ahriman conceived of the idea of moving desires up a notch into a form of consumer addiction. After all Freyja had to move upwards in some manner and the sixties generation had the peace symbol of the dove and we all know where that leads. Freyja and the factors in our own endocrine systems must sleep with four misshapen cosmic dwarfs who were pivotal, if not disgusting, in order for us to attain a new position over sexual idealism. Ahriman said, to hell with idealism, Freyja wants to look pretty, in her pretty new necklace and is willing to pay any price to get it. Sex therefore translates, for Ahriman, into consumer lust and it is indeed a downward step.

The Nordic Initiates knew that we would have to have sex with the mineral kingdom first. Our culture today would have to have sexual relations, become seduced, and begin a long process of intercourse with the silicon world. While this was distasteful to Freyja it was the only way Freyja could lift herself free of the impending atrophy merging with the future human endocrine system. This seduction is part of the last half of earth evolution but most importantly in the rhythms of three, we must look to the final temptation of Christ in the wilderness, where Ahriman presses Christ to answer the riddle of how to make STONES into BREAD. This matter merits closer attention because this is the mystery of our own information age.

EHBEN

(Stone)

or

“Sweet Honey and the Rock”( )

Our work in this part of the DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH is to come into direct contemplation of the entire silicon-mineral conspiracy and extract its most intense and powerful implications. We are making enormous amounts of bread, money, drachmas, dinero, from hi-tech silicon systems. We know that in the human realm, humanity has been shy to examine the moral codes that exist in this silicon world.

These codes have been delivered in myths and fairy-tales and for this reason humanity, and good protestants sail along with a lot of Biblical vagaries that scarcely touch the mystery of our information age. Therefore, without conscious clarity on the subject, humanity can go to church on sunday; and on monday dive back into the shark pool and feeding frenzy with very little reflection on their true ethical position. In other words, the church has given very little ammunition to humanity, so that we might stand tall in the midst of the oncoming tidal flow of the information age and not have our reality, morality and the entire genetic structure of nature and mankind be swept away. If they knew this was at stake, if good spirits knew that this was the decision of our time, in our age, from now till the year 2047 we must culturally answer what Christ was asked by Ahriman; they would have a key to this cultural enigma.

“2 And when he had fasted forty days and forty nights, he was afterward an hungered.

3 And when the tempter came to him, he said, if thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made bread.

4 But he answered and said, It is written, Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every WORD that proceedeth out of the mouth of God.”

Matthew chapter 4:2-4

Before we obey any silicon seduction, any technological mandate, humanity is obliged to obey the path of the WORD. The path of the WORD is what I have sketched here and others, of greater learning, have also sketched before me. But in this temptation, Jesus, the high initiate, remembers something that has been written about this very subject, before him, and knocks Ahriman flat with it. We must learn to hit ahriman in the head with his own facts. Where was this written?

“3 And he humbled thee, and suffered thee to hunger, and fed thee with manna, which thou knewest not, neither did thy fathers know; that he might make thee know that man doth not live by bread only, but by every WORD that proceedeth out of the mouth of the Lord doth man live.”

Deuteronomy chapter 8:3

The above tells us things about hunger, about economy, about truth versus lies, about putting technology above the revelation of the divine. These issues are tightly bound together with this visitation by Ahriman. But this visitation multiplies exponentially as we move with the Christ rhythm through time and arrive, exactly where the first seed of this encounter was met with the full force of the I AM.

The seed of this encounter was laid in the soil of time but it has now arrived in the cycle of rhythms that places humanity head on with the intensity of the issue of; upon whose blueprints will we lay our foundations? Upon whose blueprints will we base our new universe? Will Ahriman be our foundation, the foundation of our new world order, our new Atlantis, our new genetic genie? Will the Christ, as the WORD, and all that the WORD entails be able to support humanity through this very harrowing cosmic question? foundation stone studies Sia La Luce 1903Is the Christ authorized to be the foundation stone? First of all, we have to see the question and slip our thoughts into the stream of time.

We have attempted in these essays to enter into new master physics of the ethical Christ Sciences. We have established that the Christ has become Lord of the Rings, by placing a rhythm into the center of the earth, that reverses and bends the karmic pull and weight that Saturn held on the human spirit. Now a force, totally humanized and emanating with the strength and love of the Sun, able to transform the poisonous forces of karmic error we have accumulated, has set a rhythm pattern of 33 1/3 years within the earth. With this new rhythm, greater than Saturn, but wisely mature, an entire new race and a new nature field is being taken on board a new Noah vessel. Indeed Lazarus/John is asked to stay here on duty, until the fulfillment and return of the Christ Being. In the CHYMICAL WEDDING of Christian Rosenkreuz we saw that the new prototype of the new human race was clearly underway.

Robert Powell, in his work called, CHRONICLE OF THE LIVING CHRIST, outlined what the Christ Being set in motion as he entered our history with the mighty spiritual and human forces of the Sun. To understand this, we might be able to grasp the concept that a new planet or dense cosmic pattern is now moving through the earth plane on a thirty-three and one-third year cycle.

To understand this we have only the myths and the sagas of the ancient gods, Zeus, Odin, Aphrodite, Apollo, to indicate to us what the possibility of such a strange planetary event might mean. In THE DESTINY OF HUMAN SPEECH, we must stand within this new myth as the Greeks stood within their ancient world. Through Spiritual Science we must once more converse in the terms of matter, anatomy, spirit and the gods. Our DNA, the Tree of Life, Yggdrasill, the north-pole axis and the cellular structure must all agree, sensibly and scientifically.

We need also to know that, as the Christ Being walked the Earth for 3 1/3 years, the living penetration into the Earth’s aura of his deeds and life, could still be observed, shimmering in the etheric, like the wake of a great boat caught in the golden splendor of a sunset. We might compare it to a host of gold coins dropped in a rushing river, as the Christ moved, step by step, and Word by Word through his journey on Earth. The coins, metaphorically, were impressed into the stream of time.

In the case of Christ, Heracleitus of Ephesus ( ), was wrong. Heracleitus said something to the effect that you can only cross a stream the same way once, because the water and the pattern would never be repeated. But the steps Christ took, were each sealed into the stream, like a yellow brick road, because He was the stream and the etheric. The coins are still there but the waters of our culture have disturbed our vision of them. Anyone who is trained and follows the trail can make an identification of the COSMIC WORD as it walked as man. We proved that Mary Magdalene made voice identification, even though the Being she heard speak to her at the tomb, did not resemble the one she had known on earth.

I AM identification, is the last line of defense for the human spirit. Fingerprints can be traced, voice patterns can be identified and traced, handwriting can be traced, credit card numbers and social security numbers can be traced. Eyes can be clearly used as identification. Our heat signature can be used as identification. In computer games and programming even our thought signature can be identified. This type of identification told the Nordic Initiates that chips of dead men’s nails, loaded with the biographical data of the human being, like his DNA pattern, could as well be used for both information and tracking of the human being. Lastly, but pre-eminently, identity of a human I AM, who carries a specific identity through time, can be traced consciously, without the use of hypno-therapy or past life regression. I reiterate this because the gospel writers could still read the imprint that the Christ left in the world. Up to a certain time after Christ, there were still a few men and women, including Anne Catherine Emmerich, who were able to see this sun-trail through the earth.

The faculty to read this trail and follow the ever-present and living Architect of the new cosmos, the Builder, is what the etherization of the blood and the Grail were all about. The ability to read this for ourselves and not depend on the church and not depend on faulty, frail materialists, to do our reading for us, as is their scanty and limp custom, but develop ourselves concurrently along with the actual tide of the true path that leads creation back to the Father, through His Son’s sun-gold wake, is why we are here on earth.

“We are now in a position to reflect further on the question of the significance of the Saturn time equation in relation to the future. Once again, thanks to Rudolf Steiner, it is possible to grasp something of what this means: for on numerous occasions, Steiner spoke about two streams of time. Every human being stands in a flow of time extending from the past to the future. This has to do with the etheric body, which is the bearer of the memory and biography. The second stream flows from the future into the past and has to do with the astral body, which is not only the bearer of passions and instincts, but also prophetically guides a person to the fulfillment of his or her destiny. Against this background of the two streams of time, it is evident that, whereas the 33 1/3-year rhythm is that of Christ Jesus’ etheric body, the 29 1/2-year Saturn time equation has to do with Christ’s astral body.

“…Historically – that is, `biographically’ with respect to the Being of Christianity – we are still today living in the period that correlates to the forty days in the wilderness and are, in fact, even now moving towards its climax. Christ Jesus spent the forty days in the wilderness on a mountain east of the Dead Sea – a lonely, deserted, and barren place. Here he fasted and was tempted three times. Indeed, the entire forty days was a period of trial leading up to the `three temptations’ – culminating in the third temptation, representing Satan’s final, concentrated onslaught.

“Now, the forty `embryonic days’ signify, historically, forty revolutions of the planet Saturn or 1,180 years (40 times 29 1/2).( ) Adding this to 869, we see that the end of the forty days, projected historically, will occur in the year 2049 (more precisely 2047, since Saturn’s exact orbital period is slightly less than 29 1/2 years). Clearly, then, we are now living near the close of the historical correlate to the forty days in the wilderness; in fact, we are in the last two `days’ of the temptation! Two `days’ only -two Saturn cycles- remain.”

It is the obligation and necessity of Fenrir/Ahriman to play a game of poker with the Christ Being, alone and in true Bergman style, over the fate of the human family. Ahriman/Fenrir can turn stones into Bread. He can take the body, which is really called the Bread, the substance of the Logos, and use this etheric value, robbing it of its living Freyja qualities and channeling this etherized blood and body into lifelessness. In fact Ahriman can take bread and turn it to stones or through silicon technology and genetic engineering turn stones into bread. Facing the Sun-Spirit was the question that is now hitting us all with such force. Does the WORD have forces and potential in it yet undiscovered, unused? We know this is absolutely true, but it remains unheard and unused in our present seduction with the silicon world. We are busy, like Freyja, having intercourse with one of the dwarfs, the first one.

But are we busy, assuming Freyja is at the mall, shopping for goodies in a fit of consumer addiction? This is not what Freyja is doing but this is what Ahriman and Lucifer have placed as a cultural plot of glut and lust before our eyes, as the boon of the mineral/silicon world. Americans are surrounded with more luxuries than have ever been produced on the planet. This glittering, shining thing is not the Necklace of the Brisings, this is the numbing of our sense of ethical discernment on a grand cosmic scale. This is external gratification without torching up the inner burners of our own spiritual forces.

We are surrounded by an externally induced form of clairvoyance perpetuated by an ever-deepening addiction to media-technology. Our inner ability to Love does not have to be fueled up, we can rely on mere externals, we coast along with the slowly atrophying forces of the Finished Work of the Gods. We inwardly atrophy, while externally culture and technology seem to outstrip our humanity, and they have. Einstein’s greatest worry was that our technology would overtake our humanity, and it has. This was the theme of the wonderful film, called POWDER. Jeff Goldbloom uttters this profound truth. If we were deprived of our unethical technological toys, we would whine hysterically. The third world is condemned to eat our left overs, the scraps off the masters table, after we have polluted, imprisoned and glutted ourselves on the remaining resources of the world.

Because we are super-physics constructs, having immortal components linked to our bio-psychical forms we are subject to the food chain of the gods. Higher, more frightening, devastating Beings can come and insinuate themselves into our psyche’s as parasites and begin feeding off our immortality. But for those who want to plunge deeper into the anatomical and biological stimulants, opiates and relaxants that take over the work of our pituitary and pineal, there are great addictive drugs, like melatonin, coming down the pike.

“Melatonin helps to set and control the internal clock that governs the natural rhythms of the body. Each night the pineal gland produces melatonin which helps us fall asleep.”

“Melatonin accentuates dreams. If an individual’s dreams are usually pleasant, they will continue being so, but more intensely. If dreams are normally unpleasant, then it is possible they will be worse.

“…For a detailed approach to mood improvement and enhancing the quality of life, thus more pleasant dreams, please refer to my book BE HAPPIER STARTING NOW.”

The fact that, through the work of listening with the heart and hearing the WORD, comprehending bit by bit the stimulant of compassion and truth that is generated through the ear, we awaken the Grail forces in us and we begin to melt the golden pedestal that Gunnlod was sitting on. This means we grow to comprehend and see the etheric Christ. I watched a man, read aloud, everything to his child, so that it annoyed his wife. I asked if he also read fairy-tales and stories to his child. She said he did. I said to her, attention span deficit would be less of a problem with the child that learned to listen.

It was known, statistically, that in America only 5% of family life was spent talking and listening to one another. The media and the T.V. and computer do all the social interaction for us. Speaking, reading and listening have become so devalued that an atrophy and suffocation of hearing is presenting pathological problems. The future organs of the uterus, in the Eustachian tubes, are being deprived of their inner transformation. Frejya has a goal and she does not want to be deprived of achieving her goal because of a lazy anatomical and psychological conceit. We produce Ridlin to counteract the cosmic numbing we have grown to accept. Stress and fatigue syndromes are unconscious barometers of our denial.

To not acknowledge our anxiety and nervous fears underlying the grave and awesome decisions we are caught in, between Christ and Ahriman, creates a need to sleep better at night. But this anxiety is real not imagined. Nervous anxiety illnesses are racking our children so severely that well over fifty percent of them must go around, through their childhood, with a pharmaceutical medicine cabinet attached to their necks. By activating visual opiates dream stimulants, we are beginning to induce a deeper level of hypnosis and psychosis into the social body.

The Hong-Kong, British Opium wars had severe karmic effects for humanity and our social life. These effects have been registered through Saturn. How is it registered? The simple life god has given us, is a sacred part of the equation of the universe. The Opium addicts spent 3/4 of their lives in Opium dens. The karmic effects of having lived in the sunlight, leading a humble fishermans life, raising children, enduring the squabbles and stresses of existence, feeling the rhythm of the sun and moon through ones heart, mind, digestion and absorbing all the fine details that make a human being equipped for love and admiration, were lost. Instead, dark dens, exactly like our video-game dens, cut themselves away from the light and forced another form of light into their anatomies.

Opium eaters, that go back to the Odyssey of Homer, are now entering as an epidemic of the former Atlantean period through the advent of our media addictions. These culturally accepted, `lite-addictions’ have betrayed the cosmic potential of Freyja’s thermogenesis. Our mild and severe opiated addictions require stiff penalties. Saturn consequences are required, which we would rather not think about, because they have planetary implications that wound our whole planetary family.

We don’t want to become socially mature in America, we want to be comfortable. Camp Hill Villages were the Christ answer to a human karmic error that satisfied the financial greed of the British empire. Heroin, opium or the stepped up addiction between media and psychotropic drugs has an historical precedent, only we avoid looking at the cosmic implications of reincarnation and the atrophy of our spirits that reveal themselves when we follow the logic of the Logos all the way through the cellular structure and the karmic psychic toll or talent cooked up in the mix.

Today in films like TRAINSPOTTING, heroin has become idealized by casualties of the punk and rock world. It is not only hip but it is the height of sheik social copy-catting to rush out to your neighborhood junkie and get the same mix that some rocker O.Ded on. Heroin use is climbing rapidly back up the social ladder as the coolest method of sticking your thumb down against the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. It is the perfect way to give god the finger. The film, ADDICTION, has already been mentioned, as the philosophical black-hole that young people are given as an education today. The needle that seeks the vein is the perfect anti-Grail mystery, but for the wasted and the lost, reading or hearing something like this is inconceivable.

Parallel with the development of technology and virtual worlds, alongside comes the pharmaceuticals that step in for our own inactivity in the pineal and pituitary region and thus repossess our dormant faculties and begin steering them far from the Grail or the dove.

The ancient Atlantean clairvoyance, which was not individuated, but under the supervision of THE UNFINISHED WORK OF THE GODS, forced us to pretty much go along with the whole. It was only later that the journey to individuation and freedom forced us to claim our individual immortal destinies and biographies. Through our individuation, we have had to develop a time sense that we are rhythmically learning and growing in a reincarnating, complex system. The system itself and the Christ spirit requires us to penetrate into the whole structure. Our freedom would be a joke if this were not the aim of the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS.

Ahriman requires us to let somebody else do the research, let somebody else do the grunt work, let somebody else create a cushy universe for my children to live in and this literally translates into building anxiety that we are being dragged back towards a mind-soul made of techno-clairvoyance and media isolationism.

Ahriman’s universe does not, and will not supply the THERMOGENEIS that is created, partially from the compassion with all of creation that grows in our hearts, and partially reinforced by the actual new Sun-Being who can generate, from within our anatomy and psyches, the Bread of Life. The Christ etheric forces are designed to carry us to the higher metamorphosis of the Word. The blueprints of our immortality and the planetary system, with the role of the outer sun, have not been revealed in our information age. Ahriman is not designated by God to be the foundation stone of the new cosmos. If in this temptation we face now, we slide back to our standpoint as babies of the unfinished work of the gods, and do not play our cosmic role in the drama, nature and humanity and our world will gradually be ripped, both psychically and ecologically, apart.

Through this eye of the needle, eustachian and larynx transformation of our endocrine and SPEECH system, we are active in the warmth and compassion that is the bonding agent of the universe. We have the ability to hear and speak this new world warmth. We have the ability to be players in this new THERMOGENESIS. Matter is not merely light and a toy of thermonuclear babies, it consists of love. Our human love, quantumly raised by the literal force of Cosmic Love, invested within the earth as an actual rhythm and planet that is greater than the force of Saturn. A literal Bread of Life has been made available to us.

We are capable of feeding more than five thousand with this knowledge, but in feeding the five thousand, we again have to do with our Fifth epoch and the Words that launch us into it. We live by the WORD, art, drama, speech, poetry, myth, anatomy, from the CHYMICAL WEDDING, Shakespeare, Bacon and the entire documentation of the WORD that has revealed, globally, the great swath of history from the sinking of Atlantis to the year 2047.female-zodiacal-norse-mythology

“…They had eaten the bread without the physical act having taken place. Hence Christ Jesus could later throw light on what had occurred by saying,

`I am the bread of life. (6:35)

“What, then, had the people eaten? They had partaken of the power of Christ’s body. And what could remain? Only the power of Christ’s body; and the effect of this was so strong that afterwards one could gather something up.

“According to occult teaching, every body consists of twelve members. The one uppermost is called the Ram; the adjacent one, the Bull; the one with the hands, the Twins; the chest is called the Crab; everything in the region of the heart is the Lion; below it-the trunk- is the Virgin; the hips, the Scales; below this, the Scorpion; and still farther down: the thigh, the Archer; the knee, the Goat; the lower leg, the Water-Carrier; and the feet, the Fishes.

“The human body, then, is divided into twelve members – and with good reason. Now, if the fragments were to be gathered up after the power of Christ’s body had been used to satisfy hunger, they would have to be gathered in twelve measures.

`Therefore they gathered them together, and filled twelve baskets with the fragments of the five barley loaves, which remained over and above unto them that had eaten. (6:13)

“They had not eaten the barley loaves. They had partaken of the power emanating from Christ. They had been satisfied by the power that radiated from Christ through His thanksgiving when He appealed to the Spheres from which He had descended…”

The only way Ahriman can sustain and merge with what already exists in the human community as the divine Finished Work, is by robbing the foundational substance of the etheric forces from humanity. Instead of humanity building upon, including and adding to their weak forces, a mighty force that was and is the sustainer and creator, the life giver of the cosmos, we withdraw our account from the divine order of the universe. This means depositing our frail and weak cosmic forces into a no interest account. We gain nothing by this. Christ in a parable talks about burying the talent that we have in the ground, making nothing of ourselves and not adding anything new or wonderful to the existing universe.

Christ is an interest bearing account for the human community. If we have a small amount of THERMOGENETIC material, belief or a mustard seed, we can plant it in a Christ Science centered universe of our anatomy, and our abilities and our joys will prosper twelvefold. Because, as stated much earlier, the Finnish language consists of twelve consonantal forces. These forces and their nature will be discussed in the third part of this book, but for now we must have an ability to discern the WORD as more powerful than the stone. The pen more powerful than the sword. That is a silicon mystery, but it also requires us to look more carefully into the meaning of the stone.

Ahriman claims to be able to tempt us to rely on a system, cyberspace or virtual worlds, that consists of nothing but a silicon mirage. While the actual Foundation Stone of the World consists of the architectural and structural reality of the etheric blueprints that merged in a human being as THE FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. This is where the Foundation Stone, must be discovered, not in the mirage of techno-productivity that is, with great commercial fanfare, proclaimed as superior to man. The computer is superior to man. The camera is superior to the eye. The body is a machine… These are Ahriman’s favorite slogans and are much cooler to mouth than the ones where the shattering decisions around the destiny of nature and humanity must be uttered.

Courage and truth, versus being cool and a liar, are all part of Ahriman’s pronged cultural attack. Young people are bombarded and overwhelmed in the debris field of consumer trash. To this day, in the year of 1996, centered in Atlanta, with the powerful global and cultural force of the Olympic’s rushing in, remembering the wisdom of the Greeks, our educational institutes have failed to produce a profound and intimate link between the external world of space and the tiny world of the atom. These were ancient Greek problems. Science is riddled with so many half-truths that students come out of our universities with no-truth and no way to link the entire system we live in back together. When our students graduate we give them the Humpty Dumpty degree of a shattered universe.

The Grail was called a stone. The place where the Mead of Poetry was hid, was a giant rock mountain. The two dwarfs who killed Kvasir are taken out to a lone rock in the middle of the sea by the giant Suttung. The mystery of Golgotha, as the John gospel rightly says, “And he bearing his cross went forth into a place called the place of a skull, which is called in the Hebrew Golgotha: where they crucified him…” Even Odin had to penetrate the rock fortress, where the Mead of Poetry was hid.

We are, with the end of this century and the beginning of the next, in the fatal position of culturally sharing the last temptation of Christ in the wilderness with Fenrir/Ahriman. It is due to the proximity of the Christ and the cosmic rhythms He imprinted in His life on earth, that we have these powerful rhythmical waves of human/cultural tests. The 3 1/3 years, and all that it entails, have been magnified into the entire history and destiny of earth and humanity. It was here and it is here on this earth that these mysteries were planted as powerful sun seeds.

We must decide on what stone we build this kingdom. Shall we abuse the silicon world of the mineral kingdom and foul up the goal of Freyja? Shall we leave the Mead of Poetry to rot inside our heads, as they blindly do in present universities? Shall we let the Finished Work of the Gods, the Word that was in the beginning with God, the foundation stone of existence, slip from our grasp? Will we inaugurate a counterfeit heaven and a counterfeit hell and allow this substitute to replace nature and human life through our abuse of the silicon world?

“Now, in the Gospel of Matthew, Mark, and Luke, the words of Jesus Himself are reported as comparing Himself to the `Stone rejected by the builders,’ mentioned in the twenty-second verse of the 118th Psalm. In Acts 4:11, St. Peter tells the Jewish rulers that Christ is this Stone, and the same thought is repeated in the second chapter of St. Peter’s first Epistle… Rauch Elohim, the Spirit that brooded over the deep at the beginning, and a central point of Christian doctrine is that this same Spirit is one with Christ. Also published in 1609 was THE SOPHIC HYDROLITH, an alchemical text that declares:

“This tried, blessed, and heavenly Stone Jesus Christ was longingly expected from the beginning of the world by the Fathers and Holy Patriarchs; God-enlightened men prayed that they might be accounted worthy to see the promised Christ in His bodily and visible form. And if they rightly knew Him by the Holy Spirit, they were comforted by His presence in their lives, and had an invisible Friend on whom they could stay themselves, as upon a spiritual fulcrum, in trouble and danger even unto the end of their life.

“But although that heavenly Stone was bestowed by God as a free gift on the whole human race, the rich as well as the poor (Matth. 11:6); yet to this very day comparatively few have been able to know and apprehend Him. To the majority of mankind He has always been a hidden secret, and a grievous stumbling block, as Isaiah foretold in his eighth chapter: `He shall be for a stone of stumbling and a rock of offence, a gin and a snare, so that many shall stumble and fall, and be broken, and be snared and taken.’ The same was revealed to the aged Simeon, when he spake thus to Mary, the Mother of the Corner Stone: `Behold, He shall be for a fall and a rising again of many in Israel, and for a sign that shall be spoken against.’ To this St. Paul also bears witness (ad Rom. 9.): `They fell from the Stone of offence, and the rock of stumbling. He that believes in Him shall not be confounded.’ This Stone is precious to them that believe, but to the unbelieving `a stone of offence and stumbling, seeing that they are broken against the word, and believe not in Him on whom they are founded (Eccl.43).’ In all these respects the Precious, Blessed, and Heavenly Stone agrees most wonderfully with our earthly, corporal, and philosophical Stone; and it is, therefore, well worth our wile to compare our Stone with its Heavenly prototype. We shall thus understand that the earthly philosophical Stone is the true image of the real, spiritual, and heavenly Stone, Jesus Christ. stone of the wise leonardo dodecahedron

“…Jesus is also called the Stone at the head of the corner, or the Stone at the summit of the angle. This is just what is suggested by the union of the hypotenuse of the Pythagorean Triangle with the upper extremity of its vertical side.”

In their language in 1609 the use of biblical references apparently still created the obscurity of meaning that makes comprehending our silicon struggle such an obtuse impossibility. They use the word `prototype’. We have no model or prototype of the universe, with our current university sciences, that works comprehensively and culturally in a healthy manner. We have nothing in our current external cultural medical work that includes the bio-psychical and anatomical mysteries of the human body. We have not developed a comprehensive education that can center the hopes and dreams of incarnating human beings on the sacredness of our planet. Yet we intend to take our half-baked prototype and our silicon system, that is practical, yet useable, fit only for the level of economic prostitution we are comforted by, and build from this a second heaven and a second hell. This is a big, big issue; a big, big question; and a big, big mistake. How do the comments of 1609 compare with those of 1996?

“…In the sequence of three temptations, the archetype of which is to be found during the forty days of temptation in the wilderness, it is the temptation `to turn stones into bread’ (Matthew 4:3) that is the keynote of the counter impulse during Period 3, extending from February, 1996, to September, 1999. This is the temptation to substitute lifeless matter, or stones, in the place of living substance, or bread; this applies not just on the physical level but also on other levels. The whole phenomenon of virtual reality, for instance,is a clear example of this: lifeless, computer-generated images are substituted for living reality. All in all, at the close of the twentieth century an exceedingly powerful temptation is being presented to humanity by the powerful means of technological science. In part, this temptation opposes – directly and also indirectly – the central thrust of the new Christ revelation, which is concerned with unveiling the living being of Nature…”

In the twentieth century we have endured three powerful temptations and we now face the last. As Robert Powell has projected, this twentieth century has been an ordeal in the wilderness and we are at the point of the third temptation.

“Period 1: June 29, 1929 – January 8, 1933

Period 2: October 27, 1962 – May 9, 1966

Period 3: February 24, 1996 – September 6, 1999

“…In Period I (1929-1933), Christ was working to inspire an awakening to the Divine Presence within each human being and to usher in a new era based on this awakening. Instead of awakening to the Divine Presence within, a temptation came from without, in the form of the FUHRER (leader), who promised the German people everything, `If you will fall down and worship me’ (Matthew 4:9). This was the temptation of the `will to power.’ “

The forces of the Word, condensed in Hitler, as demonic shadows to the words uttered by the Christ Being. A cosmic being attached itself to the personality of Hitler that was well below the Sun-Rank of the Christ Being, but managed to tear down and poison the entire spiritual strength of the German race. Prior to this anti-word force impacting an entire race, Steiner had countered the shadow demon of the words of Hitler with his own conscious coining of language, and Spiritual Science, brought in by the Michael Spirit. Steiner offered through Eurythmy and Speech the anti-dote to the demonic words that came through Hitler.

In America, we had J. Edgar Hoover, who ran parallel to Hitler’s development, whose insidiousness, we failed to see at the time. Hoover’s work was much more in preparing the mind-set of our culture to be impressed with external data and to become so enchanted with statistics and false identity, that we would lose the true inner name and being we carry. His was the age of the secret agent. Hoover’s twisted psychology clung to his job through three or four presidents. When the sixties finally came the Kennedy’s, which had all the earmarks and the feel of the Arthurian, Camelot mysteries, that should have led to the Grail quest in the nineties, was partially extinguished through the background machinations of Hoover.

“In Period 2 (1962-1966), the Etheric Christ was active in awakening love and community between people. This was the time in the 1960s when `flower power’ was born. At the same time a new and powerful temptation arose in the shape of the drug culture. This temptation can be characterized as that of `casting oneself down from the pinnacle of the temple’ (Matthew 4:5). It is the temptation of a hedonistic self-surrender to instinctual urges, often with the help and powerful inducement of intoxicating substances, to obliterate the clear light of conscience and reason (`pinnacle of the temple’) and to cast oneself down by abandoning ego consciousness in favor of subconscious drives and impulses.”

Counter to Hoover, came the words of Martin Luther King Jr., speaking as the Spirit-Word of the African Americans. John F. Kennedy, entered in support of the Spirit-Words of Martin Luther King Jr.. Kennedy entered in support, as well, of a new Civil Rights view of society and fairness to all and lent the Identity of the American Nation its twelvefold sense of the Round Table. His were Profiles of knightly Courage and a chance to join the Peace Corp. instead of the Marine corp. At the very moment when southern racism, and evil as usual, was about to quietly kill Martin Luther King Jr. in the rural south, the president of the United States, stepped in from the North and opposed, the social forces of betrayal encouraged by Hoover.

The melting pot of races, the brotherhood of Philadelphia, were unified by Kennedy, along with his brother, Robert Kennedy, against the dark and sinister background forces of Hoover. The youth of the sixties felt the power of courage running through a thoughtful and heroic, if not imperfect man. A trinity, Martin Luther King Jr., John Kennedy and Bobby Kennedy, along with the Beatles four, a sevenfold force that included John Lennon in the mix was opposed on the field by Hoover and Nixon.

Massive poetic idealism, Woodstock and tremendous forces of community awoke in the young people of America. Each person, with their long hair and hippie communal life-style, felt the model of the Etheric Christ underscore their gentleness. The Arts and Artists flourished in this renaissance environment. The Kennedy’s of the north, like today, were either loved or hated. Technology had not overcome our humanity yet. Our humanity, witnessed in the Cuban missile crisis of the Kennedy era, with the Russian Kruschev, caught up with our technology in a delicate state of global balance.

In the sixties the Arthurian twelvefoldness of the Round Table or the community of the free and open disciples that formed the twelve of the Last Supper, twelve and thirteen grail-round-tablewere all richly reinvigorated through the powerful sixties. Kennedy made the fatal error of challenging our economy to eat, like the Wolf of the nordic saga, the moon. Technology, under economic pressure, and Kennedy’s imperfections and our own social immaturity, allowed technology, to once more overtake our humanity. It was a difficult beast to ride and we were lucky we didn’t annihilate ourselves and the planet with the legacy of Einstein. Global extinction was a severe pressure to live under during the sixties. Drugs seemed an alternative an escape, a further place where we could mingle our sleeping psyches with the wonderful flowing forces of the Etheric Christ. But we were not meant to sleep through these times. Nobody incarnates to sleep through his age, his crisis.

In the sixties there was an echo of the commune and free love ideas of Jean-Jacques Rousseau. There was an echo, in the sixties, of the flip-side of the French Revolution. The horror and disappointment, the let down of the disastrous French Revolution developed a counter point, a flip-side. The scales swung in the opposite direction as souls from that period, with their enthusiasm and political intelligence, incarnated back in the 1960s.

It was the Count St. Germain, who was born in Transylvania and was active in the forces surrounding the French Revolution that really was responsible for the sixties in American culture. In effect, to focus a whole idealism of a period of culture, on something that failed, gave the opportunity for those souls, disappointed by the French Revolution, to achieve it’s true spiritual ideal, when the next rhythm of time occurred. Christian Rosenkreuz knew these rhythms and swung culture and focused it, not on the failure of the French Revolution, but on the gamble that the sixties would counteract the third temptation that would face humanity. By then, humanity would be ready to live up to the ideals of Fraternity, Equality, and Liberty. Thus overthrowing the cultural temptation to turn stones into bread through politics and technology. The martyrs of the sixties and seventies were meant to awaken us, not to put us back into a social coma.

It was the Count St. Germain, as Christian Rosenkreuz, who has worked consistently with the cultural awakening of humanity to the etheric Christ. It was during the sixties that our struggle was the most intense, between technology and our humanity.

“Another alchemist active at this period was the mysterious Comte de Saint Germain, who became so much of a legend that it is difficult to disentangle fact from fiction in the reports of his life. After travelling around Europe under a number of pseudonyms – including the Marquis de Montferrat, Chevalier Schoening, Comte Soltikoff and Graf Tzarogy – he ended up as a permanent guest at the castle of the Landgraf Karl von Hessen-Kassel, where he died in about 1780. He was reported to have possessed an elixir which had kept him alive for 400 years, and when he was in Dresden his coachman was asked if this were true. The coachman replied that he did not know exactly, but in the 130 years he had been in his master’s service the count always looked as he did now.”

The Mead of Poetry, made of the etherized blood, the transformed blood of the Christ Being allows Christian Rosenkreuz to weigh so much in the scales. It is a potent cosmic mix. Someone had to remain as the anchor point, in our environment, as the solid weight of the Christ Being. This someone, we understand, was Christian Rosenkreuz. But what we haven’t understood was that the Transylvanian Count Dracula was the shadow image, a convenient cultural myth, designed to disguise the etherized blood and historical revelation of the true Christ Being in the background of history.

It is in fact, the Count St. Germain, who was this strange and mysterious person, who acted very ardently during the time of the French Revolution. He worked at the time of the French Revolution, in order to seed into the cultural forces of our time, the power needed for the sixties and the nineties. cr-st-germain-1784All of our counter-Grail images, our anti-word forces, anti-sun forces have focused on the undercurrent relations of the Dracula mysteries, the vampire mysteries, pitted against the Dove and Grail mysteries. How odd that it is not Vlad the Impaler alone who hails from Transylvania but also the mysterious and eternal figure of the count St. Germain or Christian Rosenkreuz.

“…Period 3, extending from February, 1996, to September, 1999. This is the temptation to substitute lifeless matter, or stones, in the place of the living substance, or bread; this applies not just on the physical level but also on other levels.”

This is why the Nordic Ragnarok warnings came in waves of three. Why Peter denied Christ three times. Why three cocks crowed. This pattern of numbers has impacted as historical factors. The Aztecs measured up a time frame for the universe that runs from 3000 B.C. to the present time. We have indicated that the rhythm of 666 has impacted history in the most severe manner through 1332, when international banking was stolen by Ahriman, and now 1998, when creation and humanity can be stolen by the unleashing of Jormungand, the Fenrir wolf and the programming of a new heaven and a new hell.

These rhythms are close to our own cultural responsibilities that weigh in for the nineties. The opening question of, whether we could decimate the FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS and cause the final betrayal of this magnificent ecological system and build our own puny vampire community in a parasitically infested cyberspace silicon mirage, is now squarely facing us.

So far the seduction of humanity against the WORD, against the Bread and against the etherization of the blood, the Dove and the Grail mysteries are an already settled economic mandate. Our frozen leaders are caught between a rock and a hard place and they haven’t the education nor wonder left in their hormones to stop this bad music and step into harmony with the new etheric technology available to them.

There is a way, through sympathetic vibratory physics and technology, to develop a beneficial relation to the mineral, plant, animal and human kingdoms. But each of us must have understood, as Parzival was painfully made aware of, that there is a horrible exile in store for us if we fail to ask the obvious question. That which Parzival failed to ask when his hormones brought him to the Grail Castle, had to wait and wait for an answer and a solution that would only come later, through his maturity and after much suffering. Why is the emperor not wearing any cloths and why must I get a degree from a university that qualifies me to be one of the soldiers and kings men, who cannot put Humpty-Dumpty together again?

Bacon looked into the future of the perfected human race and saw a market place called THE NEW ATLANTIS. “This was the kind of Utopia visualized by Bacon, Andreae, Comenius and others.” Anthroposophy first started making its appearance in 1650, Thomas Vaughan, who continued in the traditions of Robert Fludd, published a work under the pseudonym of Eugenius Philalethes. The work was titled, ANTHROPOSOPHIA THEOMAGICA.

Immediately he was attacked by Henry More (1614-1687) the Cambridge platonist in a work entitled, OBSERVATIONS UPON ANTHROPOSOPHIA THEMOMAGICA. The sides had to be drawn clearly, Bacon or Shakespeare. From the fifteenth century, as Ahriman began to loosen his bonds, science and history began to reflect the actions of two opposing forces. Science involved with the Christ mysteries under the flagship of Michael and Steiner’s Anthroposophy, or; Arabistic science, under the flagship of every university in the country, from MIT, Yale, Harvard, Oxford, all considered by consensus, as the best schools in the world.

In the mid-century of the twentieth century Robert Powell and I had a chance to attend the Goetheanum together. There was a wonderful group of international survivors who had gone through the sixties and were now washed ashore at the Grail School. We were to become Knights of the Word. But only now can I see, with the help of my colleagues, how the Arthurian sixties should have led to the Grail forces. It has taken many, many years, in the quest, for me to comprehend the mysteries of the Dove. The Christ Being was far too big a picture and one which I knew I could not hold together in my pea-brain. I still can’t. Glimpses and stunning insights that rock me off my metal continue to steer my soul towards this remarkable science of the soul.

Either THE CHYMICAL WEDDING or the divorce of heaven or hell are at stake. The choice for schools of thought are Christ and the Science of the Spirit or Ahrimanic cosmic severance. The great Initiates are very aware of the dilemma and the dilemma is now rather personal. Each of us must look carefully over the issues and spin nature and mankind back on course. The other choice is to turn the other way and pretend that the Christ event did not happen on this planet and if it did who cares, or, as the slang runs, whatever!

Now the X-generation, the Doom Generation, the clueless generation faces the onslaught of the mighty forces that can, in and of themselves begin to dismantle the Finished Work of the Gods. The real thing, or the reel thing, cannot be distinguished from the lie these days. Navigating the rapids of the information age can leave one addicted to non-light and non-truth. Atrophy and vampirism is rapidly creeping up as cyberspace suction is extolled and trumpeted by the same morons who gave you your diplomas. Educators who haven’t the ability to weave sincerity and truth, from the chaos of technology and humanity, are wrapped up in political and sexual schisms that are meant to tie the soul in knots and make the nineties generation beg for relief with some new opiate.

Each generations decisions and actions in the courage of their era help and have helped to wage a mighty war on a counterfeit demon. A new heaven and a new hell is in the making. A deadly betrayal of creation and humanity is being asked of this generation. Why they must face this storm-cloud of glossy mis-information and data sludge must mean that they have in them the power to see through the illusion, the silicon mirage and hang onto the majestic mystery of THE FINISHED WORK OF THE GODS. Silent creation, that has no words of defense against this titanic onslaught is in silent terror of the outcome. Whole worlds of gradually endangered species and plant forces, whole complexes of nature and the very parasitical attack of criminal psychic forces are waiting in the wings and slowly surrounding the once grand, epic mystery, called Mankind.

“Nuclear Attacks on the Etheric structure of Humanity” by Bradford Riley

“Heisenberg, Bohr, Boggs and Oppenheimer would have been pupils of Rudolf Steiner in Munich if Steiner’s magnificent Christic Physics of how Love and Light make up the body of matter itself would have been placed in Munich as Steiner had intended in the first place. The great symphony conductor, the WORD, the Logos and the Etheric Christ weaves into every crevice and cranny of matter from the most distant stars and galaxies to the the intimacy of the human I and our blood.”Nuclear attacks Dodechedron 1

“I once said, and this was truly not said rhetorically, but out of the deeper knowledge of the soul: Until our physics, our mechanics, the whole of our external science, come to be permeated by the Christ Impulse, science will not have reached its goal… A truly Christian science will not seek for atoms, not for atoms and their laws, nor for the conservation of matter and of energy; it will seek for the revelation of Christ in all the phenomena of nature, and these will thereby reveal to men their sacramental character.” Rudolf Steiner

We are going to enter into an understanding as to why the United States of America was chosen by Ahriman to introduce poisoned etheric light, destructive incinerating nuclear weapons, introduce historically into Earth evolution Anti-human and Anti-Christ light, depleted poison uranium shells to be spread around the world. (click here to the tragic confession of Oppenheimer. His failure to call back the Beast that he gift wrapped for Truman. CLICK LINK) Depleted Uranium dust carried by the wind and explosions, swept into diverse foreign conflicts and countries where they now cause genetic defects for generations in Americans who have served in overseas conflicts. Genetic damage will be passed on for generations to come in human beings residing in areas where depleted uranium shells have been used that have entered into the soil and dust of a country. Why?

We will examine why the 33rd President of the United States, Harry Truman, who won the Consciousness Soul and Etheric Christ bingo award for being the 33rd President and forced to decide like Pontius Pilate if the 33rd President of the United States should stand in judgment of the Etheric Christ Light. Should Truman press the human race forward to the crisis of the difference between poison ahrimanic light and Etheric Christ living light? Or was Truman’s common sense and reason still as stunned and stunted as Pilate’s was when he had to judge the Christ by standards of the Roman world? Was America just another Rome and Truman just another Pontius Pilate?

Christ was crucified at 33 on Golgotha and ever since then the number 33 in the rhythm of historical time in 33 year blocks, in particular 3 X 33 etc has been a stable indicator where challenges to humanities ignorance of the Etheric Christ always arise with particular tensions. Harry Truman’s number as POTUS # 33 brought us face to face with the anti-light that directly opposes the healing and living light of the Etheric Christ radiating from the Etheric worlds. It is only Michael School Intel that can sort out such Tenth Hierarchy historical studies.

“The test of the first atomic explosion in history was conducted at the Jornada del Muerto trail (Journey of Death) at the Alamagordo Bombing Range in New Mexico at 33 deg. 40′ 31″ North latitude, 106 deg. 28′ 29″ West longitude (33.675 deg. N, 106.475 deg W). The device was called Gadget, the whole test operation was code-named TRINITY.

In this cut of Hendrix’s “All along the Watchtower” Hendrix refers to 1833. (youtube mysteriously pulled the clip). However the discussion can be illuminated by understanding one of the key world events of 1833 that has been hidden from humanity.

‘In this live performance of all along the watchtower (bob dylan), he [HENDRIX LINK] says “this songs about the year 1833, and I think its still pretty true today”?’

Hendrix played his music with the same originality and virtuoso as Steiner delivered his magnificent shattering lectures. But for Spiritual Science the entire destiny of Europe hinged upon the strangest of events in the mystery of Kaspar Hauser (See Link) — in particular, there were claims that he was the heir to the house of Baden. In 1833 the mystery deepened when Kaspar Hauser was assassinated. This one assassination plunged Europe and 20th century history into a destructive course that eventually eclipsed the rise of the Etheric Christ event in 1933. With assassinations key players through out the 20th and 21st centuries could be eliminated, cut short, and history and The Tenth Hierarchy once more thrown off course and diverted into deception.

In this essay we are going to evaluate how the Consciousness Soul, Spiritual Science and the I AM are related to the mechanics and physics system externalized in the technical creation of the atomic bomb.

In this essay we will evaluate how Spiritual Science, Carlo Pietzner, the Foundation Stone, the dodecahedron and Camphill Villages were brought together with the designers of the atomic bomb. For there is a line of karmic and destiny evaluations that shall pin-point where and how Rudolf Steiner’s research and the cornerstone of Spiritual Science, the Foundation Stone draw us into the REAL core of the I AM as it sits in the center of the 12 cranial nerves and sits as the central core of the inner eye of light at the pineal gland.

Elizabeth Boggs served on the Boards of Camphill Village Copake and Kimberton Hills and was instrumental in creating the Camphill Association of North America, serving as its second President. But what Carlo Pietzner and Hagen Biesantz knew about Elizabeth Boggs was never brought into understanding or interior grappling within the school of Spiritual Science and the higher fields of I AM cognition.

That Ahrimanic forces had designed a horrific, destructive, external and technical model of something that profoundly deals with the inner intimacy of light within the core of the I AM as it pertains to conception and perception within thinking, was never adequately comprehended by Anthroposophists and the School of Spiritual Science. For it was Elizabeth Boggs that was instrumental in creating the interior implosion lens of the atomic bomb.

This implosion lens designed by Elizabeth Boggs

nuclear implosion device takes us right to the core of the Dodecahedron and the core of how the I AM functions within the 12 cranial nerves of the brain. How the pineal functions as a receptive, recessed eye that is sensitive to interior light of the inner I AM and how the Christ Being could collect and manifest Himself within a TWELVE DISCIPLE core that matched the TWELVE FOLDNESS of the Zodiac was never deconstructed to see how Ahriman had snatched up and mimicked this process in a matter poisoning destructive technical device that produced an overwhelming flood of fallen, anti-etheric poison light.

To understand the direct attack on the etheric nature of the Earth and humanity it is important to watch the acceleration of nuclear detonations and the increase through out the globe, at a stepped up pace, as countries rush to gain nuclear capabilities. Watch this video in order to grasp the Ahrimanic assault against the etheric structure of humanity and the explosion of research, money and personal who are absorbed into a pattern of human betrayal of The Tenth Hierarchy.

“As a cynical token of “good will”, the US helped reconstruct the Fallujah hospital, in which many women now give birth to deformed babies, deformities caused by illegal weaponry used by the occupation forces during the assaults: white phosphorous, depleted uranium, and other chemical and uranium weapons. With a half-life of 4.5 billion years, DU and NDU amount to a permanently available contaminant randomly distributed into the environment. An eternal curse on humanity, inflicted by the “Champions of the Free World”.

Humanity rushes into the arms of the Ahrimanic sciences and increases the political lies and strengths of politicians who now use, the mushroom cloud, and a mass of media and political lies to support the full frontal attack on the actual metaphysical vision and reality of the Etheric Christ.

In other words, how the Cosmic I AM of Christ entered and submerged Himself with living etheric forces into the subjective interior of a single human being was technically mimicked in the making of the external atomic bomb. The human being is a constructive light bearer, a Christophorus (Click the Link to study the Etheric Christophorus), who was made to receive and give divine light and offer uplifting devachan light, back into creation. The human being is a conscious, organic, living light receiver and light giver and brings etheric wholeness and heals the rends and tears in the fabric of creation.

Rudolf Steiner

“We are going forward to an age when, as I indicated recently, men will understand what the atom is, in reality. It will be realised — by the public mind too — that the atom is nothing but coagulated electricity. — The thought itself is composed of the same substance. Before the end of the fifth epoch of culture, science will have reached the stage where man will be able to penetrate into the atom itself. When the similarity of substance between the thought and the atom is once comprehended, the way to get hold of the forces contained in the atom will soon be discovered and then nothing will be inaccessible to certain methods of working. — A man standing here, let us say, will be able by pressing a button concealed in his pocket, to explode some object at a great distance — say in Hamburg! Just as by setting up a wave-movement here and causing it to take a particular form at some other place, wireless telegraphy is possible, so what I have just indicated will be within man’s power when the occult truth that thought and atom consist of the same substance is put into practical application.

“It is impossible to conceive what might happen in such circumstances if mankind has not, by then, reached selflessness. The attainment of selflessness alone will enable humanity to be kept from the brink of destruction. The downfall of our present epoch will be caused by lack of morality. The Lemurian epoch was destroyed by fire, the Atlantean by water; our epoch and its civilization will be destroyed by the War of All against All, by evil. Human beings will destroy each other in mutual strife. And the terrible thing — more desperately tragic than other catastrophes — will be that the blame will lie with human beings themselves.

“A tiny handful of men will make good and thus insure their survival in the sixth epoch of civilization. This tiny handful will have attained selflessness. The others will develop every imaginable skill and subtlety in the manipulation and use of the physical forces of nature, but without the essential degree of selflessness.”

All nuclear weaponry serves the very opposite of what the I AM in the Tenth Hierarchy was designed to do. This is how Elizabeth Boggs arrived on the doorstep of Camphill Village and Kimberton Hills with Carlo Pietzner. Elizabeth Boggs karma with Carlo Pietzner and Camphills in America had to do with the birth of her son in August 1945 and her involvement in the dropping of Fat Man on Nagasaki on August 9, 1945. Elizabeth brought a secret back to the School of Spiritual Science but the School of Spiritual Science never shared her secret until now.

Elizabeth Boggs-Camphill Village Copake-Kimberton Hills

“The idea of explosives lenses appears to have originated with M. J. Poole of the Explosives Research Committee in England. In 1942 he prepared a report describing a two-dimensional arrangement of explosives (RDX and baratol) to create a plane detonation wave. This idea was brought to Los Alamos in May 1944 by James Tuck, where he expanded it by suggesting a 3-D lens for creating a spherical implosion wave as a solution to making an implosion bomb. A practical lens design was proposed separately by Elizabeth Boggs of the US Explosives Research Laboratory, and by Johann Von Neumann. The Boggs proposal was the earlier of the two, although it was Von Neumann’s proposal who directly influenced the Manhattan Project.”

“Whereas the ‘Enola Gay‘  had had a relatively uneventful journey to her target at Hiroshima, the same was not true for the plane picked to drop the next atomic bomb – ‘Bockscar’. Both ‘Bockscar’ and ‘Enola Gay’ were B29 Superfortress bombers. The crew of ‘Bockscar’  gathered for their takeoff at 03.40 hours, August 9th, at Tinian Island. The flight commander, Major Sweeney, found that one of the fuel pumps on the B29 was not working. 800 gallons of aviation fuel had to sit in its fuel tank – it could not be used for the engines but the plane had to carry its weight and get nothing in return from the fuel.

‘Bockscar’ carried an atomic bomb that differed from ‘Little Boy’ carried by ‘Enola Gay‘ for the Hiroshima bombing. ‘Fat Man’ was not a gun-type bomb but used the implosion method; it had a circle of 64 detonators that would drive pieces of plutonium together into a supercritical mass. ‘Little Boy’ had used Uranium 235. ‘Fat Man’ weighed about 10,000 lbs and was 10 feet 8 inches long.dodecahedron inner implosion Fat Man device It had the explosive capacity of about 20,000 tons of high explosives. By the time ‘Bockscar’ got near to its primary target, Kokura, it became clear that the weather had saved the city. The city was covered by cloud. Sweeney made three runs over the city but could find not break. With lack of fuel an issue, he decided to move to his only other target – Nagasaki. Sweeney only had enough fuel for one run over the city and not enough to fly back to Tinian. He would have to land at Okinawa.

“The weapons expert on ‘Bockscar’ was Commander Ashworth. Sweeney had been ordered that only a visual run was allowed – not a run guided by radar. Ashworth told Sweeney that radar would have to be used if Nagasaki was covered in cloud – it was. Most of Sweeney’s bombing run was done using radar but at the last minute a break in the cloud was found by the bomb aimer. He targeted a race track and at 28,900 feet, ‘Fat Man’ was dropped.

“As Nagasaki had been targeted in the past, people in the city had become blasé when the air raid siren sounded. The same was true on August 9th. The irony was that Nagasaki was well served with good bomb shelters and far fewer people would have been killed or injured if the air raid sirens had been listened to. The surrounding hills had tunnels dug into them which would have been very effective for the people who could have reached them.

‘Fat Man’ was a very effective bomb. Its blast was bigger than ‘Little Boy’s’  but its impact was reduced by the natural topography of the city. Where the bomb blast hit at its peak, massive damage was done. An area about 2.3 miles by 1.9 miles was destroyed but other parts of the city were saved from the blast. Curiously, the city’s train service was not interrupted and the fire damage that followed Hiroshima did not occur in Nagasaki as many parts of the city were broken up by water. The fires simply could not cross these gaps and they burned out.

“However, considerable damage was done to the city. The horrific injuries suffered at Hiroshima were also witnessed at Nagasaki. The city’s medical facilities were not totally destroyed by ‘Fat Man’ as at Hiroshima – but nobody was capable of coping with those who were injured in the blast.

“One survivor, Sadako Moriyama, had gone to a bomb shelter when the sirens sounded. After the bomb had gone off, she saw what she thought were two large lizards crawling into the shelter she was in, only to realise that they were human beings whose bodies had been shredded of their skin because of the bomb blast.

“Death and injury in Nagasaki and the surrounding areas, depended on where you lived. People who lived on the Koba hillside, just three and a half miles from ground zero, were protected from the blast by a mountain. People caught up in the blast came to Koba for help and Fujie Urata, who lived in Koba and had seen a large flash, could not believe what she was seeing. She described people with great sheets of skin hanging off of their bodies; grotesque swollen faces; torsos covered with large blisters.

“As in Hiroshima, many in Nagasaki died after the immediate impact of the bomb had gone away from mysterious ailments which we now associate with radiation poisoning. No-one, understandably, knew what to do to help the victims of this newest of illnesses.”

In the Consciousness Soul era, where we are today, we have the converging and colliding forces and players in history, science and art, and through the Consciousness Soul we begin to lift up vast and specific patterns of history, sort out the players and see for ourselves the I AM incarnations of individuals who have participated in history.

With our Consciousness Soul, that includes focused and sharpened observations of ourselves and our friends and how our I AM’s and others around us have discovered the secret patterns of our biographies, that reveal to any objective observer, part of the architecture of human experience from cradle to grave that are realities of the Cosmic objectivity of human biography. The subjectivity of materialistic dogma and indoctrination in education stands against the intimate objectivity of the Cosmos. Our subjective forces of pride and power as well as laziness stubbornly fight against the illumination and Etheric Light of the Logos from entering warmly as Cosmic wholesome Tenth Hierarchy objectivity.

The Consciousness Soul begins to see with clarity the individual human I AM, the Etheric Christ Being and vast cancerous Ahrimanic clusters of beings growing out of the human intellect. This vast and intimate conflict, of the politics of nuclear proliferation, places us each as global members of the Tenth Hierarchy, in a position to deny the Etheric forces of Light and defend, driven by our fear of cosmic objectivity, and our shadows need to cling to indoctrinated materialism to defend the whole web of current nuclear political lies. The Consciousness Soul brings the objectivity of the Cosmos and the Spiritual World into the subjectivity of human logic by illuminating our illogical subjective behavior.

When you know the truth, the truth shall set you free because it impacts the interior and subjective core of the I AM where we understand with our own thinking, and see consciously our own motives, we suddenly see with inner realization the true constructs of reality. Our struggles over all today are with cramped and narrow dogmas of materialism obstructing our observation of the objectivity of the Cosmos and the position of humanity as The Tenth Hierarchy.

Because Spiritual Science is accurate and because most of us cannot stand to concentrate or study for more than 3 minute chunks, if that, you’re going to have to follow something that may seem distasteful to you. You are required to return to the tip of the iceberg of the Uncertainty Principle, exactly where the Consciousness Soul first really made significant landfall. We are going to have to touch upon Shakespeare’s Hamlet once again, but from a totally different angle of how the Consciousness Soul awakens in us.

The play Hamlet and Shakespeare’s entire body of works in the English language reveal the most intimate observations and uncertainties that the Consciousness Soul encounters as it gains cosmic objectivity. Hamlet stands in the middle of the first wave of Consciousness Soul uncertainties where the objective spiritual world ruffles the reality of soldiers on guard. All along the Watchtower the dawning light of the Consciousness Soul breaks forth in Hamlet’s soul as it must break forth in every single individual human beings heart.

Nuclear America and Heisenberg’s Uncertainty

“Heisenberg comes to Copenhagen to seek Bohr’s assistance in stopping all efforts at nuclear research in the service of the war effort, that Heisenberg comes to Bohr seeking ethical advice about his participation in the Nazi atomic research project, that Heisenberg deliberately sabotages the Nazi program to keep the bomb out of Hitler’s hands”

Heisenberg and Bohr and in particular Heisenberg had vast uncertainties, sitting in the middle of Nazi Germany with the potential nuclear, incinerating, annihilating option in his hands. Heisenberg had at least as much uncertainty or more than Hamlet had at stake. The stakes for Heisenberg and Bohr and the overshadowing Consciousness Soul timing of when, if and who should gain possession of the most insidious Anti-Light and Anti-human etheric enemy to light, a weapon that shifted the moral dilemma and the timing of how humanity would cope with the dilemma of a Super Power, vaster, bigger than Germany, is left for the Michael school to evaluate.

THE MYSTICAL ANTHROPIC PRINCIPLE

by Tom Mellett

(First published in the
Journal for Anthroposophy,
Number 59 Fall 1994 issue, pp. 5-15)

“If Francis Bacon were alive today,
Incarnate as an astrophysicist,
Would he be prone to worship and to pray?
To find the God that Albert Einstein missed?

The God who never plays a game of chance
Who never lets the universe run down,
Who hides his hands behind the cosmic dance,
And masquerades as sub-atomic clown?

What are the proper questions then to pose?
Do we create our own reality?
Or does the seed contain the unseen rose
That overturns the law of gravity?

If Bohr and Einstein could agree on this:
The world bestows the ignorance of bliss.”

In treating vast complex forces of Beings including the Tenth Hierarchy as players in an interesting cosmic drama, the Ahrimanic dilemma that the Consciousness Soul war could take place in such a vast and dull human setting, like America, was wonderfully challenging for a cold calculating being.

Perhaps the Ahrimanic group egregore could win over a larger section of the population of America with terror and brainwashing like they did with Nazi Germany only improved, more subtle, less obvious, more lethal, addictive and more devoted to deception. If America acquired the bomb instead of Nazi Germany Ahriman could once and for all, as a world being, stand face to face, light to light against the Etheric Christ. (CLIICK ON LINK OR PICTURE  BELOW FOR UNDERSTANDING THE TRANSUBSTANTIATION OF MATTER)

Light Sphere of the Christ

Perhaps the Ahrimanic forces, once the nuclear nightmare was shifted to America’s vast economic engine, larger than Nazi Germany and with whole hosts of yet to be discovered scientific discoveries in cloning, vaccines, and products to falsify the etheric, astral and I AM, perhaps if the nuclear option shifted from Nazi Germany to America, Ahriman could take down 3/4 of the Tenth Hierarchy and even infect the Angelic community. Of course Michael’s great trust and confidence in humanity and the Etheric Christ has deliberately placed humanity into this position of sink or swim.

For when humanity entered the Consciousness Soul or as another description describes, The Spiritual Soul, than humanity each and everyone would be forced to deal with the exiled band of disenfranchised Ahrimanic beings who were sentenced to a sub-sensible world within the pathetic human soul.(The entire Fall of the Spirits of Darkness lectures gives you the source of all terrorism and assault on the human psyche) And from America, the great idealistic land of freedom, Ahriman could inflict not only damage to the Consciousness Soul but to the gods themselves for having imprisoned their vast contingency in the secret subjectivity of the human soul.

In our human soul, the key to overcoming the exile of the Ahrimanic beings was hidden in the untold fortunes of addicting the West and America to a materialism that would make the Tenth Hierarchy forfeit their highly placed humanity for propaganda, terror, fears and thirty pieces of Wall Streets finest silver and gold.

One of the key problems of Shakespeare’s Consciousness Soul investigation of Hamlet, was the overshadowing awe of the Spiritual WorldHamlet and his Father revealed itself objectively in the crisis of the dead in Hamlet’s Father’s ghost awakening cosmic intuition and the hidden selfish subjective motives of his mother the queen and his uncle who killed his Father. The suspicion of the murder and the cover up of the murder and the conspiracy behind the murder and how to verify the objectivity of spiritual insight becomes no less dramatic in the drama of Hamlet than it has with the real history of if JFK was killed by a magic bullet.

It was the witness, the objective witness of the Zapruder film and Oliver Stone’s painstaking research that revealed that the Warren Commission like the 9/11 Commission was a loaded Ahrimanic hoax and placed the uncle and the queen in Hamlet in the same betrayal costumes as both the historical lies of the Warren and 9/11 commission. They were rigged for a naive and easily deceived American culture.

The shooters take aimThe Spiritual World, intuition, thought and insight mingled into the observations of dead materialism and Hamlet’s Father’s ghost and uncovering the hidden motives and actions behind reality plant the seed of doubt in dogmatic theories of materialism so the Consciousness Soul age can be ushered in. Even if the Consciousness Soul is ushered in under the cover of ahrimanic darkness and loaded with conspiracies against the Tenth Hierarchy. Conspiracies are all rooted in the unseen conflicts hidden in the ahrimanic and luciferic motives that resist the Etheric Christ and the value of humanity as The Tenth Hierarchy.

Thus Heisenberg has just enough of an uncertainty principle to shift and pivot the terrible weapon of nuclear death over to the self-satisifed giant of materialism in the West. And that is truly the crux and threshold of how Cosmic objectivity reveals the hidden subjective motives of moral and immoral standpoints, murder, torture and politics that have forced the Tenth Hierarchy, to come face to face with it’s own shadow.

“In the Spring of 1924 the young German physicist Werner Heisenberg went on a walking tour with the great Neils Bohr in Denmark, Bohr’s homeland. The following is Heisenberg’s account of what Bohr said when they came to the Kronberg Castle. ‘Isn’t it strange how this castle changes as soon as one imagines that Hamlet lived here. As scientists we believe that a castle consists only of stones, and admire the way the architect put them together. The stone, the green roof with its patina, the woodcarvings in the church, constitute the whole castle. None of this should be changed by the fact that Hamlet lived here, and yet it is changed completely. Suddenly the walls and ramparts speak a different language. The courtyard becomes an entire world, a dark corner reminds us of the human soul, we hear Hamlet’s “to be or not to be.”

Here we have scientists who are looking at the brick-work of matter and somehow it dawns on them that a human spiritual being, Hamlet, actually lived here and that an enormous karmic drama, an historical event had rocked this castle, but had the living vibrations of the being of Hamlet and the events of Hamlet’s destiny imprinted themselves and left a devachan memory of itself within the stone and matter framework? Or did the struggles of the human spirit and the Consciousness Soul disappear as if Hamlet never existed? What was the nature of matter? What was the nature of the brick-work and matter, the very atoms that housed the spirit of Hamlet? Where did his Spirit and his struggles vanish to?

But even more shattering for the School of Spiritual Science was the crippled and final year of 1924, where the Initiate and Seer Dr. Rudolf Steiner brought to fruition his mighty Karma lectures, his Speech and Drama Course, where at the very moment that Heisenberg and Bohr, heirs to the fallen world of light, discuss the mysteries of Kronberg Castle, Rudolf Steiner, Bohr and Heisenberg were altogether penetrating the destiny, character and tragedy of Hamlet. For Steiner literally recites portions of Hamlet and discusses him in 1924 in The Speech and Drama Course as his life forces flame out.

It is in 1924 that the very last heroic efforts of Rudolf Steiner’s destiny are cut short and he concludes a biography that we know and understand as a human being who stood one stage above the Consciousness Soul at the stage of Spirit Selfhood. Steiner than summed up the very highest quintessence of all the Consciousness Soul mysteries of thought, matter and insight that he would have graciously brought as the most magnificent Christic Physics from Munich, and would have changed the entire course of Nazi Germany if he had been allowed, as he had planned, to build his Spiritual Science School in Munich instead of being pushed out of the way, to Switzerland.

Heisenberg and Bohr would have been pupils of Rudolf Steiner in Munich if Steiner’s magnificent Christic Physics of how Love and Light make up the body of matter itself would have been placed in Munich as Steiner had intended in the first place. The great symphony conductor, the WORD, the Logos and the Etheric Christ weaves into every crevice and cranny of matter from the most distant stars and galaxies to the the intimacy of the human I and our blood. Heisenberg, Oppenheimer, Boggs and Bohr would have understood a completely different foundation of matter than what is taught today. Instead of the degradation of matter and the etheric worlds, humanity would have grasped clearly the logic of how the Etheric, Astral and I AM function in the incarnated human being, and as well in the reality of stone, plant, animal, human and higher Tenth Hierarchy agencies.

These mighty destiny events and an Initiate who understood the mighty core of matter, light and love as no other human being ever had were concluding themselves in 1924 just as Bohr and Heisenberg wandered around Kronberg Castle. An initiate who understood LOVE & LIGHT both as a science and as a scientist and as a conscious incarnating I AM, who knew the core of the I AM; and knew the core of what the I AM mystery was in matter; and in the human soul and spirit who clothes himself in matter, returns to the stars and once more seeks the germinating ground of the I AM and Earth in the bosom of the Etheric Christ. All this and the very highest psychological research in tracing the incarnating human being through past lives, culminated in the most exquisite pure flame of his final Karma Lectures in 1924.

Rudolf Steiner

“Now let us consider such figures as these in accordance with the methods of spiritual science. First of all we know that these individualities will appear again; we know that such souls will return to life. We shall not pay any attention to their intermediate incarnations but look for them in the post-Christian era. We then see something of the change brought about by time, something that can help us to understand how the Mystery of Golgotha intervened in human evolution. If we say that such figures as Hector and Empedocles appeared again, we must ask how they walked among men in the post-Christian era. For we shall then see how the intervention of the Mystery of Golgotha, the fulfillment and beginning of a new age, worked on their souls. As serious anthroposophists assembled here together we need not shrink from the communications of true spiritual science, which can be confirmed by external facts.

“I should now like to turn your attention to something that took place in the post-Christian era, and perhaps again it may be said that the person concerned was a poetical personage. But this poetical personage can be traced back to a real individuality who was once alive. I direct your attention to the character created by Shakespeare in his Hamlet. Anyone who knows the development of Shakespeare, insofar as it can be known externally, and especially someone who is acquainted with it through spiritual science, will know that Shakespeare’s Hamlet is none other than the transformed real prince of Denmark, who also lived at one time.

“I cannot go into everything underlying the historical prototype of the poetical figure of Hamlet, but through the research of spiritual science, I can offer you a striking example of how a man, a spirit of ancient times, reappears in the post-Christian era. The real figure underlying Hamlet, as presented by Shakespeare, is Hector. The same soul that lived in Hamlet lived in Hector. It is just by such a characteristic example as this, and the striking way the two different souls manifest themselves, that we can interpret what happened in the intervening time.

“A personality such as that of Hector stands before us in the pre-Christian age. Then comes the intervention of the Mystery of Golgotha in human evolution, and the spark it kindled in Hector’s soul causes a figure, a prototype of Hamlet, to arise, of whom Goethe said, “This is a soul that is unable to deal with any situation and is not equal to its position, who is assigned tasks but is unable to fulfill them.” We may ask why Shakespeare expressed it in this way. He did not know. But anyone who can investigate the connections through spiritual science knows that behind these things forces were at work.

“The poet creates in the unconscious; before him stands, so to speak, first the figure which he creates, and then, as in a tableau of which he himself knows nothing, the whole individuality with which the figure is connected. Why does Shakespeare choose particular qualities in Hamlet and sharply emphasize them, qualities that perhaps Hamlet’s own contemporaries would not have noticed? Because he observes them against the background of the era. He feels how different a soul has become in its transition from the old life to the new. Hamlet, the doubter, the skeptic, who has lost the ability to cope with the situations with which he meets in life, the procrastinator and waverer, this is what Hector, once so sure of himself, has become.”

“Copenhagen”

Michael Frayn’s play Copenhagen is set in an undisclosed location, with no mention of sets, props, costume, or scenic design. (In fact, the play does not offer a single stage direction – leaving the action completely up to the director.)

The audience learns early on that all three characters (Heisenberg, Bohr, and Bohr’s wife Margrethe) have been dead for years. With their lives now over, their spirits turn to the past to try to make sense of the 1941 meeting.

In 1941, German physicist Heisenberg paid a visit to Bohr. The two spoke very briefly before Bohr angrily ended the conversation and Heisenberg left. Mystery and controversy have surrounded this historic exchange. About a decade after the war, Heisenberg maintained that he visited Bohr, his friend and father-figure, to discuss his own ethical concerns about nuclear weaponry. However, Bohr remembers differently; he claims that Heisenberg seemed to have no moral qualms about creating atomic weapons for the Axis powers.

Incorporating a healthy combination of research and imagination, Michael Frayn contemplates the various motivations behind Heisenberg’s meeting with his former mentor, Niels Bohr.”

I AM functions in Percepts – Concepts and Intuition

What Elizabeth Boggs brought back to Spiritual Science was the externalized Ahrimanic model of how the I functions when it bridges, through light, the Eureka of discovering the Concepts that reveal the hidden mysteries behind Percepts. The I AM manual for breaking down the process within the human thinking organism, has been Rudolf Steiner’s “Philosophy of Spiritual Activity”. But Ahriman’s direct assault on the interior process of thinking and what each thinking spirit can do to change the structure of matter has been reverberating in humanity since the first test bombs at Trinity New Mexico.The essay that is the companion to the one your are reading now can be found here (CLICK LINK) > “Trinity New Mexico and Trinity at Golgotha” .

The entire interior implosion lens device that Elizabeth Boggs experimented with along with one of Ahriman’s best friends, John von Neumann is a spirit-less, raw, mechanical, ripped from the occult structure of the human I AM, device, toy, that reveals just how Light and Matter penetrate Percepts and how Concepts are illuminated in the brain.

People used to depict when an idea occurred in their brains, a little light bulb was illuminated. See the simplification light bulbHowever what was discovered was that if you rip out this process of thinking that is outlined in Rudolf Steiner’s “Theory of Knowledge” and his “Philosophy of Spiritual Activity” or “The Philosophy of Freedom” you get the precise model of the first atomic bombs and how the implosion device that Elizabeth Boggs worked on operated. Ahriman’s fury that Rudolf Steiner had found the core of how the I AM functions is met with everything we see and understand as nuclear incineration, etheric poison, depleted uranium waste that, when used in weapons and as weapons penetrate all the way down to the genetic codes of the human spirit.

MASSIMO SCALIGERO“Thought seems sufficient, when it is logical and penetrating, or subtle, and to the extent that it gives explanations for the world, things, beings and for oneself, for feeling states , memories and thoughts themselves. But this is not yet true thinking: it is not yet that thinking which has no need for topics or objects to be concrete, having its own foundation in itself: a foundation looked for through itself in other entities: thought entities, without any consciousness of having them only as thought. Facts, things, beings, the world, demand not the knowledge with which man organises them – even if this knowledge is necessary at a certain level – but knowing: that which, usually alienating itself as their form, is their initial being. The existing world is the spiritual world, unnoticed: its being is denied in the thought which, in order to be ordinary thought, extinguishes its own being, and therefore does not penetrate the world, and does not realise itself as the power that thinks the world, the transcendence of the world. It does not know that its own Logos is the Logos of the entities. Mankind does not yet truly think, to the extent that it believes that thinking has been given it to explain the world, events and itself to it. But this is a matter of indifference to the world, as it is indifferent for the spirit. Mankind must be able to discover that it thinks the world, things, and itself, only so that it can be stimulated to identify the thought that penetrates the world: to notice the thought that is never noticed, because it is always mixed up in things, and used to fill the empty shell of perception. Whilst the true content, as can be directly experienced, is pure thinking, from which the thoughts which weave the form of ordinary experience, external and internal, spring.”

What this implies for thinking, is that human thinking and the human spirit and the Human Christ Being could penetrate well past the genetic structure of humanity and penetrate with the human I and the Cosmic I AM into the deepest core of the XX and XY chromosome structure to produce not only the Phantom Body but a tangible consolidation of matter that even Thomas could touch. Matter that could vanish and appear again at will by the directed forces of a new Cosmic I AM that was born from Golgotha.

The Resurrection was not a game, nor was the Phantom Body a game, but the term “Beam Me Aboard” is the attempt at an Ahrimanic joke of an actual higher process. If nothing else mockery and Ahrimanic gimmickry are constantly being introduced as special effects to stimulate and divert the imagination and thinking from an actual real process. In fact it is so hard to understand the events of Golgotha and introduce them, just because of mimicry and gimmickry that appeals to nerds, who easily dismiss that humanity are the actual Tenth Hierarchy and this is not a game.

Can we take Joe Blow or John Doe, science, and no moral development at all, and introduce the dead abstract concepts of Science into the stream of human cognition and imagination and thereby divert human spiritual understanding from actually penetrating the spiritual complexity of the events of Golgotha? That is the full thrust attempt by Ahrimanic and Luciferic forces to make every effort to confuse reality, biography, birth, life and death with a game. Detract, demean, mock, divert, deceive and oppose the true reality behind humanity and The Etheric Christ are just some of potent goals used by Ahriman to cripple all Michael Intelligence. Reincarnation, human initiation and the Science of Golgotha are not games, yet Ahriman would prefer that we thought of it all as an abstract game removed from The Fifth Chamber of the Human Heart.

But when we look at the deformities that are caused by radioactive nuclear decayed light, decayed light that arises from the fallen Devachan light from the higher worlds, we also are visibly shocked by the results of depleted uranium, where Ahriman and the Ahrimanic forces have poisoned and deformed the deep genetic material of the human being into a mockery of the divine human form.

In the illumination of intuition and the forming of concepts the human I as a functioning and thinking process reveals a miniature mushroom cloud that is contained, and that is also key to our discussion, contained within the human skull is a process of light absorption and light transubstantiation that Ahriman has ripped out of cosmic evolution and placed before our eyes as the dreaded mushroom cloud.

John von Neumann continued on the darkest path of ahrimanic matter until he felt the full eclipse of his spirit as it was absorbed by Ahrimanic forces near his death. He had partnered together with Elizabeth Boggs, who ended up on the doorstep of Camphill and Spiritual Science because she knew, most of the world and certainly Spiritual Science didn’t fully know, but Elizabeth Boggs knew that while she was pregnant with her son, David, that she had helped prepare the bomb that was dropped on Nagasaki and she had helped thrust and force human cognition to the threshold where humanity would have to reexamine and reawaken exactly what a Dodecahedron was. What was the Foundation Stone? And above all else why had Dr. Steiner consistently pointed to his “Philosophy of Spiritual Activity” as a work that would outlast all others?

Elizabeth Boggs had a child that was born, a child named David who was in her womb, at the time of her withdrawal from the work on the implosion device. She knew, Elizabeth Boggs knew in her heart and soul that she was in part responsible for introducing via the Nagasaki bomb, a whole new wave of deformity, and fear that would sweep into the world. But what Elizabeth didn’t know and most of the School of Spiritual Science didn’t know was that Steiner had penetrated as Boggs had, into the secret structure of the I AM and that part of that mystery was the Dodecahedron and Foundation Stone and the most important part was that only within Spiritual Science would her hidden destiny, within the Michael School be understood. And it hasn’t yet been understood even by the Michael School.

ELIZABETH M. BOGGS

Trained for a life of scientific scholarship in an era when

this was unusual for women, Elizabeth Boggs’ life plans

were changed by the birth of a son, David, in 1945, who

experienced a major illness in infancy that led to severe

developmental disability. She became a leader of advocacy

for people with disabilities in the U.S., participating

in the founding of the national Association for Retarded

Citizens, advising national policymakers, drafting landmark

legislation, and creating the model for state Developmental

Disabilities Councils over a 40-year career as a

volunteer, “Washington insider,” and adviser to a host of

groups seeking to improve the services to and prospects

of people with disabilities.

Elizabeth served on the Boards of Camphill Village Copake

and Kimberton Hills and was instrumental in creating the

Camphill Association of North America, serving as its

second President. The first symposium on developmental

disabilities, held 25 years ago in 1976, was spearheaded

by Elizabeth Boggs. CANA recognizes her contribution

by awarding in her name annual acknowledgments

of significant contributions of others to the Camphill

movement in North America.”

David, Elizabeth Boggs son, born within the near time frame of the dropping of the Nagasaki bomb, appeared to be ‘challenged’ not exactly whole. A heart breaking, heart rending discovery. And what lives in such a discovery? Not all of us are given the opportunity to develop and be supported via John F. Kennedy the entire foundation of those that are impaired and handicapped through-out America. But Elizabeth Boggs felt the need to do something powerful in response to what she knew, and few others guessed, what she knew and a select few in government knew and some in Spiritual Science knew, that Elizabeth Boggs and the birth of her own son David, had touched a vital, vital current, a vital nerve in her soul and spirit. A vital awakening that brought her into relation with Camphill and the only place in the entire world, where both the core research of her work on the atomic bomb and the moral tidal wave of the implications of Ahriman’s assault on the Etheric realms could be grasped.

Elizabeth Monroe Boggs was born in Cleveland in 1915, and moved with her family to Rye, New York as a young child. She received her bachelor’s degree from Freemont College in 1935, winning a scholarship that enabled her to study in Europe. She went to Cambridge University in 1935 intending to stay briefly, but remained until 1939, completing her doctorate in theoretical chemistry and mathematics just as war was breaking out in Europe. Despite anxious pleas from her parents to return home, Boggs, who was engaged in war related research would have stayed, save for the fact that England, flooded with refugees and fearing spies, barred foreigners from all work on war related projects. Boggs returned to the United States in December of 1939 and reported to the research project at Cornell where she had been scheduled to begin the previous September. Her laboratory space had been given to a graduate student in her absence, and she soon found herself sharing lab space with Fitzhugh Boggs, her future husband.

They were married in 1941, and the following year, moved to Cleveland to continue work on war related research. So top secret was some of their work, that Elizabeth found at times she could not mention the arrival of European colleagues to Fritz, for fear that he might guess what type of research was going on. (Elizabeth’s division was helping to design the implosion device for the Atomic bomb).

David, the Boggs’ only child, was born in 1945, several weeks after the close of the War. Healthy at birth, her baby ran an extremely high fever in the neonatal period and by ten days of age had suffered profound brain damage. Ironically, if he had been born only a few weeks earlier, it is probable that he would not have survived. The close of the war, however, allowed newly developed antibiotics, previously reserved for military use, to be distributed to the civilian population. The Boggs’ son was among the first to receive the new drugs, although not in time to prevent his permanent disability.

The extent of David’s injuries however, were not clear for some time, and they initially assumed that he would not have problems. A short time after the birth of their son, the Boggs moved to New Jersey where Fritz was scheduled to begin a job. Elizabeth planned to take a short break from work as she cared for their new baby and coped with the immediate post-War housing shortage. Months turned into years however, as it became increasingly apparent that David was not developing normally. Moreover, the answers the Boggs sought from physicians and educators seemed more and more unsatisfactory. In the late 1940’s virtually no programs existed for the care or education of retarded children, particularly those who had more severe forms of mental retardation, and parents, often fearing that they would be cut off from those few programs and professionals available. were reluctant to openly advocate on their children’s behalf.

Boggs, a well trained scientist, was keenly aware that the answers she was getting were unsatisfactory and unfounded. She became increasingly active and aware. To better fit herself for the task, she returned to school while her son was still a toddler to take classes in special education and social work administration. She began to help organize classes for her son and others in her own home and in locally available church basements and boy scout halls. She and her group were trying to provide education to over fifty retarded children, their ultimate goal being to get them registered at public schools.

Her involvement locally led quickly to her involvement nationally, and a growing interest and full time volunteer involvement in issues of legislation and public policy. She was one of the founders of the National Association of Retarded Children in 1950, and in 1958 became its first woman president. She served on its Governmental Affairs Committee from 1965 to 1979.

She was a member of President Kennedy’s Panel on Mental Retardation in 1961-62, of the National Child Health and Human Development Council (NIH) from 1967 to 1971, and of the President’s Committee on Mental Retardation from 1975 to 1976.

Boggs was a leading national and international figure within the world of mental retardation advocacy and research and a key liaison with others in the disability rights and independent living movements. She regularly attended meetings, spoke at public forums and before Congress. Boggs was also instrumental in moving legislation forward for mentally retarded children and adults both in the United States and within the United Nation systems. Her early interest in education grew to include issues of independent living and group homes, the status and rights of adult mentally retarded men and women and to issues of guardianship for older mentally retarded individuals whose immediate family is no longer alive.

In 1988, Boggs became the Acting Director of the Office of Prevention of Mental Retardation and Developmental Disabilities for the state of New Jersey. Her job was to coordinate public education campaigns and to promote expanded services and research.”

Elizabeth had come face to face with one of the most interesting problems of the Ahrimanic. On one hand by ripping out the I AM process into abstract geometry and physics, how to reproduce a 3 or 4 dimensional wave that could instantly be effective and surround the nuclear contents of a bomb, like the lens of an eye, a focused lens to surround a potent field of fallen matter, she had ventured into black occultism against Steiner’s very clear White occultism. There she met John von Neumann who was an excited, passionate, highly complex abstract thinker, like John Nash (CLICK LINK FOR NASH) only with all of Ahriman’s brilliance focused on the cutting edge of computerized materialism. In this school of Ahrimanic thinkers, there are many, but for our present considerations we can easily list John Nash, Stephen Hawking, Fredrich Niezsche and John von Neumann, who all end up with the same Ahrimanic symptoms that severs the Tenth Hierarchy from the great mystery of the Michael School and The Etheric Christ Being.

Thinking with the Spirit and Thinking without the Spirit

“I regard the brain as a computer which will stop working when its components fail,” said Hawking. “There is no heaven or afterlife for broken down computers; that is a fairy story for people afraid of the dark.” Stephen Hawking

John von Neumann-John Nash-Stephen Hawkings-Fredrich Nietzsche

” John von Neumann’s version of the theory, games could definitely be used for strategic military analysis. Indeed, he insisted that all human activity could be predetermined by mathematical analysis, because, as he put it, the human individual is nothing more than “an efficiently organized, large natural automaton.”

“He advanced the theory of cellular automata, advocated the adoption of the bit as a measurement of computer memory, and solved problems in obtaining reliable answers from unreliable computer components.

During and after World War II, von Neumann served as a consultant to the armed forces. His valuable contributions included a proposal of the implosion method for bringing nuclear fuel to explosion and his participation in the development of the hydrogen bomb. From 1940 he was a member of the Scientific Advisory Committee at the Ballistic Research Laboratories at the Aberdeen Proving Ground in Maryland. He was a member of the Navy Bureau of Ordnance from 1941 to 1955, and a consultant to the Los Alamos Scientific Laboratory from 1943 to 1955. From 1950 to 1955 he was a member of the Armed Forces Special Weapons Project in Washington, D.C. In 1955 President Eisenhower appointed him to the Atomic Energy Commission, and in 1956 he received its Enrico Fermi Award, knowing that he was incurably ill with cancer.

Eugene Wigner wrote of von Neumann’s death [18]:-

When von Neumann realised he was incurably ill, his logic forced him to realise that he would cease to exist, and hence cease to have thoughts … It was heartbreaking to watch the frustration of his mind, when all hope was gone, in its struggle with the fate which appeared to him unavoidable but unacceptable.

In [5] von Neumann’s death is described in these terms:-

… his mind, the amulet on which he had always been able to rely, was becoming less dependable. Then came complete psychological breakdown; panic, screams of uncontrollable terror every night. His friend Edward Teller said, “I think that von Neumann suffered more when his mind would no longer function, than I have ever seen any human being suffer.”

Von Neumann’s sense of invulnerability, or simply the desire to live, was struggling with unalterable facts. He seemed to have a great fear of death until the last… No achievements and no amount of influence could save him now, as they always had in the past. Johnny von Neumann, who knew how to live so fully, did not know how to die.”

Since I went to the Goetheanum and graduated from the School of Spiritual Science, I had the good fortune to know Georg Unger, son of Carl Unger at the Goetheanum. Being very young then and now much older, I remember asking Georg about the issue of nuclear and atomic energy and why it seemed we had so few answers. In our discussion, he brought out that the sphere of thinking and percept and concept illumination and intuition were a similar process as the mushroom cloud form. Now the reason I was able to discuss things with Georg was because while at the Goetheanum I had to take odd jobs to support myself and one of them was trimming the hedges of Georg and Frau Unger’s rose bushes. Imagine that. So periodically we would run into each other and if nothing else I was craving to know and understand where Spiritual Science stood on many complex issues.

Georg Unger, Ph. D.

February 1992

Dornach, Switzerland

“Even the hectic search in the forties of this century for the properties of uranium-235 and of plutonium — both didn’t even exist in weigh-able quantities — was still straightforward experimentation of the known type even though refined e.g. to purity of ingredients unthinkable up to then. But compared with them, the more recent experiments at Livermore, CERN, Dubna have completely different goals, quite aside of their difference in method. They do not handle any longer material substances and do not investigate properties of such, they are directed to hypothetical particles like “quarks.”

These, often enough, do not “exist” in a form similar to that of a physical solid, they exist “virtually”; they are thought of first and “produced” afterwards — and by that their outcome verifies a theory or, as to that, refutes it if the particles in question do not turn up, let us say, in predicted numbers. But coming back for a moment to pure mathematics. What is said in the first lecture about the certainty of mathematical knowledge is today far more evident than in those days when still one could believe that mathematical concepts were abstracted from Nature (like John Locke’s contention that concepts are only percepts stripped of unnecessary details). Today, we know with absolute certainty that mathematical concepts are free creations of the human mind.

The problems, it is true, connected with the foundations of mathematics have raised some doubts about its “certainty” by questioning whether mathematics is absolutely exempt of contradictions. But for all scientific purposes mathematical reasoning still stands as a model of exactness. [1]

Steiner really does not just pay lip service to the scientific method of Natural Science. In this book one will find very brief and concrete descriptions of the step from the ordinary approach to knowledge to the mathematical — and from there to “Imaginative Cognition.” It is discussed how one can proceed from the study of the eye as a physical apparatus to an entity permeated with life and to form an Imagination of the etheric body in the eye. “Through imaginative activity one has grasped the etheric nature of the human being in the same way as one grasps the external inorganic world through a mathematical approach.”

With the destiny of Elizabeth Boggs I had a chance to review the global, human consequences that had torn through humanity. I was born in 1949 so I had been on the otherside of the threshold of birth, at the time of the Hiroshima and Nagasaki events. I knew that and I knew as well that I had carried this question to Earth with me and had some hidden experiences of what were the results of poison and incineration as well as etheric degradation and my soul was lucky enough to encounter the School of Spiritual Science where these pieces of a giant puzzle could slowly take shape during my life’s course.

Dodecahedron and the Implosion Lens

early nuclear bomb case

Brain case and nuclear implosion sphereFinally we are faced with the abstract apparatus of the nuclear bomb and it’s relation to the inner core of the I AM. How the internal field of the human brain and heart together create a contained and beneficial etheric effect, which is a magnificent reactor built into the physiology and structure of the divine human form. It is no joke and no abstraction that humanity is built to penetrate into TRUTH that lies behind matter. If we see a human being before us, we have the objective cosmic ability to understand and penetrate to the hidden mystery that can trace their and our incarnations through actual history of ‘A’ particular I AM seed. A particular tone, note and identity is coded to each individual I AM.

Rudolf Steiner

“Within man matter is annihilated, and so are all the laws of nature. Material life, together with all the laws of nature, is thrown back into chaos; and out of the chaos a new nature is able to arise, filled through and through with the moral impulses we ourselves lay into it. As we have said, this center of destruction is below our memory-mirror. So that when we let our gaze penetrate deep down below this memory-mirror, there at last we observe it, though it is always within us. A man is not changed by knowledge: he merely comes to know what he is like, what his normal condition is. And he must learn to meditate upon these facts.

“When we are able to penetrate into this inner core of evil in man, and are able also to become conscious of how into this evil, where matter is destroyed and thrown back into chaos, moral impulses can find their way, then we have really found in ourselves the beginning of spiritual existence. Then we perceive the spirit within us in the act of creating. For when we behold moral laws working upon matter which has been thrown back into chaos, we are beholding a real activity of the spirit taking place within us in a natural way. We become aware of the spirit concretely active within us, the spirit that is the seed of future worlds.

(Side Bar Notes on the MEMORY MIRROR AS A FACT OF INITIATION)

[George MacDonald in his “Lilth” and “Alice through the Looking Glass” pass below this MEMORY MIRROR. Initiation and higher education requires clues, breadcrumbs, because the Intellect stubbornly refuses to explore it’s own deepest mysteries. Spiritual Science gets humanity through the Memory Mirror, to the other-side.  This Initiation Memory Mirror is described by George MacDonald and it is suggested here for a reference. The Instability and the Uncertainty on which our rational thoughts cling are well placed as MacDonald goes through this Mirror. FOLLOW THE SHORT STEPS TO THE MIRROR AND THROUGH THE RAVEN WITH THIS LINK]

Rudolf Steiner continues – “How is it then, in the last resort, with a man who has completely absorbed the modern natural science way of thinking? How is it for him, when this way of thinking has been grafted on to him from early childhood? He learns that out there in the world are phenomena which arise and pass away, but that matter persists, matter is the indestructible thing. The earth may come to an end, but matter will never be destroyed. Certainly (he is told) a time will come when the earth will be one vast cemetery, but the cemetery will be composed of the very same atoms as are already there to-day. A man thus trained in thought centers all his attention on what is passing away, and even when he studies that which is coming into life, he really only studies how the dying plays into it.”

Thinking and the Transubstantiation of Matter

Thinking and our ability to have this nuclear reactor operating as a powerful Time Sweeping, cognitive potential in us, as a tool of our I AM’s, that allows us to be at one with both Nature and the Gods as well as our Angels, is not some game or a trick. The human brain system contains within itself a mushroom like form that represents the Goethean observation of the mushroom of destructive, matter annihilating force we see when we tremble before Ahriman’s PRECIOUS immoral revelation, extracted from the intimate divine I AM containment structure of our brains, that Ahriman has externalized into an arbitrary incinerating, murderous weapon. Humans midwifed this externalized Ahrimanic nightmare weapon of the empty, imploded I Am, under the tutorship of people like Oppenheimer, 33rd President of the United States, Harry Truman and John von Neumann.

“The development of the casing that held the explosive sphere together progressed independently from the work on the design of the implosion system itself — it was taken for granted that whatever the final design it would be high explosive sphere sized to fit the 59 inch case. A complex early design designated the “1222” model involved 12 pentagonal sections of the aluminum alloy duraluminum (dural), inside an icosahedral steel shell, the assembly of which required 1500 bolts. This was abandoned in the summer of 1944 in favor of a much simpler system, the “1561” model. This consisted of a spherical shell made up of two polar caps and five equatorial segments of machined dural castings, which required only 90 bolts for assembly. The overall thickness of the aluminum was 1 inch. This sphere was enveloped by an ellipsoidal shell of steel attached at the equator, with the tail bolted to the ellipsoid.”

sequence

“A) Warhead before firing; primary at top, secondary at bottom. Both components are fusion-boosted fission bombs. B) High-explosive fires in primary, compressing plutonium core into supercriticality and beginning a fission reaction. C) Fission in primary emits X-rays which channel along the inside of the casing, irradiating the polystyrene foam channel filler. D) Polystyrene foam becomes plasma, compressing secondary, and plutonium sparkplug inside the secondary begins to fission, supplying heat. E) Compressed and heated, lithium-6 deuteride fuel begins fusion reaction, neutron flux causes tamper to fission. A fireball is starting to form.”

trigger nuclear implosion

All of this was done, not in the name of the Etheric Sciences and the Etheric Christ Being, all of this was done in the name of using humans, smart, clever, cunning little monkeys, Ahriman inspiring and using humans like guinea pigs to betray the foundations of their own immortal structure and foundation.implosion The Tenth Hierarchy foundation and the all too REAL, human ideal of the living Etheric Christ that had shattered the mid-point of the dynamic curve of the destiny of humanity and brought through to all of us, through the great efforts of both Buddha and Zarathustra, the Earth shaking events of Golgotha. Humanity, outside the Michael School, just can’t seem to get their heads around the fact that this is not a game.

And So Elizabeth Boggs brought back to Spiritual Science the wonderful mystery of the Dodecahedron and the Foundations Stone. Last SupperWhy even Salvadore Dali grasped the mystery of The Dodecahedron and the Foundation Stone.

Rudolf Steiner

December 25, 1923

10:00 am in the morning

“…let us seek the power of thoughts from the heights which enable us to let shine forth in fitting manner this dodecahedral Imagination which has received its form through love!

“The proper soil into which we must lower the Foundation Stone of today, the proper soil consists of our hearts in their harmonious collaboration, in their good, love filled desire to bear together the will of Anthroposophy through the world. This will cast its light on us like a reminder of the light of thoughts that can ever shine toward us from the dodecahedral Stone of love which today we will lower into our hearts.

“…we carry forth into the world what shines towards us through the light of thought of that dodecahedral Foundation Stone of love which is shaped in accordance with the universe and has been laid into the human realm.”

Every Christian Community Altar painting and the ceiling of the 1st Goetheanum and artists everywhere understand that a TWELVE FOLDNESS runs through the system of not only the skeletal structure of each human being but that the very Urns where the ashes are kept of those who have participated in the Michael School, are kept in Dodecahedron crystal structures. That the actual Foundation Stone of how the 12 cranial nerves function in the compression of light and the enhancement of thought and the focus of how percepts, concepts and ideas pave the way, through this compression of light, into super-sensible schooled cognition are all part of the magnificent mystery of Rudolf Steiner’s “Philosophy of Spiritual Activity”.

for the hard-nosed philosophical and scientific thinker, the critical, analytical mind, namely The Philosophy of Freedom (GA 4; written 1894, initially translated as Philosophy of Spiritual Activity as recommended by the author).

This book has absolutely no supernatural content whatsoever; it provides the philosophical and epistemological foundation for everything Steiner gave out through his lectures later: Humanism, empiricism, and monism, with Charles Darwin’s natural science as point of departure. This is the most important of all Steiner’s works. 30 years later, when asked which of his works would be best remembered by posterity, Rudolf Steiner answered without a moment’s hesitation: “The Philosophy of Freedom will survive all my other works.”

The Philosophy of Freedom, often referred to as the PoF for brevity, is quite a heavy digest, however, and may need several re-reads, at least some of the chapters. For this approach, I would recommend first reading Wahrheit und Wissenschaft, Vorspeil zu einer Philosophie der Freiheit, translated as Truth and Knowledge and Truth and Science (because “Wissenschaft” means, interestingly, knowledge as well as science.) This is Rudolf Steiner’s doctoral thesis, published in 1892 (GA 3) as an introduction to The Philosophy of Freedom.”

All these attributes met at the cross roads to the creation of the atomic bomb, just so Ahriman could play King of Fallen Devachan Light. King of failed Devachan and decayed Devachan light in order that Ahriman could at anytime override the Tenth Hierarchy and the Michael School of humanity and pull into the environment of Earth unfiltered, arbitrary light. Not in any way the type of light that can be focused for healing, uplifting or altering the complexities of Karma by a Word or a touch, because the Cosmic I AM of the Christ could SEE the efforts of a Youth of Nain or could see the intimate karmic tension between a woman with an issue of blood and another young girl that Christ healed.

“And it came to pass, that, when Jesus was returned, the people gladly received him: for they were all waiting for him. And behold, there came a man named Jairus, and he was a ruler of the synagogue: and he fell down at Jesus’ feet, and besought him that he would come into his house: For he had one only daughter, about twelve years of age, and she lay a-dying. But as he went the people thronged him. And a woman having an issue of blood twelve years, which had spent all her living upon physicians, neither could be healed of any, came behind him, and touched the border of his garment: and immediately her issue of blood stanched.“

(Luke VIII, 40–44.)

“How can the twelve-year-old daughter of Jairus possibly be healed, for she is at the very point of death? This can only be understood if we know that the girl’s physical illness was connected with another phenomenon in another person, and that she cannot be healed independently of that other phenomenon. When this, child, now twelve years old, was born, a certain connection existed with another personality — a connection deeply grounded in Karma. Hence we are told that a woman who had suffered from a certain illness for twelve years, passed behind Christ and touched the border of His garment. Why is this woman mentioned here? It is because she was connected karmically with Jairus’ child! This twelve-year-old girl and the woman who had suffered for twelve years were deeply connected! And it is not without reason that a secret of number is indicated here: the woman with an illness suffered for twelve years approaches Jesus and is healed — and only now could He enter the house of Jairus and heal the twelve-year-old girl who was believed to be already dead.”

These were focused healings that humanity will also be able to do. Humanity can grow into the ability to focus conscious cognition to such a force that it changes the Etheric Structure of the Heart. But that is part of the great secret, that humanity must make strides in moral cognitive development against the mockery, deception and debasement that Ahriman is constantly manufacturing.

ADDENDUM 1
Primary course correction in thinking and important rejection of Stephen Hawking. (SEE VIDEO) Be lucky and watch it all the way through to learn how to start to think and to get, your very own get out of jail card.

ADDENDUM 2

Oh we are madmen and monsters in more ways than 1

ADDENDUM 3

The son of Man and Humanities unfortunate Son. See Video

ADDENDUM 4

Human hubris, arrogance, insanity are measured in the comparison charts of THIS LINK. This link shows the Hiroshima and Nagasaki bomb payloads against the payloads of madness, the utter insanity of a humanity that worship only the mighty military budget that Ahrimanic beings sing with glee about. (CLICK THIS LINK)  and look for yourself. If we were preventing an Asteroid from destroying the Earth, we might have some of these on hand, for the just in case, last effort scenario. But NOT for the ongoing use against any, any enemy we could imagine on Earth. A large portion of the human population are clinically insane.

“Austin Texas and The Archai Michael” by Bradford Riley

Rudolf Steiner

” To the materialistic man of to-day, the Spirit of the Age is something quite abstract, without any reality; it would be still more difficult for him to see a real being in the Spirit of the Age. Nevertheless behind the word Zeitgeist, or ‘Spirit of the Age’, there is concealed a real being, and indeed none other than one three stages above the stage of humanity.

The Zeitgeist, Time Spirits or Spirits of the Ages lay down the great outlines for the several epochs. The extension of the Spirit of the Age over the whole earth is made possible through the various folk-individualities. Whilst the Spirits of the Age endow the Folk-spirits, care is taken that these may flow into the individual human beings; so that these individuals may fulfill their mission. The fact that individual persons become instruments in this mission of the Folk-spirits, is brought about by Beings who are between men and the Folk-spirits, namely, by the Angels or Angeloi.”

  • Angels (Angeloi, Sons of Twilight, Sons of Life; all Men have individual angels as guardians and carriers of their eternal Selves)

  • Archangels (Archangeloi, Spirits of Fire; the “folk-spirits” are of this rank)

  • Archai (singular “Arche”; Spirits of Personality, Primal Beginnings, Principalities; the “Time Spirit” or “Zeitgeist” is of this rank)

  • Exusiai (Spirits of Form, Powers, Authorities; the “Elohim” and “Jehovah” are of this rank)

  • Dynamis (Spirits of Motion, Mights, Virtues)

  • Kyriotetes (Spirits of Wisdom, Dominions)

  • Thrones (Spirits of Will)

  • Cherubim (Spirits of Harmony)

  • Seraphim (Spirits of Love).

Sometimes we get lucky when we try to track the trail of Michael the current Zeitgeist or Time Spirit. It was a lucky day in Austin, Texas when my friend Kevin Dann came to Austin and stayed with us for over a month.

Writing in 1795 about the altarpiece and its dismemberment, the local historian Giovanni Battista Sasso noted that, “It was sold in quarters, as one does with butcher’s meat.” What happened to the full figure of the Archangel Michael, the cosmic scales of Justice and human equilibrium of The Tenth Hierarchy, and the pictorial sign of the Zodiac Libra in the cycle of the year when Michaelmas arises in late September? According to the historian Giovanni Battista Sasso the image was carved up and sold like butcher’s meat.

“…The Youthful HeadAustin Texas Michael Archai” had been the central figure in the altarpiece! Back in London one night, the curator who had come to Austin, Xavier Salomon, suddenly realized that the ‘Head of an Angel” that he had seen on his visit here, was actually MICHAEL’s portrait that had been cut from the original painting. I still can’t get over the fact that the focal point of that altarpiece, the visage of the Archangel Michael, was right here in Austin while the other pieces floated round the world. Amazing. “

I have followed the Archai and Time spirit, the ZeitGeist Michael since I learned of him in London. It was from London that a Celtic Eurythmist named Jean Lynch pointed us towards Emerson College and Francis Edmunds. Francis Edmunds pointed my wife and I to Dornach Switzerland. Where if we really wanted to immerse ourselves in the Archai Michael and learn of how the Archangel Michael, that appeared to Joan of Arc, who had singly and soulfully saved the Archangelic language of French and Folk Soul of France from being absorbed by England, we could go to Dornach, Switzerland the actual citadel and cosmic fortress of all things Michael.

These were things you could do, adventures you could take, if destiny allowed you to, all through the early 1970’s people were trekking off seeking each our own unique Grail quests and living like peasants, hitchhiking, living in communes, sharing food, sharing rides, sharing chores, cutting down on conservative conventions and living or crashing where generosity and understanding of the quest allowed you to make no apologies for your poverty.

Well Dr. Kevin Dann, Professor Kevin Dann ended up at our house. Naturally we understood his quest and we shared the same Michael interests.

Kevin and my other companion and old Dornach Grail chum Robert Powell had just written an amazing little book together, on 2012. “Christ and the Maya Calendar 2012 and the coming of the Antichrist” So Kevin was on his quest, and lived in that attitude of quest and brotherhood that still lives in the best of those who carry the Michael Spirit.

Excerpt from Christ and the Maya Calendar

“Rudolf Steiner lived through on Earth the meta-historical reality of the impulse of the Archangel Michael, and he communicated more concerning the Archangel Michael than anyone else in the entire history of the Earth. Towards the end of his life, in 1924, Steiner founded an esoteric school. Called The Michael School…Steiner’s life and work-particularly through the founding of a Michael School on Earth-also clearly fulfill the Apocalyptic image of the Archangel Michael, the leader of the heavenly hosts in the war in heaven.” (pg 164-165)

The great West Window of the School of Spiritual Science reveals the great Archai and Zeitgeist Michael, the current Time Spirit, from his standpoint of having stood by Christ at Golgotha, and the westward moving power of the Christ revelation as it was planted where the ancient Arthurian and Grail stream intersect in Dornach Switzerland. There the new historical footprint of Michael was planted, uniting the ancient past of Michael, Marduk, Alexander the Great, Raphael’s school of Athens with Plato and Aristotle at the helm to the present karmic love story that was left in tragedy for humanity and the Tenth Hierarchy several times.

We might love a love story, but love small ‘l’ and LOVE big ‘L’ meant that if we looked back through history to find the origins of how the footprint of the Archai Michael arrived in Switzerland during the onslaught of the horrors that led to WWI and WWII, we find an intimate moment between two obscure historical individuals. Sigune of the Grail family and Schionatulander diplomatic representative to Harun al-Raschid out of Baghdad.

Schionatulander was killed in a knightly ambush and jousting action meant to take down Parsifal. Instead it was Schionatulander who was killed leaving Sigune, who loved him with a love that has outlived and traveled through incarnations that go all the way back to Sumerian Iraq, Uruk, which I visited in the 1980’s. I was there before the Ahrimanic forces who knew of this ancient karma attacked and destroyed Saddam Hussein.

The love story of the troubadour tales of Wolfram Von Eschenbach and his Parsifal include the greatest star crossed lovers tale of them all, Sigune and Schionatulander. This karmic history and love story goes right through brotherly love, companion love, friendship, higher esoteric schooling, world conquering and the Christ Event. The entire tale trails back to Ephesus and the Greek culture itself…to arrive there, in the place of the thorns, the hill of thorns, Dornach. To the utter surprise of our hearts this love affair and mission for humanity under the Michael wing of serving The mission of The Tenth Hierarchy lands once again very near the geographical location where Schionatulander, diplomat and emissary of the Arthurian Michael stream was murdered. Schionatulander karmically ended up serving as liaison between Baghdad and Harun al-Raschid and Arthur’s court and the Grail.

“Schionatulander is a name derived from the Old French and means “young man with the dog.” The quest for the Grail from the time period 768 – 800 AD, reveals manifestations of Mani in Parzival and Titurel and RS incarnated as “Schionatulander,” as described by Wolfram von Eschenbach in his poetic works “Parzival” and “Titurel,” written around 1220 AD. (It is probably incorrect to describe Parzival as an “incarnation” of Mani, while Mani may have been manifest in the historic Parzival, the Parzival described by Wolfram.) Schionatulander has a tragic, early death, having sacrificed his life for Parzival. There is also a dog, named Gardevias, meaning “Guard the Way,” who is instrumental in the tragic events, and the dog signifies, in the heavenly script, Sirius.

Titurel was one of the founders of the Grail Mysteries. The first historical Grail site was in Spain at San Juan de la Pena (St. John of the Rock) in 793 – 852 AD. The Holy Cup was here among the knights, c. 800 AD. Later it was moved to Arlesheim, where Parzival had encountered Sigune with the corpse of her beloved Schionatulander. Destiny led the reincarnated Schionatulander, RS, to build the Goetheanum 1 1/2 miles southwest of the hermitage at Arlesheim.”

Schionatulander was the loftiest Romantic Intellect of the Grail stream and he was murdered and lay in his beloved Sigune arms, as she wept and tongue lashed Parsifal in Eshenbach’s saga to continue onto the Grail for the sake of this fallen Knight who tragically lay in her lap exactly like the Pieta. This became the foundation stone of the Karma that brought about the mighty Citadel of Michael the Archai at the Goetheanum Michael Goetheanum overlooks the West Windowand brought together the Grail School of the 20th and 21st century. The entire School of Spiritual Science is made up of streams that converge on the New Grail mysteries of the 21st century.

This profound and intimate tale is seen in the stream of Wagner’s “Parsifal”. What we mean, when we imply the above history and include the controversial Richard Wagner, is that the entire body of work, the operas and the music of Parsifal were the carried memory of a bit player, a small player in the Arthurian Michael drama I have described. Wagner, as a bit player was none other, and carried in his astral body the great memory and profound tales and intuitions of none other than, the fabled Merlin. Merlin, much degraded as a person, lived as a magician in Wagner’s legitimate artistic work.

Rudolf Steiner

“There is, however, a medium through which man’s understanding can be reached, even without words, without concepts or ideas. This medium is music. Wagner’s music holds within it all the truths that are contained in the Parsifal story. His music is of such a unique character that those who listen to it receive in their ether body quite special vibrations. Therein lies the secret of Wagner’s music. One does not need to understand it — not in the least! One receives in one’s ether body the benign and healthful effect of the music. And man’s ether body is intimately connected with all the movements and throbbings of the blood. Wagner understood the mystery of the purified blood. In his melodies are rhythms and vibrations that must needs beat in the ether body of man if he is to be cleansed and purified so as to be ready to receive the Mysteries of the Holy Grail.”

Wagner stood thwarted and branded with the same racism as Nietzsche, because Nietzsche was Ahriman’s pet monkey in the worst sense of the “Thus Spake Zarathustra” and his “Anti-Christ”. Yet Wagner’s “Parsifal” of 1879 was an unsurpassed contribution to the dawning Michael Age.

Kevin arrived  as troubadour in a city of Singers and Romantics, Austin, and brought his mandolin and he and my wife invaded several bars and played and sang guitar and mandolin just for the fun of it while Kevin was with us.

Kevin was to be a guest at the University of Texas and research in the private libraries on campus of rare books and have use of an office space for the research work of a new book he was working on. No sooner had he arrived in our house and found his way daily, after running through the GreenBelt of Zilker Park at five in the morning, taking cold dips in the springs and pools, arriving refreshed and filled with natural energy at U.T. in the rare libraries, when a Michael event blazed into our immediate daily experiences.

Suddenly a small, but highly significant Michael Event was happening, as all Michael events happen, without anyone even grasping how this remarkable event came together just as Kevin and myself and however other Austin members of Michael’s impulses, that would include Austin Waldorf School and any and all those people who have a kinship with Michael might have recognized what Kevin and I immediately recognized. The secret piece of the puzzle of the face of Michael from a long lost and cut up painting had been found in Austin.

“…curator Xavier Salomon has concluded that a painting by Paolo Veronese at the Blanton Museum of Art at the University of Texas at Austin, heretofore identified as Head of an Angel, is actually a fragment of a long-lost masterpiece by the Venetian artist. The painting is now thought to be a portrait of Saint Michael, the central figure in the so-called Petrobelli Altarpiece, made around 1565 for the church of San Francisco at Lendinara near Padua and dismembered and sold in pieces after the suppression of the Franciscan order in the 1780s. Next year, three other fragments of the altarpiece, along with the Blanton’s Saint Michael, are being reunited and put on public view…”

If you looked close at this Michael portrait that had been cut out of an old Altar piece, you could recognize the youthful face of Michael in Austin. The wonderful youthful and musical spirit of Austin itself lived in the portrait that had been part of a fragmented puzzle that had traveled through the history of The Consciousness Soul and had somehow arrived as a significant piece to a riddle of the great Archai Michael himself.

Kevin was one of our true Troubadour knights of Michael in the room when the puzzle was resorted out and appeared to shimmer for a moment in Austin. A subtle Michael event had just shuddered and shimmered through the city of Austin and few, very few had even celebrated the joy of the event.

At least Kevin, my wife Tara and I, where two or three were gathered together, we understood the amount of recognition, Time, Archai Time Spirit Michael, ZeitGeist hidden connections which had to have been awakened before the once fragmented painting, was restored to the original vision of the youthful Archangel Michael, when he was still an Archangel and caught on canvas as he might even have appeared to Joan of Arc
Michael and Joan of Arc
A young, invigorated and courageous Archangel that Joan of Arc had experienced personally and Austin, Texas had recovered, revealed the ever youthful and courageous face of Michael.

Michael as the current regent or ZeitGeist that sheds the powerful light of cosmic wisdom on science, art and religion is in the midst of an intense battle.

Rather we as humanity and The Tenth Hierarchy are in the midst of an intense battle with Ahrimanic forces and the forces represented as Michael’s fight with the Dragon. I tackle some of this current battle in Etheric Christ Glimpses 2, which will give a more accurate understanding of the Ascension Mysteries of Christ, having experienced the destiny of The Tenth Hierarchy, takes this experience from the realm of humanity up to the Ninth Hierarchy, the Angelic community. This is partially what the subject matter is of the newly discovered “Petrobelli altarpiece” . However only accurate Spiritual Science can follow Christ upwards into His experience in the neighboring Angelic Community.

This is the moment and the time frame for an Archai or Time Spirit, a ZeitGeist to reign or rule. In the case of the Archai Michael, he resumed his leadership in 1879 after a terrific battle to remove the Ahrimanic beings to a place where humanity would have to assist Michael or fall. Ahrimanic beings were sent down into human heads, into the layer of Soul life in humanity called, “The Intellectual Soul” region.

” That approximately three hundred fifty year “age” began, imperceptibly to most, to dawn in 1879. The last age of the Archangel Michael was before the time of Christ when the enlightenment of Plato and Aristotle was spread by Alexander over the area that the Apostle Paul was to evangelize in the Greek language.

Human understanding of the Christ, and of its own nature, had to wait then until the age of the highest Archangel returned again, the Archangel that Hebrew and Christian tradition has always associated with the Sun. It is Michael that strives with and for the Christ to administer the divine intelligence to humanity. And so when Christ spoke of the Spirit of Truth coming, it was of the time when the regency of the Archangel Michael would again return.”

This Michael reign and battle lasts for some 355 years. Starting in 1879 and the Michael battle that is raging now with these included forces against humanity, as of 1998/9 the PNAC document and those who signed that document. So titled, “The Project for a New American, (read AHRIMANIC) Century“, sponsored by the fallen Intel of all those who have betrayed their humanity for Ahrimanic promises of power and short term fame, are still today rewarded daily for lying through every media outlet in the world. In other words the Spirit of Truth is fully under attack.

The Sorathian and anti-sun forces are now driving against any Michael Intel or Michael Intelligence with the strong Ahrimanic forces that have been lodged in the Intellect of humanity. The Ahrimanic citadel of forces in our intellects which strongly oppose Michael, joined in the battle against Michael with the rise of the Sorathian forces (key date surge 1998 click link), fight an Orwellian battle against anything to do with Michael Intel or the manifestation and revelation of the Etheric Christ Being. These sub-sensible beings are waging war through the manipulations of the political intellect, propaganda, false patriotism, torture, lies and using  fragments of humanities fallen intellect to achieve aims that are against humanity itself.

Just as in 2010, in Austin,  how the discovery of how Michael passed through  the University of  Texas without much serious recognition so too Michael events go uncelebrated and unnoticed by the majority of humanity. We are deliberately entrained to not recognize a Michael event when we see it. We celebrate lies over truth in all our media outlets.

Austin is famous for it’s singer and troubadour traditions and the University of Texas. Poets, singers, scientists and business types arise out of Austin Texas. The University of Texas hardly gave passing notice to such an interesting spiritual discovery or reveled in the full tracing of the pedigree of the why or how Michael ended up in Austin at all. For materialism, the why or how do not include any interest in the vast history of Michael or in the hidden and unknown depths of how Christ was lifted to the neighboring Angelic Community at His Ascension after the event of Golgotha.

Austin is home to a full running 12 grade level Waldorf School, which is one of the shining products of Michael Intelligence. It was Michael’s Intelligence and the Tenth Hierarchy, through Spiritual Science that brought together, not only the best education in the entire world, Waldorf Education into Austin, but the finest science of chemistry, matter and the relationships between matter and spirit, in The Agricultural Course by Rudolf Steiner.The University of Texas and Texas A&M would do well to study such an Agricultural document of Michael Intelligence for it raised matter itself and farming to a process that includes a kind of Galileo planetary cosmology of chemistry into it’s research. Nobody has ever seen anything like the sciences of The Agricultural Course by Rudolf Steiner LINK(focus for a moment on lectures 2 & 3).

Since Austin prides itself on the inspirations of musicians, we know that both music and matter are an astonishing study of what is known in Michael lore as “The Music of the Spheres“. It so happens that the atomic table of elements and matters sub-atomic weights are solidly based on the interrelationships and arrangements of matter that arise from the interrelationships of the spirit and the ancient tones produced out of the Music of the Spheres. The mathematical principles of musical harmony are directly related to geometry — which Goethe described as ‘frozen music’. Matter itself and all it’s various relationships are not only frozen at different speeds and ratios but matter is actually various degrees of concentrated or decayed light. Kepler and others understood that matter are relationships of tone.

A being such as Christ or Michael or an Angelic Being move through matter as musicians move through tone, songs and musical scores. Our own intimate biographies are Symphonic scores integrated with the Planets and Zodiac. Shakespeare’s dramas are Symphonies of the Spirit. The atomic table itself are all based on the interrelationships of cosmic tone and The Music of the Spheres themselves. Chemistry operates with the same creative sets of relationships as musicians attempt to individualize in tone. Some of these relationships are researched in Steiner’s “Agricultural Course.”

The name for Michael goes all the way back to Marduk and Tiamat. Tiamat the body of Space and Time was cut up and reorganized by Marduk/Michael and matter and spirit were brought into related but separate distinct relationships. It was Marduk/Michael who established along with the Logos/Christ the material and spiritual destiny of humanity and organized the hidden alchemical mystery of the symphony known as the Music of the Spheres.

Marduk’s victory saves the gods and opens the
way for him to fashion the cosmos, order it, and
to create man to be servant and laborer of the
gods.”

Marduk wielded a magic net and had at his command the Four Winds, two factors that contributed to his eventual conquest over Tiamat, after a long and terrible battle. Michael and TiamutHe subsequently used her carcass to form Heaven and Earth. Marduk was made King of the Gods. He created Babylon and human beings to dwell there and toil for the gods. He created Language and established Order amongst the ranks of beings.

The unfolding activity of humanity and Christ are richly outlined in the Alpha/Omega witness St. John/Lazarus in his Revelation. But what physics and the study of matter fails to comprehend is that the body of matter and the same matter which we cloth our spirits with was brought into related, intimate, musical, symphonic alchemy just through the deeds of Michael/Marduk. That is why science has the Logos tag added to it. Geology, biology,archeology, angelology, paleontology, all our specialized studies reveal distinct organization of thought, tone, music, matter into an atomic table and a Periodic table of the elements that are based on musical interrelationships.

There was a time when the Archangel Michael stood with Joan of Arc amidst the other Archangels of the various languages and cultures, and imbued Joan of Arc with the courage to stand the attacks on her lofty and humble insights.Joan of Arc and the ArchangelsThe Priests hated her because the Archangel Community talked with her and Ahrimanic forces hated her because the Archangel Michael, youthful Michael, stood guard over the spirit of Joan of Arc.

In becoming a ZeitGeist and Time Spirit, Michael assumed this post in 1879 with The Fall of the Spirits of Darkness into human intelligence.

Michael the Archai and ZeitGeist that was uncovered and revealed at the University of Texas in Austin,  the youthful and courageous Michael that inspired Joan of Arc was pieced together and for a moment it was almost whole, along with the Ascension of Christ into the Angelic Community.

We are so unfamiliar with the scope of our own relationship to the hierarchy of the Angels that we have lost all understanding that the Angelic Community is the Ninth Hierarchy above humanity, which is the Tenth Hierarchy. So called science and education are afraid to study these items and include them because it would take education outside the Ahrimanic paradigm that must be maintained for the sake of materialism.

That Archangels rule over different language and cultures, the flora, fauna, food and spoken languages of Spanish, Norwegian, Swedish, German, Italian, French, English, Russian, Japanese, Chinese, all have different Archangel Beings connected to them and the Archangels, unlike the Angelic Community above humanity, the Archangels are the Eighth hierarchy.

In order to incarnate and choose parents, language a culture that is karmically correct for each individual, mighty Angelic Beings before our births, assist us in placing our capacities and learning within a language, flora, fauna, etheric flavors, thought tones and ideas that will carry our unique destinies forwards.

More specifically the arrangement of the birth of a child is coordinated to have a biographical and mathematical relation to the very stars that Galileo out of Padua first observed. In other words, Michael and the Angelic Beings coordinate the mathematical integration of  Time or ZeitGeist insertion into Earth life or precision landing of a human spiritual being within the region of Space and Time (SEE LINK). Our individual thought processes light up under the system of our TWELVE CRANIAL NERVES (see link), as a mirror of dynamic forces of the very stars and insertion point we entered in from which marked the date and time of our births.  The Archai Michael coordinates the interrelationship between the stars and our biographical, mathematical destinies. We are inserted into the stream of Time and we are reincarnating spiritual beings. We are reinserted again and again through human time portals and female wombs.

In the painting of the Ascension of Christ  from  “The Petrobelli Altarpiece” (see link) “, that had traveled along the St. Francis of Assisi route having encountered in Lendinara, a small town near Padua, the influences of Giotto, Galileo, Dante, Petrarch and Tasso.  The Univ. of Padua right near Lendinara is one of the oldest in Italy after that of Bologna, which was founded in 1222 by teachers and students who had fled from Bologna. Now centered in Il Bo palace, the university established the first anatomy hall (well preserved) in Europe in 1594. Galileo taught (1592-1610) at the university, and Dante, Petrarch, and Tasso were students there.  And “The Petrobelli Altarpiece” was located near the hub of education and art that flourished in and around the great university city of Padua.

Padua and the University of Texas have been united by the Michael stream via the portrait of Michael found and located at The Blanton Museum of Art at the University of Texas at Austin, and the Michael impulse of the Austin Waldorf School which like the city of Lendinara flourished just outside Padua, the Austin Waldorf School based on the Archai Michael’s influence flourishes just outside of Austin as well.

For Austin we can take three very different influences that strike youth through the influence of Galileo. Influence one, is advanced space technology. The next influence that shook through the entire music elements of the head bangers of the world, was the rock group Queen and Galileo and “The Bohemian Rhapsody” out of “Wayne’s World”. The third influence from The Indigo Girls, fits right into Galileo and Austin as well.

Kevin’s notes from Ransom Research Center

“In 1565, in Lendinara, a little village in the Po valley, two wealthy cousins, Girolamo and Antonio Petrobelli, commissioned Paolo Veronese to create an altarpiece for the chapel of the local Franciscan monastery, that would also serve as a backdrop for their tomb in the church. I guess Italian authorities were waging a bit of a war on the Franciscans in the late 18th century, and they closed the Lendinara church and sold off the order’s land. The altarpiece, over 15′ high, was cut up and sold in pieces in 1788, after the abandoned church was demolished. A local historian lamented that this exquisite work “was sold in quarters, as one does with butcher’s meat.” Museums in London, Edinburgh and Ottawa Dulwich acquired three separate pieces of the original painting in the 19th and early 20th century.

“To make the pieces more marketable, the Venetian art dealer who sold the fragments had commissioned artists to paint over parts of the original that no longer made sense with the central section of the painting cut out. Just 4 years ago, two of the museums were doing restoration work on their ‘fragments,’ and one of the curators, a great Veronese scholar, came to Austin to look at a suite of Veronese paintings in the Blanton Museum’s collection. (I found out yesterday that those paintings used to be right downstairs from my office, until they opened the new museum just two years ago!), including a huge Magdalene, and a small “Head of an Angel.” As varnish and paint was removed from the canvas, it became apparent that in between the two large fragments showing the Petrobelli cousins and their patron saints Jerome and Anthony, there appeared first the wing of an angel, then a hand holding a scale in one pan of which was a frail human soul. . . then, on the other fragment, a spear. . . and at the bottom, the prostrate, writhing form of Satan — the “Youthful Michael” had been the central figure in the altarpiece! Back in London one night, the curator who had come to Austin, Xavier Salomon, suddenly realized that the ‘Head of an Angel” that he had seen on his visit here, was actually MICHAEL’s portrait that had been cut from the original painting. I still can’t get over the fact that the focal point of that altarpiece, the visage of the Archangel Michael, was right here in Austin while the other pieces floated round the world. Amazing.

“But here is the odd thing for me. When I arrived at the room where the altarpiece was reconstructed, there was an art historian from the University, giving a talk about the social history of Venice in the 16th century; the tradition of strezzopratura (sp?) — how to show off without showing off; patronage politics. . Petrobelli Ascension of Christ. not one word about Christ’s ascension, or about Archangel Michael. Then I watched the video of the talk that Xavier Salomon had given at the exhibition opening; he told the whole saga of the painting, and it was engaging and delightful. . . but again, the sacred subject of the painting was never discussed. There was also a video of the curator of the Blanton speaking about how common “fragmentation” of great paintings was after the 18th century, about the art market, etc. Never did he once refer to the “fragmentation” of our own relationship to the subjects of these masterpieces.

“That once-lost, now-found fragment bearing Michael’s head, hovering in a grey space at the center of the reconstructed altarpiece painting, seems as if it should have inspired un pelèrinage or a festival or a pageant of Austin’s citizenry. If we were in some other time or place, this remarkable rediscovery of a great master’s rendering of the Archangel Michael would be the talk of the town.

Last night I began to dream about writing an article for the local arts & entertainment paper, that would meditate on Michael’s mission in our time; on the local Hispanic traditions of;honoring Michael, and perhaps too speak about the place of Michael within Waldorf education, since there is a Waldorf elementary and high school here in Austin. Then at the end I would call for people to come create a processional to go and see the painting, as a celebration of Michael’s stewardship, and as a step toward renewing our dedication to our cooperation with Michael to lawfully bring down the cosmic intelligence — and, at this crucial time, to recognize and resist the Ahrimanic dragon. I am afraid that Ahriman may look at the widespread ‘forgetting’ of Michael even as this icon was brought to light, as a victory.

“Just as I started to plan this out last night, I found out that the exhibition closes next weekend, but I still may try to write an essay and invite people to join me for a processional/pilgrimage in March, when the “Head of an Angel” painting will be orphaned again, the rest of the altarpiece having returned to London, Edinburgh, and Ottawa. “

“As varnish and paint was removedPetrobelli painting from the canvas, it became apparent that in between the two large fragments showing the Petrobelli cousins and their patron saints Jerome and Anthony, there appeared first the wing of an angel, then a hand holding a scale in one pan of which was a frail human soul. . . then, on the other fragment, a spear. . . and at the bottom, the prostrate, writhing form of Satan — the “Youthful Michael” had been the central figure in the altarpiece!”

My friend Kevin felt dismayed that neither the Ascension mysteries of Christ nor the gaping hole where Michael stood with the scales of Justice over the Satanic or Ahrimanic being or the activity of Michael in our current Time Stream were discussed. And it is with great regret that nobody would comprehend what is normally discussed and comprehended at any Waldorf School in the World, and Waldorf is the biggest private school system in the entire world. Michael and the activity of Michael the Archai are understood and discussed along with the sciences, the seasons and the other ZeitGeist rulerships that have occurred through out history.

“…there are seven archangels (Enoch 24 had spoken of “seven mountains” with Michael speaking, as above, in regard to the “seventh”) among whom Michael is acknowledged as supreme, he who is associated with the Sun. There is a sevenfold series of regencies, one for each successive archangel, so that each one is of something over three hundred years. Whether they are precisely equal or only approximately so has not been made clear, even by Steiner. In the fifteenth century, Johannes Tritheim, the Abbott of Sponheim, is said to have determined each archangelic period to be 354 1/3 years long. Perhaps significantly this is precisely one hundred times the length of twelve lunar synodic months (354 1/3 days each). If he is right and the current age of Michael began in 1879, then the prior age would have run from 601 to 247 B.C., encompassing, as Steiner indicated, the Greek sages Heraclitus, Socrates, Plato and Aristotle as well as the spreading of Greek civilization by Alexander in divine preparation for Paul’s evangelization of the Greek world. We know of Plato’s influence upon John’s Gospel. Socrates and Heraclitus were both singled out by Justin Martyr (ca. A.D. 100-165) as Christians before the incarnation of Christ.”

Now how Michael found his way to the Blanton museum all has to do with Parsifal and Richard Wagner and the impulse of how the Arthurian stream, the Grail and the university of Spiritual Science, the Goetheanum came to be and how you come to be reading this at this very moment. William “Suida was born to Albert Suida and Betha von Heim, his mother a descendant of Richard Wagner. William and his children amassed large personal collections of Baroque art. Suida was an expert in Lombard art and only slightly less Venetian. At his death in 1959, his collection passed to his children… The combined art collection was donated to the Blanton Museum of Art at the University of Texas, Austin, in 1999, as the Suida-Manning Collection.”

Thus the whole mystery of the head and missing body of Michael the current Archai were “part of its Suida-Manning Collection of Renaissance and baroque art. One of them was the head of St. Michael. Only no one knew it was St. Michael; it was listed in the collection only as Head of an Angel, which was what art historian William Suida thought it was when he acquired it in the 1930s. That’s when Salomon e-mailed Jonathan Bober, the Blanton’s curator of prints, drawings, and European paintings, and asked him to check the dimensions of the head of the angel and the character of canvas. If Salomon’s hunch was right, he had solved a centuries-old mystery in Renaissance art.”

William Suida acquired this so called “Head of an Angel” in the 1930’s. In my Etheric Christ Glimpses 1, we trace the rise of the Etheric Christ vision, which the Ahrimanic beings hate, to the rise of the Etheric Christ in counterpoint, 1933, to the rise of Hitler. The Reichstag is a false flag event that was achieved on Rudolf Steiner’s birthday. Ahriman had clear understanding that one of his greatest threats to destroying the mission of The Tenth Hierarchy, was the human being who knew the most concerning The Etheric Christ Event. The true exact reality of the rise of Hitler and diverting the world’s attention from this powerful Etheric event, was Ahriman’s precise clues in cunning. Ahrimanic beings are cunning and accurate and to place the rise of Nazism and the burning of the Reichstag on Steiner’s birthday, where he would have concluded his earthly mission at a full 72 years of age, from the dawning of the Michael Age to the Rise of the Etheric Christ, is just one of those clues that startle one.

I was no less startled to find that William Suida acquired the Michael Head at the time of the Rise of the Etheric Christ in the 1930’s and two X’s 33 years later,in 1999 it ends up in Austin than I was startled to find that William Suida was directly related to Richard Wagner. Richard Wagner aka. pagan Merlin, like wonderful Pagan and musical and Romantic Austin, wrote his “Parsifal” as the opening salvo of the Michael era in 1879. 1879 Steiner was 18.6 years old and the Archai Michael had just finished thrusting Ahrimanic beings of “The Matrix” type down into the region of humanities Intellectual Soul.

Do not doubt for a single moment that these vicious Ahrimanic beings who are parasites thrust into our own soul system are not playing for keeps. They are. And that is the vain illusion that we struggle with, Michael thrust them down into human intellects because humanity would have to take up the cause of the spiritual world or be swept away by a full “Matrix Designed” Ahrimanic doom using humanities own weakness and arrogance as weapons against the mission of The Tenth Hierarchy.

Now the missing body of Michael in the Blanton painting, the one where Michael presses down Ahriman with his foot, well the entire portion of the missing part of the “Paolo Veronese: The Petrobelli Altarpiece” needs a further comment against the complacency and the entire lack of spiritual and historical courage that we approach everything with. Firstly lets look at what is still missing from the Canvas. What is missing looks something like this only with the wonderful face of our own Austin Michael, in something of the posture and position depicted above.

But here we come to a problem that all of us must realize if we are to work in the 21st century and into the future with Michael. I have drawn in the experience of Joan of Arc, but just as importantly was a comment made by Nathaniel Hawthorne in his wonderful book, “The Marble Faun.” In the book Hawthorne brings to light how any discussion of Michael and how humanity seems to think somehow that all this is a dainty romp with well dressed divine beings, always talking in some New Age touchy feely kind of environment. No. No.

Things that have to do with the Michael Age we are in and the Michael ages of the past, have to do with standing in the vital whirlwind of truth while whole hordes stand against you and deny any part of truth and prefer that you are either burned at the stake for telling the truth or out right murdered, eliminated or tortured and put in some rendition center. Ahriman is distinctly Orwellian and distinctly more like “V for Vendetta and is putting up a horrible global front against the core virtues of humanity. And the pity is that humanity is dumb to ahriman’s infiltration and dumb to identifying the difference between it’s highest spiritual mission and humanities lowest lying, scoundrels.

Therefore this quote from Hathorne’s “Marble Faun” about discussing Michael’s battle with Ahriman is far more fitting than any sweet faced Altarpiece with well attired Archangels. What is important is that we understand the character of having Michael in Austin and what it really means to work within the framework of Michael Intel vs Ahrimanic Intel.

From: “The Marble Faun” by Nathaniel Hawthorne

“The drawing had originally been very slight, and had suffered more from time and hard usage than almost any other in the collection; it appeared, too, that there had been an attempt (perhaps by the very hand that drew it) to obliterate the design. By Hilda’s help, however, Miriam pretty distinctly made out a winged figure with a drawn sword, and a dragon, or a demon, prostrate at his feet.

“I am convinced,” said Hilda in a low, reverential tone,” that Guido’s own touches are on that ancient scrap of paper! If so, it must be his original sketch for the picture of the Archangel Michael setting his foot upon the demon, in the Church of the Cappuccini. The composition and general arrangement of the sketch are the same with those of the picture; the only difference being, that the demon has a more upturned face, and scowls vindictively at the Archangel, who turns away his eyes in painful disgust.”

“No wonder!” responded Miriam. “The expression suits the daintiness of Michael’s character, as Guido represents him. He never could have looked the demon in the face!”

“Miriam!” exclaimed her friend reproachfully, “you grieve me, and you know it, by pretending to speak contemptuously of the most beautiful and the divinest figure that mortal painter ever drew.”

“Forgive me, Hilda!” said Miriam. “You take these matters more religiously than I can, for my life. Guido’s Archangel is a fine picture, of course, but it never impressed me as it does you.”

“Well; we will not talk of that,” answered Hilda. “What I wanted you to notice, in this sketch, is the face of the demon. It is entirely unlike the demon of the finished picture. Guido, you know, always affirmed that the resemblance to Cardinal Pamfili was either casual or imaginary. Now, here is the face as he first conceived it.”

“And a more energetic demon, altogether, than that of the finished picture,” said Kenyon, taking the sketch into his hand. “What a spirit is conveyed into the ugliness of this strong, writhing, squirming dragon, under the Archangel’s foot! Neither is the face an impossible one. Upon my word, I have seen it somewhere, and on the shoulders of a living man!”

“”I have never been able,” said Miriam, “to admire this picture nearly so much as Hilda does, in its moral and intellectual aspect. If it cost her more trouble to be good, if her soul were less white and pure, she would be a more competent critic of this picture, and would estimate it not half so high. I see its defects today more clearly than ever before.”

“What are some of them?” asked Kenyon.

“That Archangel, now,” Miriam continued; “how fair he looks, with his unruffled wings, with his unhacked sword, and clad in his bright armor, and that exquisitely fitting sky-blue tunic, cut in the latest Paradisiacal mode! What a dainty air of the first celestial society! With what half-scornful delicacy he sets his prettily sandalled foot on the head of his prostrate foe! But, is it thus that virtue looks the moment after its death struggle with evil? No, no; I could have told Guido better. A full third of the Archangel’s feathers should have been torn from his wings; the rest all ruffled, till they looked like Satan’s own! His sword should be streaming with blood, and perhaps broken halfway to the hilt; his armor crushed, his robes rent, his breast gory; a bleeding gash on his brow, cutting right across the stern scowl of battle! He should press his foot hard down upon the old serpent, as if his very soul depended upon it, feeling him squirm mightily, and doubting whether the fight were half over yet, and how the victory might turn! And, with all this fierceness, this grimness, this unutterable horror, there should still be something high, tender, and holy in Michael’s eyes, and around his mouth. But the battle never was such a child’s play as Guido’s dapper Archangel seems to have found it.”

“For Heaven’s sake, Miriam,” cried Kenyon, astonished at the wild energy of her talk; “paint the picture of man’s struggle against sin according to your own idea! I think it will be a masterpiece.”

“The picture would have its share of truth, I assure you,” she answered; “but I am sadly afraid the victory would fail on the wrong side. Just fancy a smoke-blackened, fiery-eyed demon bestriding that nice young angel, clutching his white throat with one of his hinder claws; and giving a triumphant whisk of his scaly tail, with a poisonous dart at the end of it! That is what they risk, poor souls, who do battle with Michael’s enemy.”

Compare Texas A&M and THE PHANTOM HORSE now. CLICK THIS LINK The most hidden mysteries of U.T. and Texas A&M, see them both.

ADDENDUM 1
Parsifal arrives before the revelation of the Grail. (Yes, to some this may appear tacky), but the revelation of the Light is something Wagner drew humanity into. In other words humanity would hold it’s voice and heart upwards to the Christ and Michael impulse. Wagner’s opera Parsifal was an 1879 Michael Event brought forward from the 9th century.

ADDENDUM 2
With Reincarnation understanding, we are looking through Wagner to the ancient Celtic Initiation giant Merlin. It was from Merlin’s astral body that Wagner was able to pull the mighty history of his enormous 12 part saga of operas that are astonishing. Parsifal being handed over to humanity as the last at the dawn of the new Michael era.

“Etheric Christ glimpses 2” by Bradford Riley

THIS IS PART 2 OF A TWO PART EXPLORATION OF WHERE TO FIND THE ETHERIC CHRIST.

PART 1 OF ETHERIC CHRIST GLIMPSES CAN BE FOUND HERE – CLICK LINK

Rudolf Steiner”Christ took this black sphere into being in the sense of the Manichean principle for the purpose of transforming it. For the angel being in which the Christ had manifested himself since the Mystery of Golgotha the black sphere caused a ‘death by suffocation.’ This sacrifice by Christ in the nineteenth century is comparable to the sacrifice on the physical plane through the Mystery of Golgotha and can be called the second crucifixion of Christ on the etheric plane.”

“O heaven–O vacant throne!
O crowned hierarchies, that wear your crown
When His is put away!
Are ye unshamed, that ye cannot dim
Your alien brightness to be liker Him,–
Assume a human passion–and down-lay
Your sweet secureness for congenial fears–
And teach your cloudless ever-burning eyes
The mystery of His tears?”   “The Seraphim” by Elizabeth Browning.

“I see
Beyond the city, crosses three,
And mortals three that hang thereon,
‘Ghast and silent to the sun:
And round them blacken and welter and press
Staring multitudes, whose father
Adam was–whose brows are dark
With his Cain’s corroded mark;
Who curse with looks. Nay–let me rather
Turn unto the wilderness.angel

Ador. Turn not. God dwells with men.

Zerah. Above
He dwells with angels; and they love.
Can these love? With the living’s pride
They stare at those who die,–who hang
In their sight and die. They bear the streak
Of the crosses’ shadow, black not wide,
To fall on their heads, as it swerves aside
When the victims’ pang
Makes the crosses creak.

Ador. The cross–the cross!”

Materialism standing alone as a belief system is illogical.  Can such an eclipsing and one sided belief system suffocate higher spiritual vision?glimpses-2-humpty-dumpty-shattered Can the predominating education from childhood to adult life become so overwhelmingly one sided that it strangles or suffocates the germinating power of spiritual intuition and spiritual vision?

Well to detail the proof of this question we can look into the entire case of Stephen Hawking. We can take apart everything that is taught at every level of public school on into university, where students from childhood to Sentient Soul and Intellectual Soul levels, from nineteen to twenty-eight years, have the cohesion of how the material and spiritual worlds are clearly interwoven and integrated, shattered into a thousands fragments of Humpty Dumpty. What is that too wide and sweeping and general for ya?

“In order to understand the Origin of the universe, we need to combine the General Theory of Relativity, with quantum theory. The best way of doing so, seems to be to use Feynman’s idea of a sum over histories. Richard Feynman was a colorful character, who played the bongo drums in a strip joint in Pasadena, and was a brilliant physicist at the California Institute of Technology. He proposed that a system got from a state A, to a state B, by every possible path or history.

Each path or history, has a certain amplitude or intensity, and the probability of the system going from A- to B, is given by adding up the amplitudes for each path. There will be a history in which the moon is made of blue cheese, but the amplitude is low, which is bad news for mice.

The probability for a state of the universe at the present time, is given by adding up the amplitudes for all the histories that end with that state. But how did the histories start. This is the Origin question in another guise. Does it require a Creator to decree how the universe began. Or is the initial state of the universe, determined by a law of science.”

Well first let me place before our eyes, and indeed placing things before our eyes, and before our pineal eyes and  before our calcite crystal brain sand eyes, we place before our eyes the unfolding logic of why this Etheric Christ Glimpses 2 should concern us, is just because of the illogical lack of cohesion of Materialism itself.

Rudolf Steiner

“In the centre of the human head within the structure of the brain there is an organ shaped like a pyramid, the pineal gland. This pineal gland, situated in the vicinity of the corpus quadrigemina and the optic thalamus

brain sand and pineal gland

secretes out of itself the so-called brain sand, minute lemon-yellow stones which lie in little heaps at one end of the pineal gland, and which are in fact the mineral element in the human head. If they do not lie there, if man does not bear this brain-sand, this mineral element, within him, he becomes an idiot or a cretin. In the case of normal people the pineal gland is comparatively large. In cretins pineal glands have been found which are actually no larger than hemp seeds; these cannot secrete the brain-sand.

It is actually in this mineral deposit that the spirit-man is situated; and this already indicates that what is living cannot harbour the spirit, but that the human spirit needs the nonliving as its centre-point, that this is above all things necessary to it as independent living spirit.”

Logically below the human community are the horizontal animal group souls and various species with their clearly highly developed specialized talents and skills. And the next placement of the phase of logic rises to the clear community of the Angels which stand one stage above humanity. In logical unfolding, including materialistic science of all stripes, we include under the most obvious laws, humanity as the tenth hierarchy with nine hierarchies of ascending and powerful stature that rise above our current media driven sense perception.

GODHEAD Father
Son
Holy Ghost
FIRST HIERARCHY Seraphim
Cherabim
Thrones or Spirits of Will
SECOND HIERARCHY Spirits of Motion
Spirits of Wisdom
Spirits of Form, Creators
THIRD HIERARCHY Spirits of the Age (Zietgeist)
Archangels (Spirits of Races)
Angels (Guiding spirits)
Man
Animals
Plants
Minerals

With this inclusive Logic at our disposal, we have already broke the bounds and chains that bind materialism, and overstepped where all education and university schooling has fragmented, digitalized, pixelized perception, fragmented the soul life, and cohesive Intellect has been successfully blocked, from approaching exactly how the Christ Event and the Mystery of Golgotha maintain a clear cut logical pattern, from Jesus to the Angel Community.

Yet the current mental barriers and failures of logic prevent the entire swath of materialism, loaded with spoiled selfishness on one hand and shattered and fragmented logic; loaded with imploded, shattered and prevented hopes and understanding of childhood and adolescence and on the other hand to careers and Intellectual Soul age fads, fashions, trends and media hype that continue imploding and shattering any inner sense of logic as to how the human community fits into the entire scope of Creation as a system of reality.

Big babies who call themselves scientists and adults continue to breast feed the  ‘Big Bang’ in order to simplify and stupefy and dumb down the entire wave of joy in the quest for knowledge, and crash, fragment and splinter the wreckage of the cohesion and logic of the inner and outer world on the rocks of materialistic fantasy. This challenging terrain is what we call current university education.

The aim of this so called higher materialistic education, when considering the Tenth Hierarchy, is that of disinformation, disenfranchisement and substituting false idols against concrete ideals. It will be convenient for you to worship what everyone else worships. That is supposedly Money, God, Corporatocracy, and Nationalism verging on Facism. You will be far more comfortable if you exclude the reality, dynamic and intelligence of the Angelic Community. For the Angelic Community cannot square itself against materialism and in any case if there were Angels why have they let us, a part of their divine family, fall into such nightmares of deception?Etheric glimpses 2 catastrophic materialism

The purpose of the vast world of Angels and Demons tangled in the sub strata of the human soul is to place each of us in a position of choice and FREEDOM.  The game is rigged and the entire deck of cards is stacked against the unarmed soul and that is the intent, to keep the soul unarmed and undefended in itself and never gain a cohesive and solid sense of the order and vast logical system in which humanity has been placed as the Tenth Hierarchy.

This means that before we have even understood our choices we are tossed into the game and given certain preconditions. These preconditions shine a path of jobs, intelligence, sharing the same flattened, beige mental state, the same bleached out intelligence that suits the same materialism that has helped land the west in the current predicament of lies, hypocrisy, Corporatocracy and the deadly game of chicken we are playing with our own fallen Ahrimanic shadows. By excluding humanity as the Tenth Hierarchy, by dismissing the vivid trails that lead us to the vast structure of creation and help us to recognize the various participating worlds around the human psyche, we are taken like sheep to a slaughterhouse.

And every adult in order to fit in at the water cooler and at the local bar, restaurant, club, family gathering and sports event and not stand out as ‘different’ and consider themselves lucky enough to be awarded a cubicle, to have a job, just like the cubicle that fit Mr. Anderson, Keanau Reeves in “The Matrix” or the film “Office Space”, we go into debt to be allowed to get an education and a stamp of approval from the prevalent brand of Ahrimanic Materialism. We are armed with the dull thinking capacity that suits everyone around us and we are free to mock, date, drink and be accepted, because we are numbed by the sheer plethora of media into an Ahrimanic stupor.

What becomes of us, is that we are the Sleeper Cells, we are in our souls dead asleep and walking through the Maya that was depicted in the Matrix and we are shepherded by Ahrimanic thought police. Currently all idiotic talk about how America is out everywhere as an Occupation Army over the whole Earth as an Imperialistic, fascist occupation force of Coporatocracy, stems from how much Ahriman, since Ahrimanic beings were kicked out of the Heavens by Archai Michael just after 1879 and thrust down into human heads, and thrust down as an occupation army with their own set of terrorist plans to regain their kingdom through the human soul, we are hosts to a vicious occupation army that distorts and betrays our thinking so that we ourselves betray our own humanity.

Terrorism is the current brand name to mask the Wests fall into Ahrimanic enslavement by losing their intrinsic humanity. It is not if, but when we don’t recognize and face Ahriman in ourselves we lose our humanity to cliches, sound bytes and catch phrases that merely stir dead embers of patriotic puppet behavior. All the while Ahrimanic beings are inside us pulling the strings that we are dancing to.

Rudolf Steiner

The Mephistophelean nature is strengthened by all the prejudices and limitations of materialism, and a future can already be perceived when everyone will be born with a second being by his side, a being who whispers to him of the foolishness of those who speak of the reality of the spiritual world. Man will, of course, disavow the riddle of Mephistopheles, just as he disavows that of the Sphinx; nevertheless he will chain a second being to his heels. Accompanied by this second being, he will feel the urge to think materialistic thoughts, to think, not through his own being, but through the second being who is his companion”

What happened to John Nash and what is happening through materialism, is the densification of the shadow or Ahrimanic double that accompanies humanity. Schizophrenia and a system of abstract equations that represent a REAL universe in “A Beautiful Mind” becomes a Mephistopheles our shadow and double bound to usmind game plagued by the incessant whisperings of a shadowy Ahrimanic double. This unreal and impossible shadow will densify the longer humanity remains frozen in the clutches of immoral, abstract materialism that justifies our inhumanity and finally makes it into law. In such a current and arising psych-ops culture to think otherwise would require the immediate thought police.

The reading of our gestures, and psychological profiles are the early beginnings of creating the Shadow thought police that become the secret intelligence services of Mr. Smith in the Matrix. We are in the process of densifying and solidifying these Ahrimanic forces in us so that a real shadow will grow out of us and continue to whisper lies, until the lies about our humanity become the daily bread of sustaining the Ahrimanic shadow attached to each and every one of us. And this Ahrimanic Shadow is already here.

We are numbed into slumber and forgetfulness of the logical reality of the Angel Community and our own Spiritual Scientific entrance of our astral bodies and I AM’s into the stream of etheric heredity and physical incarnation from the inner laws of the stars themselves, into the biological laws of our bodies.

These specific studies and insights have been neglected, betrayed and discarded. Not because there is an error, but because Ahriman works to undermine and deceive any other brand but itself in psychology, economics, medicine, education, agriculture, political science and covert Ahrimanic Central Intel.

The very fact that we disavow the reality of Mephistopheles and Ahriman, as real forces and discount our Angels and refuse to include etheric, astral, and I AM systems or that we shun investigating the Nine Hierarchies above humanity should tell us clearly how our logic has been hijacked.  We happily disavow and dismiss, to our peril, our very own Angels as dynamic inspirations of human intuition. “There’s the Rub….”There’s the Rub”.

We are forced in our FREEDOM into a pale, mouse like nihilism which cannot determine what is inner and what is outer or what is subjective and what is objective. We force ourselves to accepthttps://rileybrad.files.wordpress.com/2010/02/hamlet.jpg?w=300 half-lies about religion and the Christ event, which should clearly bring a deepened Science of humanity.  And that is the bind and the true state of Hamlet’s Ahrimanic Nightmare. We find ourselves unable to embrace the phase of the Consciousness Soul[Spiritual Soul] that we are currently in.

With that written as the ground rules to Etheric Christ glimpses 2, we can now grapple with the Christ Event of Golgotha and how it has logically progressed through time. Which means we follow out the well laid out plans of Logic, not miracles, not submerged one sided theories of materialism, not hijacked words like ‘intelligent design’ but actual design by intelligent cosmic beings.

Not creationism, but overcoming our little narrow brain dogmas and following the line and magnificent construction of the Divine with our wonderful humanly endowed reasoning. We have managed to avoid gaining a wider picture of the universe by failing to review “Occult Science an Outline” because we prefer not understanding the brilliant super structure of creation and how humanity fits into it. A secondary back up to the research of “Occult Science an Outline” is the remarkable research work of Kees Zoeteman’s “Gaiasophy“. Time and human evolution, the planning and systems where humanity has arisen, remains intimately logical against the arbitrary theories we are fed at university.

If we include the Nine Hierarchies above humanity and the groups souls of the animals and the realm of the etheric plants and silent stones, we find a vast system of logic in creation that would demand that we re-evaluate our entire educational haphazard conglomeration of  a primitive mud god idol that we worship, having tossed together, slapped layer upon layer of mud and shaped it into a straw and mud figure we call humanity. We want to be fed simple materialistic fairy tales so we won’t be shattered by the stunning logic of the Divine.

How convenient, how cowardly and how so easily brainwashed into the  fallen Ahrimanic mockery of humanity we’ve become. Nobody learns the true IMAGINATION of humanity as the Tenth Hierarchy. The historical events that caused the entire educational system to be plunged into the darkness of the Ahrimanic Imagination of the position that humanity holds with the Christ Event and amidst the higher worlds is the running picture of nihilism and Nietzsche’s nightmare.

Only in Nietzsche’s nightmare, Ahriman managed to take over the functioning brain of Nietzsche in a horrific act of possession that is now the nightmare that every student must face, as every university teaches the debauched and debased Image of Humanity that Ahrimanic Beings have offered. The entire Ahrimanic educational system mocks humanity as the Tenth Hierarchy and rebukes, suffocates, murders and crucifies for a second time, the very Angel that is carrying the Christ upwards.

“Now and then there arises in human beings of our time a kind of foreboding of what will come about in the future. I do not know what meaning has been read into the chapter in Thus Spake Zarathustra, where Nietzsche writes of the ‘ugliest man’ in the ‘valley of death.’ It is a tragic and moving passage. Nietzsche, of course, had no concrete perception of the valley of death into which existence will be transformed when the spidery brood of which I have spoken spreads over the earth. Nevertheless, in the picture of this valley of death in Nietzsche‘s imagination there was a subconscious vision of the future, and within this valley of death he placed the figure of the ‘ugliest man.’ It was a kind of foreboding of what will happen if men continue to cultivate shadowy thoughts. For their destiny then will be that in hideous shape they will be caught up by the forces of the moon-existence as it comes down into the sphere of the earth and will become one with the brood of spidery creatures of which I have been speaking.”

In order to follow the Christ further and recognize the new IMAGINATIONS that are arising out of the cultural and artistic visions of humanity we need to comprehend the transition from Jesus the human being to the Angel community who have carried upwards the revelation of the human events of Golgotha, into the neighboring and intimate world of our own Angels and how our own Angels bleed their experience of the Christ Event for humanity, back into the inner life of our own human sphere.

Rudolf Steiner

“Reference shall now be made to the event in the higher worlds which has led to this altered state of affairs, to this time of a renewal of the Mystery of Golgotha. When we look back we remember what came to pass at the Baptism by John in the Jordan, when Christ revealed Himself in a human form, visible on the earth among mankind. Further, we will fill our souls with the thought of how, as regards His outer form, Christ then united Himself with the Hierarchy of the Angels and has since that time lived invisibly in the sphere of the earth.

“Let us remember what has been said — that in the invisible worlds there is no death. Christ Himself, because He descended to our world, passed through a death similar to that of human beings. When He again became a spiritual Being, He still retained the remembrance of His death; but as a Being of the rank of the Angels in which He continued to manifest Himself outwardly, He could experience only a diminution of consciousness.

“Through that which since the 16th century had become necessary for the evolution of the earth, namely the triumph of science at higher and higher levels, something which has significance also for the invisible worlds entered into the whole evolution of mankind. With the triumph of science, materialistic and agnostic sentiments of greater intensity than hitherto arose in mankind. In earlier times too there had been materialistic tendencies but not the intense materialism that has prevailed since the sixteenth century. More and more, as men passed into the spiritual worlds through the gate of death, they bore with them the outcome of their materialistic ideas on the earth. After the sixteenth century more and more seeds of earthly materialism were carried over, and these seeds developed in a particular way.

“Christ came into the old Hebrew race and was led to His death within it. The angelic Being, who since then has been the outer form assumed by Christ, suffered an extinction of consciousness in the course of the intervening nineteen centuries as a result of the opposing materialistic forces that had been brought into the spiritual worlds by materialistic human souls who had passed through the gate of death. This onset of unconsciousness in the spiritual worlds will lead to the resurrection of the Christ-consciousness in the souls of men on earth between birth and death in the twentieth century. In a certain sense it may therefore be said that from the twentieth century onwards, what has been lost by mankind in the way of consciousness will arise again for clairvoyant vision. At first only a few, and then an ever-increasing number of human beings in the twentieth century will be capable of perceiving the manifestation of the Etheric Christ — that is to say, Christ in the form of an Angel. It was for the sake of humanity that there was what may be called an extinction of consciousness in the worlds immediately above our earthly world, in which Christ has been visible in the period between the Mystery of Golgotha and the present day.

“At the time of the Mystery of Golgotha something took place in a little-known corner of Palestine, something that was the greatest event in the whole evolution of humanity, but of which little notice was taken by the people of that day. If such a thing could be, need we be astonished when we hear what conditions were like during the nineteenth century, when those who since the sixteenth century had passed through death, confronted Christ?

“The ‘seeds of earthly materialism’ which were increasingly carried into the spiritual world by the souls who went through the portal of death since the sixteenth century, and which caused more and more darkness, built the ‘black sphere of materialism.’ Christ took this black sphere into being in the sense of the Manichean principle for the purpose of transforming it. For the angel being in which the Christ had manifested himself since the Mystery of Golgotha the black sphere caused a ‘death by suffocation.’ This sacrifice by Christ in the nineteenth century is comparable to the sacrifice on the physical plane through the Mystery of Golgotha and can be called the second crucifixion of Christ on the etheric plane. This spiritual death by suffocation, which brought about the extinction of the consciousness of the angblack sphereelic Being is a repetition of the Mystery of Golgotha in those worlds that lie immediately behind our world. It took place to make possible a revival of the Christ consciousness which was earlier hidden in human souls on earth. The revival becomes clairvoyant vision of humanity in the twentieth century.

“Thus the Christ-consciousness may be united with the earthly consciousness of men from our time on into the future; for the dying of the Christ-consciousness in the sphere of the Angels in the nineteenth century signifies the resurrection of the direct consciousness of Christ — that is to say, Christ’s life will be felt in the souls of men more and more as a direct personal experience from the twentieth century onwards.

“Just as the few who once were able to read the signs of the times and in contemplating the Mystery of Golgotha were able to realize that Christ had descended from the spiritual worlds to live on the earth and undergo death in order that through His death the substances incorporated into Him might pass into the earth, so are we able to perceive that in certain worlds lying immediately behind our own a sort of spiritual death, a suspension of consciousness, took place. This was a renewal of the Mystery of Golgotha, in order to bring about an awakening of the previously hidden Christ-consciousness within the souls of men on the earth.

“Since the Mystery of Golgotha many human beings have been able to proclaim the Name of Christ, and from this twentieth century onwards an ever-increasing number will be able to make known the knowledge of the Christ that is given in Anthroposophy. Out of their own experience they will be able to proclaim Him.

“Twice already Christ has been crucified: once physically, in the physical world at the beginning of our era, and a second time spiritually, in the nineteenth century, in the way described above. It could be said that mankind experienced the resurrection of His body in that former time and will experience the resurrection of His consciousness from the twentieth century onwards.

“The brief indications I have been able to give you will gradually make their way into the souls of men, and the mediator, the messenger, will be Michael, who is now the ambassador of Christ. Just as he once led human souls towards an understanding of Christ’s life descending from heaven to the earth, so he is now preparing mankind to experience emergence of the Christ-consciousness from the realm of the unknown into the realm of the known. And just as at the time of the earthly life of Christ the greater number of His contemporaries were incapable of believing what a stupendous event had taken place in the evolution of the earth, so, in our own day, the outer world is striving to increase the power of materialism, and will continue for a long time to regard what has been spoken of today as so much fantasy, dreaming, perhaps even downright folly. This too will be the verdict on the truth concerning Michael, who at the present time is beginning to reveal Christ anew. Nevertheless many human beings will recognize the new dawn that is rising and during the coming centuries will pour its forces into the souls of men like a sun — for Michael can always be likened to a sun. And even if many people fail to recognize this new Michael revelation, it will spread through humanity nevertheless.

“That is what may be said today about the relation of the Mystery of Golgotha which took place at the beginning of our era and the Mystery of Golgotha as it can now be understood. From time to time other revelations will be given and for these our minds must be kept open. Should we not be aware that it would be selfish to keep these feelings exclusively for our own inner satisfaction? Let us rather feel that the solemn duty we have recognized through Anthroposophy is to make ourselves into willing instruments for such revelations; and although we are only a small community in mankind which is endeavoring to comprehend this new truth about the Mystery of Golgotha, to grasp this new revelation of Michael, we are nevertheless building up a new power that does not in the least depend upon our belief in this revelation but simply and solely upon the truth itself. Then we shall realize that only a few of us are adequately prepared to declare the following to the world, in so far as the world is willing to listen.

“From now onwards there is a new revelation of Christ; we will be ready to acknowledge it; we will belong to the few who will help it to become more powerful, to become lasting; we will base ourselves upon the inner strength of such a revelation, so that it may spread among mankind, for this knowledge will gradually be shared by all.

“This is what we call wisdom and some may call folly. To stand firm we need only remind ourselves that this is the time of the second Michael revelation, and remember what was said by one of the early Initiates at the time of the former Michael revelation: What often seems folly to man, is wisdom in the eyes of God.”

Let us translate this insight into a base and solid understanding. The entire Science and Logic of humanity has been narrowed to a dangerous eclipse. Humanity in the world of nature stands as the Tenth Hierarchy. The Angels are at the Ninth Hierarchy. Let us look carefully at the Logic. Stone is the lowest visible kingdom in nature. Plants and foliage are the next visible kingdom, and both the world of stones, metals and precious stones and their families and plants, their forms and their virtues are two separate but evolving kingdoms, each rich with the insights of physical science and etheric sciences. The Animals and their groups and their specialized abilities combine physical, etheric and nervous system designs in mobile entities. The animals include specialized studies of the astral body.

                                      ego
                          astral      astral
             etheric      etheric     etheric
physical     physical     physical    physical
.............................................
mineral       plant        animal      man

With the film “Temple Grandin” we understand the very region of the astral body that humanity has failed to comprehend. The difference between the damaged astral body and the healthy astral body is understanding the nature of the astral body and understanding that in the delicate beginnings of human childhood, if certain injections with mercury are forced into the forming of the higher senses of the tiniest child, “this that we do to the least of these, we do to the Christ in ourselves as well” we can bring about a disruption of the cohesion of the astral body as a thinking and organized sense system.

The film about “Temple Grandin” and her relation to autism and millions of cases of autism are specialized studies in higher capacities of the astral body that the Angels had created for the divine model of the human being. Autism reveals a special study of the distortions of our very own higher capacities, savant and genius level capacities that can be disrupted in the organization of the astral and nervous system.

In particular the starry design of the twelve fold nervous system, known as our TWELVE CRANIAL NERVES, are our specific navigational astral body maps that we have brought with us from the stars. Each child brings with them into their biological development and their brain development, a particular overlaid star map that form fits itself into the Twelve Cranial nerves and develops slowly as the astral body is inserted from 7 to 21 years.

“…our Desire Body (that aspect of the astral body which responds accordingly) is to be likened collectively to one great empathetic nerve. Our condition of being in preparedness, or in response, is active and taut; it is sensitive to life itself and familiar with, resonating up and down that nerve to all that awakens its liveliness. For this part of the astral body – as opposed to the uppermost astrality which empathically resonates with the starry body of Christ as mirrored in the Zodiac – this part of the astral body knows and measures life by such responsive due; for this is what it does and is. “

What this means is that the pressing in of the astral body our ability to reproduce children, to have a monthly menstrual cycle and to have the etheric body receive the particular forces of the personality and unique astral forces of the soul, our media life, through our disjointed and bad education and our materialistic parenting instincts we have forced the astral body to enter prematurely. Menstruation sometimes begins in girls at age eight or nine.

These disturbances in the environment and in the astral body disrupt the healthy setting  and the placing of the gemstone of the higher personality into the prepared setting of what the parents and environment have supplied as heredity and a living life situation. After the numerous injections from our Ahrimanic medical community have compromised the immune systems of the children, giving them say between 20 to 60 childhood injections before the age of three, we come to another warning that Steiner placed how the Christ Himself attempts, through our human intelligence to guard all children to arise, stand, walk and begin speaking, Christ prepares all human children, while we destroy the immune system and nervous system of those very children. Than, when the damage begins to show itself the adults force the child into Pharma dependency. The new Pharma dependency damage creates a pseudo ‘normal’ warped personality that do not show the obvious radical cracks that have been created in the astral and nervous system.

“Such a feeling as can live in our souls when we see a little child learning to stand upright and to walk has most certainly a deep religious background. We should often call to mind why the child walks and realize how we must thank the Christ-Impulse for it. Then we have enriched our conception of the world through Spiritual Science and acquired a feeling for our environment which we could not possess otherwise. Through Spiritual Science we take note, as it were, of the protectors and guardians of a child’s growth and development and see how the Christ-Force radiates around his being.”

There are clear cut attacks underway to disrupt, distort and shatter the healthy cohesion of the astral body because of the fact that our relation to our Angels, (for it is they that had designed our Nervous systems in the Old Moon evolution), it is our relation to the Angel Community that now carry the forces that are revealing the cultural and intimate IMAGINATIONS, films and media that reveal super heroes with distorted higher powers, eternal vampires, Archangels, Angels, and Angels and Demons, elemental beings and clairvoyant capacities. However these creations and interpretations of the Angelic Community come through the distorted thought and picture process of human beings who are catching higher waves of insight they cannot bring into healthy order in themselves.

The Angels were always called The Sons of Twilight. We are now being challenged via a back door channel of black romanticism, the occult romanticism of having immortal vampire lovers and an entire Vampire fan base that has linked everything about the Angelic Community to the astral development of silly sensual attractions of our immortal Dark Lovers. “Twilight Saga: Eclipse”, like so many other fads, like Michael Jackson’s fan club has opened themselves to seeking some immortal dark fairy tale of themselves that allows them to keep their youthful sensuality, but does not allow them to see into the real spiritual history of humanity and gain insight into the true Angelic Lovers that we have that now are forced to appeal to our lowest instincts because our higher Intelligence has been thwarted by bad taste and fatal flaws in human courage and education.

Looking from man upwards to higher kingdoms, we have to begin with three kingdoms which interest us. In accordance with Christian esotericism, we call the kingdom immediately bordering on the human the realm of the Angels they are also called Spirits of Twilight. Then there is a second kingdom, higher than the Angels, the kingdom of the Archangels; they are also called the Spirits of Fire. Lastly there is a still higher kingdom, that of the Archai (Original Forces or First Beginnings), called also the Spirits of Personality. These are the three kingdoms next above man.

“When we observe a man of the present day clairvoyantly we see that his astral body really consists of two parts, namely, the part that is already under the control of the ego and the part he is not yet able to control. This latter is still filled with lower forces and impulses, and when the ego drives these out all kinds of powers are added to the astral body. In order that the astral body should not be destroyed by the lower forces it must always be permeated and suffused by higher beings who control it in the same way that man will control it in the future when he has attained the goal of his evolution. The beings whose task it is to control that part of the astral body which is still uncontrolled by man are one stage higher than he is, they are the Angels, or Spirits of Twilight. In fact one such Spirit watches over every human being, and this Spirit has power over the astral body; it is therefore no childish idea, but profound wisdom, to speak of guardian angels. These guardian angels have a great duty to perform.”

Being awash in such uncharted regions sets humanity adrift with no ability to center themselves on just what in the intimacy of our own quiet lives allows us to read the intimate script of our Angels as they and WE are caught in the swirl of the ZeitGeist and the Archai Michael. etheric christ glimpses 2 mud god idol of materialismAll of which is considered merely fantasy by materialism, which is in itself, as materialism, a complete failure of logic.and in itself a decadent mud idol thrown together by Ahrimanic beings.

It is humanly logical to include the events in the Angelic Community since the Christ experienced events of the Crucifixion in and through our very own Human Community, and experienced the Resurrection and his rising into the Angelic Community through the fact that Christ wore a human form. Christ has taken all our human experiences with Him, so the intimacy of the Angelic Community is now rayed through with all the values of our higher humanity.

However, we as humanity, are still trailing way behind in our logic. We are still teaching in every medium of education an Ahrimanic Imagination of the human being and nowhere in this piecemeal ahrimanic fantasy is the revelation of humanity as the Tenth Hierarchy.

The tragic consequences of how materialism eclipsed and overwhelmed the Angel that held all our divine human experiences gathered by Christ from Golgotha is now repeated through countless human tragedies, until such time as humanity catches up to the current workings of THE ANGELS WORK IN THE ASTRAL BODY OF HUMANITY.

Currently in particular the Vampire Saga, “Twilight Saga: Eclipse” is directly in line, directly on line, directly dead center on the study of THE ANGELS WORK IN THE ASTRAL BODY OF HUMANITY. In order to understand the current of unconscious black romanticism that has been sucked down into the lack of understanding that humanity refuses to take hold of, we have to go over with a fine tooth comb the stirring study called The Angels Work in the Astral Body of Humanity. This will help anyone who is still forcing the Angelic and higher worlds to be pressed down through the density of dark human understandings of immortal beings and TWILIGHT and SONS OF TWILIGHT and distorted, darkened insights into the occult to gain an accurate perspective of the true workings of The Angels in the Astral Body of Humanity. It is essential to gain a clear understanding or our intelligence and human understanding will continue to sink.

The point is that we can be flooded with imaginations through films, flicks and cinema that will indeed reveal fragmented pictures and distortions of  The Angels Work in the Astral Body of Humanity, but it is our own human destinies and our own lives and the intimacy of the laws of the logic of the advance foundations of Spiritual Science that can antidote and clear up the facts from the fantasies. Without Spiritual Science logic in the mix a healthy relation to the Angelic Community is in horrific jeopardy and this jeopardizes the deeds the Christ has accomplished for the whole of humanity.

We can study at universities and come away with a dense eclipsed vision of materialism, that will precisely push us into the experience of hopelessness and vacancy, soul death and eclipse that the Angel Community experienced as Christ passed through their region. This is something that is better experienced consciously than unconsciously. However the  Christ carried with Him all the human living, and wrenching forces that only this Super Divine Being, a Sun Being could bring to the hierarchies.

It is Christ who won for humanity and who created the model of the immortal I AM for humanity, restructured the fall of humanity to make way for the unfolding of higher stages of development that starts with the human I and unfolds transforming Spirit Self-hood of the astral body into the Angelic Community; transforming Life-Spirit of our etheric bodies into Archangel cognition and finally at the very base of matter itself, transforming Spirit-Man, transforming the physical body itself into a higher Divine Being.  All these cosmic facts and Spiritual Science transformations were wrought on Earth by the Christ Being and carried up into the Angelic Community by the Angel who bore the Christ Being.  Just as our own human Jesus bore the Christ in the realm of humanity so after Christ had suffered the extremes of Earth life and death, he entered with his human experiences into the Angelic Community.

etheric christ glimpses 2

This is just the advanced logic of coming to terms with the shocking reality that there is a foundational order in the universe, from stone, plant, animal, HUMAN, to Angel, Archangel, Archai and that we have miserably failed holding up our end of the bargain.  We are failing in developing the depth and vision of the Consciousness Soul[Spiritual Soul] enough to expand the dysfunctional borders we have created through our materialistic fantasies that literally imprison ourselves behind a wall of self-satisfied and self-created materialism. This imprisoning and eclipse magnified a thousand fold is not only what autistic children experience as hyper torture of  their sense systems, but these hyper experiences of Post Traumatic Stress Disorder and hundreds of nervous disorders are just a glimpse in human terms of what our Angelic Community is experiencing.

But because Christ has taken our Human and Divine experiences from the Earth with Him upwards into the Angelic Community, humanity will be forced to experience the horrific tragedy that we inflict by our ignorance through out the human, natural and divine worlds.

What our Angels and the Angel Community experienced of the eclipse of the Christ Being’s Angel, humanity is experiencing spread out a hundred fold in tragedy, in covert Ahrimanic Pharmaceutical attacks on our children; in vast Luciferic distortions of true human moral clarity and courage; and in the undermining and brutal Ahrimanic occupation of our Intellectual Souls by fallen Ahrimanic beings.

3-fold 9-fold 7-fold 4-fold
SPIRIT Spirit Man Atma future stages /
angelic consciousness
Life Spirit Buddhi
Spirit Self Manas
SOUL Spiritual Soul Ego Ego
Intellectual Soul
Sentient Soul Astral body Astral body
BODY Soul Body
Etheric Body Etheric Body Etheric Body
Physical body Physical body Physical body

These Ahrimanic beings were exquisitely represented by Mr. Smith in the entire Project for a New Ahrimanic Century or better called Project for a New Ahrimanic Humanity offered by the “Matrix Series”.

The Ahrimanic forces are working to undermine the entire healthy understanding of the Intellect and Consciousness Soul region of humanity by presenting every distortion of materialism, nationalism, racism, genetics and horrific inhuman and terrifying weaponry in it’s arsenal, through disinformation, shills, lies, torture, murder…it matters not, the Angels message of the Christ Being must not get through to humanity in a healthy logical form. That is the mission of the Ahrimanic invasion force and appropriate cosmic terrorists that occupy the region known as the human Intellectual Soul. And to the fantasy of materialism, there is no such region as the Intellectual Soul, therefore there are no such beings, ahrimanic beings, who have leeched themselves into our souls as cosmic parasites.

If we as humanity took the healthy vision of the Etheric Christ and the logic of the Angelic Community that is absorbing the Christ in it’s realm now, and waded out into the Science of the Spirit to meet them, we would know how to SEE Ahriman in the workings of the soul of humanity and in our individual soul structure and be able to antidote it. This could be easy, fun and without a doubt, given the conditions today, dangerous.

Because in the case of Ahrimanic infringements into human freedom, Ahriman can only act and disrupt and cause the tragedy it causes in humanity because humanity refuses to face Ahriman in itself and face-off with our own Ahrimanic double and literally look at it, even if it is us, and say wisely, Get Thee behind us Ahriman, for humanity comes first before lies. We must learn to know the liar that we are and the lies we continue to disseminate and realize that even that mature confrontation in ourselves prepares us to hold our humanity through the dark passage that our Angels and the Christ Angel has already passed through.

The fatal error, as with all Spiritual Science facts, is that by thinking that Christ removed the sins of humanity at His Crucifixion and Resurrection in the realm of Earth, and that the Angel of Christ has already suffered suffocation and eclipse due to Ahrimanic materialism, that all humanity is required to be is complacent. On the contrary, humanity is living through and recreating the very errors that will cause the tragedy to engulf us further because in fact we have Intel into the Angelic Community events and we have Intel that vast Ahrimanic legions of forces have been thrust into the human intellect and now operate within human Intelligence as a mimic and deceiver of human intelligence. And this is confirmed every single day in every media event and every encounter we have.

If you really dwell on this in your soul, you will be able to give due consideration to two aspects which will be extraordinarily important for the future. Remember we said yesterday that in 1879 ahrimanic powers of a special kind descended from the heights of the spirit into the realm of human evolution, and specifically into the evolution of the human intellect and soul. These powers are here, they are living among us. They seek above all to take possession of our heads, of anything we think and inwardly feel. They are angelic Spirits, I said, who cannot continue their development in the spiritual world and want to use human heads to continue to develop in the immediate future. It is therefore particularly important that this line (blue line in Fig. 11a) of secret, hidden soul development is given due attention. As I have told you, many people probably do not want to give it conscious attention; they would far rather it stayed down below, so they need only concern themselves with material things. If it is not given attention, those ahrimanic powers will take hold of this very process of growing inwardness. This is one thing we must take into account. We must be ready to face the danger soon to come in the evolution of civilization, and stand guard in our most holy, inner human reality against the influences of ahrimanic powers.”

Finally, because this updated Intel has been given to humanity, humanity is now responsible for damage control and adjustments. Humanity must critically review education, religion, science and most of all Art and the Imaginations that Art and inspiration send vividly coursing through the veins and life blood of humanity. Education must become an Art, and topping the list, humanity must study what the Angels goals and dangers are in relation to the unfolding of their mission and our mission. Once any serious understanding of humanity as the Tenth Hierarchy is maintained than the serious position of humanities ethical and moral education to our fellow human beings becomes acutely clear cut. Humanity does not live by bread alone but by the very inspirations, imaginations and accurate Intel of the Science of the Spirit in the ongoing development of the Christ Revelation and our job as the Tenth Hierarchy is to revise and review the new Intel that places us currently under the Archai Michael’s Zeitgeist systems organization.

The Seraphim by Elizabeth Browning

Peter Gabriel and Kate Bush with the intimacy of the Angelic World

PART THE FIRST.

[It is the time of the Crucifixion: and the Father of the Crucified has directed
towards earth the angels of His heaven, of whom all have departed except
the two Seraphim, Ador the Strong and Zerah the Bright One.
The place is the outer side of the shut heavenly gate.]

Ador. O SERAPH, pause no more!
Beside this gate of Heaven we stand alone.

Zerah. Of Heaven!

Ador. Our brother hosts are gone–

Zerah. Are gone!

Ador. And the golden harps the angels bore
To help the songs of their desire,
Still burning from their hands of fire,
Lie without touch or tone,
Or canopy of angel wing,
Upon the glass-sea shore.

Zerah. Silent upon the glass-sea shore!

Ador. Instead of sounding, glittering
In the shadow from the throne–
The shadow without form, that meets
The edges of the crystal sea–
Awfuller than light derived,
And red with all those primal heats,
Whereby all life hath lived.

Zerah. Our visible God, our Heaven! and we
Go thus!

LINK OVER TO PART 1 OF ETHERIC CHRIST GLIMPSES

« Older entries